<?xml version="1.0" encoding="UTF-8"?>
<TEI xmlns="http://www.tei-c.org/ns/1.0">
  <teiHeader>
      <fileDesc>
         <titleStmt>
            <title type="main">North and south</title>
            <author>Gaskell, Elizabeth Cleghorn, 1810-1865</author>
         </titleStmt>
         <publicationStmt>
            <distributor>
               <name>University of Oxford Text Archive</name>
               <address>
                  <addrLine>Oxford University Computing Services</addrLine>
                  <addrLine>13 Banbury Road</addrLine>
                  <addrLine>Oxford</addrLine>
                  <addrLine>OX2 6NN</addrLine>
               </address>
            </distributor>
            <idno type="ota">https://hdl.handle.net/20.500.14106/3107</idno>
            <idno type="isbn10">1106001060</idno>
            <idno type="isbn13">9781106001061</idno>
            <availability status="free">
               <licence target="http://creativecommons.org/licenses/by-sa/3.0/">
	Distributed by the University of Oxford under a Creative Commons
	Attribution-ShareAlike 3.0 Unported License
      </licence>
            </availability>
         </publicationStmt>
         <sourceDesc>
            <bibl>Revised version of  <relatedItem type="older" target="http://ota.ox.ac.uk/id/2159"/>
            </bibl>
            <bibl>Not recorded. 
<note anchored="true">First edition published in 1854.</note>
            </bibl>
         </sourceDesc>
      </fileDesc>
      <encodingDesc>
         <classDecl>
            <taxonomy xml:id="OTASH">
               <bibl>University of Oxford Text Archive Subject Headings</bibl>
            </taxonomy>
            <taxonomy xml:id="LCSH">
               <bibl>Library of Congress Subject Headings</bibl>
            </taxonomy>
         </classDecl>
      </encodingDesc>
      <profileDesc>
         <creation>
            <date notAfter="1854"/>
         </creation>
         <langUsage>
            <language ident="eng">English</language>
         </langUsage>
         <textClass>
            <keywords scheme="#LCSH">
               <term type="genre">Fiction -- Great Britain -- 19th century</term>
               <term type="genre">Novels -- Great Britain -- 19th century</term>
            </keywords>
         </textClass>
      </profileDesc>
      <revisionDesc>
         <change when="2010-09-27">Header normalised</change>
      </revisionDesc>
  </teiHeader>
  <text>
      <front>
         <titlePage>
            <docTitle>
               <titlePart type="main">
                  <title type="main">North and South</title>
               </titlePart>
            </docTitle>
            <byline>by 
<docAuthor>Elizabeth Gaskell</docAuthor>
            </byline>
         </titlePage>
         <div type="preface">
            <p>On its appearance 
in 'Household Words,' this tale was obliged to conform to the conditions 
imposed by the requirements of a weekly publication, and likewise to confine 
itself within certain advertised limits, in order that faith might be kept 
with the public. Although these conditions were made as light as they well 
could be, the author found it impossible to develope the story in the manner 
originally intended, and, more especially, was compelled to hurry on events 
with an improbable rapidity towards the close. In some degree to remedy this 
obvious defect, various short passages have been inserted, and several new 
chapters added. With this brief explanation, the tale is commended to the 
kindness of the reader; 
<q>
                  <l>'Beseking hym lowly, of mercy and pite, </l>
                  <l>Of its rude makyng to have compassion.' </l>
               </q>
            </p>
         </div>
      </front>
      <body>
         <div xml:id="v1" type="Volume">
            <div xml:id="c1.1" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER I</head>
               <head>'HASTE TO THE WEDDING'</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Wooed and married and a'.' </l>
               </q>
               <p>'Edith!' said Margaret, gently, 'Edith!' 
</p>
               <p>But, as Margaret half 
suspected, Edith had fallen asleep. She lay curled up on the sofa in the back 
drawing-room in Harley Street, looking very lovely in her white muslin and 
blue ribbons. If Titania had ever been dressed in white muslin and blue 
ribbons, and had fallen asleep on a crimson damask sofa in a back 
drawing-room, Edith might have been taken for her. Margaret was struck afresh 
by her cousin's beauty. They had grown up together from childhood, and all 
along Edith had been remarked upon by every one, except Margaret, for her 
prettiness; but Margaret had never thought about it until the last few days, 
when the prospect of soon losing her companion seemed to give force to every 
sweet quality and charm which Edith possessed. They had been talking about 
wedding dresses, and wedding ceremonies; and Captain Lennox, and what he had 
told Edith about her future life at Corfu, where his regiment was stationed; 
and the difficulty of keeping a piano in good tune (a difficulty which Edith 
seemed to consider as one of the most formidable that could befall her in her 
married life), and what gowns she should want in the visits to Scotland, 
which would immediately succeed her marriage; but the whispered tone had 
latterly become more drowsy; and Margaret, after a pause of a few minutes, 
found, as she fancied, that in spite of the buzz in the next room, Edith had 
rolled herself up into a soft ball of muslin and ribbon, and silken curls, 
and gone off into a peaceful little after-dinner nap. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret had been on 
the point of telling her cousin of some of the plans and visions which she 
entertained as to her future life in the country parsonage, where her father 
and mother lived; and where her bright holidays had always been passed, 
though for the last ten years her aunt Shaw's house had been considered as 
her home. But in default of a listener, she had to brood over the change in 
her life silently as heretofore. It was a happy brooding, although tinged 
with regret at being separated for an indefinite time from her gentle aunt 
and dear cousin. As she thought of the delight of filling the important post 
of only daughter in Helstone parsonage, pieces of the conversation out of the 
next room came upon her ears. Her aunt Shaw was talking to the five or six 
ladies who had been dining there, and whose husbands were still in the 
dining-room. They were the familiar acquaintances of the house; neighbours 
whom Mrs. Shaw called friends, because she happened to dine with them more 
frequently than with any other people, and because if she or Edith wanted 
anything from them, or they from her, they did not scruple to make a call at 
each other's houses before luncheon. These ladies and their husbands were 
invited, in their capacity of friends, to eat a farewell dinner in honour of 
Edith's approaching marriage. Edith had rather objected to this arrangement, 
for Captain Lennox was expected to arrive by a late train this very evening; 
but, although she was a spoiled child, she was too careless and idle to have 
a very strong will of her own, and gave way when she found that her mother 
had absolutely ordered those extra delicacies of the season which are always 
supposed to be efficacious against immoderate grief at farewell dinners. She 
contented herself by leaning back in her chair, merely playing with the food 
on her plate, and looking grave and absent; while all around her were 
enjoying the mots of Mr. Grey, the gentleman who always took the bottom of 
the table at Mrs. Shaw's dinner parties, and asked Edith to give them some 
music in the drawing-room. Mr. Grey was particularly agreeable over this 
farewell dinner, and the gentlemen staid down stairs longer than usual. It 
was very well they did—to judge from the fragments of conversation which 
Margaret overheard. 
</p>
               <p>'I suffered too much myself; not that I was not 
extremely happy with the poor dear General, but still disparity of age is a 
drawback; one that I was resolved Edith should not have to encounter. Of 
course, without any maternal partiality, I foresaw that the dear child was 
likely to marry early; indeed, I had often said that I was sure she would be 
married before she was nineteen. I had quite a prophetic feeling when Captain 
Lennox'—and here the voice dropped into a whisper, but Margaret could easily 
supply the blank. The course of true love in Edith's case had run remarkably 
smooth. Mrs. Shaw had given way to the presentiment, as she expressed it; and 
had rather urged on the marriage, although it was below the expectations 
which many of Edith's acquaintances had formed for her, a young and pretty 
heiress. But Mrs. Shaw said that her only child should marry for love,—and 
sighed emphatically, as if love had not been her motive for marrying the 
General. Mrs. Shaw enjoyed the romance of the present engagement rather more 
than her daughter. Not but that Edith was very thoroughly and properly in 
love; still she would certainly have preferred a good house in Belgravia, to 
all the picturesqueness of the life which Captain Lennox described at Corfu. 
The very parts which made Margaret glow as she listened, Edith pretended to 
shiver and shudder at; partly for the pleasure she had in being coaxed out of 
her dislike by her fond lover, and partly because anything of a gipsy or 
make-shift life was really distasteful to her. Yet had any one come with a 
fine house, and a fine estate, and a fine title to boot, Edith would still 
have clung to Captain Lennox while the temptation lasted; when it was over, 
it is possible she might have had little qualms of ill-concealed regret that 
Captain Lennox could not have united in his person everything that was 
desirable. In this she was but her mother's child; who, after deliberately 
marrying General Shaw with no warmer feeling than respect for his character 
and establishment, was constantly, though quietly, bemoaning her hard lot in 
being united to one whom she could not love. 
</p>
               <p>'I have spared no expense in 
her trousseau,' were the next words Margaret heard. 'She has all the 
beautiful Indian shawls and scarfs the General gave to me, but which I shall 
never wear again.' 
</p>
               <p>'She is a lucky girl,' replied another voice, which 
Margaret knew to be that of Mrs. Gibson, a lady who was taking a double 
interest in the conversation, from the fact of one of her daughters having 
been married within the last few weeks. 'Helen had set her heart upon an 
Indian shawl, but really when I found what an extravagant price was asked, I 
was obliged to refuse her. She will be quite envious when she hears of Edith 
having Indian shawls. What kind are they? Delhi? with the lovely little 
borders?' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret heard her aunt's voice again, but this time it was as if 
she had raised herself up from her half-recumbent position, and were looking 
into the more dimly lighted back drawing-room. 'Edith! Edith!' cried she; and 
then she sank as if wearied by the exertion. Margaret stepped 
forward. 
</p>
               <p>'Edith is asleep, Aunt Shaw. Is it anything I can do?' 
</p>
               <p>All the 
ladies said 'Poor child!' on receiving this distressing intelligence about 
Edith; and the minute lap-dog in Mrs. Shaw's arms began to bark, as if 
excited by the burst of pity. 
</p>
               <p>'Hush, Tiny! you naughty little girl! you 
will waken your mistress. It was only to ask Edith if she would tell Newton 
to bring down her shawls: perhaps you would go, Margaret dear?' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret 
went up into the old nursery at the very top of the house, where Newton was 
busy getting up some laces which were required for the wedding. While Newton 
went (not without a muttered grumbling) to undo the shawls, which had already 
been exhibited four or five times that day, Margaret looked round upon the 
nursery; the first room in that house with which she had become familiar nine 
years ago, when she was brought, all untamed from the forest, to share the 
home, the play, and the lessons of her cousin Edith. She remembered the dark, 
dim look of the London nursery, presided over by an austere and ceremonious 
nurse, who was terribly particular about clean hands and torn frocks. She 
recollected the first tea up there—separate from her father and aunt, who 
were dining somewhere down below an infinite depth of stairs; for unless she 
were up in the sky (the child thought), they must be deep down in the bowels 
of the earth. At home—before she came to live in Harley Street—her mother's 
dressing-room had been her nursery; and, as they kept early hours in the 
country parsonage, Margaret had always had her meals with her father and 
mother. Oh! well did the tall stately girl of eighteen remember the tears 
shed with such wild passion of grief by the little girl of nine, as she hid 
her face under the bed-clothes, in that first night; and how she was bidden 
not to cry by the nurse, because it would disturb Miss Edith; and how she had 
cried as bitterly, but more quietly, till her newly-seen, grand, pretty aunt 
had come softly upstairs with Mr. Hale to show him his little sleeping 
daughter. Then the little Margaret had hushed her sobs, and tried to lie 
quiet as if asleep, for fear of making her father unhappy by her grief, which 
she dared not express before her aunt, and which she rather thought it was 
wrong to feel at all after the long hoping, and planning, and contriving they 
had gone through at home, before her wardrobe could be arranged so as to suit 
her. grander circumstances, and before papa could leave his parish to come up 
to London, even for a few days. 
</p>
               <p>Now she had got to love the old nursery, 
though it was but a dismantled place; and she looked all round, with a kind 
of cat-like regret, at the idea of leaving it for ever in three days. 
</p>
               <p>'Ah 
Newton!' said she, 'I think we shall all be sorry to leave this dear old 
room.' 
</p>
               <p>'Indeed, miss, I shan't for one. My eyes are not so good as they 
were, and the light here is so bad that I can't see to mend laces except just 
at the window, where there's always a shocking draught—enough to give one 
one's death of cold.' 
</p>
               <p>Well, I dare say you will have both good light and 
plenty of warmth at Naples. You must keep as much of your darning as you can 
till then. Thank you, Newton, I can take them down—you're busy.' 
</p>
               <p>So 
Margaret went down laden with shawls, and snuffing up their spicy Eastern 
smell. Her aunt asked her to stand as a sort of lay figure on which to 
display them, as Edith was still asleep. No one thought about it; but 
Margaret's tall, finely made figure, in the black silk dress which she was 
wearing as mourning for some distant relative of her father's, set off the 
long beautiful folds of the gorgeous shawls that would have half-smothered 
Edith. Margaret stood right under the chandelier, quite silent and passive, 
while her aunt adjusted the draperies. Occasionally, as she was turned round, 
she caught a glimpse of herself in the mirror over the chimney-piece, and 
smiled at her own appearance there-the familiar features in the usual garb of 
a princess. She touched the shawls gently as they hung around her, and took a 
pleasure in their soft feel and their brilliant colours, and rather liked to 
be dressed in such splendour—enjoying it much as a child would do, with a 
quiet pleased smile on her lips. Just then the door opened, and Mr. Henry 
Lennox was suddenly announced. Some of the ladies started back, as if 
half-ashamed of their feminine interest in dress. Mrs. Shaw held out her hand 
to the new-comer; Margaret stood perfectly still, thinking she might be yet 
wanted as a sort of block for the shawls; but looking at Mr. Lennox with a 
bright, amused face, as if sure of his sympathy in her sense of the 
ludicrousness at being thus surprised. 
</p>
               <p>Her aunt was so much absorbed in 
asking Mr. Henry Lennox—who had not been able to come to dinner—all sorts 
of questions about his brother the bridegroom, his sister the bridesmaid 
(coming with the Captain from Scotland for the occasion), and various other 
members of the Lennox family, that Margaret saw she was no more wanted as 
shawl-bearer, and devoted herself to the amusement of the other visitors, 
whom her aunt had for the moment forgotten. Almost immediately, Edith came in 
from the back drawing-room, winking and blinking her eyes at the stronger 
light, shaking back her slightly-ruffled curls, and altogether looking like 
the Sleeping Beauty just startled from her dreams. Even in her slumber she 
had instinctively felt that a Lennox was worth rousing herself for; and she 
had a multitude of questions to ask about dear Janet, the future, unseen 
sister-in-law, for whom she professed so much. affection, that if Margaret 
had not been very proud she might have almost felt jealous of the mushroom 
rival. As Margaret sank rather more into the background on her aunt's joining 
the conversation, she saw Henry Lennox directing his look towards a vacant 
seat near her; and she knew perfectly well that as soon as Edith released him 
from her questioning, he would take possession of that chair. She had not 
been quite sure, from her aunt's rather confused account of his engagements, 
whether he would come that night; it was almost a surprise td see him; and 
now she was sure of a pleasant evening. He liked and disliked pretty nearly 
the same things that she did. Margaret's face was lightened up into an 
honest, open brightness. By-and-by he came. She received him with a smile 
which had not a tinge of shyness or self-consciousness in it. 
</p>
               <p>'Well, I 
suppose you are all in the depths of business—ladies' business, I mean. Very 
different to my business, which is the real true law business. Playing with 
shawls is very different work to drawing up settlements. 
</p>
               <p>'Ah, I knew how 
you would be amused to find us all so occupied in admiring finery. But really 
Indian shawls are very perfect things of their kind.' 
</p>
               <p>'I have no doubt they 
are. Their prices are very perfect, too. Nothing wanting.' 
</p>
               <p>The gentlemen 
came dropping in one by one, and the buzz and noise deepened in tone. 
</p>
               <p>'This 
is your last dinner-party, is it not? There are no more before 
Thursday?' 
</p>
               <p>'No. I think after this evening we shall feel at rest, which I 
am sure I have not done for many weeks; at least, that kind of rest when the 
hands have nothing more to do, and all the arrangements are complete for an 
event which must occupy one's head and heart. I shall be glad to have time to 
think, and I am sure Edith will.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am not so sure about her; but I can 
fancy that you will. whenever I have seen you lately, you have been carried 
away by a whirlwind of some other person's making.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes,' said Margaret, 
rather sadly, remembering the never-ending commotion about trifles that had 
been going on for more than a month past: 'I wonder if a marriage must always 
be preceded by what you call a whirlwind, or whether in some cases there 
might not rather be a calm and peaceful time just before it.' 
</p>
               <p>'Cinderella's 
godmother ordering the trousseau, the wedding-breakfast, writing the notes of 
invitation, for instance,' said Mr. Lennox, laughing. 
</p>
               <p>'But are all these 
quite necessary troubles?' asked Margaret, looking up straight at him for an 
answer. A sense of indescribable weariness of all the arrangements for a 
pretty effect, in which Edith had been busied as supreme authority for the 
last six weeks, oppressed her just now; and she really wanted some one to 
help her to a few pleasant, quiet ideas connected with a marriage. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, of 
course,' he replied with a change to gravity in his tone. 'There are forms 
and ceremonies to be gone through, not so much to satisfy oneself, as to stop 
the world's mouth, without which stoppage there would be very little 
satisfaction in life. But how would you have a wedding arranged?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, I 
have never thought much about it; only I should like it to be a very fine 
summer morning; and I should like to walk to church through the shade of 
trees; and not to have so many bridesmaids, and to have no wedding-breakfast. 
I dare say I am resolving against the very things that have given me the most 
trouble just now.' 
</p>
               <p>'No, I don't think you are. The idea of stately 
simplicity accords well with your character.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret did not quite like 
this speech; she winced away from it more, from remembering former occasions 
on which he had tried to lead her into a discussion (in which he took the 
complimentary part) about her own character and ways of going on. She cut his 
speech rather short by saying: 
</p>
               <p>'It is natural for me to think of Helstone 
church, and the walk to it, rather than of driving up to a London church in 
the middle of a paved street.' 
</p>
               <p>'Tell me about Helstone. You have never 
described it to me. I should like to have some idea of the place you will be 
living in, when ninety-six Harley Street will be looking dingy and dirty, and 
dull, and shut up. Is Helstone a village, or a town, in the first 
place?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, only a hamlet; I don't think I could call it a village at all. 
There is the church and a few houses near it on the green—cottages, 
rather—with roses growing all over them.' 
</p>
               <p>'And flowering all the year 
round, especially at Christmas—make your picture complete,' said he. 
</p>
               <p>'No,' 
replied Margaret, somewhat annoyed, 'I am not making a picture. I am trying 
to describe Helstone as it really is. You should not have said that.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am 
penitent,' he answered. 'Only it really sounded like a village in a tale 
rather than in real life.' 
</p>
               <p>'And so it is,' replied Margaret, eagerly. 'All 
the other places in England that I have seen seem so hard and 
prosaic-looking, after the New Forest. Helstone is like a village in a 
poem—in one of Tennyson's poems. But I won't try and describe it any more. 
You would only laugh at me if I told you what I think of it—what it really 
is.' 
</p>
               <p>'Indeed, I would not. But I see you are going to be very resolved. 
Well, then, tell me that which I should like still better to know:what the 
parsonage is like.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, I can't describe my home. It is home, and I can't 
put its charm into words.' 
</p>
               <p>'I submit. You are rather severe to-night, 
Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'How?' said she, turning her large soft eyes round full upon him. 
'I did not know I was.' 
</p>
               <p>'Why, because I made an unlucky remark, you will 
neither tell me what Helstone is like, nor will you say anything about your 
home, though I have told you how much I want to hear about both, the latter 
especially.' 
</p>
               <p>'But indeed I cannot tell you about my own home. I don't quite 
think it is a thing to be talked about, unless you knew it.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, 
then'—pausing for a moment—'tell me what you do there. Here you read, or 
have lessons, or otherwise improve your mind, till the middle of the day; 
take a walk before lunch, go a drive with your aunt after, and have some kind 
of engagement in the evening. There, now fill up your day at Helstone. Shall 
you ride, drive, or walk?' 
</p>
               <p>'Walk, decidedly. We have no horse, not even for 
papa. He walks to the very extremity of his parish. The walks are so 
beautiful, it would be a shame to drive—almost a shame to ride.' 
</p>
               <p>'Shall 
you garden much? That, I believe, is a proper employment for young ladies in 
the country.' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't know. I am afraid I shan't like such hard 
work.' 
</p>
               <p>'Archery parties—pic-nics—race-balls—hunt-balls?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh no!' said 
she, laughing. 'Papa's living is very small; and even if we were near such 
things, I doubt if I should go to them.' 
</p>
               <p>'I see, you won't tell me 
anything. You will only tell me that you are not going to do this and that. 
Before the vacation ends, I think I shall pay you a call, and see what you 
really do employ yourself in.' 
</p>
               <p>'I hope you will. Then you will see for 
yourself how beautiful Helstone is. Now I must go. Edith is sitting down to 
play, and I just know enough of music to turn over the leaves for her; and 
besides, Aunt Shaw won't like us to talk.' 
</p>
               <p>Edith played brilliantly. In the 
middle of the piece the door half-opened, and Edith saw Captain Lennox 
hesitating whether to come in. She threw down her music, and rushed out of 
the room, leaving Margaret standing confused and blushing to explain to the 
astonished guests what vision had shown itself to cause Edith's sudden 
flight. Captain Lennox had come earlier than was expected; or was it really 
so late? They looked at their watches, were duly shocked, and took their 
leave. 
</p>
               <p>Then Edith came back, glowing with pleasure, half-shyly, 
half-proudly leading in her tall handsome Captain. His brother shook hands 
with him, and Mrs. Shaw welcomed him in her gentle kindly way, which had 
always something plaintive in it, arising from the long habit of considering 
herself a victim to an uncongenial marriage. Now that, the General being 
gone, she had every good of life, with as few drawbacks as possible, she had 
been rather perplexed to find an anxiety, if not a sorrow. She had, however, 
of late settled upon her own health as a source of apprehension; she had a 
nervous little cough whenever she thought about it; and some complaisant 
doctor ordered her just what she desired,—a winter in Italy. Mrs. Shaw had 
as strong wishes as most people, but she never liked to do anything from the 
open and acknowledged motive of her own good will and pleasure; she preferred 
being compelled to gratify herself by some other person's command or desire. 
She really did persuade herself that she was submitting to some hard external 
necessity; and thus she was able to moan and complain in her soft manner, all 
the time she was in reality doing just what she liked. 
</p>
               <p>It was in this way 
she began to speak of her own journey to Captain Lennox, who assented, as in 
duty bound, to all his future mother-in-law said, while his eyes sought 
Edith, who was busying herself in rearranging the tea-table, and ordering up 
all sorts of good things, in spite of his assurances that he had dined within 
the last two hours. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Henry Lennox stood leaning against the 
chimney-piece, amused with the family scene. He was close by his handsome 
brother; he was the plain one in a singularly good-looking family; but his 
face was intelligent, keen, and mobile; and now and then Margaret wondered 
what it was that he could be thinking about, while he kept silence, but was 
evidently observing, with an interest that was slightly sarcastic, all that 
Edith and she were doing. The sarcastic feeling was called out by Mrs. Shaw's 
conversation with his brother; it was separate from the interest which was 
excited by what he saw. He thought it a pretty sight to see the two cousins 
so busy in their little arrangements about the table. Edith chose to do most 
herself. She was in a humour to enjoy showing her lover how well she could 
behave as a soldier's wife. She found out that the water in the urn was cold, 
and ordered up the great kitchen tea-kettle; the only consequence of which 
was that when she met it at the door, and tried to carry it in, it was too 
heavy for her, and she came in pouting, with a black mark on her muslin gown, 
and a little round white hand indented by the handle, which she took to show 
to Captain Lennox, just like a hurt child, and, of course, the remedy was the 
same in both cases. Margaret's quickly-adjusted spirit-lamp was the most 
efficacious contrivance, though not so like the gypsy-encampment which Edith, 
in some of her moods, chose to consider the nearest resemblance to a 
barrack-life. 
</p>
               <p>After this evening all was bustle till the wedding was 
over. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.2" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER II</head>
               <head>ROSES AND THORNS</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'By the soft green light in the woody glade, </l>
                  <l>On the banks of moss where thy childhood played; </l>
                  <l>By the household tree, thro' which thine eye </l>
                  <l>First looked in love to the summer sky.' </l>
                  <l>MRS. HEMANS. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Margaret was once more in her morning dress, travelling quietly home with 
her father, who had come up to assist at the wedding. Her mother had been 
detained at home by a multitude of half-reasons, none of which anybody fully 
understood, except Mr. Hale, who was perfectly aware that all his arguments 
in favour of a grey satin gown, which was midway between oldness and newness, 
had proved unavailing; and that, as he had not the money to equip his wife 
afresh, from top to toe, she would not show herself at her only sister's only 
child's wedding. If Mrs. Shaw had guessed at the real reason why Mrs. Hale 
did not accompany her husband, she would have showered down gowns upon her; 
but it was nearly twenty years since Mrs. Shaw had been the poor, pretty Miss 
Beresford, and she had really forgotten all grievances except that of the 
unhappiness arising from disparity of age in married life, on which she could 
descant by the half-hour. Dearest Maria had married the man of her heart, 
only eight years older than herself, with the sweetest temper, and that 
blue-black hair one so seldom sees. Mr. Hale was one of the most delightful 
preachers she had ever heard, and a perfect model of a parish priest. Perhaps 
it was not quite a logical deduction from all these premises, but it was 
still Mrs. Shaw's characteristic conclusion, as she thought over her sister's 
lot: 'Married for love, what can dearest Maria have to wish for in this 
world?' Mrs. Hale, if she spoke truth, might have answered with a ready-made 
list, 'a silver-grey glace silk, a white chip bonnet, oh! dozens of things 
for the wedding, and hundreds of things for the house.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret only knew 
that her mother had not found it convenient to come, and she was not sorry to 
think that their meeting and greeting would take place at Helstone parsonage, 
rather than, during the confusion of the last two or three days, in the house 
in Harley Street, where she herself had had to play the part of Figaro, and 
was wanted everywhere at one and the same time. Her mind and body ached now 
with the recollection of all she had done and said within the last 
forty-eight hours. The farewells so hurriedly taken, amongst all the other 
good-byes, of those she had lived with so long, oppressed her now with a sad 
regret for the times that were no more; it did not signify what those times 
had been, they were gone never to return. Margaret's heart felt more heavy 
than she could ever have thought it possible in going to her own dear home, 
the place and the life she had longed for for years—at that time of all 
times for yearning and longing, just before the sharp senses lose their 
outlines in sleep. She took her mind away with a wrench from the recollection 
of the past to the bright serene contemplation of the hopeful future. Her 
eyes began to see, not visions of what had been, but the sight actually 
before her; her dear father leaning back asleep in the railway carriage. His 
blue-black hair was grey now, and lay thinly over his brows. The bones of his 
face were plainly to be seen—too plainly for beauty, if his features had 
been less finely cut; as it was, they had a grace if not a comeliness of 
their own. The face was in repose; but it was rather rest after weariness, 
than the serene calm of the countenance of one who led a placid, contented 
life. Margaret was painfully struck by the worn, anxious expression; and she 
went back over the open and avowed circumstances of her father's life, to 
find the cause for the lines that spoke so plainly of habitual distress and 
depression. 
</p>
               <p>'Poor Frederick!' thought she, sighing. 'Oh! if Frederick had 
but been a clergyman, instead of going into the navy, and being lost to us 
all! I wish I knew all about it. I never understood it from Aunt Shaw; I only 
knew he could not come back to England because of that terrible affair. Poor 
dear papa! how sad he looks! I am so glad I am going home, to be at hand to 
comfort him and mamma. 
</p>
               <p>She was ready with a bright smile, in which there 
was not a trace of fatigue, to greet her father when he awakened. He smiled 
back again, but faintly, as if it were an unusual exertion. His face returned 
into its lines of habitual anxiety. He had a trick of half-opening his mouth 
as if to speak, which constantly unsettled the form of the lips, and gave the 
face an undecided expression. But he had the same large, soft eyes as his 
daughter,—eyes which moved slowly and almost grandly round in their orbits, 
and were well veiled by their transparent white eyelids. Margaret was more 
like him than like her mother. Sometimes people wondered that parents so 
handsome should have a daughter who was so far from regularly beautiful; not 
beautiful at all, was occasionally said. Her mouth was wide; no rosebud that 
could only open just' enough to let out a 'yes' and 'no,' and 'an't please 
you, sir.' But the wide mouth was one soft curve of rich red lips; and the 
skin, if not white and fair, was of an ivory smoothness and delicacy. If the 
look on her face was, in general, too dignified and reserved for one so 
young, now, talking to her father, it was bright as the morning,—full of 
dimples, and glances that spoke of childish gladness, and boundless hope in 
the future. 
</p>
               <p>It was the latter part of July when Margaret returned home. The 
forest trees were all one dark, full, dusky green; the fern below them caught 
all the slanting sunbeams; the weather was sultry and broodingly still. 
Margaret used to tramp along by her father's side, crushing down the fern 
with a cruel glee, as she felt it yield under her light foot, and send up the 
fragrance peculiar to it,—out on the broad commons into the warm scented 
light, seeing multitudes of wild, free, living creatures, revelling in the 
sunshine, and the herbs and flowers it called forth. This life—at least 
these walks—realised all Margaret's anticipations. She took a pride in her 
forest. Its people were her people. She made hearty friends with them; 
learned and delighted in using their peculiar words; took up her freedom 
amongst them; nursed their babies; talked or read with slow distinctness to 
their old people; carried dainty messes to their sick; resolved before long 
to teach at the school, where her father went every day as to an appointed 
task, but she was continually tempted off to go and see some individual 
friend—man, woman, or child—in some cottage in the green shade of the 
forest. Her out-of-doors life was perfect. Her in-doors life had its 
drawbacks. With the healthy shame of a child, she blamed herself for her 
keenness of sight, in perceiving that all was not as it should be there. Her 
mother—her mother always so kind and tender towards her—seemed now and then 
so much discontented with their situation; thought that the bishop strangely 
neglected his episcopal duties, in not giving Mr. Hale a better living; and 
almost reproached her husband because he could not bring himself to say that 
he wished to leave the parish, and undertake the charge of a larger. He would 
sigh aloud as he answered, that if he could do what he ought in little 
Helstone, he should be thankful; but every day he was more overpowered; the 
world became more bewildering. At each repeated urgency of his wife, that he 
would put himself in the way of seeking some preferment, Margaret saw that 
her father shrank more and more; and she strove at such times to reconcile 
her mother to Helstone. Mrs. Hale said that the near neighbourhood of so many 
trees affected her health; and Margaret would try to tempt her forth on to 
the beautiful) broad, upland, sun-streaked, cloud-shadowed common; for she 
was sure that her mother had accustomed herself too much to an in-doors life, 
seldom extending her walks beyond the church, the school, and the 
neighbouring cottages. This did good for a time; but when the autumn drew on, 
and the weather became more changeable, her mother's idea of the 
unhealthiness of the place increased; and she repined even more frequently 
that her husband, who was more learned than Mr. Hume, a better parish priest 
than Mr. Houldsworth, should not have met with the preferment that these two 
former neighbours of theirs had done. 
</p>
               <p>This marring of the peace of home, by 
long hours of discontent, was what Margaret was unprepared for. She knew, and 
had rather revelled in the idea, that she should have to give up many 
luxuries, which had only been troubles and trammels to her freedom in Harley 
Street. Her keen enjoyment of every sensuous pleasure, was balanced finely, 
if not overbalanced, by her conscious pride in being able to do without them 
all, if need were. But the cloud never comes in that quarter of the horizon 
from which we watch for it. There had been slight complaints and passing 
regrets on her mother's part, over some trifle connected with Helstone, and 
her father's position there, when Margaret had been spending her holidays at 
home before; but in the general happiness of the recollection of those times, 
she had forgotten the small details which were not so pleasant. 
</p>
               <p>In the 
latter half of September, the autumnal rains and storms came on, and Margaret 
was obliged to remain more in the house than she had hitherto done. Helstone 
was at some distance from any neighbours of their own standard of 
cultivation. 
</p>
               <p>'It is undoubtedly one of the most out-of-the-way places in 
England,' said Mrs. Hale, in one of her plaintive moods. 'I can't help 
regretting constantly that papa has really no one to associate with here; he 
is so thrown away; seeing no one but farmers and labourers from week's end to 
week's end. If we only lived at the other side of the parish, it would be 
something; there we should be almost within walking distance of the 
Stansfields; certainly the Gormans would be within a walk.' 
</p>
               <p>'Gormans,' said 
Margaret. 'Are those the Gormans who made their fortunes in trade at 
Southampton? Oh! I'm glad we don't visit them. I don't like shoppy people. I 
think we are far better off, knowing only cottagers and labourers, and people 
without pretence.' 
</p>
               <p>'You must not be so fastidious, Margaret, dear!' said 
her mother, secretly thinking of a young and handsome Mr. Gorman whom she had 
once met at Mr. Hume's. 
</p>
               <p>'No! I call mine a very comprehensive taste; I like 
all people whose occupations have to do with land; I like soldiers and 
sailors, and the three learned professions, as they call them. I'm sure you 
don't want me to admire butchers and bakers, and candlestick-makers, do you, 
mamma?' 
</p>
               <p>'But the Gormans were neither butchers nor bakers, but very 
respectable coach-builders.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very well. Coach-building is a trade all the 
same, and I think a much more useless one than that of butchers or bakers. 
Oh! how tired I used to be of the drives every day in Aunt Shaw's carriage, 
and how I longed to walk!' 
</p>
               <p>And walk Margaret did, in spite of the weather. 
She was so happy out of doors, at her father's side, that she almost danced; 
and with the soft violence of the west wind behind her, as she crossed some 
heath, she seemed to be borne onwards, as lightly and easily as the fallen 
leaf that was wafted along by the autumnal breeze. But the evenings were 
rather difficult to fill up agreeably. Immediately after tea her father 
withdrew into his small library, and she and her mother were left alone. Mrs. 
Hale had never cared much for books, and had discouraged her husband, very 
early in their married life, in his desire of reading aloud to her, while she 
worked. At one time they had tried backgammon as a resource; but as Mr. Hale 
grew to take an increasing interest in his school and his parishioners, he 
found that the interruptions which arose out of these duties were regarded as 
hardships by his wife, not to be accepted as the natural conditions of his 
profession, but to be regretted and struggled against by her as they 
severally arose. So he withdrew, while the children were yet young, into his 
library, to spend his evenings (if he were at home), in reading the 
speculative and metaphysical books which were his delight. 
</p>
               <p>When Margaret 
had been here before, she had brought down with her a great box of books, 
recommended by masters or governess, and had found the summer's day all too 
short to get through the reading she had to do before her return to town. Now 
there were only the well-bound little-read English Classics, which were 
weeded out of her father's library to fill up the small book-shelves in the 
drawing-room. Thomson's Seasons, Hayley's Cowper, Middleton's Cicero, were by 
far the lightest, newest, and most amusing. The book-shelves did not afford 
much resource. Margaret told her mother every particular of her London life, 
to all of which Mrs. Hale listened with interest, sometimes amused and 
questioning, at others a little inclined to compare her sister's 
circumstances of ease and comfort with the narrower means at Helstone 
vicarage. On such evenings Margaret was apt to stop talking rather abruptly, 
and listen to the drip-drip of the rain upon the leads of the little 
bow-window. Once or twice Margaret found herself mechanically counting the 
repetition of the monotonous sound, while she wondered if she might venture 
to put a question on a subject very near to her heart, and ask where 
Frederick was now; what he was doing; how long it was since they had heard 
from him. But a consciousness that her mother's delicate health, and positive 
dislike to Helstone, all dated from the time of the mutiny in which Frederick 
had been engaged,—the full account of which Margaret had never heard, and 
which now seemed doomed to be buried in sad oblivion,—made her pause and 
turn away from the subject each time she approached it. When she was with her 
mother, her father seemed the best person to apply to for information; and 
when with him, she thought that she could speak more easily to her mother. 
Probably there was nothing much to be heard that was new. In one of the 
letters she had received before leaving Harley Street, her father had told 
her that they had heard from Frederick; he was still at Rio, and very well in 
health, and sent his best love to her; which was dry bones, but not the 
living intelligence she longed for. Frederick was always spoken of, in the 
rare times when his name was mentioned, as 'Poor Frederick.' His room was 
kept exactly as he had left it; and was regularly dusted, and put into order 
by Dixon, Mrs. Hale's maid, who touched no other part of the household work, 
but always remembered the day when she had been engaged by Lady Beresford as 
ladies' maid to Sir John's wards, the pretty Miss Beresfords, the belles of 
Rutlandshire. Dixon had always considered Mr. Hale as the blight which had 
fallen upon her young lady's prospects in life. If Miss Beresford had not 
been in such a hurry to marry a poor country clergyman, there was no knowing 
what she might not have become. But Dixon was too loyal to desert her in her 
affliction and downfall (alias her married life). She remained with her, and 
was devoted to her interests; always considering herself as the good and 
protecting fairy, whose duty it was to baffle the malignant giant, Mr. Hale. 
Master Frederick had been her favorite and pride; and it was with a little 
softening of her dignified look and manner, that she went in weekly to 
arrange the chamber as carefully as if he might be coming home that very 
evening. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret could not help believing that there had been some late 
intelligence of Frederick, unknown to her mother, which was making her father 
anxious and uneasy. Mrs. Hale did not seem to perceive any alteration in her 
husband's looks or ways. His spirits were always tender and gentle, readily 
affected by any small piece of intelligence concerning the welfare of others. 
He would be depressed for many days after witnessing a death-bed, or hearing 
of any crime. But now Margaret noticed an absence of mind, as if his thoughts 
were pre-occupied by some subject, the oppression of which could not be 
relieved by any daily action, such as comforting the survivors, or teaching 
at the school in hope of lessening the evils in the generation to come. Mr. 
Hale did not go out among his parishioners as much as usual; he was more shut 
up in his study; was anxious for the village postman, whose summons to the 
house-hold was a rap on the back-kitchen window-shutter—a signal which at 
one time had often to be repeated before any one was sufficiently alive to 
the hour of the day to understand what it was, and attend to him. Now Mr. 
Hale loitered about the garden if the morning was fine, and if not, stood 
dreamily by the study window until the postman had called, or gone down the 
lane, giving a half-respectful, half-confidential shake of the head to the 
parson, who watched him away beyond the sweet-briar hedge, and past the great 
arbutus, before he turned into the room to begin his day's work, with all the 
signs of a heavy heart and an occupied mind. 
</p>
               <p>But Margaret was at an age 
when any apprehension, not absolutely based on a knowledge of facts, is 
easily banished for a time by a bright sunny day, or some happy outward 
circumstance. And when the brilliant fourteen fine days of October came on, 
her cares were all blown away as lightly as thistledown, and she thought of 
nothing but the glories of the forest. The fern-harvest was over, and now 
that the rain was gone, many a deep glade was accessible, into which Margaret 
had only peeped in July and August weather. She had learnt drawing with 
Edith; and she had sufficiently regretted, during the gloom of the bad 
weather, her idle revelling in the beauty of the woodlands while it had yet 
been fine, to make her determined to sketch what she could before winter 
fairly set in. Accordingly, she was busy preparing her board one morning, 
when Sarah, the housemaid, threw wide open the drawing-room door and 
announced, 'Mr. Henry Lennox.' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.3" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER III</head>
               <head>'THE MORE HASTE THE WORSE SPEED'</head>
               <q>
                  <lg type="stanza">
                     <l>'Learn to win a lady's faith </l>
                     <l>Nobly, as the thing is high; </l>
                     <l>Bravely, as for life and death— </l>
                     <l>With a loyal gravity. </l>
                  </lg>
                  <lg type="stanza">
                     <l>Lead her from the festive boards, </l>
                     <l>Point her to the starry skies, </l>
                     <l>Guard her, by your truthful words, </l>
                     <l>Pure from courtship's flatteries. </l>
                  </lg>
                  <l>'MRS. BROWNING. </l>
               </q>
               <p>'Mr. Henry Lennox.' Margaret had been thinking of him only a moment 
before, and remembering his inquiry into her probable occupations at home. It 
was 'parler du soleil et l'on en voit les rayons;' and the brightness of the 
sun came over Margaret's face as she put down her board, and went forward to 
shake hands with him. 'Tell mamma, Sarah,' said she. 'Mamma and I want to ask 
you so many questions about Edith; I am so much obliged to you for 
coming.' 
</p>
               <p>'Did not I say that I should?' asked he, in a lower tone than that 
in which she had spoken. 
</p>
               <p>'But I heard of you so far away in the Highlands 
that I never thought Hampshire could come in. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh!' said he, more lightly, 
'our young couple were playing such foolish pranks, running all sorts of 
risks, climbing this mountain, sailing on that lake, that I really thought 
they needed a Mentor to take care of them. And indeed they did; they were 
quite beyond my uncle's management, and kept the old gentleman in a panic for 
sixteen hours out of the twenty-four. Indeed, when I once saw how unfit they 
were to be trusted alone, I thought it my duty not to leave them till I had 
seen them safely embarked at Plymouth.' 
</p>
               <p>'Have you been at Plymouth? Oh! 
Edith never named that. To be sure, she has written in such a hurry lately. 
Did they really sail on Tuesday?' 
</p>
               <p>'Really sailed, and relieved me from many 
responsibilities. Edith gave me all sorts of messages for you. I believe I 
have a little diminutive note somewhere; yes, here it is.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! thank you,' 
exclaimed Margaret; and then, half wishing to read it alone and unwatched, 
she made the excuse of going to tell her mother again (Sarah surely had made 
some mistake) that Mr. Lennox was there. 
</p>
               <p>When she had left the room, he 
began in his scrutinising way to look about him. The little drawing-room was 
looking its best in the streaming light of the morning sun. The middle window 
in the bow was opened, and clustering roses and the scarlet honeysuckle came 
peeping round the corner; the small lawn was gorgeous with verbenas and 
geraniums of all bright colours. But the very brightness outside made the 
colours within seem poor and faded. The carpet was far from new; the chintz 
had been often washed; the whole apartment was smaller and shabbier than he 
had expected, as back-ground and frame-work for Margaret, herself so queenly. 
He took up one of the books lying on the table; it was the Paradiso of Dante, 
in the proper old Italian binding of white vellum and gold; by it lay a 
dictionary, and some words copied out in Margaret's hand-writing. They were a 
dull list of words, but somehow he liked looking at them. He put them down 
with a sigh. 
</p>
               <p>'The living is evidently as small as she said. It seems 
strange, for the Beresfords belong to a good family.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret meanwhile 
had found her mother. It was one of Mrs. Hale's fitful days, when everything 
was a difficulty and a hardship; and Mr. Lennox's appearance took this shape, 
although secretly she felt complimented by his thinking it worth while to 
call. 
</p>
               <p>'It is most unfortunate! We are dining early to-day, and having 
nothing but cold meat, in order that the servants may get on with their 
ironing; and yet, of course, we must ask him to dinner—Edith's 
brother-in-law and all. And your papa is in such low spirits this morning 
about something—I don't know what. I went into the study just now, and he 
had his face on the table, covering it with his hands. I told him I was sure 
Helstone air did not agree with him any more than with me, and he suddenly 
lifted up his head, and begged me not to speak a word more against Helstone, 
he could not bear it; if there was one place he loved on earth it was 
Helstone. But I am sure, for all that, it is the damp and relaxing 
air.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret felt as if a thin cold cloud had come between her and the 
sun. She had listened patiently, in hopes that it might be some relief to her 
mother to unburden herself; but now it was time to draw her back to Mr. 
Lennox. 
</p>
               <p>'Papa likes Mr. Lennox; they got on together famously at the 
wedding breakfast. I dare say his coming will do papa good. And never mind 
the dinner, dear mamma. Cold meat will do capitally for a lunch, which is the 
light in which Mr. Lennox will most likely look upon a two o'clock 
dinner.' 
</p>
               <p>'But what are we to do with him till then? It is only half-past 
ten now.' 
</p>
               <p>'I'll ask him to go out sketching with me. I know he draws, and 
that will take him out of your way, mamma. Only do come in now; he will think 
it so strange if you don't.' 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Hale took off her black silk apron, and 
smoothed her face. She looked a very pretty lady-like woman, as she greeted 
Mr. Lennox with the cordiality due to one who was almost a relation. He 
evidently expected to be asked to spend the day, and accepted the invitation 
with a glad readiness that made Mrs. Hale wish she could add something to the 
cold beef. He was pleased with everything; delighted with Margaret's idea of 
going out sketching together; would not have Mr. Hale disturbed for the 
world, with the prospect of so soon meeting him at dinner. Margaret brought 
out her drawing materials for him to choose from; and after the paper and 
brushes had been duly selected, the two set out in the merriest spirits in 
the world. 
</p>
               <p>'Now, please, just stop here for a minute or two, said Margaret. 
'These are the cottages that haunted me so during the rainy fortnight, 
reproaching me for not having sketched them.' 
</p>
               <p>'Before they tumbled down and 
were no more seen. Truly, if they are to be sketched—and they are very 
picturesque—we had better not put it off till next year. But where shall we 
sit?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! You might have come straight from chambers in the Temple,' 
instead of having been two months in the Highlands! Look at this beautiful 
trunk of a tree, which the wood-cutters have left just in the right place for 
the light. I will put my plaid over it, and it will be a regular forest 
throne.' 
</p>
               <p>'With your feet in that puddle for a regal footstool! Stay, I will 
move, and then you can come nearer this way. Who lives in these 
cottages?' 
</p>
               <p>'They were built by squatters fifty or sixty years ago. One is 
uninhabited; the foresters are going to take it down, as soon as the old man 
who lives in the other is dead, poor old fellow! Look—there he is—I must go 
and speak to him. He is so deaf you will hear all our secrets.' 
</p>
               <p>The old man 
stood bareheaded in the sun, leaning on his stick at the front of his 
cottage. His stiff features relaxed into a slow smile as Margaret went up and 
spoke to him. Mr. Lennox hastily introduced the two figures into his sketch, 
and finished up the landscape with a subordinate reference to them—as 
Margaret perceived, when the time came for getting up, putting away water, 
and scraps of paper, and exhibiting to each other their sketches. She laughed 
and blushed Mr. Lennox watched her countenance. 
</p>
               <p>'Now, I call that 
treacherous,' said she. 'I little thought you were making old Isaac and me 
into subjects, when you told me to ask him the history of these 
cottages.' 
</p>
               <p>'It was irresistible. You can't know how strong a temptation it 
was. I hardly dare tell you how much I shall like this sketch.' 
</p>
               <p>He was not 
quite sure whether she heard this latter sentence before she went to the 
brook to wash her palette. She came back rather flushed, but looking 
perfectly innocent and unconscious. He was glad of it, for the speech had 
slipped from him unawares—a rare thing in the case of a man who premeditated 
his actions so much as Henry Lennox. 
</p>
               <p>The aspect of home was all right and 
bright when they reached it. The clouds on her mother's brow had cleared off 
under the propitious influence of a brace of carp, most opportunely presented 
by a neighbour. Mr. Hale had returned from his morning's round, and was 
awaiting his visitor just outside the wicket gate that led into the garden. 
He looked a complete gentleman in his rather threadbare coat and well-worn 
hat.Margaret was proud of her father; she had always a fresh and tender pride 
in seeing how favourably he impressed every stranger; still her quick eye 
sought  over his face and found there traces of some unusual disturbance, 
which was only put aside, not cleared away. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale asked to look at their 
sketches. 
</p>
               <p>'I think you have made the tints on the thatch too dark, have you 
not?' as he returned Margaret's to her, and held out his hand for Mr. 
Lennox's, which was withheld from him one moment, no more. 
</p>
               <p>'No, papa! I 
don't think I have. The house-leek and stone-crop have grown so much darker 
in the rain. Is it not like, papa?' said she, peeping over his shoulder, as 
he looked at the figures in Mr. Lennox's drawing. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, very like. Your 
figure and way of holding yourself is capital. And it is just poor old 
Isaac's stiff way of stooping his long rheumatic back. What is this hanging 
from the branch of the tree? Not a bird's nest, surely.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh no! that is my 
bonnet. I never can draw with my bonnet on; it makes my head so hot. I wonder 
if I could manage figures. There are so many people about here whom I should 
like to sketch.' 
</p>
               <p>'I should say that a likeness you very much wish to take 
you would always succeed in,' said Mr. Lennox. 'I have great faith in the 
power of will. I think myself I have succeeded pretty well in yours.' Mr. 
Hale had preceded them into the house, while Margaret was lingering to pluck 
some roses, with which to adorn her morning gown for dinner. 
</p>
               <p>'A regular 
London girl would understand the implied meaning of that speech,' thought Mr. 
Lennox. 'She would be up to looking through every speech that a young man 
made her for the arriere-pensee of a compliment. But I don't believe 
Margaret,—Stay!' exclaimed he, 'Let me help you;' and he gathered for her 
some velvety cramoisy roses that were above her reach, and then dividing the 
spoil he placed two in his button-hole, and sent her in, pleased and happy, 
to arrange her flowers. 
</p>
               <p>The conversation at dinner flowed on quietly and 
agreeably. There were plenty of questions to be asked on both sides—the 
latest intelligence which each could give of Mrs. Shaw's movements in Italy 
to be exchanged; and in the interest of what was said, the unpretending 
simplicity of the parsonage-ways—above all, in the neighbourhood of 
Margaret, Mr. Lennox forgot the little feeling of disappointment with which 
he had at first perceived that she had spoken but the simple truth when she 
had described her father's living as very small. 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret, my child, you 
might have gathered us some pears for our dessert,' said Mr. Hale, as the 
hospitable luxury of a freshly-decanted bottle of wine was placed on the 
table. 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Hale was hurried. It seemed as if desserts were impromptu and 
unusual things at the parsonage; whereas, if Mr. Hale would only have looked 
behind him, he would have seen biscuits and marmalade, and what not, all 
arranged in formal order on the sideboard. But the idea of pears had taken 
possession of Mr. Hale's mind, and was not to be got rid of. 
</p>
               <p>'There are a 
few brown beurres against the south wall which are worth all foreign fruits 
and preserves. Run, Margaret, and gather us some.' 
</p>
               <p>'I propose that we 
adjourn into the garden, and eat them there' said Mr. Lennox. 'Nothing is so 
delicious as to set one's teeth into the crisp, juicy fruit, warm and scented 
by the sun. The worst is, the wasps are impudent enough to dispute it with 
one, even at the very crisis and summit of enjoyment. 
</p>
               <p>He rose, as if to 
follow Margaret, who had disappeared through the window he only awaited Mrs. 
Hale's permission. She would rather have wound up the dinner in the proper 
way, and with all the ceremonies which had gone on so smoothly hitherto, 
especially as she and Dixon had got out the finger-glasses from the 
store-room on purpose to be as correct as became General Shaw's widow's 
sister, but as Mr. Hale got up directly, and prepared to accompany his guest, 
she could only submit. 
</p>
               <p>'I shall arm myself with a knife,' said Mr. Hale: 
'the days of eating fruit so primitively as you describe are over with me. I 
must pare it and quarter it before I can enjoy it.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret made a plate 
for the pears out of a beetroot leaf, which threw up their brown gold colour 
admirably. Mr. Lennox looked more at her than at the pears; but her father, 
inclined to cull fastidiously the very zest and perfection of the hour he had 
stolen from his anxiety, chose daintily the ripest fruit, and sat down on the 
garden bench to enjoy it at his leisure. Margaret and Mr. Lennox strolled 
along the little terrace-walk under the south wall, where the bees still 
hummed and worked busily in their hives. 
</p>
               <p>'What a perfect life you seem to 
live here! I have always felt rather contemptuously towards the poets before, 
with their wishes, “Mine be a cot beside a hill,” and that sort of thing: but 
now I am afraid that the truth is, I have been nothing better than a cockney. 
Just now I feel as if twenty years' hard study of law would be amply rewarded 
by one year of such an exquisite serene life as this—such skies!' looking 
up—'such crimson and amber foliage, so perfectly motionless as that!' 
pointing to some of the great forest trees which shut in the garden as if it 
were a nest. 
</p>
               <p>'You must please to remember that our skies are not always as 
deep a blue as they are now. We have rain, and our leaves do fall, and get 
sodden: though I think Helstone is about as perfect a place as any in the 
world. Recollect how you rather scorned my description of it one evening in 
Harley Street: “a village in a tale.' 
</p>
               <p>'Scorned, Margaret That is rather a 
hard word.' 
</p>
               <p>'Perhaps it is. Only I know I should have liked to have talked 
to you of what I was very full at the time, and you—what must I call it, 
then?—spoke disrespectfully of Helstone as a mere village in a tale.' 
</p>
               <p>'I 
will never do so again,' said he, warmly. They turned the corner of the 
walk. 
</p>
               <p>'I could almost wish, Margaret——' he stopped and hesitated. It was 
so unusual for the fluent lawyer to hesitate that Margaret looked up at him, 
in a little state of questioning wonder; but in an instant—from what about 
him she could not tell—she wished herself back with her mother—her 
father—anywhere away from him, for she was sure he was going to say 
something to which she should not know what to reply. In another moment the 
strong pride that was in her came to conquer her sudden agitation, which she 
hoped he had not perceived. Of course she could answer, and answer the right 
thing; and it was poor and despicable of her to shrink from hearing any 
speech, as if she had not power to put an end to it with her high maidenly 
dignity. 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret,' said he, taking her by surprise, and getting sudden 
possession of her hand, so that she was forced to stand still and listen, 
despising herself for the fluttering at her heart all the time; 'Margaret, I 
wish you did not like Helstone so much—did not seem so perfectly calm and 
happy here. I have been hoping for these three months past to find you 
regretting London—and London friends, a little—enough to make you listen 
more kindly' (for she was quietly, but firmly, striving to extricate her hand 
from his grasp) 'to one who has not much to offer, it is true—nothing but 
prospects in the future—but who does love you, Margaret, almost in spite of 
himself. Margaret, have I startled you too much? Speak!' For he saw her lips 
quivering almost as if she were going to cry. She made a strong effort to be 
calm; she would not speak till she had succeeded in mastering her voice, and 
then she said: 
</p>
               <p>'I was startled. I did not know that you cared for me in 
that way. I have always thought of you as a friend; and, please, I would 
rather go on thinking of you so. I don't like to be spoken to as you have 
been doing. I cannot answer you as you want me to do, and yet I should feel 
so sorry if I vexed you.' 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret,' said he, looking into her eyes, which 
met his with their open, straight look, expressive of the utmost good faith 
and reluctance to give pain, 'Do you'—he was going to say—'love any one 
else?' But it seemed as if this question would be an insult to the pure 
serenity of those eyes. 'Forgive me I have been too abrupt. I am punished. 
Only let me hope. Give me the poor comfort of telling me you have never seen 
any one whom you could——' Again a pause. He could not end his sentence. 
Margaret reproached herself acutely as the cause of his distress. 
</p>
               <p>'Ah! if 
you had but never got this fancy into your head! It was such a pleasure to 
think of you as a friend.' 
</p>
               <p>'But I may hope, may I not, Margaret, that some 
time you will think of me as a lover? Not yet, I see—there is no hurry—but 
some time——' 
</p>
               <p>She was silent for a minute or two, trying to discover the 
truth as it was in her own heart, before replying; then she said: 
</p>
               <p>'I have 
never thought of—you, but as a friend. I like to think of you so; but I am 
sure I could never think of you as anything else. Pray, let us both forget 
that all this' ('disagreeable,' she was going to say, but stopped short) 
'conversation has taken place.' 
</p>
               <p>He paused before he replied. Then, in his 
habitual coldness of tone, he answered: 
</p>
               <p>'Of course, as your feelings are so 
decided, and as this conversation has been so evidently unpleasant to you, it 
had better not be remembered. That is all very fine in theory, that plan of 
forgetting whatever is painful, but it will be somewhat difficult for me, at 
least, to carry it into execution.' 
</p>
               <p>'You are vexed,' said she, sadly; 'yet 
how can I help it?' 
</p>
               <p>She looked so truly grieved as she said this, that he 
struggled for a moment with his real disappointment, and then answered more 
cheerfully, but still with a little hardness in his tone: 
</p>
               <p>'You should make 
allowances for the mortification, not only of a lover, Margaret, but of a man 
not given to romance in general—prudent, worldly, as some people call 
me—who has been carried out of his usual habits by the force of a 
passion—well, we will say no more of that; but in the one outlet which he 
has formed for the deeper and better feelings of his nature, he meets with 
rejection and repulse. I shall have to console myself with scorning my own 
folly. A struggling barrister to think of matrimony!' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret could not 
answer this. The whole tone of it annoyed her. It seemed to touch on and call 
out all the points of difference which had often repelled her in him; while 
yet he was the pleasantest man, the most sympathising friend, the person of 
all others who understood her best in Harley Street. She felt a tinge of 
contempt mingle itself with her pain at having refused him. Her beautiful lip 
curled in a slight disdain. It was well that, having made the round of the 
garden, they came suddenly upon Mr. Hale, whose whereabouts had been quite 
forgotten by them. He had not yet finished the pear, which he had delicately 
peeled in one long strip of silver-paper thinness, and which he was enjoying 
in a deliberate manner. It was like the story of the eastern king, who dipped 
his head into a basin of water, at the magician's command, and ere he 
instantly took it out went through the experience of a lifetime. I Margaret 
felt stunned, and unable to recover her self-possession enough to join in the 
trivial conversation that ensued between her father and Mr. Lennox. She was 
grave, and little disposed to speak; full of wonder when Mr. Lennox would go, 
and allow her to relax into thought on the events of the last quarter of an 
hour. He was almost as anxious to take his departure as she was for him to 
leave; but a few minutes light and careless talking, carried on at whatever 
effort, was a sacrifice which he owed to his mortified vanity, or his 
self-respect. He glanced from time to time at her sad and pensive face. 
</p>
               <p>'I 
am not so indifferent to her as she believes,' thought he to himself. 'I do 
not give up hope.' 
</p>
               <p>Before a quarter of an hour was over, he had fallen into 
a way of conversing with quiet sarcasm; speaking of life in London and life 
in the country, as if he were conscious of his second mocking self, and 
afraid of his own satire. Mr. Hale was puzzled. His visitor was a different 
man to what he had seen him before at the wedding-breakfast, and at dinner 
to-day; a lighter, cleverer, more worldly man, and, as such, dissonant to Mr. 
Hale. It was a relief to all three when Mr. Lennox said that he must go 
directly if he meant to catch the five o'clock train. They proceeded to the 
house to find Mrs. Hale, and wish her good-bye. At the last moment, Henry 
Lennox's real self broke through the crust. 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret, don't despise me; I 
have a heart, notwithstanding all this good-for-nothing way of talking. As a 
proof of it, I believe I love you more than ever—if I do not hate you—for 
the disdain with which you have listened to me during this last half-hour. 
Good-bye, Margaret—Margaret!' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.4" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER IV</head>
               <head>DOUBTS AND DIFFICULTIES</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Cast me upon some naked shore, </l>
                  <l>Where I may trace </l>
                  <l>Only the print of some sad wrack, </l>
                  <l>If thou be there, though the seas roare, </l>
                  <l>I shall no gentler calm implore.' </l>
                  <l>HABINGTON. </l>
               </q>
               <p>He was gone. The house was shut up for the evening. No more deep blue 
skies or crimson and amber tints. Margaret went up to dress for the early 
tea, finding Dixon in a pretty temper from the interruption which a visitor 
had naturally occasioned on a busy day. She showed it by brushing away 
viciously at Margaret's hair, under pretence of being in a great hurry to go 
to Mrs. Hale. Yet, after all, Margaret had to wait a long time in the 
drawing-room before her mother came down. She sat by herself at the fire, 
with unlighted candles on the table behind her, thinking over the day, the 
happy walk, happy sketching, cheerful pleasant dinner, and the uncomfortable, 
miserable walk in the garden. 
</p>
               <p>How different men were to women! Here was she 
disturbed and unhappy, because her instinct had made anything but a refusal 
impossible; while he, not many minutes after he had met with a rejection of 
what ought to have been the deepest, holiest proposal of his life, could 
speak as if briefs, success, and all its superficial consequences of a good 
house, clever and agreeable society, were the sole avowed objects of his 
desires. Oh dear! how she could have loved him if he had but been different, 
with a difference which she felt, on reflection, to be one that went 
low—deep down. Then she took it into her head that, after all, his lightness 
might be but assumed, to cover a bitterness of disappointment which would 
have been stamped on her own heart if she had loved and been rejected. 
</p>
               <p>Her 
mother came into the room before this whirl of thoughts was adjusted into 
anything like order. Margaret had to shake off the recollections of what had 
been done and said through the day, and turn a sympathising listener to the 
account of how Dixon had complained that the ironing-blanket had been burnt 
again; and how Susan Lightfoot had been seen with artificial flowers in her 
bonnet, thereby giving evidence of a vain and giddy character. Mr. Hale 
sipped his tea in abstracted silence; Margaret had the responses all to 
herself. She wondered how her father and mother could be so forgetful, so 
regardless of their companion through the day, as never to mention his name. 
She forgot that he had not made them an offer. 
</p>
               <p>After tea Mr. Hale got up, 
and stood with his elbow on the chimney-piece, leaning his head on his hand, 
musing over something, and from time to time sighing deeply. Mrs. Hale went 
out to consult with Dixon about some winter clothing for the poor. Margaret 
was preparing her mother's worsted work, and rather shrinking from the 
thought of the long evening, and wishing bed-time were come that she might go 
over the events of the day again. 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret!' said Mr. Hale, at last, in a 
sort of sudden desperate way, that made her start. 'Is that tapestry thing of 
immediate consequence? I mean, can you leave it and come into my study? I 
want to speak to you about something very serious to us all.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very serious 
to us all.' Mr. Lennox had never had the opportunity of having any private 
conversation with her father after her refusal, or else that would indeed be 
a very serious affair. In the first place, Margaret felt guilty and ashamed 
of having grown so much into a woman as to be thought of in marriage; and 
secondly, she did not know if her father might not be displeased that she had 
taken upon herself to decline Mr. Lennox's proposal. But she soon felt it was 
not about anything, which having only lately and suddenly occurred, could 
have given rise to any complicated thoughts, that her father wished to speak 
to her. He made her take a chair by him; he stirred the fire, snuffed the 
candles, and sighed once or twice before he could make up his mind to 
say—and it came out with a jerk after all—'Margaret! I am going to leave 
Helstone.' 
</p>
               <p>'Leave Helstone, papa! But why?' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale did not answer for a 
minute or two. He played with some papers on the table in a nervous and 
confused manner, opening his lips to speak several times, but closing them 
again without having the courage to utter a word. Margaret could not bear the 
sight of the suspense, which was even more distressing to her father than to 
herself. 
</p>
               <p>'But why, dear papa? Do tell me!' 
</p>
               <p>He looked up at her suddenly, 
and then said with a slow and enforced calmness: 
</p>
               <p>'Because I must no longer 
be a minister in the Church of England.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret had imagined nothing less 
than that some of the preferments which her mother so much desired had 
befallen her father at last—something that would force him to leave 
beautiful, beloved Helstone, and perhaps compel him to go and live in some of 
the stately and silent Closes which Margaret had seen from time to time in 
cathedral towns. They were grand and imposing places, but if, to go there, it 
was necessary to leave Helstone as a home for ever, that would have been a 
sad, long, lingering pain. But nothing to the shock she received from Mr. 
Hale's last speech. What could he mean? It was all the worse for being so 
mysterious. The aspect of piteous distress on his face, almost as imploring a 
merciful and kind judgment from his child, gave her a sudden sickening. Could 
he have become implicated in anything Frederick had done? Frederick was an 
outlaw. Had her father, out of a natural love for his son, connived at 
any— 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! what is it? do speak, papa! tell me all! Why can you no longer 
be a clergyman? Surely, if the bishop were told all we know about Frederick, 
and the hard, unjust—' 
</p>
               <p>'It is nothing about Frederick; the bishop would 
have nothing to do with that. It is all myself. Margaret, I will tell you 
about it. I will answer any questions this once, but after to-night let us 
never speak of it again. I can meet the consequences of my painful, miserable 
doubts; but it is an effort beyond me to speak of what has caused me so much 
suffering.' 
</p>
               <p>'Doubts, papa! Doubts as to religion?' asked Margaret, more 
shocked than ever. 
</p>
               <p>'No! not doubts as to religion; not the slightest injury 
to that.' 
</p>
               <p>He paused. Margaret sighed, as if standing on the verge of some 
new horror. He began again, speaking rapidly, as if to get over a set 
task: 
</p>
               <p>'You could not understand it all, if I told you—my anxiety, for 
years past, to know whether I had any right to hold my living—my efforts to 
quench my smouldering doubts by the authority of the Church. Oh! Margaret, 
how I love the holy Church from which I am to be shut out!' He could not go 
on for a moment or two. Margaret could not tell what to say; it seemed to her 
as terribly mysterious as if her father were about to turn Mahometan. 
</p>
               <p>'I 
have been reading to-day of the two thousand who were ejected from their 
churches,'—continued Mr. Hale, smiling faintly,—'trying to steal some of 
their bravery; but it is of no use—no use—I cannot help feeling it 
acutely.' 
</p>
               <p>'But, papa, have you well considered? Oh! it seems so terrible, 
so shocking,' said Margaret, suddenly bursting into tears. The one staid 
foundation of her home, of her idea of her beloved father, seemed reeling and 
rocking. What could she say? What was to be done? The sight of her distress 
made Mr. Hale nerve himself, in order to try and comfort her. He swallowed 
down the dry choking sobs which had been heaving up from his heart hitherto, 
and going to his bookcase he took down a volume, which he had often been 
reading lately, and from which he thought he had derived strength to enter 
upon the course in which he was now embarked. 
</p>
               <p>'Listen, dear Margaret,' said 
he, putting one arm round her waist. She took his hand in hers and grasped it 
tight, but she could not lift up her head; nor indeed could she attend to 
what he read, so great was her internal agitation. 
</p>
               <p>'This is the soliloquy 
of one who was once a clergyman in a country parish, like me; it was written 
by a Mr. Oldfield, minister of Carsington, in Derbyshire, a hundred and sixty 
years ago, or more. His trials are over. He fought the good fight.' These 
last two sentences he spoke low, as if to himself. Then he read 
aloud,— 
</p>
               <p>'When thou canst no longer continue in thy work without dishonour 
to God, discredit to religion, foregoing thy integrity, wounding conscience, 
spoiling thy peace, and hazarding the loss of thy salvation; in a word, when 
the conditions upon which thou must continue (if thou wilt continue) in thy 
employments are sinful, and unwarranted by the word of God, thou mayest, yea, 
thou must believe that God will turn thy very silence, suspension, 
deprivation, and laying aside, to His glory, and the advancement of the 
Gospel's interest. When God will not use thee in one kind, yet He will in 
another. A soul that desires to serve and honour Him shall never want 
opportunity to do it; nor must thou so limit the Holy One of Israel as to 
think He hath but one way in which He can glorify Himself by thee. He can do 
it by thy silence as well as by thy preaching; thy laying aside as well as 
thy continuance in thy work. It is not pretence of doing God the greatest 
service, or performing the weightiest duty, that will excuse the least sin, 
though that sin capacitated or gave us the opportunity for doing that duty. 
Thou wilt have little thanks, 0 my soul! if, when thou art charged with 
corrupting God's worship, falsifying thy vows, thou pretendest a necessity 
for it in order to a continuance in the ministry. 
</p>
               <p>As he read this, and 
glanced at much more which he did not read, he gained resolution for himself, 
and felt as if he too could be brave and firm in doing what he believed to be 
right; but as he ceased he heard Margaret's low convulsive sob; and his 
courage sank down under the keen sense of suffering. 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret, dear!' said 
he, drawing her closer, 'think of the early martyrs; think of the thousands 
who have suffered.' 
</p>
               <p>'But, father,' said she, suddenly lifting up her 
flushed, tear-wet face, 'the early martyrs suffered for the truth, while 
you—oh! dear, dear papa!' 
</p>
               <p>'I suffer for conscience' sake, my child,' said 
he, with a dignity that was only tremulous from the acute sensitiveness of 
his character; 'I must do what my conscience bids. I have borne long with 
self-reproach that would have roused any mind less torpid and cowardly than 
mine.' He shook his head as he went on. 'Your poor mother's fond wish, 
gratified at last in the mocking way in which over-fond wishes are too often 
fulfilled—Sodom apples as they are—has brought on this crisis, for which I 
ought to be, and I hope I am thankful. It is not a month since the bishop 
offered me another living; if I had accepted it, I should have had to make a 
fresh declaration of conformity to the Liturgy at my institution. Margaret, I 
tried to do it; I tried to content myself with simply refusing the additional 
preferment, and stopping quietly here,—strangling my conscience now, as I 
had strained it before. God forgive me!' 
</p>
               <p>He rose and walked up and down the 
room, speaking low words of self-reproach and humiliation, of which Margaret 
was thankful to hear but few. At last he said, 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret, I return to the 
old sad burden we must leave Helstone.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes! I see. But when?' 
</p>
               <p>'I have 
written to the bishop—I dare say I have told you so, but I forget things 
just now,' said Mr. Hale, collapsing into his depressed manner as soon as he 
came to talk of hard matter-of-fact details, 'informing him of my intention 
to resign this vicarage. He has been most kind; he has used arguments and 
expostulations, all in vain—in vain. They are but what I have tried upon 
myself, without avail. I shall have to take my deed of resignation, and wait 
upon the bishop myself, to bid him farewell. That will be a trial, but worse, 
far worse, will be the parting from my dear people. There is a curate 
appointed to read prayers—a Mr. Brown. He will come to stay with us 
to-morrow. Next Sunday I preach my farewell sermon.' 
</p>
               <p>Was it to be so sudden 
then? thought Margaret; and yet perhaps it was as well. Lingering would only 
add stings to the pain; it was better to be stunned into numbness by hearing 
of all these arrangements, which seemed to be nearly completed before she had 
been told. 'What does mamma say?' asked she, with a deep sigh. 
</p>
               <p>To her 
surprise, her father began to walk about again before he answered. At length 
he stopped and replied: 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret, I am a poor coward after all. I cannot 
bear to give pain. I know so well your mother's married life has not been all 
she hoped—all she had a right to expect—and this will be such a blow to 
her, that I have never had the heart, the power to tell her. She must be told 
though, now,' said he, looking wistfully at his daughter. Margaret was almost 
overpowered with the idea that her mother knew nothing of it all, and yet the 
affair was so far advanced! 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, indeed she must,' said Margaret. 
'Perhaps, after all, she may not—Oh yes! she will, she must be shocked'—as 
the force of the blow returned upon herself in trying to realise how another 
would take it. 'Where are we to go to?' said she at last, struck with a fresh 
wonder as to their future plans, if plans indeed her father had. 
</p>
               <p>'To 
Milton-Northern,' he answered, with a dull indifference, for he had perceived 
that, although his daughter's love had made her cling to him, and for a 
moment strive to soothe him with her love, yet the keenness of the pain was 
as fresh as ever in her mind. 
</p>
               <p>'Milton-Northern! The manufacturing town in 
Darkshire?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes,' said he, in the same despondent, indifferent way. 
</p>
               <p>'Why 
there, papa?' asked she. 
</p>
               <p>'Because there I can earn bread for my family. 
Because I know no one there, and no one knows Helstone, or can ever talk to 
me about it.' 
</p>
               <p>'Bread for your family! I thought you and mamma had'—and 
then she stopped, checking her natural interest regarding their future life, 
as she saw the gathering gloom on her father's brow. But he, with his quick 
intuitive sympathy, read in her face, as in a mirror, the reflections of his 
own moody depression, and turned it off with an effort. 
</p>
               <p>'You shall be told 
all, Margaret. Only help me to tell your mother. I think I could do anything 
but that: the idea of her distress turns me sick with dread. If I tell you 
all, perhaps you could break it to her to-morrow. I am going out for the day, 
to bid Farmer Dobson and the poor people on Bracy Common good-bye. Would you 
dislike breaking it to her very much, Margaret?'Margaret did dislike it, did 
shrink from it more than from anything she had ever had to do in her life 
before. She could not speak, all at once. Her father said, 'You dislike it 
very much, don't you, 
</p>
               <p>Margaret?' Then she conquered herself, and said, 
with a bright strong look on her face: 
</p>
               <p>'It is a painful thing, but it must 
be done, and I will do it as well as ever I can. You must have many painful 
things to do.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale shook his head despondingly: he pressed her hand in 
token of gratitude. Margaret was nearly upset again into a burst of crying. 
To turn her thoughts, she said: 'Now tell me, papa, what our plans are. You 
and mamma have some money, independent of the income from the living, have 
not you? Aunt Shaw has, I know.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes. I suppose we have about a hundred 
and seventy pounds a year of our own. Seventy of that has always gone to 
Frederick, since he has been abroad. I don't know if he wants it all,' he 
continued in a hesitating manner. 'He must have some pay for serving with the 
Spanish army.' 
</p>
               <p>'Frederick must not suffer,' said Margaret, decidedly; 'in a 
foreign country; so unjustly treated by his own. A hundred is left Could not 
you, and I, and mamma live on a hundred a year in some very cheap—very quiet 
part of England? Oh! I think we could.' 
</p>
               <p>'No!' said Mr. Hale. 'That would 
not answer. I must do something. I must make myself busy, to keep off morbid 
thoughts. Besides, in a country parish I should be so painfully reminded of 
Helstone, and my duties here. I could not bear it, Margaret. And a hundred a 
year would go a very little way, after the necessary wants of housekeeping 
are met, towards providing your mother with all the comforts she has been 
accustomed to, and ought to have. No: we must go to Milton. That is settled. 
I can always decide better by myself, and not influenced by those whom I 
love,' said he, as a half apology for having arranged so much before he had 
told any one of his family of his intentions. 'I cannot stand objections. 
They make me so undecided.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret resolved to keep silence. After all, 
what did it signify where they went, compared to the one terrible 
change? 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale continued: 'A few months ago, when my misery of doubt 
became more than I could bear without speaking, I wrote to Mr. Bell—you 
remember Mr. Bell, Margaret?' 
</p>
               <p>'No; I never saw him, I think. But I know who 
he is. Frederick's godfather—your old tutor at Oxford, don't you 
mean?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes. He is a Fellow of Plymouth College there. He is a native of 
Milton-Northern, I believe. At any rate, he has property there, which has 
very much increased in value since Milton has become such a large 
manufacturing town. Well, I had reason to suspect—to imagine—I had better 
say nothing about it, however. But I felt sure of sympathy from Mr. Bell. I 
don't know that he gave me much strength. He has lived an easy life in his 
college all his days. But he has been as kind as can be. And it is owing to 
him we are going to Milton.' 
</p>
               <p>'How?' said Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Why he has tenants, 
and houses, and mills there; so, though he dislikes the place—too bustling 
for one of his habits—he is obliged to keep up some sort of connection; and 
he tells me that he hears there is a good opening for a private tutor 
there.' 
</p>
               <p>'A private tutor!' said Margaret, looking scornful: 'What in the 
world do manufacturers want with the classics, or literature, or the 
accomplishments of a gentleman?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh,' said her father, 'some of them 
really seem to be fine fellows, conscious of their own deficiencies, which is 
more than many a man at Oxford is. Some want resolutely to learn, though they 
have come to man's estate. Some want their children to be better instructed 
than they themselves have been. At any rate, there is an opening, as I have 
said, for a private tutor. Mr. Bell has recommended me to a Mr. Thornton, a 
tenant of his, and a very intelligent man, as far as I can judge from his 
letters. And in Milton, Margaret, I shall find a busy life, if not a happy 
one, and people and scenes so different that I shall never be reminded of 
Helstone.' 
</p>
               <p>There was the secret motive, as Margaret knew from her own 
feelings. It would be different. Discordant as it was—with almost a 
detestation for all she had ever heard of the North of England, the 
manufacturers, the people, the wild and bleak country—there was this one 
recommendation—it would be different from Helstone, and could never remind 
them of that beloved place. 
</p>
               <p>'When do we go?' asked Margaret, after a short 
silence. 
</p>
               <p>'I do not know exactly. I wanted to talk it over with you. You 
see, your mother knows nothing about it yet: but I think, in a 
fortnight;—after my deed of resignation is sent in, I shall have no right to 
remain. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was almost stunned. 
</p>
               <p>'In a fortnight!' 
</p>
               <p>'No—no, not 
exactly to a day. Nothing is fixed,' said her father, with anxious 
hesitation, as he noticed the filmy sorrow that came over her eyes, and the 
sudden change in her complexion. But she recovered herself 
immediately. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, papa, it had better be fixed soon and decidedly, as you 
say. Only mamma to know nothing about it! It is that that is the great 
perplexity.' 
</p>
               <p>'Poor Maria!' replied Mr. Hale, tenderly. 'Poor, poor Maria! 
Oh, if I were not married—if I were but myself in the world, how easy it 
would be! As it is—Margaret, I dare not tell her!' 
</p>
               <p>'No,' said Margaret, 
sadly, 'I will do it. Give me till to-morrow evening to choose my time Oh, 
papa,' cried she, with sudden passionate entreaty, 'say—tell me it is a 
night-mare—a horrid dream—not the real waking truth! You cannot mean that 
you are really going to leave the Church—to give up Helstone—to be for ever 
separate from me, from mamma—led away by some delusion—some temptation! You 
do not really mean it!' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale sat in rigid stillness while she 
spoke. 
</p>
               <p>Then he looked her in the face, and said in a slow, hoarse, measured 
way—'I do mean it, Margaret. You must not deceive yourself into doubting the 
reality of my words—my fixed intention and resolve.' He looked at her in the 
same steady, stony manner, for some moments after he had done speaking. She, 
too, gazed back with pleading eyes before she would believe that it was 
irrevocable. Then she arose and went, without another word or look, towards 
the door. As her fingers were on the handle he called her back. He was 
standing by the fireplace, shrunk and stooping; but as she came near he drew 
himself up to his full height, and, placing his hands on her head, he said, 
solemnly: 
</p>
               <p>'The blessing of God be upon thee, my child!' 
</p>
               <p>'And may He 
restore you to His Church,' responded she, out of the fulness of her heart. 
The next moment she feared lest this answer to his blessing might be 
irreverent, wrong—might hurt him as coming from his daughter, and she threw 
her arms round his neck. He held her to him for a minute or two. She heard 
him murmur to himself, 'The martyrs and confessors had even more pain to 
bear—I will not shrink.' 
</p>
               <p>They were startled by hearing Mrs. Hale inquiring 
for her daughter. They started asunder in the full consciousness of all that 
was before them. Mr. Hale hurriedly said—'Go, Margaret, go. I shall be out 
all to-morrow. Before night you will have told your mother.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes,' she 
replied, and she returned to the drawing-room in a stunned and dizzy 
state. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.5" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER V</head>
               <head>DECISION</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'I ask Thee for a thoughtful love, </l>
                  <l>Through constant watching wise, </l>
                  <l>To meet the glad with joyful smiles, </l>
                  <l>And to wipe the weeping eyes; </l>
                  <l>And a heart at leisure from itself </l>
                  <l>To soothe and sympathise.' </l>
                  <l>ANON. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Margaret made a good listener to all her mother's little plans for adding 
some small comforts to the lot of the poorer parishioners. She could not help 
listening, though each new project was a stab to her heart. By the time the 
frost had set in, they should be far away from Helstone. Old Simon's 
rheumatism might be bad and his eyesight worse; there would be no one to go 
and read to him, and comfort him with little porringers of broth and good red 
flannel: or if there was, it would be a stranger, and the old man would watch 
in vain for her. Mary Domville's little crippled boy would crawl in vain to 
the door and look for her coming through the forest. These poor friends would 
never understand why she had forsaken them; and there were many others 
besides. 'Papa has always spent the income he derived from his living in the 
parish. I am, perhaps, encroaching upon the next dues, but the winter is 
likely to be severe, and our poor old people must be helped.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, mamma, 
let us do all we can,' said Margaret eagerly, not seeing the prudential side 
of the question, only grasping at the idea that they were rendering such help 
for the last time; 'we may not be here long.' 
</p>
               <p>'Do you feel ill, my 
darling?' asked Mrs. Hale, anxiously, misunderstanding Margaret's hint of the 
uncertainty of their stay at Helstone. 'You look pale and tired. It is this 
soft, damp, unhealthy air.' 
</p>
               <p>'No—no, mamma, it is not that: it is delicious 
air. It smells of the freshest, purest fragrance, after the smokiness of 
Harley Street. But I am tired: it surely must be near bedtime.' 
</p>
               <p>'Not far 
off—it is half-past nine. You had better go to bed at dear. Ask Dixon for 
some gruel. I will come and see you as soon as you are in bed. I am afraid 
you have taken cold; or the bad air from some of the stagnant ponds—' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, 
mamma,' said Margaret, faintly smiling as she kissed her mother, 'I am quite 
well—don't alarm yourself about me; I am only tired.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret went 
upstairs. To soothe her mother's anxiety she submitted to a basin of gruel. 
She was lying languidly in bed when Mrs. Hale came up to make some last 
inquiries and kiss her before going to her own room for the night. But the 
instant she heard her mother's door locked, she sprang out of bed, and 
throwing her dressing-gown on, she began to pace up and down the room, until 
the creaking of one of the boards reminded her that she must make no noise. 
She went and curled herself up on the window-seat in the small, 
deeply-recessed window. That morning when she had looked out, her heart had 
danced at seeing the bright clear lights on the church tower, which foretold 
a fine and sunny day. This evening—sixteen hours at most had past by—she 
sat down, too full of sorrow to cry, but with a dull cold pain, which seemed 
to have pressed the youth and buoyancy out of her heart, never to return. Mr. 
Henry Lennox's visit—his offer—was like a dream, a thing beside her actual 
life. The hard reality was, that her father had so admitted tempting doubts 
into his mind as to become a schismatic—an outcast; all the changes 
consequent upon this grouped themselves around that one great blighting 
fact. 
</p>
               <p>She looked out upon the dark-gray lines of the church tower, square 
and straight in the centre of the view, cutting against the deep blue 
transparent depths beyond, into which she gazed, and felt that she might gaze 
for ever, seeing at every moment some farther distance, and yet no sign of 
God! It seemed to her at the moment, as if the earth was more utterly 
desolate than if girt in by an iron dome, behind which there might be the 
ineffaceable peace and glory of the Almighty: those never-ending depths of 
space, in their still serenity, were more mocking to her than any material 
bounds could be—shutting in the cries of earth's sufferers, which now might 
ascend into that infinite splendour of vastness and be lost—lost for ever, 
before they reached His throne. In this mood her father came in unheard. The 
moonlight was strong enough to let him see his daughter in her unusual place 
and attitude. He came to her and touched her shoulder before she was aware 
that he was there. 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret, I heard you were up. I could not help coming 
in to ask you to pray with me—to say the Lord's Prayer; that will do good to 
both of us.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale and Margaret knelt by the window-seat—he looking up, 
she bowed down in humble shame. God was there, close around them, hearing her 
father's whispered words. Her father might be a heretic; but had not she, in 
her despairing doubts not five minutes before, shown herself a far more utter 
sceptic? She spoke not a word, but stole to bed after her father had left 
her, like a child ashamed of its fault. If the world was full of perplexing 
problems she would trust, and only ask to see the one step needful for the 
hour. Mr. Lennox—his visit, his proposal—the remembrance of which had been 
so rudely pushed aside by the subsequent events of the day—haunted her 
dreams that night. He was climbing up some tree of fabulous height to reach 
the branch whereon was slung her bonnet: he was falling, and she was 
struggling to save him, but held back by some invisible powerful hand. He was 
dead. And yet, with a shifting of the scene, she was once more in the Harley 
Street drawing-room, talking to him as of old, and still with a consciousness 
all the time that she had seen him killed by that terrible fall. 
</p>
               <p>Miserable, 
unresting night! Ill preparation for the coming day! She awoke with a start, 
unrefreshed, and conscious of some reality worse even than her feverish 
dreams. It all came back upon her; not merely the sorrow, but the terrible 
discord in the sorrow. Where, to what distance apart, had her father 
wandered, led by doubts which were to her temptations of the Evil One? She 
longed to ask, and yet would not have heard for all the world. 
</p>
               <p>The fine 
Crisp morning made her mother feel particularly well and happy at 
breakfast-time. She talked on, planning village kindnesses, unheeding the 
silence of her husband and the monosyllabic answers of Margaret. Before the 
things were cleared away, Mr. Hale got up; he leaned one hand on the table, 
as if to support himself: 
</p>
               <p>'I shall not be at home till evening. I am going 
to Bracy Common, and will ask Farmer Dobson to give me something for dinner. 
I shall be back to tea at seven.' 
</p>
               <p>He did not look at either of them, but 
Margaret knew what he meant. By seven the announcement must be made to her 
mother. Mr. Hale would have delayed making it till half-past six, but 
Margaret was of different stuff. She could not bear the impending weight on 
her mind all the day long: better get the worst over; the day would be too 
short to comfort her mother. But while she stood by the window, thinking how 
to begin, and waiting for the servant to have left the room, her mother had 
gone up-stairs to put on her things to go to the school. She came down ready 
equipped, in a brisker mood than usual. 
</p>
               <p>'Mother, come round the garden with 
me this morning; just one turn,' said Margaret, putting her arm round Mrs. 
Hale's waist. 
</p>
               <p>They passed through the open window. Mrs. Hale spoke—said 
something—Margaret could not tell what. Her eye caught on a bee entering a 
deep-belled flower: when that bee flew forth with his spoil she would 
begin—that should be the sign. Out he came. 
</p>
               <p>'Mamma! Papa is going to leave 
Helstone!' she blurted forth. 'He's going to leave the Church, and live in 
Milton-Northern.' There were the three hard facts hardly spoken. 
</p>
               <p>'What 
makes you say so?' asked Mrs. Hale, in a surprised incredulous voice. 'Who 
has been telling you such nonsense?' 
</p>
               <p>'Papa himself,' said Margaret, longing 
to say something gentle and consoling, but literally not knowing how. They 
were close to a garden-bench. Mrs. Hale sat down, and began to cry. 
</p>
               <p>'I 
don't understand you,' she said. 'Either you have made some great mistake, or 
I don't quite understand you.' 
</p>
               <p>'No, mother, I have made no mistake. Papa 
has written to the bishop, saying that he has such doubts that he cannot 
conscientiously remain a priest of the Church of England, and that he must 
give up Helstone. He has also consulted Mr. Bell—Frederick's godfather, you 
know, mamma; and it is arranged that we go to live in Milton-Northern.' Mrs. 
Hale looked up in Margaret's face all the time she was speaking these words: 
the shadow on her countenance told that she, at least, believed in the truth 
of what she said. 
</p>
               <p>'I don't think it can be true,' said Mrs. Hale, at 
length. 'He would surely have told me before it came to this.' 
</p>
               <p>It came 
strongly upon Margaret's mind that her mother ought to have been told: that 
whatever her faults of discontent and repining might have been, it was an 
error in her father to have left her to learn his change of opinion, and his 
approaching change of life, from her better-informed child. Margaret sat down 
by her mother, and took her unresisting head on her breast, bending her own 
soft cheeks down caressingly to touch her face. 
</p>
               <p>'Dear, darling mamma! we 
were so afraid of giving you pain. Papa felt so acutely—you know you are not 
strong, and there must have been such terrible suspense to go 
through.' 
</p>
               <p>'When did he tell you, Margaret?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yesterday, only yesterday,' 
replied Margaret, detecting the jealousy which prompted the inquiry. 'Poor 
papa!'—trying to divert her mother's thoughts into compassionate sympathy 
for all her father had gone through. Mrs. Hale raised her head. 
</p>
               <p>'What does 
he mean by having doubts?' she asked. 'Surely, he does not mean that he 
thinks differently—that he knows better than the Church.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret shook 
her head, and the tears came into her eyes, as her mother touched the bare 
nerve of her own regret. 
</p>
               <p>'Can't the bishop set him right?' asked Mrs. Hale, 
half impatiently. 
</p>
               <p>'I'm afraid not,' said Margaret. 'But I did not ask. I 
could not bear to hear what he might answer. It is all settled at any rate. 
He is going to leave Helstone in a fortnight. I am not sure if he did not say 
he had sent in his deed of resignation.' 
</p>
               <p>'In a fortnight!' exclaimed Mrs. 
Hale, 'I do think this is very strange—not at all right. I call it very 
unfeeling,' said she, beginning to take relief in tears. 'He has doubts, you 
say, and gives up his living, and all without consulting me. I dare say, if 
he had told me his doubts at the first I could have nipped them in the 
bud.' 
</p>
               <p>Mistaken as Margaret felt her father's conduct to have been, she 
could not bear to hear it blamed by her mother. She knew that his very 
reserve had originated in a tenderness for her, which might be cowardly, but 
was not unfeeling. 
</p>
               <p>'I almost hoped you might have been glad to leave 
Helstone, mamma,' said she, after a pause. 'You have never been well in this 
air, you know.' 
</p>
               <p>'You can't think the smoky air of a manufacturing town, all 
chimneys and dirt like Milton-Northern, would be better than this air, which 
is pure and sweet, if it is too soft and relaxing. Fancy living in the middle 
of factories, and factory people! Though, of course, if your father leaves 
the Church, we shall not be admitted into society anywhere. It will be such a 
disgrace to us! Poor dear Sir John! It is well he is not alive to see what 
your father has come to! Every day after dinner, when I was a girl, living 
with your aunt Shaw, at Beresford Court, Sir John used to give for the first 
toast—“Church and King, and down with the Rump.”' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was glad that 
her mother's thoughts were turned away from the fact of her husband's silence 
to her on the point which must have been so near his heart. Next to the 
serious vital anxiety as to the nature of her father's doubts, this was the 
one circumstance of the case that gave Margaret the most pain. 
</p>
               <p>'You know, 
we have very little society here, mamma. The Gormans, who are our nearest 
neighbours (to call society—and we hardly ever see them), have been in trade 
just as much as these Milton-Northern people.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes,' said Mrs. Hale, 
almost indignantly, 'but, at any rate, the Gormans made carriages for half 
the gentry of the county, and were brought into some kind of intercourse with 
them; but these factory people, who on earth wears cotton that can afford 
linen?' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, mamma, I give up the cotton-spinners; I am not standing up 
for them, any more than for any other trades-people. Only we shall have 
little enough to do with them.' 
</p>
               <p>'Why on earth has your father fixed on 
Milton-Northern to live in?' 
</p>
               <p>'Partly,' said Margaret, sighing, 'because it 
is so very different from Helstone—partly because Mr. Bell says there is an 
opening there for a private tutor.' 
</p>
               <p>'Private tutor in Milton! Why can't he 
go to Oxford, and be a tutor to gentlemen?' 
</p>
               <p>'You forget, mamma! He is 
leaving the Church on account of his opinions—his doubts would do him no 
good at Oxford.' 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Hale was silent for some time, quietly crying. At 
last she said:— 
</p>
               <p>'And the furniture—How in the world are we to manage the 
removal? I never removed in my life, and only a fortnight to think about 
it!' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was inexpressibly relieved to find that her mother's anxiety 
and distress was lowered to this point, so insignificant to herself, and on 
which she could do so much to help. She planned and promised, and led her 
mother on to arrange fully as much as could be fixed before they knew 
somewhat more definitively what Mr. Hale intended to do. Throughout the day 
Margaret never left her mother; bending her whole soul to sympathise in all 
the various turns her feelings took; towards evening especially, as she 
became more and more anxious that her father should find a soothing welcome 
home awaiting him, after his return from his day of fatigue and distress. She 
dwelt upon what he must have borne in secret for long; her mother only 
replied coldly that he ought to have told her, and that then at any rate he 
would have had an adviser to give him counsel; and Margaret turned faint at 
heart when she heard her father's step in the hall. She dared not go to meet 
him, and tell him what she had done all day, for fear of her mother's jealous 
annoyance. She heard him linger, as if awaiting her, or some sign of her; and 
she dared not stir; she saw by her mother's twitching lips, and changing 
colour, that she too was aware that her husband had returned. Presently he 
opened the room-door, and stood there uncertain whether to come in. His face 
was gray and pale; he had a timid, fearful look in his eyes; something almost 
pitiful to see in a man's face; but that look of despondent uncertainty, of 
mental and bodily languor, touched his wife's heart. She went to him, and 
threw herself on his breast, crying out — 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! Richard, Richard, you 
should have told me sooner!' 
</p>
               <p>And then, in tears, Margaret left her, as she 
rushed up-stairs to throw herself on her bed, and hide her face in the 
pillows to stifle the hysteric sobs that would force their way at last, after 
the rigid self-control of the whole day. 
</p>
               <p>How long she lay thus she could 
not tell. She heard no noise, though the housemaid came in to arrange the 
room. The affrighted girl stole out again on tip-toe, and went and told Mrs. 
Dixon that Miss Hale was crying as if her heart would break: she was sure she 
would make herself deadly ill if she went on at that rate. In consequence of 
this, Margaret felt herself touched, and started up into a sitting posture; 
she saw the accustomed room, the figure of Dixon in shadow, as the latter 
stood holding the candle a little behind her, for fear of the effect on Miss 
Hale's startled eyes, swollen and blinded as they were. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, Dixon! I did 
not hear you come into the room!' said Margaret, resuming her trembling 
self-restraint. 'Is it very late?' continued she, lifting herself languidly 
off the bed, yet letting her feet touch the ground without fairly standing 
down, as she shaded her wet ruffled hair off her face, and tried to look as 
though nothing were the matter; as if she had only been asleep. 
</p>
               <p>'I hardly 
can tell what time it is,' replied Dixon, in an aggrieved tone of voice. 
'Since your mamma told me this terrible news, when I dressed her for tea, 
I've lost all count of time. I'm sure I don't know what is to become of us 
all. When Charlotte told me just now you were sobbing, Miss Hale, I thought, 
no wonder, poor thing! And master thinking of turning Dissenter at his time 
of life, when, if it is not to be said he's done well in the Church, he's not 
done badly after all. I had a cousin, miss, who turned Methodist preacher 
after he was fifty years of age, and a tailor all his life; but then he had 
never been able to make a pair of trousers to fit, for as long as he had been 
in the trade, so it was no wonder; but for master! as I said to missus, “What 
would poor Sir John have said? he never liked your marrying Mr. Hale, but if 
he could have known it would have come to this, he would have sworn worse 
oaths than ever, if that was possible!”' 
</p>
               <p>Dixon had been so much accustomed 
to comment upon Mr. Hale's proceedings to her mistress (who listened to her, 
or not, as she was in the humour), that she never noticed Margaret's flashing 
eye and dilating nostril. To hear her father talked of in this way by a 
servant to her face! 
</p>
               <p>'Dixon,' she said, in the low tone she always used 
when much excited, which had a sound in it as of some distant turmoil, or 
threatening storm breaking far away. 'Dixon! you forget to whom you are 
speaking.' She stood upright and firm on her feet now, confronting the 
waiting-maid, and fixing her with her steady discerning eye. 'I am Mr. Hale's 
daughter. Go! You have made a strange mistake, and one that I am sure your 
own good feeling will make you sorry for when you think about it.' 
</p>
               <p>Dixon 
hung irresolutely about the room for a minute or two. Margaret repeated, 'You 
may leave me, Dixon. I wish you to go.' Dixon did not know whether to resent 
these decided words or to cry; either course would have done with her 
mistress: but, as she said to herself, 'Miss Margaret has a touch of the old 
gentleman about her, as well as poor Master Frederick; I wonder where they 
get it from?' and she, who would have resented such words from any one less 
haughty and determined in manner, was subdued enough to say, in a half 
humble, half injured tone: 
</p>
               <p>'Mayn't I unfasten your gown, miss, and do your 
hair?' 
</p>
               <p>'No! not to-night, thank you.' And Margaret gravely lighted her out 
of the room, and bolted the door. From henceforth Dixon obeyed and admired 
Margaret. She said it was because she was so like poor Master Frederick; but 
the truth was, that Dixon, as do many others, liked to feel herself ruled by 
a powerful and decided nature. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret needed all Dixon's help in action, 
and silence in words; for, for some time, the latter thought it her duty to 
show her sense of affront by saying as little as possible to her young lady; 
so the energy came out in doing rather than in speaking A fortnight was a 
very short time to make arrangements for so serious a removal; as Dixon said, 
'Any one but a gentleman—indeed almost any other gentleman—' but catching a 
look at Margaret's straight, stern brow just here, she coughed the remainder 
of the sentence away, and meekly took the horehound drop that Margaret 
offered her, to stop the 'little tickling at my chest, miss.' But almost any 
one but Mr. Hale would have had practical knowledge enough to see, that in so 
short a time it would be difficult to fix on any house in Milton-Northern, or 
indeed elsewhere, to which they could remove the furniture that had of 
necessity to be taken out of Helstone vicarage. 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Hale, overpowered by 
all the troubles and necessities for immediate household decisions that 
seemed to come upon her at once, became really ill, and Margaret almost felt 
it as a relief when her mother fairly took to her bed, and left the 
management of affairs to her. Dixon, true to her post of body-guard, attended 
most faithfully to her mistress, and only emerged from Mrs. Hale's bed-room 
to shake her head, and murmur to herself in a manner which Margaret did not 
choose to hear. For, the one thing clear and straight before her, was the 
necessity for leaving Helstone. Mr. Hale's successor in the living was 
appointed; and, at any rate, after her father's decision; there must be no 
lingering now, for his sake, as well as from every other consideration. For 
he came home every evening more and more depressed, after the necessary 
leave-taking which he had resolved to have with every individual parishioner. 
Margaret, inexperienced as she was in all the necessary matter-of-fact 
business to be got through, did not know to whom to apply for advice. The 
cook and Charlotte worked away with willing arms and stout hearts at all the 
moving and packing; and as far as that went, Margaret's admirable sense 
enabled her to see what was best, and to direct how it should be done. But 
where were they to go to? In a week they must be gone. Straight to Milton, or 
where? So many arrangements depended on this decision that Margaret resolved 
to ask her father one evening, in spite of his evident fatigue and low 
spirits. He answered: 
</p>
               <p>'My dear! I have really had too much to think about 
to settle this. What does your mother say? What does she wish? Poor 
Maria!' 
</p>
               <p>He met with an echo even louder than his sigh. Dixon had just come 
into the room for another cup of tea for Mrs. Hale, and catching Mr. Hale's 
last words, and protected by his presence from Margaret's upbraiding eyes, 
made bold to say, 'My poor mistress!' 
</p>
               <p>'You don't think her worse to-day,' 
said Mr. Hale, turning hastily. 
</p>
               <p>'I'm sure I can't say, sir. It's not for me 
to judge. The illness seems so much more on the mind than on the body.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. 
Hale looked infinitely distressed. 
</p>
               <p>'You had better take mamma her tea while 
it is hot, Dixon,' said Margaret, in a tone of quiet authority. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! I beg 
your pardon, miss! My thoughts was otherwise occupied in thinking of my 
poor——of Mrs. Hale.' 
</p>
               <p>'Papa!' said Margaret, 'it is this suspense that is 
bad for you both. Of course, mamma must feel your change of opinions: we 
can't help that,' she continued, softly; 'but now the course is clear, at 
least to a certain point. And I think, papa, that I could get mamma to help 
me in planning, if you could tell me what to plan for. She has never 
expressed any wish in any way, and only thinks of what can't be helped. Are 
we to go straight to Milton? Have you taken a house there?' 
</p>
               <p>'No,' he 
replied. 'I suppose we must go into lodgings, and look about for a 
house. 
</p>
               <p>'And pack up the furniture so that it can be left at the railway 
station, till we have met with one?' 
</p>
               <p>'I suppose so. Do what you think best. 
Only remember, we shall have much less money to spend.' 
</p>
               <p>They had never had 
much superfluity, as Margaret knew. She felt that it was a great weight 
suddenly thrown upon her shoulders. Four months ago, all the decisions she 
needed to make were what dress she would wear for dinner, and to help Edith 
to draw out the lists of who should take down whom in the dinner parties at 
home. Nor was the household in which she lived one that called for much 
decision. Except in the one grand case of Captain Lennox's offer, everything 
went on with the regularity of clockwork. Once a year, there was a long 
discussion between her aunt and Edith as to whether they should go to the 
Isle of Wight, abroad, or to Scotland; but at such times Margaret herself was 
secure of drifting, without any exertion of her own, into the quiet harbour 
of home. Now, since that day when Mr. Lennox came, and startled her into a 
decision, every day brought some question, momentous to her, and to those 
whom she loved, to be settled. 
</p>
               <p>Her father went up after tea to sit with his 
wife. Margaret remained alone in the drawing-room. Suddenly she took a candle 
and went into her father's study for a great atlas, and lugging it back into 
the drawing-room, she began to pore over the map of England. She was ready to 
look up brightly when her father came down stairs. 
</p>
               <p>'I have hit upon such a 
beautiful plan. Look here—in Darkshire, hardly the breadth of my finger from 
Milton, is Heston, which I have often heard of from people living in the 
north as such a pleasant little bathing-place. Now, don't you think we could 
get mamma there with Dixon, while you and I go and look at houses, and get 
one all ready for her in Milton? She would get a breath of sea air to set her 
up for the winter, and be spared all the fatigue, and Dixon would enjoy 
taking care of her.' 
</p>
               <p>'Is Dixon to go with us?' asked Mr. Hale, in a kind of 
helpless dismay. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, yes!' said Margaret. 'Dixon quite intends it, and I 
don't know what mamma would do without her.' 
</p>
               <p>'But we shall have to put up 
with a very different way of living, I am afraid. Everything is so much 
dearer in a town. I doubt if Dixon can make herself comfortable. To tell you 
the truth Margaret, I sometimes feel as if that woman gave herself 
airs.' 
</p>
               <p>'To be sure she does, papa,' replied Margaret; 'and if she has to 
put up with a different style of living, we shall have to put up with her 
airs, which will be worse. But she really loves us all, and would be 
miserable to leave us, I am sure—especially in this change; so, for mamma's 
sake, and for the sake of her faithfulness, I do think she must go.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very 
well, my dear. Go on. I am resigned. How far is Heston from Milton? The 
breadth of one of your fingers does not give me a very clear idea of 
distance.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, then, I suppose it is thirty miles; that is not much!' 
</p>
               <p>'Not in distance, but in—. Never mind! If you really think it will do 
your mother good, let it be fixed so.' 
</p>
               <p>This was a great step. Now Margaret 
could work, and act, and plan in good earnest. And now Mrs. Hale could rouse 
herself from her languor, and forget her real suffering in thinking of the 
pleasure and the delight of going to the sea-side. Her only regret was that 
Mr. Hale could not be with her all the fortnight she was to be there, as he 
had been for a whole fortnight once, when they were engaged, and she was 
staying with Sir John and Lady Beresford at Torquay. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.6" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER VI</head>
               <head>FAREWELL</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Unwatch'd the garden bough shall sway, </l>
                  <l>The tender blossom flutter down, </l>
                  <l>Unloved that beech will gather brown, </l>
                  <l>The maple burn itself away; </l>
                  <l>Unloved, the sun-flower, shining fair, </l>
                  <l>Ray round with flames her disk of seed, </l>
                  <l>And many a rose-carnation feed </l>
                  <l>With summer spice the humming air; </l>
                  <l>*    *    *    *    *    * </l>
                  <l>Till from the garden and the wild </l>
                  <l>A fresh association blow, </l>
                  <l>And year by year the landscape grow </l>
                  <l>Familiar to the stranger's child </l>
                  <l>As year by year the labourer tills </l>
                  <l>His wonted glebe, or lops the glades; </l>
                  <l>And year by year our memory fades </l>
                  <l>From all the circle of the hills.' </l>
                  <l>TENNYSON. </l>
               </q>
               <p>The last day came; the house was full of packing-cases, which were being 
carted off at the front door, to the nearest railway station. Even the pretty 
lawn at the side of the house was made unsightly and untidy by the straw that 
had been wafted upon it through the open door and windows. The rooms had a 
strange echoing sound in them,—and the light came harshly and strongly in 
through the uncurtained windows,—seeming already unfamiliar and strange. 
Mrs. Hale's dressing-room was left untouched to the last; and there she and 
Dixon were packing up clothes, and interrupting each other every now and then 
to exclaim at, and turn over with fond regard, some forgotten treasure, in 
the shape of some relic of the children while they were yet little. They did 
not make much progress with their work. Down-stairs, Margaret stood calm and 
collected, ready to counsel or advise the men who had been called in to help 
the cook and Charlotte. These two last, crying between whiles, wondered how 
the young lady could keep up so this last day, and settled it between them 
that she was not likely to care much for Helstone, having been so long in 
London. There she stood, very pale and quiet, with her large grave eyes 
observing everything,—up to every present circumstance, however small. They 
could not understand how her heart was aching all the time, with a heavy 
pressure that no sighs could lift off or relieve, and how constant exertion 
for her perceptive faculties was the only way to keep herself from crying out 
with pain. Moreover, if she gave way, who was to act? Her father was 
examining papers, books, registers, what not, in the vestry with the clerk; 
and when he came in, there were his own books to pack up, which no one but 
himself could do to his satisfaction. Besides, was Margaret one to give way 
before strange men, or even household friends like the cook and Charlotte! 
Not she. But at last the four packers went into the kitchen to their tea; and 
Margaret moved stiffly and slowly away from the place in the hall where she 
had been standing so long, out through the bare echoing drawing-room, into 
the twilight of an early November evening. There was a filmy veil of soft 
dull mist obscuring, but not hiding, all objects, giving them a lilac hue, 
for the sun had not yet fully set; a robin was singing,—perhaps, Margaret 
thought, the very robin that her father had so often talked of as his winter 
pet, and for which he had made, with his own hands, a kind of robin-house by 
his study-window. The leaves were more gorgeous than ever; the first touch of 
frost would lay them all low on the ground. Already one or two kept 
constantly floating down, amber and golden in the low slanting 
sun-rays. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret went along the walk under the pear-tree wall. She had 
never been along it since she paced it at Henry Lennox's side. Here, at this 
bed of thyme, he began to speak of what she must not think of now. Her eyes 
were on that late-blowing rose as she was trying to answer; and she had 
caught the idea of the vivid beauty of the feathery leaves of the carrots in 
the very middle of his last sentence. Only a fortnight ago And all so 
changed! Where was he now? In London,—going through the old round; dining 
with the old Harley Street set, or with gayer young friends of his own. Even 
now, while she walked sadly through that damp and drear garden in the dusk, 
with everything falling and fading, and turning to decay around her, he might 
be gladly putting away his law-books after a day of satisfactory toil, and 
freshening himself up, as he had told her he often did, by a run in the 
Temple Gardens, taking in the while the grand inarticulate mighty roar of 
tens of thousands of busy men, nigh at hand, but not seen, and catching ever, 
at his quick turns, glimpses of the lights of the city coming up out of the 
depths of the river. He had often spoken to Margaret of these hasty walks, 
snatched in the intervals between study and dinner. At his best times and in 
his best moods had he spoken of them; and the thought of them had struck upon 
her fancy. Here there was no sound. The robin had gone away into the vast 
stillness of night. Now and then, a cottage door in the distance was opened 
and shut, as if to admit the tired labourer to his home; but that sounded 
very far away. A stealthy, creeping, cranching sound among the crisp fallen 
leaves of the forest, beyond the garden, seemed almost close at hand. 
Margaret knew it was some poacher. Sitting up in her bed-room this past 
autumn, with the light of her candle extinguished, and purely revelling in 
the solemn beauty of the heavens and the earth, she had many a time seen the 
light noiseless leap of the poachers over the garden-fence, their quick tramp 
across the dewy moonlit lawn, their disappearance in the black still shadow 
beyond. The wild adventurous freedom of their life had taken her fancy; she 
felt inclined to wish them success; she had no fear of them. But to-night she 
was afraid, she knew not why. She heard Charlotte shutting the windows, and 
fastening up for the night, unconscious that any one had gone out into the 
garden. A small branch—it might be of rotten wood, or it might be broken by 
force—came heavily down in the nearest part of the forest, Margaret ran, 
swift as Camilla, down to the window, and rapped at it with a hurried 
tremulousness which startled Charlotte within. 
</p>
               <p>'Let me in! Let me in! It is 
only me, Charlotte!' Her heart did not still its fluttering till she was safe 
in the drawing-room, with the windows fastened and bolted, and the familiar 
walls hemming her round, and shutting her in. She had sate down upon a 
packing case; cheerless, Chill was the dreary and dismantled room—no fire 
nor other light, but Charlotte's long unsnuffed candle. Charlotte looked at 
Margaret with surprise; and Margaret, feeling it rather than seeing it, rose 
up. 
</p>
               <p>'I was afraid you were shutting me out altogether, Charlotte,' said 
she, half-smiling. 'And then you would never have heard me in the kitchen, 
and the doors into the lane and churchyard are locked long ago.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, miss, 
I should have been sure to have missed you soon. The men would have wanted 
you to tell them how to go on. And I have put tea in master's study, as being 
the most comfortable room, so to speak.' 
</p>
               <p>'Thank you, Charlotte. You are a 
kind girl. I shall be sorry to leave you. You must try and write to me, if I 
can ever give you any little help or good advice. I shall always be glad to 
get a letter from Helstone, you know. I shall be sure and send you my address 
when. I know it.' 
</p>
               <p>The study was all ready for tea. There was a good blazing 
fire, and unlighted candles on the table. Margaret sat down on the rug, 
partly to warm herself, for the dampness of the evening hung about her dress, 
and overfatigue had made her chilly. She kept herself balanced by clasping 
her hands together round her knees; her head dropped a little towards her 
chest; the attitude was one of despondency, whatever her frame of mind might 
be. But when she heard her father's step on the gravel outside, she started 
up, and hastily shaking her heavy black hair back, and wiping a few tears 
away that had come on her cheeks she knew not how, she went out to open the 
door for him. He showed far more depression than she did. She could hardly 
get him to talk, although she tried to speak on subjects that would interest 
him, at the cost of an effort every time which she thought would be her 
last. 
</p>
               <p>'Have you been a very long walk to-day?' asked she, on seeing his 
refusal to touch food of any kind. 
</p>
               <p>'As far as Fordham Beeches. I went to 
see Widow Maltby; she is sadly grieved at not having wished you good-bye. She 
says little Susan has kept watch down the lane for days past.—Nay, Margaret, 
what is the matter, dear?' The thought of the little child watching for her, 
and continually disappointed—from no forgetfulness on her part, but from 
sheer inability to leave home—was the last drop in poor Margaret's cup, and 
she was sobbing away as if her heart would break. Mr. Hale was distressingly 
perplexed. He rose, and walked nervously up and down the room. Margaret tried 
to check herself, but would not speak until she could do so with firmness. 
She heard him talking, as if to himself. 
</p>
               <p>'I cannot bear it. I cannot bear 
to see the sufferings of others. I think I could go through my own with 
patience. Oh, is there no going back?' 
</p>
               <p>'No, father,' said Margaret, looking 
straight at him, and speaking low and steadily. 'It is bad to believe you in 
error. It would he infinitely worse to have known you a hypocrite.' She 
dropped her voice at the last few words, as if entertaining the idea of 
hypocrisy for a moment in connection with her father savoured of 
irreverence. 
</p>
               <p>'Besides,' she went on, 'it is only that I am tired to-night; 
don't think that I am suffering from what you have done, dear papa. We can't 
either of us talk about it to-night, I believe,' said she, finding that tears 
and sobs would come in spite of herself. 'I had better go and take mamma up 
this cup of tea. She had hers very early, when I was too busy to go to her, 
and I am sure she will be glad of another now.' 
</p>
               <p>Railroad time inexorably 
wrenched them away from lovely, beloved Helstone, the next morning. They were 
gone; they had seen the last of the long low parsonage home, half-covered 
with China-roses and pyracanthus—more homelike than ever in the morning sun 
that glittered on its windows, each belonging to some well-loved room. Almost 
before they had settled themselves into the car, sent from Southampton to 
fetch them to the station, they were gone away to return no more. A sting at 
Margaret's heart made her strive to look out to catch the last glimpse of the 
old church tower at the turn where she knew it might be seen above a wave of 
the forest trees; but her father remembered this too, and she silently 
acknowledged his greater right to the one window from which it could be seen. 
She leant back and shut her eyes, and the tears welled forth, and hung 
glittering for an instant on the shadowing eye-lashes before rolling slowly 
down her cheeks, and dropping, unheeded, on her dress. 
</p>
               <p>They were to stop in 
London all night at some quiet hotel. Poor Mrs. Hale had cried in her way 
nearly all day long; and Dixon showed her sorrow by extreme crossness, and a 
continual irritable attempt to keep her petticoats from even touching the 
unconscious Mr. Hale, whom she regarded as the origin of all this 
suffering. 
</p>
               <p>They went through the well-known streets, past houses which they 
had often visited, past shops in which she had lounged, impatient, by her 
aunt's side, while that lady was making some important and interminable 
decision-nay, absolutely past acquaintances in the streets; for though the 
morning had been of an incalculable length to them, and they felt as if it 
ought long ago to have closed in for the repose of darkness, it was the very 
busiest time of a London afternoon in November when they arrived there. It 
was long since Mrs. Hale had been in London; and she roused up, almost like a 
child, to look about her at the different streets, and to gaze after and 
exclaim at the shops and carriages. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, there's Harrison's, where I bought 
so many of my wedding-things. Dear! how altered! They've got immense 
plate-glass windows, larger than Crawford's in Southampton. Oh, and there, I 
declare—no, it is not—yes, it is—Margaret, we have just passed Mr. Henry 
Lennox. Where can he be going, among all these shops?' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret started 
forwards, and as quickly fell back, half-smiling at herself for the sudden 
motion. They were a hundred yards away by this time; but he seemed like a 
relic of Helstone—he was associated with a bright morning, an eventful day, 
and she should have liked to have seen him, without his seeing her,—without 
the chance of their speaking. 
</p>
               <p>The evening, without employment, passed in a 
room high up in an hotel, was long and heavy. Mr. Hale went out to his 
bookseller's, and to call on a friend or two. Every one they saw, either in 
the house or out in the streets, appeared hurrying to some appointment, 
expected by, or expecting somebody. They alone seemed strange and friendless, 
and desolate. Yet within a mile, Margaret knew of house after house, where 
she for her own sake, and her mother for her aunt Shaw's, would be welcomed, 
if they came in gladness, or even in peace of mind. If they came sorrowing, 
and wanting sympathy in a complicated trouble like the present, then they 
would be felt as a shadow in all these houses of intimate acquaintances, not 
friends. London life is too whirling and full to admit of even an hour of 
that deep silence of feeling which the friends of Job showed, when 'they sat 
with him on the ground seven days and seven nights, and none spake a word 
unto him; for they saw that his grief was very great.' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.7" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER VII</head>
               <head>NEW SCENES AND FACES</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Mist clogs the sunshine, </l>
                  <l>Smoky dwarf houses </l>
                  <l>Have we round on every side.' </l>
                  <l>MATTHEW ARNOLD. </l>
               </q>
               <p>The next afternoon, about twenty miles from Milton-Northern, they entered 
on the little branch railway that led to Heston. Heston itself was one long 
straggling street, running parallel to the seashore. It had a character of 
its own, as different from the little bathing-places in the south of England 
as they again from those of the continent. To use a Scotch word, every thing 
looked more 'purposelike.' The country carts had more iron, and less wood and 
leather about the horse-gear; the people in the streets, although on pleasure 
bent, had yet a busy mind. The colours looked grayer—more enduring, not so 
gay and pretty. There were no smock-frocks, even among the country folk; they 
retarded motion, and were apt to catch on machinery, and so the habit of 
wearing them had died out. In such towns in the south of England, Margaret 
had seen the shopmen, when not employed in their business, lounging a little 
at their doors, enjoying the fresh air, and the look up and down the street. 
Here, if they had any leisure from customers, they made themselves business 
in the shop—even, Margaret fancied, to the unnecessary unrolling and 
rerolling of ribbons. All these differences struck upon her mind, as she and 
her mother went out next morning to look for lodgings. 
</p>
               <p>Their two nights at 
hotels had cost more than Mr. Hale had anticipated, and they were glad to 
take the first clean, cheerful for the first time for many days, did Margaret 
feel at rest. There rooms they met with that were at liberty to receive them. 
There, was a dreaminess in the rest, too, which made it still more perfect 
and luxurious to repose in. The distant sea, lapping the sandy shore with 
measured sound; the nearer cries of the donkey-boys; the unusual scenes 
moving before her like pictures, which she cared not in her laziness to have 
fully explained before they passed away; the stroll down to the beach to 
breathe the sea-air, soft and warm on that sandy shore even to the end of 
November; the great long misty sea-line touching the tender-coloured sky; the 
white sail of a distant boat turning silver in some pale sunbeam:—it seemed 
as if she could dream her life away in such luxury of pensiveness, in which 
she made her present all in all, from not daring to think of the past, or 
wishing to contemplate the future. 
</p>
               <p>But the future must be met, however 
stern and iron it be. One evening it was arranged that Margaret and her 
father should go the next day to Milton-Northern, and look out for a house. 
Mr. Hale had received several letters from Mr. Bell, and one or two from Mr. 
Thornton, and he was anxious to ascertain at once a good many particulars 
respecting his position and chances of success there, which he could only do 
by an interview with the latter gentleman. Margaret knew that they ought to 
be removing; but she had a repugnance to the idea of a manufacturing town, 
and believed that her mother was receiving benefit from Heston air, so she 
would willingly have deferred the expedition to Milton. 
</p>
               <p>For several miles 
before they reached Milton, they saw a deep lead-coloured cloud hanging over 
the horizon in the direction in which it lay. It was all the darker from 
contrast with the pale gray-blue of the wintry sky; for in Heston there had 
been the earliest signs of frost. Nearer to the town, the air had a faint 
taste and smell of smoke; perhaps, after all, more a loss of the fragrance of 
grass and herbage than any positive taste or smell. Quick they were whirled 
over long, straight, hopeless streets of regularly-built houses, all small 
and of brick. Here and there a great oblong many-windowed factory stood up, 
like a hen among her chickens, puffing out black 'unparliamentary' smoke, and 
sufficiently accounting for the cloud which Margaret had taken to foretell 
rain. As they drove through the larger and wider streets, from the station to 
the hotel, they had to stop constantly; great loaded lurries blocked up the 
not over-wide thoroughfares. Margaret had now and then been into the city in 
her drives with her aunt. But there the heavy lumbering vehicles seemed 
various in their purposes and intent; here every van, every waggon and truck, 
bore cotton, either in the raw shape in bags, or the woven shape in bales of 
calico. People thronged the footpaths, most of them well-dressed as regarded 
the material, but with a slovenly looseness which struck Margaret as 
different from the shabby, threadbare smartness of a similar class in 
London. 
</p>
               <p>'New Street,' said Mr. Hale. 'This, I believe, is the principal 
street in Milton. Bell has often spoken to me about it. It was the opening of 
this street from a lane into a great thoroughfare, thirty years ago, which 
has caused his property to rise so much in value. Mr. Thornton's mill must be 
somewhere not very far off, for he is Mr. Bell's tenant. But I fancy he dates 
from his warehouse.' 
</p>
               <p>'Where is our hotel, papa?' 
</p>
               <p>'Close to the end of 
this street, I believe. Shall we have lunch before or after we have looked at 
the houses we marked in the Milton Times?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, let us get our work done 
first.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very well. Then I will only see if there is any note or letter for 
me from Mr. Thornton, who said he would let me know anything he might hear 
about these houses, and then we will set off. We will keep the cab; it will 
be safer than losing ourselves, and being too late for the train this 
afternoon.' 
</p>
               <p>There were no letters awaiting him. They set out on their 
house-hunting. Thirty pounds a-year was all they could afford to give, but in 
Hampshire they could have met with a roomy house and pleasant garden for the 
money. Here, even the necessary accommodation of two sitting-rooms and four 
bed-rooms seemed unattainable. They went through their list, rejecting each 
as they visited it. Then they looked at each other in dismay. 
</p>
               <p>'We must go 
back to the second, I think. That one,—in Crampton, don't they call the 
suburb? There were three sitting-rooms; don't you remember how we laughed at 
the number compared with the three bed-rooms? But I have planned it all. The 
front room down-stairs is to be your study and our dining-room (poor papa!), 
for, you know, we settled mamma is to have as cheerful a sitting-room as we 
can get; and that front room up-stairs, with the atrocious blue and pink 
paper and heavy cornice, had really a pretty view over the plain, with a 
great bend of river, or canal, or whatever it is, down below. Then I could 
have the little bed-room behind, in that projection at the head of the first 
flight of stairs—over the kitchen, you know—and you and mamma the room 
behind the drawing-room, and that closet in the roof will make you a splendid 
dressing-room.' 
</p>
               <p>'But Dixon, and the girl we are to have to help?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, 
wait a minute. I am overpowered by the discovery of my own genius for 
management. Dixon is to have—let me see, I had it once—the back 
sitting-room. I think she will like that. She grumbles so much about the 
stairs at Heston; and the girl is to have that sloping attic over your room 
and mamma's. Won't that do?' 
</p>
               <p>'I dare say it will. But the papers. What 
taste! And the overloading such a house with colour and such heavy 
cornices!' 
</p>
               <p>'Never mind, papa! Surely, you can charm the landlord into 
re-papering one or two of the rooms—the drawing-room and your bed-room—for 
mamma will come most in contact with them; and your book-shelves will hide a 
great deal of that gaudy pattern in the dining-room.' 
</p>
               <p>'Then you think it 
the best? If so, I had better go at once and call on this Mr. Donkin, to whom 
the advertisement refers me. I will take you back to the hotel, where you can 
order lunch, and rest, and by the time it is ready, I shall be with you. I 
hope I shall be able to get new papers.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret hoped so too, though she 
said nothing. She had never come fairly in contact with the taste that loves 
ornament, however bad, more than the plainness and simplicity which are of 
themselves the framework of elegance. 
</p>
               <p>Her father took her through the 
entrance of the hotel, and leaving her at the foot of the staircase, went to 
the address of the landlord of the house they had fixed upon. Just as 
Margaret had her hand on the door of their sitting-room, she was followed by 
a quick-stepping waiter: 
</p>
               <p>'I beg your pardon, ma'am. The gentleman was gone 
so quickly, I had no time to tell him. Mr. Thornton called almost directly 
after you left; and, as I understood from what the gentleman said, you would 
be back in an hour, I told him so, and he came again about five minutes ago, 
and said he would wait for Mr. Hale. He is in your room now, ma'am.' 
</p>
               <p>'Thank 
you. My father will return soon, and then you can tell him.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret 
opened the door and went in with the straight, fearless, dignified presence 
habitual to her. She felt no awkwardness; she had too much the habits of 
society for that. Here was a person come on business to her father; and, as 
he was one who had shown himself obliging, she was disposed to treat him with 
a full measure of civility. Mr. Thornton was a good deal more surprised and 
discomfited than she. Instead of a quiet, middle-aged clergyman, a young lady 
came forward with frank dignity,—a young lady of a different type to most of 
those he was in the habit of seeing. Her dress was very plain: a close straw 
bonnet of the best material and shape, trimmed with white ribbon; a dark silk 
gown, without any trimming or flounce; a large Indian shawl, which hung about 
her in long heavy folds, and which she wore as an empress wears her drapery. 
He did not understand who she was, as he caught the simple, straight, 
unabashed look, which showed that his being there was of no concern to the 
beautiful countenance, and called up no flush of surprise to the pale ivory 
of the complexion. He had heard that Mr. Hale had a daughter, but he had 
imagined that she was a little girl. 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Thornton, I believe!' said 
Margaret, after a half-instant's pause, during which his unready words would 
not come. 'Will you sit down. My father brought me to the door, not a minute 
ago, but unfortunately he was not told that you were here, and he has gone 
away on some business. But he will come back almost directly. I am sorry you 
have had the trouble of calling twice.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton was in habits of 
authority himself, but she seemed to assume some kind of rule over him at 
once. He had been getting impatient at the loss of his time on a market-day, 
the moment before she appeared, yet now he calmly took a seat at her 
bidding. 
</p>
               <p>'Do you know where it is that Mr. Hale has gone to? Perhaps I 
might be able to find him.' 
</p>
               <p>'He has gone to a Mr. Donkin's in Canute 
Street. He is the land-lord of the house my father wishes to take in 
Crampton.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton knew the house. He had seen the advertisement, and 
been to look at it, in compliance with a request of Mr. Bell's that he would 
assist Mr. Hale to the best of his power: and also instigated by his own 
interest in the case of a clergyman who had given up his living under 
circumstances such as those of Mr. Hale. Mr. Thornton had thought that the 
house in Crampton was really just the thing; but now that he saw Margaret, 
with her superb ways of moving and looking, he began to feel ashamed of 
having imagined that it would do very well for the Hales, in spite of a 
certain vulgarity in it which had struck him at the time of his looking it 
over. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret could not help her looks; but the short curled upper lip, 
the round, massive up-turned chin, the manner of carrying her head, her 
movements, full of a soft feminine defiance, always gave strangers the 
impression of haughtiness. She was tired now, and would rather have remained 
silent, and taken the rest her father had planned for her; but, of course, 
she owed it to herself to be a gentlewoman, and to speak courteously from 
time to time to this stranger; not over-brushed, nor over-polished, it must 
be confessed, after his rough encounter with Milton streets and crowds. She 
wished that he would go, as he had once spoken of doing, instead of sitting 
there, answering with curt sentences all the remarks she made. She had taken 
off her shawl, and hung it over the back of her chair. She sat facing him and 
facing the light; her full beauty met his eye; her round white flexile throat 
rising out of the full, yet lithe figure; her lips, moving so slightly as she 
spoke, not breaking the cold serene look of her face with any variation from 
the one lovely haughty curve; her eyes, with their soft gloom, meeting his 
with quiet maiden freedom. He almost said to himself that he did not like 
her, before their conversation ended; he tried so to compensate himself for 
the mortified feeling, that while he looked upon her with an admiration he 
could not repress, she looked at him with proud indifference, taking him, he 
thought, for what, in his irritation, he told himself he was—a great rough 
fellow, with not a grace or a refinement about him. Her quiet coldness of 
demeanour he interpreted into contemptuousness, and resented it in his heart 
to the pitch of almost inclining him to get up and go away, and have nothing 
more to do with these Hales, and their superciliousness. 
</p>
               <p>Just as Margaret 
had exhausted her last subject of conversation—and yet conversation that 
could hardly be called which consisted of so few and such short speeches—her 
father came in, and with his pleasant gentlemanly courteousness of apology, 
reinstated his name and family in Mr. Thornton's good opinion. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale and 
his visitor had a good deal to say respecting their mutual friend, Mr. Bell; 
and Margaret, glad that her part of entertaining the visitor was over, went 
to the window to try and make herself more familiar with the strange aspect 
of the street. She got so much absorbed in watching what was going on outside 
that she hardly heard her father when he spoke to her, and he had to repeat 
what he said: 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret! the landlord will persist in admiring that hideous 
paper, and I am afraid we must let it remain.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh dear! I am sorry!' she 
replied, and began to turn over in her mind the possibility of hiding part of 
it, at least, by some of her sketches, but gave up the idea at last, as 
likely only to make bad worse. Her father, meanwhile, with his kindly country 
hospitality, was pressing Mr. Thornton to stay to luncheon with them. It 
would have been very inconvenient to him to do so, yet he felt that he should 
have yielded, if Margaret by word or look had seconded her father's 
invitation; he was glad she did not, and yet he was irritated at her for not 
doing it. She gave him a low, grave bow when he left, and he felt more 
awkward and self-conscious in every limb than he had ever done in all his 
life before. 
</p>
               <p>'Well, Margaret, now to luncheon, as fast we can. Have you 
ordered it?' 
</p>
               <p>'No, papa; that man was here when I came home, and I have 
never had an opportunity.' 
</p>
               <p>'Then we must take anything we can get. He must 
have been waiting a long time, I'm afraid.' 
</p>
               <p>'It seemed exceedingly long to 
me. I was just at the last gasp when you came in. He never went on with any 
subject, but gave little, short, abrupt answers.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very much to the point 
though, I should think. He is a clearheaded fellow. He said (did you hear?) 
that Crampton is on gravelly soil, and by far the most healthy suburb in the 
neighbour hood of Milton.' 
</p>
               <p>When they returned to Heston, there was the 
day's account to be given to Mrs. Hale, who was full of questions which they 
answered in the intervals of tea-drinking. 
</p>
               <p>'And what is your correspondent, 
Mr. Thornton, like?' 
</p>
               <p>'Ask Margaret,' said her husband. 'She and he had a 
long attempt at conversation, while I was away speaking to the 
landlord.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! I hardly know what he is like,' said Margaret, lazily; too 
tired to tax her powers of description much. And then rousing herself, she 
said, 'He is a tall, broad-shouldered man, about—how old, papa?' 
</p>
               <p>'I should 
guess about thirty.' 
</p>
               <p>'About thirty—with a face that is neither exactly 
plain, nor yet handsome, nothing remarkable—not quite a gentleman; but that 
was hardly to be expected.' 
</p>
               <p>'Not vulgar, or common though,' put in her 
father, rather jealous of any disparagement of the sole friend he had in 
Milton. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh no!' said Margaret. 'With such an expression of resolution and 
power, no face, however plain in feature, could be either vulgar or common. I 
should not like to have to bargain with him; he looks very inflexible. 
Altogether a man who seems made for his niche, mamma; sagacious, and strong, 
as becomes a great tradesman.' 
</p>
               <p>'Don't call the Milton manufacturers 
tradesmen, Margaret,' said her father. 'They are very different.' 
</p>
               <p>'Are 
they? I apply the word to all who have something tangible to sell; but if you 
think the term is not correct, papa, I won't use it. But, oh mamma! speaking 
of vulgarity and commonness, you must prepare yourself for our drawing-room 
paper. Pink and blue roses, with yellow leaves! And such a heavy cornice 
round the room!' 
</p>
               <p>But when they removed to their new house in Milton, the 
obnoxious papers were gone. The landlord received their thanks very 
composedly; and let them think, if they liked, that he had relented from his 
expressed determination not to repaper. There was no particular need to tell 
them, that what he did not care to do for a Reverend Mr. Hale, unknown in 
Milton, he was only too glad to do at the one short sharp remonstrance of Mr. 
Thornton, the wealthy manufacturer. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.8" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER VIII</head>
               <head>HOME SICKNESS</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'And it's hame, hame; hame, </l>
                  <l>Hame fain wad I be.' </l>
               </q>
               <p>It needed the pretty light papering of the rooms to reconcile them to 
Milton. It needed more—more that could not be had. The thick yellow November 
fogs had come on; and the view of the plain in the valley, made by the 
sweeping bend of the river, was all shut out when Mrs. Hale arrived at her 
new home. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret and Dixon had been at work for two days, unpacking and 
arranging, but everything inside the house still looked in disorder; and 
outside a thick fog crept up to the very windows, and was driven in to every 
open door in choking white wreaths of unwholesome mist. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, Margaret! are 
we to live here?' asked Mrs. Hale in blank dismay.  
</p>
               <p>Margaret's heart echoed 
the dreariness of the tone in which this question was put. She could scarcely 
command herself enough to say, 'Oh, the fogs in London are sometimes far 
worse!' 
</p>
               <p>'But then you knew that London itself, and friends lay behind it. 
Here—well! we are desolate. Oh Dixon, what a place this is!' 
</p>
               <p>'Indeed, 
ma'am, I'm sure it will be your death before long, and then I know 
who'll—stay! Miss Hale, that's far too heavy for you to lift.' 
</p>
               <p>'Not at 
all, thank you, Dixon,' replied Margaret, coldly. 'The best thing we can do 
for mamma is to get her room quite ready for her to go to bed, while I go and 
bring her a cup of coffee.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale was equally out of spirits, and 
equally came upon Margaret for sympathy. 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret, I do believe this is an 
unhealthy place. Only suppose that your mother's health or yours should 
suffer. I wish I had gone into some country place in Wales; this is really 
terrible,' said he, going up to the window. 
</p>
               <p>There was no comfort to be 
given. They were settled in Milton, and must endure smoke and fogs for a 
season; indeed, all other life seemed shut out from them by as thick a fog of 
circumstance. Only the day before, Mr. Hale had been reckoning up with dismay 
how much their removal and fortnight at Heston had cost, and he found it had 
absorbed nearly all his little stock of ready money. No! here they were, and 
here they must remain. 
</p>
               <p>At night when Margaret realised this, she felt 
inclined to sit down in a stupor of despair. The heavy smoky air hung about 
her bedroom, which occupied the long narrow projection at the back of the 
house. The window, placed at the side of the oblong, looked to the blank wall 
of a similar projection, not above ten feet distant. It loomed through the 
fog like a great barrier to hope. Inside the room everything was in 
confusion. All their efforts had been directed to make her mother's room 
comfortable. Margaret sat down on a box, the direction card upon which struck 
her as having been written at Helstone—beautiful, beloved Helstone! She lost 
herself in dismal thought: but at last she determined to take her mind away 
from the present; and suddenly remembered that she had a letter from Edith 
which she had only half read in the bustle of the morning. It was to tell of 
their arrival at Corfu; their voyage along the Mediterranean—their music, 
and dancing on board ship; the gay new life opening upon her; her house with 
its trellised balcony, and its views over white cliffs and deep blue 
sea. 
</p>
               <p>Edith wrote fluently and well, if not graphically. She could not only 
seize the salient and characteristic points of a scene, but she could 
enumerate enough of indiscriminate particulars for Margaret to make it out 
for herself Captain Lennox and another lately married officer shared a villa, 
high up on the beautiful precipitous rocks overhanging the sea. Their days, 
late as it was in the year, seemed spent in boating or land pic-nics; all 
out-of-doors, pleasure-seeking and glad, Edith's life seemed like the deep 
vault of blue sky above her, free—utterly free from fleck or cloud. Her 
husband had to attend drill, and she, the most musical officer's wife there, 
had to copy the new and popular tunes out of the most recent English music, 
for the benefit of the bandmaster; those seemed their most severe and arduous 
duties. She expressed an affectionate hope that, if the regiment stopped 
another year at Corfu, Margaret might come out and pay her a long visit. She 
asked Margaret if she remembered the day twelve-month on which she, Edith, 
wrote—how it rained all day long in Harley Street; and how she would not put 
on her new gown to go to a stupid dinner, and get it all wet and splashed in 
going to the carriage; and how at that very dinner they had first met Captain 
Lennox. 
</p>
               <p>Yes! Margaret remembered it well. Edith and Mrs. Shaw had gone to 
dinner. Margaret had joined the party in the evening. The recollection of the 
plentiful luxury of all the arrangements, the stately handsomeness of the 
furniture, the size of the house, the peaceful, untroubled ease of the 
visitors—all came vividly before her, in strange contrast to the present 
time. The smooth sea of that old life closed up, without a mark left to tell 
where they had all been. The habitual dinners, the calls, the shopping, the 
dancing evenings, were all going on, going on for ever, though her Aunt Shaw 
and Edith were no longer there; and she, of course, was even less missed. She 
doubted if any one of that old set ever thought of her, except Henry Lennox. 
He too, she knew, would strive to forget her, because of the pain she had 
caused him. She had heard him often boast of his power of putting any 
disagreeable thought far away from him. Then she penetrated farther into what 
might have been. If she had cared for him as a lover, and had accepted him, 
and this change in her father's opinions and consequent station had taken 
place, she could not doubt but that it would have been impatiently received 
by Mr. Lennox. It was a bitter mortification to her in one sense; but she 
could bear it patiently, because she knew her father's purity of purpose, and 
that strengthened her to endure his errors, grave and serious though in her 
estimation they were. But the fact of the world esteeming her father 
degraded, in its rough wholesale judgment, would have oppressed and irritated 
Mr. Lennox. As she realised what might have been, she grew to be thankful for 
what was. They were at the lowest now; they could not be worse. Edith's 
astonishment and her aunt Shaw's dismay would have to be met bravely, when 
their letters came. So Margaret rose up and began slowly to undress herself, 
feeling the full luxury of acting leisurely, late as it was, after all the 
past hurry of the day. She fell asleep, hoping for some brightness, either 
internal or external. But if she had known how long it would be before the 
brightness came, her heart would have sunk low down. The time of the year was 
most unpropitious to health as well as to spirits. Her mother caught a severe 
cold, and Dixon herself was evidently not well, although Margaret could not 
insult her more than by trying to save her, or by taking any care of her. 
They could hear of no girl to assist her; all were at work in the factories; 
at least, those who applied were well scolded by Dixon, for thinking that 
such as they could ever be trusted to work in a gentleman's house. So they 
had to keep a charwoman in almost constant employ. Margaret longed to send 
for Charlotte; but besides the objection of her being a better servant than 
they could now afford to keep, the distance was too great. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale met 
with several pupils, recommended to him by Mr. Bell, or by the more immediate 
influence of Mr. Thornton. They were mostly of the age when many boys would 
be still at school, but, according to the prevalent, and apparently 
well-founded notions of Milton, to make a lad into a good tradesman he must 
be caught young, and acclimated to the life of the mill, or office, or 
warehouse. If he were sent to even the Scotch Universities, he came back 
unsettled for commercial pursuits; how much more so if he went to Oxford or 
Cambridge, where he could not be entered till he was eighteen? So most of the 
manufacturers placed their sons in sucking situations' at fourteen or fifteen 
years of age, unsparingly cutting away all off-shoots in the direction of 
literature or high mental cultivation, in hopes of throwing the whole 
strength and vigour of the plant into commerce. Still there were some wiser 
parents; and some young men, who had sense enough to perceive their own 
deficiencies, and strive to remedy them. Nay, there were a few no longer 
youths, but men in the prime of life, who had the stern wisdom to acknowledge 
their own ignorance, and to learn late what they should have learnt early. 
Mr. Thornton was perhaps the oldest of Mr. Hale's pupils. He was certainly 
the favourite. Mr. Hale got into the habit of quoting his opinions so 
frequently, and with such regard, that it became a little domestic joke to 
wonder what time, during the hour appointed for instruction, could be given 
to absolute learning, so much of it appeared to have been spent in 
conversation. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret rather encouraged this light, merry way of viewing 
her father's acquaintance with Mr. Thornton, because she felt that her mother 
was inclined to look upon this new friendship of her husband's with jealous 
eyes. As long as his time had been solely occupied with his books and his 
parishioners, as at Helstone, she had appeared to care little whether she saw 
much of him or not; but now that he looked eagerly forward to each renewal of 
his intercourse with Mr. Thornton, she seemed hurt and annoyed, as if he were 
slighting her companionship for the first time. Mr. Hale's over-praise had 
the usual effect of over-praise upon his auditors; they were a little 
inclined to rebel against Aristides being always called the Just. 
</p>
               <p>After a 
quiet life in a country parsonage for more than twenty years, there was 
something dazzling to Mr. Hale in the energy which conquered immense 
difficulties with ease; the power of the machinery of Milton, the power of 
the men of Milton, impressed him with a sense of grandeur, which he yielded 
to without caring to inquire into the details of its exercise. But Margaret 
went less abroad, among machinery and men; saw less of power in its public 
effect, and, as it happened, she was thrown with one or two of those who, in 
all measures affecting masses of people, must be acute sufferers for the good 
of many. The question always is, has everything been done to make the 
sufferings of these exceptions as small as possible? Or, in the triumph of 
the crowded procession, have the helpless been trampled on, instead of being 
gently lifted aside out of the roadway of the conqueror, whom they have no 
power to accompany on his march? 
</p>
               <p>It fell to Margaret's share to have to 
look out for a servant to assist Dixon, who had at first undertaken to find 
just the person she wanted to do all the rough work of the house. But Dixon's 
ideas of helpful girls were founded on the recollection of tidy elder 
scholars at Helstone school, who were only too proud to be allowed to come to 
the parsonage on a busy day, and treated Mrs. Dixon with all the respect, and 
a good deal more of fright, which they paid to Mr. and Mrs. Hale. Dixon was 
not unconscious of this awed reverence which was given to her; nor did she 
dislike it; it flattered her much as Louis the Fourteenth was flattered by 
his courtiers shading their eyes from the dazzling light of his presence.' 
But nothing short of her faithful love for Mrs. Hale could have made her 
endure the rough independent way in which all the Milton girls, who made 
application for the servant's place, replied to her inquiries respecting 
their qualifications. They even went the length of questioning her back 
again; having doubts and fears of their own, as to the solvency of a family 
who lived in a house of thirty pounds a-year, and yet gave themselves airs, 
and kept two servants, one of them so very high and mighty. Mr. Hale was no 
longer looked upon as Vicar of Helstone, but as a man who only spent at a 
certain rate. Margaret was weary and impatient of the accounts which Dixon 
perpetually brought to Mrs. Hale of the behaviour of these would-be servants. 
Not but what Margaret was repelled by the rough uncourteous manners of these 
people; not but what she shrunk with fastidious pride from their hail-fellow 
accost and severely resented their unconcealed curiosity as to the means and 
position of any family who lived in Milton, and yet were not engaged in trade 
of some kind. But the more Margaret felt impertinence, the more likely she 
was to be silent on the subject; and, at any rate, if she took upon herself 
to make inquiry for a servant, she could spare her mother the recital of all 
her disappointments and fancied or real insults. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret accordingly went 
up and down to butchers and grocers, seeking for a nonpareil of a girl; and 
lowering her hopes and expectations every week, as she found the difficulty 
of meeting with any one in a manufacturing town who did not prefer the better 
wages and greater independence of working in a mill. It was something of a 
trial to Margaret to go out by herself in this busy bustling place. Mrs. 
Shaw's ideas of propriety and her own helpless dependence on others, had 
always made her insist that a footman should accompany Edith and Margaret, if 
they went beyond Harley Street or the immediate neighbourhood. The limits by 
which this rule of her aunt's had circumscribed Margaret's independence had 
been silently rebelled against at the time: and she had doubly enjoyed the 
free walks and rambles of her forest life, from the contrast which they 
presented. She went along there with a bounding fearless step, that 
occasionally broke out into a run, if she were in a hurry, and occasionally 
was stilled into perfect repose, as she stood listening to, or watching any 
of the wild creatures who sang in the leafy courts, or glanced out with their 
keen bright eyes from the low brushwood or tangled furze. It was a trial to 
come down from such motion or such stillness, only guided by her own sweet 
will, to the even and decorous pace necessary in streets. But she could have 
laughed at herself for minding this change, if it had not been accompanied by 
what was a more serious annoyance. 
</p>
               <p>The side of the town on which Crampton 
lay was especially a thoroughfare for the factory people. In the back streets 
around them there were many mills, out of which poured streams of men and 
women two or three times a day. Until Margaret had learnt the times of their 
ingress and egress, she was very unfortunate in constantly falling in with 
them. They came rushing along, with bold, fearless faces, and loud laughs and 
jests, particularly aimed at all those who appeared to be above them in rank 
or station. The tones of their unrestrained voices, and their carelessness of 
all common rules of street politeness, frightened Margaret a little at first. 
The girls, with their rough, but not unfriendly freedom, would comment on her 
dress, even touch her shawl or gown to ascertain the exact material; nay, 
once or twice she was asked questions relative to some article which they 
particularly admired. There was such a simple reliance on her womanly 
sympathy with their love of dress, and on her kindliness, that she gladly 
replied to these inquiries, as soon as she understood them; and half smiled 
back at their remarks. She did not mind meeting any number of girls, loud 
spoken and boisterous though they might be. But she alternately dreaded and 
fired up against the workmen, who commented not on her dress, but on her 
looks, in the same open fearless manner. She, who had hitherto felt that even 
the most refined remark on her personal appearance was an impertinence, had 
to endure undisguised admiration from these outspoken men. But the very 
out-spokenness marked their innocence of any intention to hurt her delicacy, 
as she would have perceived if she had been less frightened by the disorderly 
tumult. Out of her fright came a flash of indignation which made her face 
scarlet, and her dark eyes gather flame, as she heard some of their speeches. 
Yet there were other sayings of theirs, which, when she reached the quiet 
safety of home, amused her even while they irritated her. 
</p>
               <p>For instance, one 
day, after she had passed a number of men, several of whom had paid her the 
not unusual compliment of wishing she was their sweetheart, one of the 
lingerers added, 'Your bonny face, my lass, makes the day look brighter.' And 
another day, as she was unconsciously smiling at some passing thought, she 
was addressed by a poorly-dressed, middle-aged workman, with 'You may well 
smile, my lass; many a one would smile to have such a bonny face.' This man 
looked so careworn that Margaret could not help giving him an answering 
smile, glad to think that her looks, such as they were, should have had the 
power to call up a pleasant thought. He seemed to understand her 
acknowledging glance, and a silent recognition was established between them 
whenever the chances of the day brought them across each other's paths. They 
had never exchanged a word; nothing had been said but that first compliment; 
yet somehow Margaret looked upon this man with more interest than upon any 
one else in Milton. Once or twice, on Sundays, she saw him walking with a 
girl, evidently his daughter, and, if possible, still more unhealthy than he 
was himself. 
</p>
               <p>One day Margaret and her father had been as far as the fields 
that lay around the town; it was early spring, and she had gathered some of 
the hedge and ditch flowers, dog-violets, lesser celandines, and the like, 
with an unspoken lament in her heart for the sweet profusion of the South. 
Her father had left her to go into Milton upon some business; and on the road 
home she met her humble friends. The girl looked wistfully at the flowers, 
and, acting on a sudden impulse, Margaret offered them to her. Her pale blue 
eyes lightened up as she took them, and her father spoke for her. 
</p>
               <p>'Thank 
yo, Miss. Bessy'll think a deal o' them flowers; that hoo will; and I shall 
think a deal o' yor kindness. Yo're not of this country, I reckon?' 
</p>
               <p>'No!' 
said Margaret, half sighing. 'I come from the South—from Hampshire,' she 
continued, a little afraid of wounding his consciousness of ignorance, if she 
used a name which he did not understand. 
</p>
               <p>'That's beyond London, I reckon? 
And I come fro' Burnley-ways, and forty mile to th' North. And yet, yo see, 
North and South has both met and made kind o' friends in this big smoky 
place.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret had slackened her pace to walk alongside of the man and 
his daughter, whose steps were regulated by the feebleness of the latter. She 
now spoke to the girl, and there was a sound of tender pity in the tone of 
her voice as she did so that went right to the heart of the father. 
</p>
               <p>'I'm 
afraid you are not very strong.' 
</p>
               <p>'No,' said the girl, 'nor never will 
be.' 
</p>
               <p>'Spring is coming,' said Margaret, as if to suggest pleasant, hopeful 
thoughts. 
</p>
               <p>'Spring nor summer will do me good,' said the girl quietly. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret looked up at the man, almost expecting some contradiction from 
him, or at least some remark that would modify his daughter's utter 
hopelessness. But, instead, he added— 
</p>
               <p>'I'm afeared hoo speaks truth. I'm 
afeared hoo's too far gone in a waste.' 
</p>
               <p>'I shall have a spring where I'm 
boun to, and flowers, and amaranths, and shining robes besides.' 
</p>
               <p>'Poor 
lass, poor lass!' said her father in a low tone. 'I'm none so sure o' that; 
but it's a comfort to thee, poor lass, poor lass. Poor father! it'll be 
soon.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was shocked by his words—shocked but not repelled; rather 
attracted and interested. 
</p>
               <p>'Where do you live? I think we must be 
neighbours, we meet so often on this road.' 
</p>
               <p>'We put up at nine Frances 
Street, second turn to th' left at after yo've past th' Goulden 
Dragon.' 
</p>
               <p>'And your name? I must not forget that.' 
</p>
               <p>'I'm none ashamed o' my 
name. It's Nicholas Higgins. Hoo's called Bessy Higgins. Whatten yo' asking 
for?' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was surprised at this last question, for at Helstone it 
would have been an understood thing, after the inquiries she had made, that 
she intended to come and call upon any poor neighbour whose name and 
habitation she had asked for. 
</p>
               <p>'I thought—I meant to come and see you.' She 
suddenly felt rather shy of offering the visit, without having any reason to 
give for her wish to make it' beyond a kindly interest in a stranger. It 
seemed all at once to take the shape of an impertinence on her part; she read 
this meaning too in the man's eyes. 
</p>
               <p>'I'm none so fond of having strange 
folk in my house.' But then relenting, as he saw her heightened colour, he 
added, 'Yo're a foreigner, as one may say, and maybe don't know many folk 
here, and yo've given my wench here flowers out of yo'r own hand;—yo may 
come if yo like.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was half-amused, half-nettled at this answer. 
She was not sure if she would go where permission was given so like a favour 
conferred. But when they came to the town into Frances Street, the girl 
stopped a minute, and said, 
</p>
               <p>'Yo'll not forget yo're to come and see 
us.' 
</p>
               <p>'Aye, aye,' said the father, impatiently, 'hoo'll come. Hoo's a bit 
set up now, because hoo thinks I might ha' spoken more civilly; but hoo'll 
think better on it, and come. I can read her proud bonny face like a book. 
Come along, Bess; there's the mill bell ringing.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret went home, 
wondering at her new friends, and smiling at the man's insight into what had 
been passing in her mind. From that day Milton became a brighter place to 
her. It was not the long, bleak sunny days of spring, nor yet was it that 
time was reconciling her to the town of her habitation. It was that in it she 
had found a human interest. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.9" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER IX</head>
               <head>DRESSING FOR TEA</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Let China's earth, enrich'd with colour'd stains, </l>
                  <l>Pencil'd with gold, and streak'd with azure veins </l>
                  <l>The grateful flavour of the Indian leaf, </l>
                  <l>Or Mocho's sunburnt berry glad receive. </l>
                  <l>MRS. BARBAULD. </l>
               </q>
               <p>The day after this meeting with Higgins and his daughter, Mr. Hale came 
upstairs into the little drawing-room at an unusual hour. He went up to 
different objects in the room, as if examining them, but Margaret saw that it 
was merely a nervous trick—a way of putting off something he wished, yet 
feared to say. Out it came at last— 
</p>
               <p>'My dear! I've asked Mr. Thornton to 
come to tea to-night.' 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Hale was leaning back in her easy chair, with 
her eyes shut, and an expression of pain on her face which had become 
habitual to her of late. But she roused up into querulousness at this speech 
of her husband's. 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Thornton!—and to-night! What in the world does the 
man want to come here for? And Dixon is washing my muslins and laces, and 
there is no soft water with these horrid east winds, which I suppose we shall 
have all the year round in Milton.' 
</p>
               <p>'The wind is veering round, my dear,' 
said Mr. Hale, looking out at the smoke, which drifted right from the east, 
only he did not yet understand the points of the compass, and rather arranged 
them ad libitum, according to circumstances. 
</p>
               <p>'Don't tell me!' said Mrs. 
Hale, shuddering up, and wrapping her shawl about her still more closely. 
'But, east or west wind, I suppose this man comes.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, mamma, that shows 
you never saw Mr. Thornton. He looks like a person who would enjoy battling 
with every adverse thing he could meet with—enemies, winds, or 
circumstances. The more it rains and blows, the more certain we are to have 
him. But I'll go and help Dixon. I'm getting to be a famous clear-starcher. 
And he won't want any amusement beyond talking to papa. Papa, I am really 
longing to see the Pythias to your Damon. You know I never saw him but once, 
and then we were so puzzled to know what to say to each other that we did not 
get on particularly well.' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't know that you would ever like him, or 
think him agreeable, Margaret. He is not a lady's man.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret wreathed 
her throat in a scornful curve. 
</p>
               <p>'I don't particularly admire ladies' men, 
papa. But Mr. Thornton comes here as your friend—as one who has appreciated 
you'— 
</p>
               <p>'The only person in Milton,' said Mrs. Hale. 
</p>
               <p>'So we will give him 
a welcome, and some cocoa-nut cakes. Dixon will be flattered if we ask her to 
make some; and I will undertake to iron your caps, mamma.' 
</p>
               <p>Many a time that 
morning did Margaret wish Mr. Thornton far enough away. She had planned other 
employments for herself: a letter to Edith, a good piece of Dante, a visit to 
the Higginses. But, instead, she ironed away, listening to Dixon's 
complaints, and only hoping that by an excess of sympathy she might prevent 
her from carrying the recital of her sorrows to Mrs. Hale. Every now and 
then, Margaret had to remind herself of her father's regard for Mr. Thornton, 
to subdue the irritation of weariness that was stealing over her, and 
bringing on one of the bad headaches to which she had lately become liable. 
She could hardly speak when she sat down at last, and told her mother that 
she was no longer Peggy the laundry-maid, but Margaret Hale the lady. She 
meant this speech for a little joke, and was vexed enough with her busy 
tongue when she found her mother taking it seriously. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes! if any one had 
told me, when I was Miss Beresford, and one of the belles of the county, that 
a child of mine would have to stand half a day, in a little poky kitchen, 
working away like any servant, that we might prepare properly for the 
reception of a tradesman, and that this tradesman should be the 
only'— 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, mamma!' said Margaret, lifting herself up, 'don't punish me so 
for a careless speech. I don't mind ironing, or any kind of work, for you and 
papa. I am myself a born and bred lady through it all, even though it comes 
to scouring a floor, or washing dishes. I am tired now, just for a little 
while; but in half an hour I shall be ready to do the same over again. And as 
to Mr. Thornton's being in trade, why he can't help that now, poor fellow. I 
don't suppose his education would fit him for much else.' Margaret lifted 
herself slowly up, and went to her own room; for just now she could not bear 
much more. 
</p>
               <p>In Mr. Thornton's house, at this very same time, a similar, yet 
different, scene was going on. A large-boned lady, long past middle age, sat 
at work in a grim handsomely-furnished dining-room. Her features, like her 
frame, were strong and massive, rather than heavy. Her face moved slowly from 
one decided expression to another equally decided. There was no great variety 
in her countenance; but those who looked at it once, generally looked at it 
again; even the passers-by in the street, half-turned their heads to gaze an 
instant longer at the firm, severe, dignified woman, who never gave way in 
street-courtesy, or paused in her straight-onward course to the 
clearly-defined end which she proposed to herself. 
</p>
               <p>She was handsomely 
dressed in stout black silk, of which not a thread was worn or discoloured. 
She was mending a large long table-cloth of the finest texture, holding it up 
against the light occasionally to discover thin places, which required her 
delicate care. There was not a book about in the room, with the exception of 
Matthew Henry's Bible Commentaries, six volumes of which lay in the centre of 
the massive side-board, flanked by a tea-urn on one side, and a lamp on the 
other. In some remote apartment, there was exercise upon the piano going on. 
Some one was practising up a morceau de salon, playing it very rapidly; every 
third note, on an average, being either indistinct, or wholly missed out, and 
the loud chords at the end being half of them false, but not the less 
satisfactory to the performer. Mrs. Thornton heard a step, like her own in 
its decisive character, pass the dining-room door. 
</p>
               <p>'John! Is that 
you?' 
</p>
               <p>Her son opened the door and showed himself. 
</p>
               <p>'What has brought you 
home so early? I thought you were going to tea with that friend of Mr. 
Bell's; that Mr. Hale.' 
</p>
               <p>'So I am, mother; I am come home to 
dress!' 
</p>
               <p>'Dress! humph! When I was a girl, young men were satisfied with 
dressing once in a day. Why should you dress to go and take a cup of tea with 
an old parson?' 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Hale is a gentleman, and his wife and daughter are 
ladies.' 
</p>
               <p>'Wife and daughter! Do they teach too? What do they do? You have 
never mentioned them.' 
</p>
               <p>'No! mother, because I have never seen Mrs. Hale; I 
have only seen Miss Hale for half an hour.' 
</p>
               <p>'Take care you don't get caught 
by a penniless girl, John.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am not easily caught, mother, as I think you 
know. But I must not have Miss Hale spoken of in that way, which, you know, 
is offensive to me. I never was aware of any young lady trying to catch me 
yet, nor do I believe that any one has ever given themselves that useless 
trouble.' 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Thornton did not choose to yield the point to her son; or 
else she had, in general, pride enough for her sex. 
</p>
               <p>'Well! I only say, take 
care. Perhaps our Milton girls have too much spirit and good feeling to go 
angling after husbands; but this Miss Hale comes out of the aristocratic 
counties, where, if all tales be true, rich husbands are reckoned 
prizes.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton's brow contracted, and he came a step forward into 
the room. 
</p>
               <p>'Mother' (with a short scornful laugh), 'you will make me 
confess. The only time I saw Miss Hale, she treated me with a haughty 
civility which had a strong flavour of contempt in it. She held herself aloof 
from me as if she had been a queen, and I her humble, unwashed vassal. Be 
easy, mother.' 
</p>
               <p>'No! I am not easy, nor content either. What business had 
she, a renegade clergyman's daughter, to turn up her nose at you! I would 
dress for none of them—a saucy set! if I were you.' As he was leaving the 
room, he said:— 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Hale is good, and gentle, and learned. He is not 
saucy. As for Mrs. Hale, I will tell you what she is like to-night, if you 
care to hear.' He shut the door and was gone. 
</p>
               <p>'Despise my son! treat him as 
her vassal, indeed! Humph! I should like to know where she could find such 
another! Boy and man, he's the noblest, stoutest heart I ever knew. I don't 
care if I am his mother; I can see what's what, and not be blind. I know what 
Fanny is; and I know what John is. Despise him! I hate her!' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.10" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER X</head>
               <head>WROUGHT IRON AND GOLD</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'We are the trees whom shaking fastens more.' </l>
                  <l>GEORGE HERBERT. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Mr. Thornton left the house without coming into the dining-room again. He 
was rather late, and walked rapidly out to Crampton. He was anxious not to 
slight his new friend by any disrespectful unpunctuality. The church-clock 
struck half-past seven as he stood at the door awaiting Dixon's slow 
movements; always doubly tardy when she had to degrade herself by answering 
the door-bell. He was ushered into the little drawing-room, and kindly 
greeted by Mr. Hale, who led him up to his wife, whose pale face, and 
shawl-draped figure made a silent excuse for the cold languor of her 
greeting. Margaret was lighting the lamp when he entered, for the darkness 
was coming on. The lamp threw a pretty light into the centre of the dusky 
room, from which, with country habits, they did not exclude the night-skies, 
and the outer darkness of air. Somehow, that room contrasted itself with the 
one he had lately left; handsome, ponderous, with no sign of feminine 
habitation, except in the one spot where his mother sate, and no convenience 
for any other employment than eating and drinking. To be sure, it was a 
dining-room; his mother preferred to sit in it; and her will was a household 
law. But the drawing-room was not like this. It was twice—twenty times as 
fine; not one quarter as comfortable. Here were no mirrors, not even a scrap 
of glass to reflect the light, and answer the same purpose as water in a 
landscape; no gilding; a warm, sober breadth of colouring, well relieved by 
the dear old Helstone chintz-curtains and chair covers. An open davenport 
stood in the window opposite the door; in the other there was a stand, with a 
tall white china vase, from which drooped wreaths of English ivy, pale-green 
birch, and copper-coloured beech-leaves. Pretty baskets of work stood about 
in different places: and books, not cared for on account of their binding 
solely, lay on one table, as if recently put down. Behind the door was 
another table, decked out for tea, with a white tablecloth, on which 
flourished the cocoa-nut cakes, and a basket piled with oranges and ruddy 
American apples, heaped on leaves. 
</p>
               <p>It appeared to Mr. Thornton that all 
these graceful cares were habitual to the family; and especially of a piece 
with Margaret. She stood by the tea-table in a light-coloured muslin gown, 
which had a good deal of pink about it. She looked as if she was not 
attending to the conversation, but solely busy with the tea-cups, among which 
her round ivory hands moved with pretty, noiseless, daintiness. She had a 
bracelet on one taper arm, which would fall down over her round wrist. Mr. 
Thornton watched the replacing of this troublesome ornament with far more 
attention than he listened to her father. It seemed as if it fascinated him 
to see her push it up impatiently, until it tightened her soft flesh; and 
then to mark the loosening—the fall. He could almost have exclaimed—'There 
it goes, again!' There was so little left to be done after he arrived at the 
preparation for tea, that he was almost sorry the obligation of eating and 
drinking came so soon to prevent his watching Margaret. She handed him his 
cup of tea with the proud air of an unwilling slave; but her eye caught the 
moment when he was ready for another cup; and he almost longed to ask her to 
do for him what he saw her compelled to do for her father, who took her 
little finger and thumb in his masculine hand, and made them serve as 
sugar-tongs. Mr. Thornton saw her beautiful eyes lifted to her father, full 
of light, half-laughter and half-love, as this bit of pantomime went on 
between the two, unobserved, as they fancied, by any. Margaret's head still 
ached, as the paleness of her complexion, and her silence might have 
testified; but she was resolved to throw herself into the breach, if there 
was any long untoward pause, rather than that her father's friend, pupil, and 
guest should have cause to think himself in any way neglected. But the 
conversation went on; and Margaret drew into a corner, near her mother, with 
her work, after the tea-things were taken away; and felt that she might let 
her thoughts roam, without fear of being suddenly wanted to fill up a 
gap. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton and Mr. Hale were both absorbed in the continuation of 
some subject which had been started at their last meeting. Margaret was 
recalled to a sense of the present by some trivial, low-spoken remark of her 
mother's; and on suddenly looking up from her work, her eye was caught by the 
difference of outward appearance between her father and Mr. Thornton, as 
betokening such distinctly opposite natures. Her father was of slight figure, 
which made him appear taller than he really was, when not contrasted, as at 
this time, with the tall, massive frame of another. The lines in her father's 
face were soft and waving, with a frequent undulating kind of trembling 
movement passing over them, showing every fluctuating emotion; the eyelids 
were large and arched, giving to the eyes a peculiar languid beauty which was 
almost feminine. The brows were finely arched, but were, by the very size of 
the dreamy lids, raised to a considerable distance from the eyes. Now, in Mr. 
Thornton's face the straight brows fell low over the clear, deep-set earnest 
eyes, which, without being unpleasantly sharp, seemed intent enough to 
penetrate into the very heart and core of what he was looking at. The lines 
in the face were few but firm, as if they were carved in marble, and lay 
principally about the lips, which were slightly compressed over a set of 
teeth so faultless and beautiful as to give the effect of sudden sunlight 
when the rare bright smile, coming in an instant and shining out of the eyes, 
changed the whole look from the severe and resolved expression of a man ready 
to do and dare everything, to the keen honest enjoyment of the moment, which 
is seldom shown so fearlessly and instantaneously except by children. 
Margaret liked this smile; it was the first thing she had admired in this new 
friend of her father's; and the opposition of character, shown in all these 
details of appearance she had just been noticing, seemed to explain the 
attraction they evidently felt towards each other. 
</p>
               <p>She rearranged her 
mother's worsted-work, and fell back into her own thoughts—as completely 
forgotten by Mr. Thornton as if she had not been in the room, so thoroughly 
was he occupied in explaining to Mr. Hale the magnificent power, yet delicate 
adjustment of the might of the steam-hammer, which was recalling to Mr. Hale 
some of the wonderful stories of subservient genii in the Arabian Nights—one 
moment stretching from earth to sky and filling all the width of the horizon, 
at the next obediently compressed into a vase small enough to be borne in the 
hand of a child. 
</p>
               <p>'And this imagination of power, this practical realisation 
of a gigantic thought, came out of one man's brain in our good town. That 
very man has it within him to mount, step by step, on each wonder he achieves 
to higher marvels still. And I'll be bound to say, we have many among us who, 
if he were gone, could spring into the breach and carry on the war which 
compels, and shall compel, all material power to yield to science.' 
</p>
               <p>'Your boast reminds me of the old lines— 
<q>
                     <l>“I've a hundred captains in England,” he said, </l>
                     <l>“As good as ever was he.”' </l>
                  </q>
               </p>
               <p>At her father's 
quotation Margaret looked suddenly up, with inquiring wonder in her eyes. How 
in the world had they got from cog-wheels to Chevy Chace? 
</p>
               <p>'It is no boast 
of mine,' replied Mr. Thornton; 'it is plain matter-of-fact. I won't deny 
that I am proud of belonging to a town—or perhaps I should rather say a 
district—the necessities of which give birth to such grandeur of conception. 
I would rather be a man toiling, suffering—nay, failing and 
successless—here, than lead a dull prosperous life in the old worn grooves 
of what you call more aristocratic society down in the South, with their slow 
days of careless ease. One may be clogged with honey and unable to rise and 
fly.' 
</p>
               <p>'You are mistaken,' said Margaret, roused by the aspersion on her 
beloved South to a fond vehemence of defence, that brought the colour into 
her cheeks and the angry tears into her eyes. 'You do not know anything about 
the South. If there is less adventure or less progress—I suppose I must not 
say less excitement—from the gambling spirit of trade, which seems requisite 
to force out these wonderful inventions, there is less suffering also. I see 
men h ere going about in the streets who look ground down by some pinching 
sorrow or care—who are not only sufferers but haters. Now, in the South we 
have our poor, but there is not that terrible expression in their 
countenances of a sullen sense of injustice which I see here. You do not know 
the South, Mr. Thornton,' she concluded, collapsing into a determined 
silence, and angry with herself for having said so much. 
</p>
               <p>'And may I say you 
do not know the North?' asked he, with an inexpressible gentleness in his 
tone, as he saw that he had really hurt her. She continued resolutely silent; 
yearning after the lovely haunts she had left far away in Hampshire, with a 
passionate longing that made her feel her voice would be unsteady and 
trembling if she spoke. 
</p>
               <p>'At any rate, Mr. Thornton,' said Mrs. Hale, 'you 
will allow that Milton is a much more smoky, dirty town than you will ever 
meet with in the South.' 
</p>
               <p>'I'm afraid I must give up its cleanliness,' said 
Mr. Thornton, with the quick gleaming smile. 'But we are bidden by parliament 
to burn our own smoke; so I suppose, like good little children, we shall do 
as we are bid—some time.' 
</p>
               <p>'But I think you told me you had altered your 
chimneys so as to consume the smoke, did you not?' asked Mr. Hale. 
</p>
               <p>'Mine 
were altered by my own will, before parliament meddled with the affair. It 
was an immediate outlay, but it repays me in the saving of coal. I'm not sure 
whether I should have done it, if I had waited until the act was passed. At 
any rate, I should have waited to be informed against and fined, and given 
all the trouble in yielding that I legally could. But all laws which depend 
for their enforcement upon informers and fines, become inert from the 
odiousness of the machinery. I doubt if there has been a chimney in Milton 
informed against for five years past, although some are constantly sending 
out one-third of their coal in what is called here unparliamentary 
smoke.' 
</p>
               <p>'I only know it is impossible to keep the muslin blinds clean here 
above a week together; and at Helstone we have had them up for a month or 
more, and they have not looked dirty at the end of that time. And as for 
hands—Margaret, how many times did you say you had washed your hands this 
morning before twelve o'clock? Three times, was it not?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, 
mamma.' 
</p>
               <p>'You seem to have a strong objection to acts of parliament and all 
legislation affecting your mode of management down here at Milton,' said Mr. 
Hale. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, I have; and many others have as well. And with justice, I 
think. The whole machinery—I don't mean the wood and iron machinery now—of 
the cotton trade is so new that it is no wonder if it does not work well in 
every part all at once. Seventy years ago what was it? And now what is it 
not? Raw, crude materials came together; men of the same level, as regarded 
education and station, took suddenly the different positions of masters and 
men, owing to the motherwit, as regarded opportunities and probabilities, 
which distinguished some, and made them far-seeing as to what great future 
lay concealed in that rude model of Sir Richard Arkwright's. The rapid 
development of what might be called a new trade, gave those early masters 
enormous power of wealth and command. I don't mean merely over the workmen; I 
mean over purchasers—over the whole world's market. Why, I may give you, as 
an instance, an advertisement, inserted not fifty years ago in a Milton 
paper, that so-and-so (one of the half-dozen calico-printers of the time) 
would close his warehouse at noon each day; therefore, that all purchasers 
must come before that hour. Fancy a man dictating in this manner the time 
when he would sell and when he would not sell. Now, I believe, if a good 
customer chose to come at midnight, I should get up, and stand hat in hand to 
receive his orders.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret's lip curled, but somehow she was compelled 
to listen; she could no longer abstract herself in her own thoughts. 
</p>
               <p>'I 
only name such things to show what almost unlimited power the manufacturers 
had about the beginning of this century. The men were rendered dizzy by it. 
Because a man was successful in his ventures, there was no reason that in all 
other things his mind should be well-balanced. On the Contrary, his sense of 
justice, and his simplicity, were often utterly smothered under the glut of 
wealth that came down upon him; and they tell strange tales of the wild 
extravagance of living indulged in on gala-days by those early cotton-lords. 
There can be no doubt, too, of the tyranny they exercised over their 
work-people. You know the proverb, Mr. Hale, “Set a beggar on horseback, and 
he'll ride to the devil,”—well, some of these early manufacturers did ride 
to the devil in a magnificent style—crushing human bone and flesh under 
their horses' hoofs without remorse. But by-and-by came a re-action, there 
were more factories, more masters; more men were wanted. The power of masters 
and men became more evenly balanced; and now the battle is pretty fairly 
waged between us. We will hardly submit to the decision of an umpire, much 
less to the interference of a meddler with only a smattering of the knowledge 
of the real facts of the case, even though that meddler be called the High 
Court of Parliament. 
</p>
               <p>'Is there necessity for calling it a battle between 
the two classes?' asked Mr. Hale. 'I know, from your using the term, it is 
one which gives a true idea of the real state of things to your mind.' 
</p>
               <p>'It 
is true; and I believe it to be as much a necessity as that prudent wisdom 
and good conduct are always opposed to, and doing battle with ignorance and 
improvidence. It is one of the great beauties of our system, that a 
working-man may raise himself into the power and position of a master by his 
own exertions and behaviour; that, in fact, every one who rules himself to 
decency and sobriety of conduct, and attention to his duties, comes over to 
our ranks; it may not be always as a master, but as an over-looker, a 
cashier, a book-keeper, a clerk, one on the side of authority and 
order.' 
</p>
               <p>'You consider all who are unsuccessful in raising themselves in the 
world, from whatever cause, as your enemies, then, if I under-stand you 
rightly,' said Margaret' in a clear, cold voice. 
</p>
               <p>'As their own enemies, 
certainly,' said he, quickly, not a little piqued by the haughty disapproval 
her form of expression and tone of speaking implied. But, in a moment, his 
straightforward honesty made him feel that his words were but a poor and 
quibbling answer to what she had said; and, be she as scornful as she liked, 
it was a duty he owed to himself to explain, as truly as he could, what he 
did mean. Yet it was very difficult to separate her interpretation, and keep 
it distinct from his meaning. He could best have illustrated what he wanted 
to say by telling them something of his own life; but was it not too personal 
a subject to speak about to strangers ? Still, it was the simple 
straightforward way of explaining his meaning; so, putting aside the touch of 
shyness that brought a momentary flush of colour into his dark cheek, he 
said: 
</p>
               <p>'I am not speaking without book. Sixteen years ago, my father died 
under very miserable circumstances. I was taken from school, and had to 
become a man (as well as I could) in a few days. I had such a mother as few 
are blest with; a woman of strong power, and firm resolve. We went into a 
small country town, where living was cheaper than in Milton, and where I got 
employment in a draper's shop (a capital place, by the way, for obtaining a 
knowledge of goods). Week by week our income came to fifteen shillings, out 
of which three people had to be kept. My mother managed so that I put by 
three out of these fifteen shillings regularly. This made the beginning; this 
taught me self-denial. Now that I am able to afford my mother such comforts 
as her age, rather than her own wish, requires, I thank her silently on each 
occasion for the early training she gave me. Now when I feel that in my own 
case it is no good luck, nor merit, nor talent,—but simply the habits of 
life which taught me to despise indulgences not thoroughly earned,—indeed, 
never to think twice about them,—I believe that this suffering, which Miss 
Hale says is impressed on the countenances of the people of Milton, is but 
the natural punishment of dishonestly-enjoyed pleasure, at some former period 
of their lives. I do not look on self-indulgent, sensual people as worthy of 
my hatred; I simply look upon them with contempt for their poorness of 
character.' 
</p>
               <p>'But you have had the rudiments of a good education,' remarked 
Mr. Hale. 'The quick zest with which you are now reading Homer, shows me that 
you do not come to it as an unknown book; you have read it before, and are 
only recalling your old knowledge.' 
</p>
               <p>'That is true,—I had blundered along 
it at school; I dare say, I was even considered a pretty fair classic in 
those days, though my Latin and Greek have slipt away from me since. But I 
ask you, what preparation they were for such a life as I had to lead? None at 
all. Utterly none at all. On the point of education, any man who can read and 
write starts fair with me in the amount of really useful knowledge that I had 
at that time.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well! I don't agree with you. But there I am perhaps 
somewhat of a pedant. Did not the recollection of the heroic simplicity of 
the Homeric life nerve you up?' 
</p>
               <p>'Not one bit!' exclaimed Mr. Thornton, 
laughing. 'I was too busy to think about any dead people, with the living 
pressing alongside of me, neck to neck, in the struggle for bread. Now that I 
have my mother safe in the quiet peace that becomes her age, and duly rewards 
her former exertions, I can turn to all that old narration and thoroughly 
enjoy it.' 
</p>
               <p>'I dare say, my remark came from the professional feeling of 
there being nothing like leather,' replied Mr. Hale. 
</p>
               <p>When Mr. Thornton rose 
up to go away, after shaking hands with Mr. and Mrs. Hale, he made an advance 
to Margaret to wish her good-bye in a similar manner. It was the frank 
familiar custom of the place; but Margaret was not prepared for it. She 
simply bowed her farewell; although the instant she saw the hand, half put 
out, quickly drawn back, she was sorry she had not been aware of the 
intention. Mr. Thornton, however, knew nothing of her sorrow, and, drawing 
himself up to his full height, walked off, muttering as he left the 
house— 
</p>
               <p>'A more proud, disagreeable girl I never saw. Even her great beauty 
is blotted out of one's memory by her scornful ways.' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.11" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XI</head>
               <head>FIRST IMPRESSIONS</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'There's iron, they say, in all our blood, </l>
                  <l>And a grain or two perhaps is good; </l>
                  <l>But his, he makes me harshly feel, </l>
                  <l>Has got a little too much of steel.' </l>
                  <l>ANON. </l>
               </q>
               <p>'Margaret!' said Mr. Hale, as he returned from showing his guest 
downstairs; 'I could not help watching your face with some anxiety, when Mr. 
Thornton made his confession of having been a shop-boy. I knew it all along 
from Mr. Bell; so I was aware of what was coming; but I half expected to see 
you get up and leave the room.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, papa! you don't mean that you thought 
me so silly? I really liked that account of himself better than anything else 
he said. Everything else revolted me, from its hardness; but he spoke about 
himself so simply—with so little of the pretence that makes the vulgarity of 
shop-people, and with such tender respect for his mother, that I was less 
likely to leave the room then than when he was boasting about Milton, as if 
there was not such another place in the world; or quietly professing to 
despise people for careless, wasteful improvidence, without ever seeming to 
think it his duty to try to make them different,—to give them anything of 
the training which his mother gave him, and to which he evidently owes his 
position, whatever that may be. No! his statement of having been a shop-boy 
was the thing I liked best of all.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am surprised at you, Margaret,' said 
her mother. 'You who were always accusing people of being shoppy at Helstone! 
I don't I think, Mr. Hale, you have done quite right in introducing such a 
person to us without telling us what he had been. I really was very much 
afraid of showing him how much shocked I was at some parts of what he said. 
His father “dying in miserable circumstances.” Why it might have been in the 
workhouse.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am not sure if it was not worse than being in the 
workhouse,' replied her husband. 'I heard a good deal of his previous life 
from Mr. Bell before we came here; and as he has told you a part, I will fill 
up what he left out. His father speculated wildly, failed, and then killed 
himself, because he could not bear the disgrace. All his former friends 
shrunk from the disclosures that had to be made of his dishonest 
gambling—wild, hopeless struggles, made with other people's money, to regain 
his own moderate portion of wealth. No one came forwards to help the mother 
and this boy. There was another child, I believe, a girl; too young to earn 
money, but of course she had to be kept. At least, no friend came forwards 
immediately, and Mrs. Thornton is not one, I fancy, to wait till tardy 
kindness comes to find her out. So they left Milton. I knew he had gone into 
a shop, and that his earnings, with some fragment of property secured to his 
mother, had been made to keep them for a long time. Mr. Bell said they 
absolutely lived upon water-porridge for years—how, he did not know; but 
long after the creditors had given up hope of any payment of old Mr. 
Thornton's debts (if, indeed, they ever had hoped at all about it, after his 
suicide,) this young man returned to Milton, and went quietly round to each 
creditor, paying him the first instalment of the money owing to him. No 
noise—no gathering together of creditors—it was done very silently and 
quietly, but all was paid at last; helped on materially by the circumstance 
of one of the creditors, a crabbed old fellow (Mr. Bell says), taking in Mr. 
Thornton as a kind of partner.' 
</p>
               <p>'That really is fine,' said Margaret. 'What 
a pity such a nature should be tainted by his position as a Milton 
manufacturer.' 
</p>
               <p>'How tainted?' asked her father. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, papa, by that 
testing everything by the standard of wealth. When he spoke of the mechanical 
powers, he evidently looked upon them only as new ways of extending trade and 
making money. And the poor men around him—they were poor because they were 
vicious—out of the pale of his sympathies because they had not his iron 
nature, and the capabilities that it gives him for being rich.' 
</p>
               <p>'Not 
vicious; he never said that. Improvident and self-indulgent were his 
words.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was collecting her mother's working materials, and 
preparing to go to bed. Just as she was leaving the room, she hesitated—she 
was inclined to make an acknowledgment which she thought would please her 
father, but which to be full and true must include a little annoyance. 
However, out it came. 
</p>
               <p>'Papa, I do think Mr. Thornton a very remarkable man; 
but personally I don't like him at all.' 
</p>
               <p>'And I do!' said her father 
laughing. 'Personally, as you call it, and all. I don't set him up for a 
hero, or anything of that kind. But good night, child. Your mother looks 
sadly tired to-night, Margaret.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret had noticed her mother's jaded 
appearance with anxiety for some time past, and this remark of her father's 
sent her up to bed with a dim fear lying like a weight on her heart. The life 
in Milton was so different from what Mrs. Hale had been accustomed to live in 
Helstone, in and out perpetually into the fresh and open air; the air itself 
was so different, deprived of all revivifying principle as it seemed to be 
here; the domestic worries pressed so very closely, and in so new and sordid 
a form, upon all the women in the family, that there was good reason to fear 
that her mother's health might be becoming seriously affected. There were 
several other signs of something wrong about Mrs. Hale. She and Dixon held 
mysterious consultations in her bedroom, from which Dixon would come out 
crying and cross, as was her custom when any distress of her mistress called 
upon her sympathy. Once Margaret had gone into the chamber soon after Dixon 
left it, and found her mother on her knees, and as Margaret stole out she 
caught a few words, which were evidently a prayer for strength and patience 
to endure severe bodily suffering. Margaret yearned to re-unite the bond of 
intimate confidence which had been broken by her long residence at her aunt 
Shaw's, and strove by gentle caresses and softened words to creep into the 
warmest place in her mother's heart. But though she received caresses and 
fond words back again, in such profusion as would have gladdened her 
formerly, yet she felt that there was a secret withheld from her, and she 
believed it bore serious reference to her mother's health. She lay awake very 
long this night, planning how to lessen the evil influence of their Milton 
life on her mother. A servant to give Dixon permanent assistance should be 
got, if she gave up her whole time to the search; and then, at any rate, her 
mother might have all the personal attention she required, and had been 
accustomed to her whole life. 
</p>
               <p>Visiting register offices, seeing all manner 
of unlikely people, and very few in the least likely, absorbed Margaret's 
time and thoughts for several days. One afternoon she met Bessy Higgins in 
the street, and stopped to speak to her. 
</p>
               <p>'Well, Bessy, how are you? Better, 
I hope, now the wind has changed.' 
</p>
               <p>'Better and not better, if yo' know what 
that means.' 
</p>
               <p>'Not exactly,' replied Margaret, smiling. 
</p>
               <p>'I'm better in not 
being torn to pieces by coughing o'nights, but I'm weary and tired o' Milton, 
and longing to get away to the land o' Beulah; and when I think I'm farther 
and farther off, my heart sinks, and I'm no better; I'm worse.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret 
turned round to walk alongside of the girl in her feeble progress homeward. 
But for a minute or two she did not speak. At last she said in a low 
voice, 
</p>
               <p>'Bessy, do you wish to die?' For she shrank from death herself, with 
all the clinging to life so natural to the young and healthy. 
</p>
               <p>Bessy was 
silent in her turn for a minute or two. Then she replied, 
</p>
               <p>'If yo'd led the 
life I have, and getten as weary of it as I have, and thought at times, 
“maybe it'll last for fifty or sixty years—it does wi' some,”—and got dizzy 
and dazed, and sick, as each of them sixty years seemed to spin about me, and 
mock me with its length of hours and minutes, and endless bits o' time—oh, 
wench! I tell thee thou'd been glad enough when th' doctor said he feared 
thou'd never see another winter.' 
</p>
               <p>'Why, Bessy, what kind of a life has 
yours been?' 
</p>
               <p>'Nought worse than many others, I reckon. Only I fretted again 
it, and they didn't.' 
</p>
               <p>'But what was it? You know, I'm a stranger here, so 
perhaps I'm not so quick at understanding what you mean as if I'd lived all 
my life at Milton.' 
</p>
               <p>'If yo'd ha' come to our house when yo' said yo' would, 
I could maybe ha' told you. But father says yo're just like th' rest on 'em; 
it's out o' sight out o' mind wi' you.' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't know who the rest are; and 
I've been very busy; and, to tell the truth, I had forgotten my 
promise—' 
</p>
               <p>'Yo' offered it! we asked none of it.' 
</p>
               <p>'I had forgotten what I 
said for the time,' continued Margaret quietly. 'I should have thought of it 
again when I was less busy. May I go with you now?' 
</p>
               <p>Bessy gave a quick 
glance at Margaret's face, to see if the wish expressed was really felt. The 
sharpness in her eye turned to a wistful longing as she met Margaret's soft 
and friendly gaze. 
</p>
               <p>'I ha' none so many to care for me; if yo' care yo' may 
come. 
</p>
               <p>So they walked on together in silence. As they turned up into a 
small court, opening out of a squalid street, Bessy said, 
</p>
               <p>'Yo'll not be 
daunted if father's at home, and speaks a bit gruffish at first. He took a 
mind to ye, yo' see, and he thought a deal o' your coming to see us; and just 
because he liked yo' he were vexed and put about.' 
</p>
               <p>'Don't fear, 
Bessy.' 
</p>
               <p>But Nicholas was not at home when they entered. A great slatternly 
girl, not so old as Bessy, but taller and stronger, was busy at the wash-tub, 
knocking about the furniture in a rough capable way, but altogether making so 
much noise that Margaret shrunk, out of sympathy with poor Bessy, who had sat 
down on the first chair, as if completely tired out with her walk. Margaret 
asked the sister for a cup of water, and while she ran to fetch it (knocking 
down the fire-irons, and tumbling over a chair in her way), she unloosed 
Bessy's bonnet strings, to relieve her catching breath. 
</p>
               <p>'Do you think such 
life as this is worth caring for?' gasped Bessy, at last. Margaret did not 
speak, but held the water to her lips. Bessy took a long and feverish 
draught, and then fell back and shut her eyes. Margaret heard her murmur to 
herself: 'They shall hunger no more, neither thirst any more; neither shall 
the sun light on them, nor any heat.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret bent over and said, 'Bessy, 
don't be impatient with your life, whatever it is—or may have been. Remember 
who gave it you, and made it what it is!' 
</p>
               <p>She was startled by hearing 
Nicholas speak behind her; he had come in without her noticing him. 
</p>
               <p>'Now, 
I'll not have my wench preached to. She's bad enough as it is, with her 
dreams and her methodee fancies, and her visions of cities with goulden gates 
and precious stones. But if it amuses her I let it abe, but I'm none going to 
have more stuff poured into her.' 
</p>
               <p>'But surely,' said Margaret, facing 
round, 'you believe in what I said, that God gave her life, and ordered what 
kind of life it was to be?' 
</p>
               <p>'I believe what I see, and no more. That's what 
I believe, young woman. I don't believe all I hear—no! not by a big deal. I 
did hear a young lass make an ado about knowing where we lived, and coming to 
see us. And my wench here thought a deal about it, and flushed up many a 
time, when hoo little knew as I was looking at her, at the sound of a strange 
step. But hoo's come at last,—and hoo's welcome, as long as hoo'll keep from 
preaching on what hoo knows nought about.' 
</p>
               <p>Bessy had been watching 
Margaret's face; she half sate up to speak now, laying her hand on Margaret's 
arm with a gesture of entreaty. 'Don't be vexed wi' him—there's many a one 
thinks like him; many and many a one here. If yo' could hear them speak, yo'd 
not be shocked at him; he's a rare good man, is father—but oh!' said she, 
falling back in despair, 'what he says at times makes me long to die more 
than ever, for I want to know so many things, and am so tossed about wi' 
wonder.' 
</p>
               <p>'Poor wench—poor old wench,—I'm loth to vex thee, I am; but a 
man mun speak out for the truth, and when I see the world going all wrong at 
this time o' day, bothering itself wi' things it knows nought about, and 
leaving undone all the things that lie in disorder close at its hand—why, I 
say, leave a' this talk about religion alone, and set to work on what yo' see 
and know. That's my creed. It's simple, and not far to fetch, nor hard to 
work.' 
</p>
               <p>But the girl only pleaded the more with Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Don't think 
hardly on him—he's a good man, he is. I sometimes think I shall be moped wi' 
sorrow even in the City of God, if father is not there.' The feverish colour 
came into her cheek, and the feverish flame into her eye. 'But you will be 
there, father! you shall! Oh! my heart!' She put her hand to it, and became 
ghastly pale. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret held her in her arms, and put the weary head to rest 
upon her bosom. She lifted the thin soft hair from off the temples, and 
bathed them with water. Nicholas understood all her signs for different 
articles with the quickness of love, and even the round-eyed sister moved 
with laborious gentleness at Margaret's 'hush!' Presently the spasm that 
foreshadowed death had passed away, and Bessy roused herself and 
said,— 
</p>
               <p>'I'll go to bed,—it's best place; but,' catching at Margaret's 
gown, 'yo'll come again,—I know yo' will—but just say it!' 
</p>
               <p>'I will come 
to-morrow, said Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>Bessy leant back against her father, who prepared 
to carry her upstairs; but as Margaret rose to go, he struggled to say 
something: 'I could wish there were a God, if it were only to ask Him to 
bless thee.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret went away very sad and thoughtful. 
</p>
               <p>She was late for 
tea at home. At Helstone unpunctuality at meal-times was a great fault in her 
mother's eyes; but now this, as well as many other little irregularities, 
seemed to have lost their power of irritation, and Margaret almost longed for 
the old complainings. 
</p>
               <p>'Have you met with a servant, dear?' 
</p>
               <p>'No, mamma; 
that Anne Buckley would never have done.' 
</p>
               <p>'Suppose I try,' said Mr. Hale. 
'Everybody else has had their turn at this great difficulty. Now let me try. 
I may be the Cinderella to put on the slipper after all.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret could 
hardly smile at this little joke, so oppressed was she by her visit to the 
Higginses. 
</p>
               <p>'What would you do, papa? How would you set about it?' 
</p>
               <p>'Why, I 
would apply to some good house-mother to recommend me one known to herself or 
her servants.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very good. But we must first catch our 
house-mother.' 
</p>
               <p>'You have caught her. Or rather she is coming into the 
snare, and you will catch her to-morrow, if you're skilful.' 
</p>
               <p>'What do you 
mean, Mr. Hale?' asked his wife, her curiosity aroused. 
</p>
               <p>'Why, my paragon 
pupil (as Margaret calls him), has told me that his mother intends to call on 
Mrs. and Miss Hale to-morrow.' 
</p>
               <p>'Mrs. Thornton!' exclaimed Mrs. Hale. 
</p>
               <p>'The 
mother of whom he spoke to us?' said Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Mrs. Thornton; the only 
mother he has, I believe,' said Mr. Hale quietly. 
</p>
               <p>'I shall like to see her. 
She must be an uncommon person, her mother added. 'Perhaps she may have a 
relation who might suit us, and be glad of our place. She sounded to be such 
a careful economical person, that I should like any one out of the same 
family.' 
</p>
               <p>'My dear,' said Mr. Hale alarmed. 'Pray don't go off on that idea. 
I fancy Mrs. Thornton is as haughty and proud in her way, as our little 
Margaret here is in hers, and that she completely ignores that old time of 
trial, and poverty, and economy, of which he speaks so openly. I am sure, at 
any rate, she would not like strangers to know anything about It.' 
</p>
               <p>'Take 
notice that is not my kind of haughtiness, papa, if I have any at all; which 
I don't agree to, though you're always accusing me of it.' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't know 
positively that it is hers either; but from little things I have gathered 
from him, I fancy so.' 
</p>
               <p>They cared too little to ask in what manner her son 
had spoken about her. Margaret only wanted to know if she must stay in to 
receive this call, as it would prevent her going to see how Bessy was, until 
late in the day, since the early morning was always occupied in household 
affairs; and then she recollected that her mother must not be left to have 
the whole weight of entertaining her visitor. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.12" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XII</head>
               <head>MORNING CALLS</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Well—I suppose we must.' </l>
                  <l>FRIENDS IN COUNCIL. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Mr. Thornton had had some difficulty in working up his mother to the 
desired point of civility. She did not often make calls; and when she did, it 
was in heavy state that she went through her duties. Her son had given her a 
carriage; but she refused to let him keep horses for it; they were hired for 
the solemn occasions, when she paid morning or evening visits. She had had 
horses for three days, not a fortnight before, and had comfortably 'killed 
off' all her acquaintances, who might now put themselves to trouble and 
expense in their turn. Yet Crampton was too far off for her to walk; and she 
had repeatedly questioned her son as to whether his wish that she should call 
on the Hales was strong enough to bear the expense of cab-hire. She would 
have been thankful if it had not; for, as she said, 'she saw no use in making 
up friendships and intimacies with all the teachers and masters in Milton; 
why, he would be wanting her to call on Fanny's dancing-master's wife, the 
next thing!' 
</p>
               <p>'And so I would, mother, if Mr. Mason and his wife were friend 
less in a strange place, like the Hales.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! you need not speak so 
hastily. I am going to-morrow. I only wanted you exactly to understand about 
it.' 
</p>
               <p>'If you are going to-morrow, I shall order horses.' 
</p>
               <p>'Nonsense, John. 
One would think you were made of money.' 
</p>
               <p>'Not quite, yet. But about the 
horses I'm determined. The last time you were out in a cab, you came home 
with a headache from the jolting.' 
</p>
               <p>'I never complained of it, I'm 
sure.' 
</p>
               <p>'No. My mother is not given to complaints,' said he, a little 
proudly. 'But so much the more I have to watch over you. Now as for Fanny 
there, a little hardship would do her good.' 
</p>
               <p>'She is not made of the same 
stuff as you are, John. She could not bear it.' 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Thornton was silent 
after this; for her last words bore relation to a subject which mortified 
her. She had an unconscious contempt for a weak character; and Fanny was weak 
in the very points in which her mother and brother were strong. Mrs. Thornton 
was not a woman much given to reasoning; her quick judgment and firm 
resolution served her in good stead of any long arguments and discussions 
with herself; she felt instinctively that nothing could strengthen Fanny to 
endure hardships patiently, or face difficulties bravely; and though she 
winced as she made this acknowledgment to herself about her daughter, it only 
gave her a kind of pitying tenderness of manner towards her; much of the same 
description of demeanour with which mothers are wont to treat their weak and 
sickly children. A stranger, a careless observer might have considered that 
Mrs. Thornton's manner to her children betokened far more love to Fanny than 
to John. But such a one would have been deeply mistaken. The very daringness 
with which mother and son spoke out unpalatable truths, the one to the other, 
showed a reliance on the firm centre of each other's souls, which the uneasy 
tenderness of Mrs. Thornton's manner to her daughter, the shame with which 
she thought to hide the poverty of her child in all the grand qualities which 
she herself possessed unconsciously, and which she set so high a value upon 
in others—this shame, I say, betrayed the want of a secure resting-place for 
her affection. She never called her son by any name but John; 'love,' and 
'dear,' and such like terms, were reserved for Fanny. But her heart gave 
thanks for him day and night; and she walked proudly among women for his 
sake. 
</p>
               <p>'Fanny dear I shall have horses to the carriage to-day, to go and 
call on these Hales. Should not you go and see nurse? It's in the same 
direction, and she's always so glad to see you. You could go on there while I 
am at Mrs. Hale's.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! mamma, it's such a long way, and I am so 
tired.' 
</p>
               <p>'With what?' asked Mrs. Thornton, her brow slightly 
contracting. 
</p>
               <p>'I don't know—the weather, I think. It is so relaxing. 
Couldn't you bring nurse here, mamma? The carriage could fetch her, and she 
could spend the rest of the day here, which I know she would like.' 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. 
Thornton did not speak; but she laid her work on the table, and seemed to 
think. 
</p>
               <p>'It will be a long way for her to walk back at night!' she remarked, 
at last. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, but I will send her home in a cab. I never thought of her 
walking.' 
</p>
               <p>At this point, Mr. Thornton came in, just before going to the 
mill. 
</p>
               <p>'Mother! I need hardly say, that if there is any little thing that 
could serve Mrs. Hale as an invalid, you will offer it, I'm sure.' 
</p>
               <p>'If I 
can find it out, I will. But I have never been ill myself, so I am not much 
up to invalids' fancies.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well! here is Fanny then, who is seldom without 
an ailment. She will be able to suggest something, perhaps—won't you, 
Fan?' 
</p>
               <p>'I have not always an ailment,' said Fanny, pettishly; 'and I am not 
going with mamma. I have a headache to-day, and I shan't go out.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. 
Thornton looked annoyed. His mother's eyes were bent on her work, at which 
she was now stitching away busily. 
</p>
               <p>'Fanny! I wish you to go,' said he, 
authoritatively. 'It will do you good, instead of harm. You will oblige me by 
going, without my saying anything more about it.' 
</p>
               <p>He went abruptly out of 
the room after saying this. 
</p>
               <p>If he had staid a minute longer, Fanny would 
have cried at his tone of command, even when he used the words, 'You will 
oblige me.' As it was, she grumbled. 
</p>
               <p>'John always speaks as if I fancied I 
was ill, and I am sure I never do fancy any such thing. Who are these Hales 
that he makes such a fuss about?' 
</p>
               <p>'Fanny, don't speak so of your brother. 
He has good reasons of some kind or other, or he would not wish us to go. 
Make haste and put your things on.' 
</p>
               <p>But the little altercation between her 
son and her daughter did not incline Mrs. Thornton more favourably towards 
'these Hales.' Her jealous heart repeated her daughter's question, 'Who are 
they, that he is so anxious we should pay them all this attention?' It came 
up like a burden to a song, long after Fanny had forgotten all about it in 
the pleasant excitement of seeing the effect of a new bonnet in the 
looking-glass. 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Thornton was shy. It was only of late years that she 
had had leisure enough in her life to go into society; and as society she did 
not enjoy it. As dinner-giving, and as criticising other people's dinners, 
she took satisfaction in it. But this going to make acquaintance with 
strangers was a very different thing. She was ill at ease, and looked more 
than usually stern and forbidding as she entered the Hales' little 
drawing-room. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was busy embroidering a small piece of cambric for 
some little article of dress for Edith's expected baby—'Flimsy, useless 
work,' as Mrs. Thornton observed to herself. She liked Mrs. Hale's double 
knitting far better; that was sensible of its kind. The room altogether was 
full of knick-knacks, which must take a long time to dust; and time to people 
of limited income was money. 
</p>
               <p>She made all these reflections as she was 
talking in her stately way to Mrs. Hale, and uttering all the stereotyped 
commonplaces that most people can find to say with their senses blindfolded. 
Mrs. Hale was making rather more exertion in her answers, captivated by some 
real old lace which Mrs. Thornton wore; 'lace,' as she afterwards observed to 
Dixon, 'of that old English point which has not been made for this seventy 
years, and which cannot be bought. It must have been an heir-loom, and shows 
that she had ancestors.' So the owner of the ancestral lace became worthy of 
something more than the languid exertion to be agreeable to a visitor, by 
which Mrs. Hale's efforts at conversation would have been otherwise bounded. 
And presently, Margaret, racking her brain to talk to Fanny, heard her mother 
and Mrs. Thornton plunge into the interminable subject of servants. 
</p>
               <p>'I 
suppose you are not musical,' said Fanny, 'as I see no piano.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am fond 
of hearing good music; I cannot play well myself; and papa and mamma don't 
care much about it; so we sold our old piano when we came here.' 
</p>
               <p>'I wonder 
how you can exist without one. It almost seems to me a necessary of 
life.' 
</p>
               <p>'Fifteen shillings a week, and three saved out of them!' thought 
Margaret to herself 'But she must have been very young. She probably has 
forgotten her own personal experience. But she must know of those days.' 
Margaret's manner had an extra tinge of coldness in it when she next 
spoke. 
</p>
               <p>'You have good concerts here, I believe.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, yes! Delicious! Too 
crowded, that is the worst. The directors admit so indiscriminately. But one 
is sure to hear the newest music there. I always have a large order to give 
to Johnson's, the day after a concert.' 
</p>
               <p>'Do you like new music simply for 
its newness, then?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh; one knows it is the fashion in London, or else the 
singers would not bring it down here. You have been in London, of 
course.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes,' said Margaret, 'I have lived there for several 
years.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! London and the Alhambra are the two places I long to 
see!' 
</p>
               <p>'London and the Alhambra!' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes! ever since I read the Tales of the 
Alhambra. Don't you know them?' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't think I do. But surely, it is a 
very easy journey to London.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes; but somehow,' said Fanny, lowering her 
voice, 'mamma has never been to London herself, and can't understand my 
longing. She is very proud of Milton; dirty, smoky place, as I feel it to be. 
I believe she admires it the more for those very qualities.' 
</p>
               <p>'If it has 
been Mrs. Thornton's home for some years, I can well understand her loving 
it,' said Margaret, in her clear bell-like voice. 
</p>
               <p>'What are you saying 
about me, Miss Hale? May I inquire?' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret had not the words ready for 
an answer to this question, which took her a little by surprise, so Miss 
Thornton replied: 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, mamma! we are only trying to account for your being 
so fond of Milton.' 
</p>
               <p>'Thank you,' said Mrs. Thornton. 'I do not feel that my 
very natural liking for the place where I was born and brought up,—and which 
has since been my residence for some years, requires any accounting 
for.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was vexed. As Fanny had put it, it did seem as if they had 
been impertinently discussing Mrs. Thornton's feelings; but she also rose up 
against that lady's manner of showing that she was offended. 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Thornton 
went on after a moment's pause: 
</p>
               <p>'Do you know anything of Milton, Miss Hale? 
Have you seen any of our factories? our magnificent warehouses?' 
</p>
               <p>'No!' said 
Margaret. 'I have not seen anything of that description as yet. 
</p>
               <p>Then she 
felt that, by concealing her utter indifference to all such places, she was 
hardly speaking with truth; so she went on: 
</p>
               <p>'I dare say, papa would have 
taken me before now if I had cared. But I really do not find much pleasure in 
going over manufactories.' 
</p>
               <p>'They are very curious places,' said Mrs. Hale, 
'but there is so much noise and dirt always. I remember once going in a lilac 
silk to see candles made, and my gown was utterly ruined.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very 
probably,' said Mrs. Thornton, in a short displeased manner. 'I merely 
thought, that as strangers newly come to reside in a town which has risen to 
eminence in the country, from the character and progress of its peculiar 
business, you might have cared to visit some of the places where it is 
carried on; places unique in the kingdom, I am informed. If Miss Hale changes 
her mind and condescends to be curious as to the manufactures of Milton, I 
can only say I shall be glad to procure her admission to print-works, or 
reed-making, or the more simple operations of spinning carried on in my son's 
mill. Every improvement of machinery is, I believe, to be seen there, in its 
highest perfection.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am so glad you don't like mills and manufactories, 
and all those kind of things,' said Fanny, in a half-whisper, as she rose to 
accompany her mother, who was taking leave of Mrs. Hale with rustling 
dignity. 
</p>
               <p>'I think I should like to know all about them, if I were you,' 
replied Margaret quietly. 
</p>
               <p>'Fanny!' said her mother, as they drove away, 'we 
will he civil to these Hales: but don't form one of your hasty friendships 
with the daughter. She will do you no good, I see. The mother looks very ill, 
and seems a nice, quiet kind of person.' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't want to form any 
friendship with Miss Hale, mamma,' said Fanny, pouting. 'I thought I was 
doing my duty by talking to her, and trying to amuse her.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well! at any 
rate John must he satisfied now.' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.13" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XIII</head>
               <head>A SOFT BREEZE IN A SULTRY PLACE</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'That doubt and trouble, fear and pain, </l>
                  <l>And anguish, all, are shadows vain, </l>
                  <l>That death itself shall not remain; </l>
                  <l>That weary deserts we may tread, </l>
                  <l>A dreary labyrinth may thread, </l>
                  <l>Thro' dark ways underground be led; </l>
                  <l>Yet, if we will one Guide obey, </l>
                  <l>The dreariest path, the darkest way </l>
                  <l>Shall issue out in heavenly day; </l>
                  <l>And we, on divers shores now cast, </l>
                  <l>Shall meet, our perilous voyage past, </l>
                  <l>All in our Father's house at last!' </l>
                  <l>R. C. TRENCH. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Margaret flew up stairs as soon as their visitors were gone, and put on 
her bonnet and shawl, to run and inquire how Bessy Higgins was, and sit with 
her as long as she could before dinner. As she went along the crowded narrow 
streets, she felt how much of interest they had gained by the simple fact of 
her having learnt to care for a dweller in them. 
</p>
               <p>Mary Higgins, the 
slatternly younger sister, had endeavoured as well as she could to tidy up 
the house for the expected visit. There had been rough-stoning done in the 
middle of the floor, while the flags under the chairs and table and round the 
walls retained their dark unwashed appearance. Although the day was hot, 
there burnt a large fire in the grate, making the whole place feel like an 
oven. Margaret did not understand that the lavishness of coals was a sign of 
hospitable welcome to her on Mary's part, and thought that perhaps the 
oppressive heat was necessary for Bessy. Bessy herself lay on a squab, or 
short sofa, placed under the window. She was very much more feeble than on 
the previous day, and tired with raising herself at every step to look out 
and see if it was Margaret coming. And now that Margaret was there, and had 
taken a chair by her, Bessy lay back silent, and content to look at 
Margaret's face, and touch her articles of dress, with a childish admiration 
of their fineness of texture. 
</p>
               <p>'I never knew why folk in the Bible cared for 
soft raiment afore. But it must be nice to go dressed as yo' do. It's 
different fro' common. Most fine folk tire my eyes out wi' their colours; but 
some how yours rest me. Where did ye get this frock?' 
</p>
               <p>'In London,' said 
Margaret, much amused. 
</p>
               <p>'London! Have yo' been in London?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes! I lived 
there for some years. But my home was in a forest; in the country. 
</p>
               <p>'Tell me 
about it,' said Bessy. 'I like to hear speak of the country and trees, and 
such like things.' She leant back, and shut her eye and crossed her hands 
over her breast, lying at perfect rest, as if t receive all the ideas 
Margaret could suggest. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret had never spoken of Helstone since she 
left it, except just naming the place incidentally. She saw it in dreams more 
vivid than life, and as she fell away to slumber at nights her memory 
wandered in all its pleasant places. But her heart was opened to this girl; 
'Oh, Bessy, I loved the home we have left so dearly! I wish you could see it. 
I cannot tell you half its beauty. There are great trees standing all about 
it, with their branches stretching long andlevel, and making a deep shade of 
rest even at noonday. And yet, though every leaf may seem still, there is a 
continual rushing sound of movement all around—not close at hand. Then 
sometimes the turf is as soft and fine as velvet; and sometimes quite lush 
with the perpetual moisture of a little, hidden, tinkling brook near at hand. 
And then in other parts there are billowy ferns—whole stretches of fern; 
some in the green shadow; some with long streaks of golden sunlight lying on 
them—just like the sea.' 
</p>
               <p>'I have never seen the sea,' murmured Bessy. 'But 
go on.' 
</p>
               <p>'Then, here and there, there are wide commons, high up as if above 
the very tops of the trees—' 
</p>
               <p>'I'm glad of that. I felt smothered like down 
below. When I have gone for an out, I've always wanted to get high up and see 
far away, and take a deep breath o' fulness in that air. I get smothered 
enough in Milton, and I think the sound yo' speak of among the trees, going 
on for ever and ever, would send me dazed; it's that made my head ache so in 
the mill. Now on these commons I reckon there is but little noise?' 
</p>
               <p>'No,' 
said Margaret; 'nothing but here and there a lark high in the air. Sometimes 
I used to hear a farmer speaking sharp and loud to his servants; but it was 
so far away that it only reminded me pleasantly that other people were hard 
at work in some distant place, while I just sat on the heather and did 
nothing.' 
</p>
               <p>'I used to think once that if I could have a day of doing 
nothing, to rest me—a day in some quiet place like that yo' speak on—it 
would maybe set me up. But now I've had many days o' idleness, and I'm just 
as weary o' them as I was o' my work. Sometimes I'm so tired out I think I 
cannot enjoy heaven without a piece of rest first. I'm rather afeard o' going 
straight there without getting a good sleep in the grave to set me 
up.' 
</p>
               <p>'Don't be afraid, Bessy,' said Margaret, laying her hand on the 
girl's; 'God can give you more perfect rest than even idleness on earth, or 
the dead sleep of the grave can do.' 
</p>
               <p>Bessy moved uneasily; then she 
said: 
</p>
               <p>'I wish father would not speak as he does. He means well, as I telled 
yo' yesterday, and tell yo' again and again. But yo' see, though I don't 
believe him a bit by day, yet by night—when I'm in a fever, half-asleep and 
half-awake—it comes back upon me—oh! so bad! And I think, if this should be 
th' end of all, and if all I've been born for is just to work my heart and my 
life away, and to sicken i' this dree place, wi' them mill-noises in my ears 
for ever, until I could scream out for them to stop, and let me have a little 
piece o' quiet—and wi' the fluff filling my lungs, until I thirst to death 
for one long deep breath o' the clear air yo' speak on—and my mother gone, 
and I never able to tell her again how I loved her, and o' all my troubles—I 
think if this life is th' end, and that there's no God to wipe away all tears 
from all eyes—yo' wench, yo'!' said she, sitting up, and clutching 
violently, almost fiercely, at Margaret's hand, 'I could go mad, and kill 
yo', I could.' She fell back completely worn out with her passion. Margaret 
knelt down by her. 
</p>
               <p>'Bessy—we have a Father in Heaven.' 
</p>
               <p>'I know it! I 
know it,' moaned she, turning her head uneasily from side to side. 'I'm very 
wicked. I've spoken very wickedly. Oh! don't be frightened by me and never 
come again. I would not harm a hair of your head. And,' opening her eyes, and 
looking earnestly at Margaret, 'I believe, perhaps, more than yo' do o' 
what's to come. I read the book o' Revelations until I know it off by heart, 
and I never doubt when I'm waking, and in my senses, of all the glory I'm to 
come to.' 
</p>
               <p>'Don't let us talk of what fancies come into your head when you 
are feverish. I would rather hear something about what you used to do when 
you were well.' 
</p>
               <p>'I think I was well when mother died, but I have never been 
rightly strong sin' somewhere about that time. I began to work in a 
carding-room soon after, and the fluff got into my lungs and poisoned 
me.' 
</p>
               <p>'Fluff?' said Margaret, inquiringly. 
</p>
               <p>'Fluff,' repeated Bessy. 
'Little bits, as fly off fro' the cotton, when they're carding it, and fill 
the air till it looks all fine white dust. They say it winds round the lungs, 
and tightens them up.  Anyhow, there's many a one as works in a carding-room, 
that falls into a waste, coughing and spitting blood, because they're just 
poisoned by the fluff.' 
</p>
               <p>'But can't it be helped?' asked Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'I 
dunno. Some folk have a great wheel at one end o' their carding-rooms to make 
a draught, and carry off th' dust; but that wheel costs a deal o' money—five 
or six hundred pound, maybe, and brings in no profit; so it's but a few of 
th' masters as will put 'em up; and I've heard tell o' men who didn't like 
working places where there was a wheel, because they said as how it mad 'em 
hungry, at after they'd been long used to swallowing fluff, tone go without 
it, and that their wage ought to be raised if they were to work in such 
places. So between masters and men th' wheels fall through. I know I wish 
there'd been a wheel in our place, though.' 
</p>
               <p>'Did not your father know about 
it?' asked Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes! And he were sorry. But our factory were a good 
one on the whole; and a steady likely set o' people; and father was afeard of 
letting me go to a strange place, for though yo' would na think it now, many 
a one then used to call me a gradely lass enough. And I did na like to be 
reckoned nesh and soft, and Mary's schooling were to be kept up, mother said, 
and father he were always liking to buy books, and go to lectures o' one kind 
or another—all which took money—so I just worked on till I shall ne'er get 
the whirr out o' my ears, or the fluff out o' my throat i' this world. That's 
all.' 
</p>
               <p>'How old are you?' asked Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Nineteen, come July.' 
</p>
               <p>'And I 
too am nineteen.' She thought, more sorrowfully than Bessy did, of the 
contrast between them. She could not speak for a moment or two for the 
emotion she was trying to keep down. 
</p>
               <p>'About Mary,' said Bessy. 'I wanted to 
ask yo' to be a friend to her. She's seventeen, but she's th' last on us. And 
I don't want her to go to th' mill, and yet I dunno what she's fit 
for.' 
</p>
               <p>'She could not do'—Margaret glanced unconsciously at the uncleaned 
corners of the room—'She could hardly undertake a servant's place, could 
she? We have an old faithful servant, almost a friend, who wants help, but 
who is very particular; and it would not be right to plague her with giving 
her any assistance that would really be an annoyance and an 
irritation.' 
</p>
               <p>'No, I see. I reckon yo're right. Our Mary's a good wench; but 
who has she had to teach her what to do about a house? No mother, and me at 
the mill till I were good for nothing but scolding her for doing badly what I 
didn't know how to do a bit. But I wish she could ha' lived wi' yo', for all 
that.' 
</p>
               <p>'But even though she may not be exactly fitted to come and live with 
us as a servant—and I don't know about that—I will always try and be a 
friend to her for your sake, Bessy. And now I must go. I will come again as 
soon as I can; but if it should not be to-morrow, or the next day, or even a 
week or a fortnight hence, don't think I've forgotten you. I may be 
busy.' 
</p>
               <p>'I'll know yo' won't forget me again. I'll not mistrust yo' no more. 
But remember, in a week or a fortnight I may be dead and buried!' 
</p>
               <p>'I'll 
come as soon as I can, Bessy,' said Margaret, squeezing her hand tight. 'But 
you'll let me know if you are worse. 
</p>
               <p>'Ay, that will I,' said Bessy, 
returning the pressure. 
</p>
               <p>From that day forwards Mrs. Hale became more and 
more of a suffering invalid. It was now drawing near to the anniversary of 
Edith's marriage, and looking back upon the year's accumulated heap of 
troubles, Margaret wondered how they had been borne. If she could have 
anticipated them, how she would have shrunk away and hid herself from the 
coming time! And yet day by day had, of itself, and by itself, been very 
endurable—small, keen, bright little spots of positive enjoyment having come 
sparkling into the very middle of sorrows. A year ago, or when she first went 
to Helstone, and first became silently conscious of the querulousness in her 
mother's temper, she would have groaned bitterly over the idea of a long 
illness to be borne in a strange, desolate, noisy, busy place, with 
diminished comforts on every side of the home life. But with the increase of 
serious and just ground of complaint, a new kind of patience had sprung up in 
her mother's mind. She was gentle and quiet in intense bodily suffering, 
almost in proportion as she had been restless and depressed when there had 
been no real cause for grief. Mr. Hale was in exactly that stage of 
apprehension which, in men of his stamp, takes the shape of wilful blindness. 
He was more irritated than Margaret had ever known him at his daughter's 
expressed anxiety. 
</p>
               <p>'Indeed, Margaret, you are growing fanciful! God knows I 
should be the first to take the alarm if your mother were really ill; we 
always saw when she had her headaches at Helstone, even without her telling 
us. She looks quite pale and white when she is ill; and now she has a bright 
healthy colour in her cheeks, just as she used to have when I first knew 
her.' 
</p>
               <p>'But, papa,' said Margaret, with hesitation, 'do you know, I think 
that is the flush of pain.' 
</p>
               <p>'Nonsense, Margaret. I tell you, you are too 
fanciful. You are the person not well, I think. Send for the doctor to-morrow 
for yourself; and then, if it will make your mind easier, he can see your 
mother.' 
</p>
               <p>'Thank you, dear papa. It will make me happier, indeed.' And she 
went up to him to kiss him. But he pushed her away—gently enough, but still 
as if she had suggested unpleasant ideas, which he should be glad to get rid 
of as readily as he could of her presence. He walked uneasily up and down the 
room. 
</p>
               <p>'Poor Maria!' said he, half soliloquising, 'I wish one could do right 
without sacrificing others. I shall hate this town, and myself too, if 
she——Pray, Margaret, does your mother often talk to you of the old places 
of Helstone, I mean?' 
</p>
               <p>'No, papa,' said Margaret, sadly. 
</p>
               <p>'Then, you see, 
she can't be fretting after them, eh? It has always been a comfort to me to 
think that your mother was so simple and open that I knew every little 
grievance she had. She never would conceal anything seriously affecting her 
health from me: would she, eh, Margaret? I am quite sure she would not. So 
don't let me hear of these foolish morbid ideas. Come, give me a kiss, and 
run off to bed.' 
</p>
               <p>But she heard him pacing about (racooning, as she and 
Edith used to call it) long after her slow and languid undressing was 
finished—long after she began to listen as she lay in bed. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.14" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XIV</head>
               <head>THE MUTINY</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'I was used </l>
                  <l>To sleep at nights as sweetly as a child,— </l>
                  <l>Now if the wind blew rough, it made me start, </l>
                  <l>And think of my poor boy tossing about </l>
                  <l>Upon the roaring seas. And then I seemed </l>
                  <l>To feel that it was hard to take him from me </l>
                  <l>For such a little fault.' </l>
                  <l>SOUTHEY. </l>
               </q>
               <p>It was a comfort to Margaret about this time, to find that her mother drew 
more tenderly and intimately towards her than she had ever done since the 
days of her childhood. She took her to her heart as a confidential 
friend—the post Margaret had always longed to fill, and had envied Dixon for 
being preferred to. Margaret took pains to respond to every call made upon 
her for sympathy—and they were many—even when they bore relation to 
trifles, which she would no more have noticed or regarded herself than the 
elephant would perceive the little pin at his feet, which yet he lifts 
carefully up at the bidding of his keeper. All unconsciously Margaret drew 
near to a reward. 
</p>
               <p>One evening, Mr. Hale being absent, her mother began to 
talk to her about her brother Frederick, the very subject on which Margaret 
had longed to ask questions, and almost the only one on which her timidity 
overcame her natural openness. The more she wanted to hear about him, the 
less likely she was to speak. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, Margaret, it was so windy last night! It 
came howling down the chimney in our room! I could not sleep. I never can 
when there is such a terrible wind. I got into a wakeful habit when poor 
Frederick was at sea; and now, even if I don't waken all at once, I dream of 
him in some stormy sea, with great, clear, glass-green walls of waves on 
either side his ship, but far higher than her very masts, curling over her 
with that cruel, terrible white foam, like some gigantic crested serpent. It 
is an old dream, but it always comes back on windy nights, till I am thankful 
to waken, sitting straight and stiff up in bed with my terror. Poor 
Frederick! He is on land now, so wind can do him no harm. Though I did think 
it might shake down some of those tall chimneys.' 
</p>
               <p>'Where is Frederick now, 
mamma? Our letters are directed to the care of Messrs. Barbour, at Cadiz, I 
know; but where is he himself?' 
</p>
               <p>'I can't remember the name of the place, 
but he is not called Hale; you must remember that, Margaret. Notice the F. D. 
in every corner of the letters. He has taken the name of Dickenson. I wanted 
him to have been called Beresford, to which he had a kind of right, but your 
father thought he had better not. He might be recognised, you know, if he 
were called by my name.' 
</p>
               <p>'Mamma,' said Margaret, 'I was at Aunt Shaw's when 
it all happened; and I suppose I was not old enough to be told plainly about 
it. But I should like to know now, if I may—if it does not give you too much 
pain to speak about it.' 
</p>
               <p>'Pain! No,' replied Mrs. Hale, her cheek flushing. 
'Yet it is pain to think that perhaps I may never see my darling boy again. 
Or else he did right, Margaret. They may say what they like, but I have his 
own letters to show, and I'll believe him, though he is my son, sooner than 
any court-martial on earth. Go to my little japan cabinet, dear, and in the 
second left-hand drawer you will find a packet of letters.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret went. 
There were the yellow, sea-stained letters, with the peculiar fragrance which 
ocean letters have: Margaret carried them back to her mother, who untied the 
silken string with trembling fingers, and, examining their dates, she gave 
them to Margaret to read, making her hurried, anxious remarks on their 
contents, almost before her daughter could have understood what they 
were. 
</p>
               <p>'You see, Margaret, how from the very first he disliked Captain Reid. 
He was second lieutenant in the ship—the Orion—in which Frederick sailed 
the very first time. Poor little fellow, how well he looked in his 
midshipman's dress, with his dirk in his hand, cutting open all the 
newspapers with it as if it were a paper-knife! But this Mr. Reid, as he was 
then, seemed to take a dislike to Frederick from the very beginning. And 
then—stay! these are the letters he wrote on board the Russell. When he was 
appointed to her, and found his old enemy Captain Reid in command, he did 
mean to bear all his tyranny patiently. Look! this is the letter. Just read 
it, Margaret. Where is it he says—Stop—'my father may rely upon me, that I 
will bear with all proper patience everything that one officer and gentleman 
can take from another. But from my former knowledge of my present captain, I 
confess I look forward with apprehension to a long course of tyranny on board 
the Russell.' You see, he promises to bear patiently, and I am sure he did, 
for he was the sweetest-tempered boy, when he was not vexed, that could 
possibly be. Is that the letter in which he speaks of Captain Reid's 
impatience with the men, for not going through the ship's manoeuvres as 
quickly as the Avenger? You see, he says that they had many new hands on 
board the Russell, while the Avenger had been nearly three years on the 
station, with nothing to do but to keep slavers off, and work her men, till 
they ran up and down the rigging like rats or monkeys.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret slowly 
read the letter, half illegible through the fading of the ink. It might 
be—it probably was—a statement of Captain Reid's imperiousness in trifles, 
very much exaggerated by the narrator, who had written it while fresh and 
warm from the scene of altercation. Some sailors being aloft in the 
main-topsail rigging, the captain had ordered them to race down, threatening 
the hindmost with the cat-of-nine-tails. He who was the farthest on the spar, 
feeling the impossibility of passing his companions, and yet passionately 
dreading the disgrace of the flogging, threw himself desperately down to 
catch a rope considerably lower, failed, and fell senseless on deck. He only 
survived for a few hours afterwards, and the indignation of the ship's crew 
was at boiling point when young Hale wrote. 
</p>
               <p>'But we did not receive this 
letter till long, long after we heard of the mutiny. Poor Fred! I dare say it 
was a comfort to him to write it even though he could not have known how to 
send it, poor fellow! And then we saw a report in the papers—that's to say, 
long before Fred's letter reached us—of an atrocious mutiny having broken 
out on board the Russell, and that the mutineers had remained in possession 
of the ship, which had gone off, it was supposed, to be a pirate; and that 
Captain Reid was sent adrift in a boat with some men—officers or 
something—whose names were all given, for they were picked up by a 
West-Indian steamer. Oh, Margaret! how your father and I turned sick over 
that list, when there was no name of Frederick Hale. We thought it must be 
some mistake; for poor Fred was such a fine fellow, only perhaps rather too 
passionate; and we hoped that the name of Carr, which was in the list, was a 
misprint for that of Hale—newspapers are so careless. And towards post-time 
the next day, papa set off to walk to Southampton to get the papers; and I 
could not stop at home, so I went to meet him. He was very late—much later 
than I thought he would have been; and I sat down under the hedge to wait for 
him. He came at last, his arms hanging loose down, his head sunk, and walking 
heavily along, as if every step was a labour and a trouble. Margaret, I see 
him now.' 
</p>
               <p>'Don't go on, mamma. I can understand it all,' said Margaret, 
leaning up caressingly against her mother's side, and kissing her 
hand. 
</p>
               <p>'No, you can't, Margaret. No one can who did not see him then. I 
could hardly lift myself up to go and meet him—everything seemed so to reel 
around me all at once. And when I got to him, he did not speak, or seem 
surprised to see me there, more than three miles from home, beside the Oldham 
beech-tree; but he put my arm in his, and kept stroking my hand, as if he 
wanted to soothe me to be very quiet under some great heavy blow; and when I 
trembled so all over that I could not speak, he took me in his arms, and 
stooped down his head on mine, and began to shake and to cry in a strange 
muffled, groaning voice, till I, for very fright, stood quite still, and only 
begged him to tell me what he had heard. And then, with his hand jerking, as 
if some one else moved it against his will, he gave me a wicked newspaper to 
read, calling our Frederick a “traitor of the blackest dye,” “a base, 
ungrateful disgrace to his profession.” Oh! I cannot tell what bad words they 
did not use. I took the paper in my hands as soon as I had read it—I tore it 
up to little bits—I tore it—oh! I believe Margaret, I tore it with my 
teeth. I did not cry. I could not. My cheeks were as hot as fire, and my very 
eyes burnt in my head. I saw your father looking grave at me. I said it was a 
lie, and so it was. Months after, this letter came, and you see what 
provocation Frederick had. It was not for himself, or his own injuries, he 
rebelled; but he would speak his mind to Captain Reid, and so it went on from 
bad to worse; and you see, most of the sailors stuck by Frederick. 
</p>
               <p>'I 
think, Margaret,' she continued, after a pause, in a weak, trembling, 
exhausted voice, 'I am glad of it—I am prouder of Frederick standing up 
against injustice, than if he had been simply a good officer.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am sure I 
am,' said Margaret, in a firm, decided tone. 'Loyalty and obedience to wisdom 
and justice are fine; but it is still finer to defy arbitrary power, unjustly 
and cruelly used-not on behalf of ourselves, but on behalf of others more 
helpless.' 
</p>
               <p>'For all that, I wish I could see Frederick once more—just 
once. He was my first baby, Margaret.' Mrs. Hale spoke wistfully, and almost 
as if apologising for the yearning, craving wish, as though it were a 
depreciation of her remaining child. But such an idea never crossed 
Margaret's mind. She was thinking how her mother's desire could be 
fulfilled. 
</p>
               <p>'It is six or seven years ago—would they still prosecute him, 
mother? If he came and stood his trial, what would be the punishment? Surely, 
he might bring evidence of his great provocation.' 
</p>
               <p>'It would do no good,' 
replied Mrs. Hale. 'Some of the sailors who accompanied Frederick were taken, 
and there was a court-martial held on them on board the Amicia; I believed 
all they said in their defence, poor fellows, because it just agreed with 
Frederick's story—but it was of no use,—' and for the first time during the 
conversation Mrs. Hale began to cry; yet something possessed Margaret to 
force the information she foresaw, yet dreaded, from her mother. 
</p>
               <p>'What 
happened to them, mamma?' asked she. 
</p>
               <p>'They were hung at the yard-arm,' said 
Mrs. Hale, solemnly. 'And the worst was that the court, in condemning them to 
death, said they had suffered themselves to be led astray from their duty by 
their superior officers.' 
</p>
               <p>They were silent for a long time. 
</p>
               <p>'And 
Frederick was in South America for several years, was he not?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes. And 
now he is in Spain. At Cadiz, or somewhere near it. If he comes to England he 
will be hung. I shall never see his face again—for if he comes to England he 
will be hung.' 
</p>
               <p>There was no comfort to be given. Mrs. Hale turned her face 
to the wall, and lay perfectly still in her mother's despair. Nothing could 
be said to console her. She took her hand out of Margaret's with a little 
impatient movement, as if she would fain be left alone with the recollection 
of her son. When Mr. Hale came in, Margaret went out, oppressed with gloom, 
and seeing no promise of brightness on any side of the horizon. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.15" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XV</head>
               <head>MASTERS AND MEN</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Thought fights with thought; out springs a spark of truth </l>
                  <l>From the collision of the sword and shield.' </l>
                  <l>W. S. LANDOR. </l>
               </q>
               <p>'Margaret,' said her father, the next day, 'we must return Mrs. Thornton's 
call. Your mother is not very well, and thinks she cannot walk so far; but 
you and I will go this afternoon.' 
</p>
               <p>As they went, Mr. Hale began about his 
wife's health, with a kind of veiled anxiety, which Margaret was glad to see 
awakened at last. 
</p>
               <p>'Did you consult the doctor, Margaret? Did you send for 
him?' 
</p>
               <p>'No, papa, you spoke of his corning to see me. Now I was well. But if 
I only knew of some good doctor, I would go this afternoon, and ask him to 
come, for I am sure mamma is seriously indisposed.' 
</p>
               <p>She put the truth thus 
plainly and strongly because her father had so completely shut his mind 
against the idea, when she had last named her fears. But now the case was 
changed. He answered in a despondent tone: 
</p>
               <p>'Do you think she has any hidden 
complaint? Do you think she is really very ill? Has Dixon said anything? Oh, 
Margaret! I am haunted by the fear that our coming to Milton has killed her. 
My poor Maria!' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, papa! don't imagine such things,' said Margaret, 
shocked. 'She is not well, that is all. Many a one is not well for a time; 
and with good advice gets better and stronger than ever.' 
</p>
               <p>'But has Dixon 
said anything about her?' 
</p>
               <p>'No! You know Dixon enjoys making a mystery out 
of trifles; and she has been a little mysterious about mamma's health, which 
has alarmed me rather, that is all. Without any reason, I dare say. You know, 
papa, you said the other day I was getting fanciful.' 
</p>
               <p>'I hope and trust you 
are. But don't think of what I said then. I like you to be fanciful about 
your mother's health. Don't be afraid of telling me your fancies. I like to 
hear them, though, I dare say, I spoke as if I was annoyed. But we will ask 
Mrs. Thornton if she can tell us of a good doctor. We won't throw away our 
money on any but some one first-rate. Stay, we turn up this street.' 
</p>
               <p>The 
street did not look as if it could contain any house large enough for Mrs. 
Thornton's habitation. Her son's presence never gave any impression as to the 
kind of house he lived in; but, unconsciously, Margaret had imagined that 
tall, massive, handsomely dressed Mrs. Thornton must live in a house of the 
same character as herself.  Now Marlborough Street consisted of long rows of 
small houses, with a blank wall here and there; at least that was all they 
could see from the point at which they entered it. 
</p>
               <p>'He told me he lived in 
Marlborough Street, I'm sure,' said Mr. Hale, with a much perplexed 
air. 
</p>
               <p>'Perhaps it is one of the economies he still practises, to live in a 
very small house. But here are plenty of people about; let me ask.' 
</p>
               <p>She 
accordingly inquired of a passer-by, and was informed that Mr. Thornton lived 
close to the mill, and had the factory lodge-door pointed out to her, at the 
end of the long dead wall they had noticed. 
</p>
               <p>The lodge-door was like a 
common garden-door; on one side of it were great closed gates for the ingress 
and egress of lurries and wagons. The lodge-keeper admitted them into a great 
oblong yard, on one side of which were offices for the transaction of 
business; on the opposite, an immense many-windowed mill, whence proceeded 
the continual clank of machinery and the long groaning roar of the 
steam-engine, enough to deafen those who lived within the enclosure. Opposite 
to the wall, along which the street ran, on one of the narrow sides of the 
oblong, was a handsome stone-coped house,—blackened, to be sure, by the 
smoke, but with paint, windows, and steps kept scrupulously clean. It was 
evidently a house which had been built some fifty or sixty years. The stone 
facings—the long, narrow windows, and the number of them—the flights of 
steps up to the front door, ascending from either side, and guarded by 
railing—all witnessed to its age. Margaret only wondered why people who 
could afford to live in so good a house, and keep it in such perfect order, 
did not prefer a much smaller dwelling in the country, or even some suburb; 
not in the continual whirl and din of the factory. Her unaccustomed ears 
could hardly catch her father's voice, as they stood on the steps awaiting 
the opening of the door. The yard, too, with the great doors in the dead wall 
as a boundary, was but a dismal look-out for the sitting-rooms of the 
house—as Margaret found when they had mounted the old-fashioned stairs, and 
been ushered into the drawing-room, the three windows of which went over the 
front door and the room on the right-hand side of the entrance. There was no 
one in the drawing-room. It seemed as though no one had been in it since the 
day when the furniture was bagged up with as much care as if the house was to 
be overwhelmed with lava, and discovered a thousand years hence. The walls 
were pink and gold; the pattern on the carpet represented bunches of flowers 
on a light ground, but it was carefully covered up in the centre by a linen 
drugget, glazed and colourless. The window-curtains were lace; each chair and 
sofa had its own particular veil of netting, or knitting. Great alabaster 
groups occupied every flat surface, safe from dust under their glass shades. 
In the middle of the room, right under the bagged-up chandelier, was a large 
circular table, with smartly-bound books arranged at regular intervals round 
the circumference of its polished surface, like gaily-coloured spokes of a 
wheel. Everything reflected light, nothing absorbed it. The whole room had a 
painfully spotted, spangled, speckled look about it, which impressed Margaret 
so unpleasantly that she was hardly conscious of the peculiar cleanliness 
required to keep everything so white and pure in such an atmosphere, or of 
the trouble that must be willingly expended to secure that effect of icy, 
snowy discomfort. Wherever she looked there was evidence of care and labour, 
but not care and labour to procure ease, to help on habits of tranquil home 
employment; solely to ornament, and then to preserve ornament from dirt or 
destruction. 
</p>
               <p>They had leisure to observe, and to speak to each other in low 
voices, before Mrs. Thornton appeared. They were talking of what all the 
world might hear; but it is a common effect of such a room as this to make 
people speak low, as if unwilling to awaken the unused echoes. 
</p>
               <p>At last Mrs. 
Thornton came in, rustling in handsome black silk, as was her wont; her 
muslins and laces rivalling, not excelling, the pure whiteness of the muslins 
and netting of the room. Margaret explained how it was that her mother could 
not accompany them to return Mrs. Thornton's call; but in her anxiety not to 
bring back her father's fears too vividly, she gave but a bungling account, 
and left the impression on Mrs. Thornton's mind that Mrs. Hale's was some 
temporary or fanciful fine-ladyish indisposition, which might have been put 
aside had there been a strong enough motive; or that if it was too severe to 
allow her to come out that day, the call might have been deferred. 
Remembering, too, the horses to her carriage, hired for her own visit to the 
Hales, and how Fanny had been ordered to go by Mr. Thornton, in order to pay 
every respect to them, Mrs. Thornton drew up slightly offended, and gave 
Margaret no sympathy—indeed, hardly any credit for the statement of her 
mother's indisposition. 
</p>
               <p>'How is Mr. Thornton?' asked Mr. Hale. 'I was 
afraid he was not well, from his hurried note yesterday.' 
</p>
               <p>'My son is rarely 
ill; and when he is, he never speaks about it, or makes it an excuse for not 
doing anything. He told me he could not get leisure to read with you last 
night, sir. He regretted it, I am sure; he values the hours spent with 
you.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am sure they are equally agreeable to me,' said Mr. Hale. 'It 
makes me feel young again to see his enjoyment and appreciation of all that 
is fine in classical literature.' 
</p>
               <p>'I have no doubt the classics are very 
desirable for people who have leisure. But, I confess, it was against my 
judgment that my son renewed his study of them. The time and place in which 
he lives, seem to me to require all his energy and attention. Classics may do 
very well for men who loiter away their lives in the country or in colleges; 
but Milton men ought to have their thoughts and powers absorbed in the work 
of to-day. At least, that is my opinion.' This last clause she gave out with 
'the pride that apes humility.' 
</p>
               <p>'But, surely, if the mind is too long 
directed to one object only, it will get stiff and rigid, and unable to take 
in many interests,' said Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'I do not quite understand what you mean 
by a mind getting stiff and rigid. Nor do I admire those whirligig characters 
that are full of this thing to-day, to be utterly forgetful of it in their 
new interest to-morrow. Having many interests does not suit the life of a 
Milton manufacturer. It is, or ought to be, enough for him to have one great 
desire, and to bring all the purposes of his life to bear on the fulfilment 
of that.' 
</p>
               <p>'And that is—?' asked Mr. Hale. 
</p>
               <p>Her sallow cheek flushed, and 
her eye lightened, as she answered: 
</p>
               <p>'To hold and maintain a high, 
honourable place among the merchants of his country—the men of his town. 
Such a place my son has earned for himself. Go where you will—I don't say in 
England only, but in Europe—the name of John Thornton of Milton is known and 
respected amongst all men of business. Of course, it is unknown in the 
fashionable circles,' she continued, scornfully. 'Idle gentlemen and ladies 
are not likely to know much of a Milton manufacturer, unless he gets into 
parliament, or marries a lord's daughter.' 
</p>
               <p>Both Mr. Hale and Margaret had 
an uneasy, ludicrous consciousness that they had never heard of this great 
name, until Mr. Bell had written them word that Mr. Thornton would be a good 
friend to have in Milton. The proud mother's world was not their world of 
Harley Street gentilities on the one hand, or country clergymen and Hampshire 
squires on the other. Margaret's face, in spite of all her endeavours to keep 
it simply listening in its expression told the sensitive Mrs. Thornton this 
feeling of hers. 
</p>
               <p>'You think you never heard of this wonderful son of mine, 
Miss Hale. You think I'm an old woman whose ideas are bounded by Milton, and 
whose own crow is the whitest ever seen.' 
</p>
               <p>'No,' said Margaret, with some 
spirit. 'It may be true, that I was thinking I had hardly heard Mr. 
Thornton's name before I came to Milton. But since I have come here, I have 
heard enough to make me respect and admire him, and to feel how much justice 
and truth there is in what you have said of him.' 
</p>
               <p>'Who spoke to you of 
him?' asked Mrs. Thornton, a little mollified, yet jealous lest any one 
else's words should not have done him full justice. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret hesitated 
before she replied. She did not like this authoritative questioning. Mr. Hale 
came in, as he thought, to the rescue. 
</p>
               <p>'It was what Mr. Thornton said 
himself, that made us know the kind of man he was. Was it not, 
Margaret?' 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Thornton drew herself up, and said— 
</p>
               <p>'My son is not the 
one to tell of his own doings. May I again ask you, Miss Hale, from whose 
account you formed your favourable opinion of him? A mother is curious and 
greedy of commendation of her children, you know.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret replied, 'It 
was as much from what Mr. Thornton withheld of that which we had been told of 
his previous life by Mr. Bell,—it was more that than what he said, that made 
us all feel what reason you have to be proud of him.' 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Bell! What can 
he know of John? He, living a lazy life in a drowsy college. But I'm obliged 
to you, Miss Hale. Many a missy young lady would have shrunk from giving an 
old woman the pleasure of hearing that her son was well spoken of.' 
</p>
               <p>'Why?' 
asked Margaret, looking straight at Mrs. Thornton, in bewilderment. 
</p>
               <p>'Why! 
because I suppose they might have consciences that told them how surely they 
were making the old mother into an advocate for them, in case they had any 
plans on the son's heart.' 
</p>
               <p>She smiled a grim smile, for she had been 
pleased by Margaret's frankness; and perhaps she felt that she had been 
asking questions too much as if she had a right to catechise. Margaret 
laughed outright at the notion presented to her; laughed so merrily that it 
grated on Mrs. Thornton's ear, as if the words that called forth that laugh, 
must have been utterly and entirely ludicrous. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret stopped her 
merriment as soon as she saw Mrs. Thornton's annoyed look. 
</p>
               <p>'I beg your 
pardon, madam. But I really am very much obliged to you for exonerating me 
from making any plans on Mr. Thornton's heart.' 
</p>
               <p>'Young ladies have, before 
now,' said Mrs. Thornton, stiffly. 
</p>
               <p>'I hope Miss Thornton is well,' put in 
Mr. Hale, desirous of changing the current of the conversation. 
</p>
               <p>'She is as 
well as she ever is. She is not strong,' replied Mrs. Thornton, 
shortly. 
</p>
               <p>'And Mr. Thornton? I suppose I may hope to see him on 
Thursday?' 
</p>
               <p>'I cannot answer for my son's engagements. There is some 
uncomfortable work going on in the town; a threatening of a strike. If so, 
his experience and judgment will make him much consulted by his friends. But 
I should think he could come on Thursday. At any rate, I am sure he will let 
you know if he cannot.' 
</p>
               <p>'A strike!' asked Margaret. 'What for? What are 
they going to strike for?' 
</p>
               <p>'For the mastership and ownership of other 
people's property,' said Mrs. Thornton, with a fierce snort. 'That is what 
they always strike for. If my son's work-people strike, I will only say they 
are a pack of ungrateful hounds. But I have no doubt they will.' 
</p>
               <p>'They are 
wanting higher wages, I suppose?' asked Mr. Hale. 
</p>
               <p>'That is the face of the 
thing. But the truth is, they want to be masters, and make the masters into 
slaves on their own ground. They are always trying at it; they always have it 
in their minds and every five or six years, there comes a struggle between 
masters and men. They'll find themselves mistaken this time, I fancy,—a 
little out of their reckoning. If they turn out, they mayn't find it so easy 
to go in again. I believe, the masters have a thing or two in their heads 
which will teach the men not to strike again in a hurry, if they try it this 
time.' 
</p>
               <p>'Does it not make the town very rough?' asked Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Of course 
it does. But surely you are not a coward, are you? Milton is not the place 
for cowards. I have known the time when I have had to thread my way through a 
crowd of white, angry men, all swearing they would have Makinson's blood as 
soon as he ventured to show his nose out of his factory; and he, knowing 
nothing of it, some one had to go and tell him, or he was a dead man, and it 
needed to be a woman,—so I went.  And when I had got in, I could not get 
out. It was as much as my life was worth. So I went up to the roof, where 
there were stones piled ready to drop on the heads of the crowd, if they 
tried to force the factory doors. And I would have lifted those heavy stones, 
and dropped them with as good an aim as the best man there, but that I 
fainted with the heat I had gone through. If you live in Milton, you must 
learn to have a brave heart, Miss Hale.' 
</p>
               <p>'I would do my best,' said 
Margaret rather pale. 'I do not know whether I am brave or not till I am 
tried; but I am afraid I should be a coward.' 
</p>
               <p>'South country people are 
often frightened by what our Darkshire men and women only call living and 
struggling. But when you've been ten years among a people who are always 
owing their betters a grudge, and only waiting for an opportunity to pay it 
off, you'll know whether you are a coward or not, take my word for it.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. 
Thornton came that evening to Mr. Hale's. He was shown up into the 
drawing-room, where Mr. Hale was reading aloud to his wife and daughter. 
</p>
               <p>'I 
am come partly to bring you a note from my mother, and partly to apologise 
for not keeping to my time yesterday. The note contains the address you asked 
for; Dr. Donaldson.' 
</p>
               <p>'Thank you!' said Margaret, hastily, holding out her 
hand to take the note, for she did not wish her mother to hear that they had 
been making any inquiry about a doctor. She was pleased that Mr. Thornton 
seemed immediately to understand her feeling; he gave her the note without 
another word of explanation. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale began to talk about the strike. Mr. 
Thornton's face assumed a likeness to his mother's worst expression, which 
immediately repelled the watching Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes; the fools will have a 
strike. Let them. It suits us well enough. But we gave them a chance. They 
think trade is flourishing as it was last year. We see the storm on the 
horizon and draw in our sails. But because we don't explain our reasons, they 
won't believe we're acting reasonably. We must give them line and letter for 
the way we choose to spend or save our money. Henderson tried a dodge with 
his men, out at Ashley, and failed. He rather wanted a strike; it would have 
suited his book well enough. So when the men came to ask for the five per 
cent. they are claiming, he told 'em he'd think about it, and give them his 
answer on the pay day; knowing all the while what his answer would be, of 
course, but thinking he'd strengthen their conceit of their own way. However, 
they were too deep for him, and heard something about the bad prospects of 
trade. So in they came on the Friday, and drew back their claim, and now he's 
obliged to go on working. But we Milton masters have to-day sent in our 
decision. We won't advance a penny. We tell them we may have to lower wages; 
but can't afford to raise. So here we stand, waiting for their next 
attack.' 
</p>
               <p>'And what will that be?' asked Mr. Hale. 
</p>
               <p>'I conjecture, a 
simultaneous strike. You will see Milton without smoke in a few days, I 
imagine, Miss Hale.' 
</p>
               <p>'But why,' asked she, 'could you not explain what good 
reason you have for expecting a bad trade? I don't know whether I use the 
right words, but you will understand what I mean.' 
</p>
               <p>'Do you give your 
servants reasons for your expenditure, or your economy in the use of your own 
money? We, the owners of capital, have a right to choose what we will do with 
it.' 
</p>
               <p>'A human right,' said Margaret, very low. 
</p>
               <p>'I beg your pardon, I did 
not hear what you said.' 
</p>
               <p>'I would rather not repeat it,' said she; 'it 
related to a feeling which I do not think you would share.' 
</p>
               <p>'Won't you try 
me?' pleaded he; his thoughts suddenly bent upon learning what she had said. 
She was displeased with his pertinacity, but did not choose to affix too much 
importance to her words. 
</p>
               <p>'I said you had a human right. I meant that there 
seemed no reason but religious ones, why you should not do what you like with 
your own. 
</p>
               <p>'I know we differ in our religious opinions; but don't you give 
me credit for having some, though not the same as yours?' 
</p>
               <p>He was speaking 
in a subdued voice, as if to her alone. She did not wish to be so exclusively 
addressed. She replied out in her usual tone: 
</p>
               <p>'I do not think that I have 
any occasion to consider your special religious opinions in the affair. All I 
meant to say is, that there is no human law to prevent the employers from 
utterly wasting or throwing away all their money, if they choose; but that 
there are passages in the Bible which would rather imply—to me at 
least—that they neglected their duty as stewards if they did so. However I 
know so little about strikes, and rate of wages, and capital, and labour, 
that I had better not talk to a political economist like you.' 
</p>
               <p>'Nay, the 
more reason,' said he, eagerly. 'I shall only be too glad to explain to you 
all that may seem anomalous or mysterious to a stranger; especially at a time 
like this, when our doings are sure to be canvassed by every scribbler who 
can hold a pen.' 
</p>
               <p>'Thank you,' she answered, coldly. 'Of course, I shall 
apply to my father in the first instance for any information he can give me, 
if I get puzzled with living here amongst this strange society.' 
</p>
               <p>'You think 
it strange. Why?' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't know—I suppose because, on the very face of it, 
I see two classes dependent on each other in every possible way, yet each 
evidently regarding the interests of the other as opposed to their own; I 
never lived in a place before where there were two sets of people always 
running each other down.' 
</p>
               <p>'Who have you heard running the masters down? I 
don't ask who you have heard abusing the men; for I see you persist in 
misunderstanding what I said the other day. But who have you heard abusing 
the masters?' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret reddened; then smiled as she said, 
</p>
               <p>'I am not fond 
of being catechised. I refuse to answer your question. Besides, it has 
nothing to do with the fact. You must take my word for it, that I have heard 
some people, or, it may be, only someone of the workpeople, speak as though 
it were the interest of the employers to keep them from acquiring money—that 
it would make them too independent if they had a sum in the savings' 
bank.' 
</p>
               <p>'I dare say it was that man Higgins who told you all this,' said Mrs 
Hale. Mr. Thornton did not appear to hear what Margaret evidently did not 
wish him to know. But he caught it, nevertheless. 
</p>
               <p>'I heard, moreover, that 
it was considered to the advantage of the masters to have ignorant 
workmen—not hedge-lawyers, as Captain Lennox used to call those men in his 
company who questioned and would know the reason for every order.' 
</p>
               <p>This 
latter part of her sentence she addressed rather to her father than to Mr. 
Thornton. Who is Captain Lennox? asked Mr. Thornton of himself, with a 
strange kind of displeasure, that prevented him for the moment from replying 
to her! Her father took up the conversation. 
</p>
               <p>'You never were fond of 
schools, Margaret, or you would have seen and known before this, how much is 
being done for education in Milton.' 
</p>
               <p>'No!' said she, with sudden meekness. 
'I know I do not care enough about schools. But the knowledge and the 
ignorance of which I was speaking, did not relate to reading and 
writing,—the teaching or information one can give to a child. I am sure, 
that what was meant was ignorance of the wisdom that shall guide men and 
women. I hardly know what that is. But he—that is, my informant—spoke as if 
the masters would like their hands to be merely tall, large children—living 
in the present moment—with a blind unreasoning kind of obedience.' 
</p>
               <p>'In 
short, Miss Hale, it is very evident that your informant found a pretty ready 
listener to all the slander he chose to utter against the masters,' said Mr. 
Thornton, in an offended tone. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret did not reply. She was displeased 
at the personal character Mr. Thornton affixed to what she had said. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. 
Hale spoke next: 
</p>
               <p>'I must confess that, although I have not become so 
intimately acquainted with any workmen as Margaret has, I am very much struck 
by the antagonism between the employer and the employed, on the very surface 
of things. I even gather this impression from what you yourself have from 
time to time said.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton paused awhile before he spoke. Margaret 
had just left the room, and he was vexed at the state of feeling between 
himself and her. However, the little annoyance, by making him cooler and more 
thoughtful, gave a greater dignity to what he said: 
</p>
               <p>'My theory is, that my 
interests are identical with those of my workpeople and vice-versa. Miss 
Hale, I know, does not like to hear men called 'hands,' so I won't use that 
word, though it comes most readily to my lips as the technical term, whose 
origin, whatever it was, dates before my time. On some future day—in some 
millennium—in Utopia, this unity may be brought into practice—just as I can 
fancy a republic the most perfect form of government.' 
</p>
               <p>'We will read 
Plato's Republic as soon as we have finished Homer.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, in the Platonic 
year, it may fall out that we are all—men women, and children—fit for a 
republic: but give me a constitutional monarchy in our present state of 
morals and intelligence. In our infancy we require a wise despotism to govern 
us. Indeed, long past infancy, children and young people are the happiest 
under the unfailing laws of a discreet, firm authority. I agree with Miss 
Hale so far as to consider our people in the condition of children, while I 
deny that we, the masters, have anything to do with the making or keeping 
them so. I maintain that despotism is the best kind of government for them; 
so that in the hours in which I come in contact with them I must necessarily 
be an autocrat. I will use my best discretion—from no humbug or 
philanthropic feeling, of which we have had rather too much in the North—to 
make wise laws and come to just decisions in the conduct of my business—laws 
and decisions which work for my own good in the first instance—for theirs in 
the second; but I will neither be forced to give my reasons, nor flinch from 
what I have once declared to be my resolution. Let them turn out! I shall 
suffer as well as they: but at the end they will find I have not bated nor 
altered one jot.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret had re-entered the room and was sitting at her 
work; but she did not speak. Mr. Hale answered— 
</p>
               <p>'I dare say I am talking 
in great ignorance; but from the little I know, I should say that the masses 
were already passing rapidly into the troublesome stage which intervenes 
between childhood and manhood, in the life of the multitude as well as that 
of the individual. Now, the error which many parents commit in the treatment 
of the individual at this time is, insisting on the same unreasoning 
obedience as when all he had to do in the way of duty was, to obey the simple 
laws of “Come when you're called and “Do as you're bid!” But a wise parent 
humours the desire for independent action, so as to become the friend and 
adviser when his absolute rule shall cease. If I get wrong in my reasoning, 
recollect, it is you who adopted the analogy.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very lately,' said 
Margaret, 'I heard a story of what happened in Nuremberg only three or four 
years ago. A rich man there lived alone in one of the immense mansions which 
were formerly both dwellings and warehouses. It was reported that he had a 
child, but no one knew of it for certain. For forty years this rumour kept 
rising and falling—never utterly dying away. After his death it was found to 
be true. He had a son—an overgrown man with the unexercised intellect of a 
child, whom he had kept up in that strange way, in order to save him from 
temptation and error. But, of course, when this great old child was turned 
loose into the world, every bad counsellor had power over him. He did not 
know good from evil. His father had made the blunder of bringing him up in 
ignorance and taking it for innocence; and after fourteen months of riotous 
living, the city authorities had to take charge of him, in order to save him 
from starvation. He could not even use words effectively enough to be a 
successful beggar.' 
</p>
               <p>'I used the comparison (suggested by Miss Hale) of the 
position of the master to that of a parent; so I ought not to complain of 
your turning the simile into a weapon against me. But, Mr. Hale, when you 
were setting up a wise parent as a model for us, you said he humoured his 
children in their desire for independent action. Now certainly, the time is 
not come for the hands to have any independent action during business hours; 
I hardly know what you would mean by it then. And I say, that the masters 
would be trenching on the independence of their hands, in a way that I, for 
one, should not feel justified in doing, if we interfered too much with the 
life they lead out of the mills. Because they labour ten hours a-day for us, 
I do not see that we have any right to impose leading-strings upon them for 
the rest of their time. I value my own independence so highly that I can 
fancy no degradation greater than that of having another man perpetually 
directing and advising and lecturing me, or even planning too closely in any 
way about my actions. He might be the wisest of men, or the most powerful—I 
should equally rebel and resent his interference I imagine this is a stronger 
feeling in the North of England that in the South.' 
</p>
               <p>'I beg your pardon, but 
is not that because there has been none of the equality of friendship between 
the adviser and advised classes? Because every man has had to stand in an 
unchristian and isolated position, apart from and jealous of his brother-man: 
constantly afraid of his rights being trenched upon?' 
</p>
               <p>'I only state the 
fact. I am sorry to say, I have an appointment at eight o'clock, and I must 
just take facts as I find them to-night, without trying to account for them; 
which, indeed, would make no difference in determining how to act as things 
stand—the facts must be granted.' 
</p>
               <p>'But,' said Margaret in a low voice, 'it 
seems to me that it makes all the difference in the world—.' Her father made 
a sign to her to be silent, and allow Mr. Thornton to finish what he had to 
say. He was already standing up and preparing to go. 
</p>
               <p>'You must grant me 
this one point. Given a strong feeling of independence in every Darkshire 
man, have I any right to obtrude my views, of the manner in which he shall 
act, upon another (hating it as I should do most vehemently myself), merely 
because he has labour to sell and I capital to buy?' 
</p>
               <p>'Not in the least,' 
said Margaret, determined just to say this one thing; 'not in the least 
because of your labour and capital positions, whatever they are, but because 
you are a man, dealing with a set of men over whom you have, whether you 
reject the use of it or not, immense power, just because your lives and your 
welfare are so constantly and intimately interwoven. God has made us so that 
we must be mutually dependent. We may ignore our own dependence, or refuse to 
acknowledge that others depend upon us in more respects than the payment of 
weekly wages; but the thing must be, nevertheless. Neither you nor any other 
master can help yourselves. The most proudly independent man depends on those 
around him for their insensible influence on his character—his life. And the 
most isolated of all your Darkshire Egos has dependants clinging to him on 
all sides; he cannot shake them off, any more than the great rock he 
resembles can shake off—' 
</p>
               <p>'Pray don't go into similes, Margaret; you have 
led us off once already,' said her father, smiling, yet uneasy at the thought 
that they were detaining Mr. Thornton against his will, which was a mistake; 
for he rather liked it, as long as Margaret would talk, although what she 
said only irritated him. 
</p>
               <p>'Just tell me, Miss Hale, are you yourself ever 
influenced—no, that is not a fair way of putting it;—but if you are ever 
conscious of being influenced by others, and not by circumstances, have those 
others been working directly or indirectly? Have they been labouring to 
exhort, to enjoin, to act rightly for the sake of example, or have they been 
simple, true men, taking up their duty, and doing it unflinchingly, without a 
thought of how their actions were to make this man industrious, that man 
saving? Why, if I were a workman, I should be twenty times more impressed by 
the knowledge that my master, was honest, punctual, quick, resolute in all 
his doings (and hands are keener spies even than valets), than by any amount 
of interference, however kindly meant, with my ways of going on out of 
work-hours. I do not choose to think too closely on what I am myself; but, I 
believe, I rely on the straightforward honesty of my hands, and the open 
nature of their opposition, in contra-distinction to the way in which the 
turnout will be managed in some mills, just because they know I scorn to take 
a single dishonourable advantage, or do an underhand thing myself It goes 
farther than a whole course of lectures on “Honesty is the Best Policy”—life 
diluted into words. No, no! What the master is, that will the men be, without 
over-much taking thought on his part.' 
</p>
               <p>'That is a great admission,' said 
Margaret, laughing. 'When I see men violent and obstinate in pursuit of their 
rights, I may safely infer that the master is the same that he is a little 
ignorant of that spirit which suffereth long, and is kind, and seeketh not 
her own.' 
</p>
               <p>'You are just like all strangers who don't understand the working 
of our system, Miss Hale,' said he, hastily. 'You suppose that our men are 
puppets of dough, ready to be moulded into any amiable form we please. You 
forget we have only to do with them for less than a third of their lives; and 
you seem not to perceive that the duties of a manufacturer are far larger and 
wider than those merely of an employer of labour: we have a wide commercial 
character to maintain, which makes us into the great pioneers of 
civilisation.' 
</p>
               <p>'It strikes me,' said Mr. Hale, smiling, 'that you might 
pioneer a little at home. They are a rough, heathenish set of fellows, these 
Milton men of yours.' 
</p>
               <p>'They are that,' replied Mr. Thornton. 'Rosewater 
surgery won't do for them. Cromwell would have made a capital mill-owner, 
Miss Hale. I wish we had him to put down this strike for us.' 
</p>
               <p>'Cromwell is 
no hero of mine,' said she, coldly. 'But I am trying to reconcile your 
admiration of despotism with your respect for other men's independence of 
character.' 
</p>
               <p>He reddened at her tone. 'I choose to be the unquestioned and 
irresponsible master of my hands, during the hours that they labour for me. 
But those hours past, our relation ceases; and then comes in the same respect 
for their independence that I myself exact.' 
</p>
               <p>He did not speak again for a 
minute, he was too much vexed. But he shook it off, and bade Mr. and Mrs. 
Hale good night. Then, drawing near to Margaret, he said in a lower 
voice— 
</p>
               <p>'I spoke hastily to you once this evening, and I am afraid, rather 
rudely. But you know I am but an uncouth Milton manufacturer; will you 
forgive me?' 
</p>
               <p>'Certainly,' said she, smiling up in his face, the expression 
of which was somewhat anxious and oppressed, and hardly cleared away as he 
met her sweet sunny countenance, out of which all the north-wind effect of 
their discussion had entirely vanished. But she did not put out her hand to 
him, and again he felt the omission, and set it down to pride. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.16" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XVI</head>
               <head>THE SHADOW OF DEATH</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Trust in that veiled hand, which leads </l>
                  <l>None by the path that he would go; </l>
                  <l>And always be for change prepared, </l>
                  <l>For the world's law is ebb and flow.' </l>
                  <l>FROM THE ARABIC. </l>
               </q>
               <p>The next afternoon Dr. Donaldson came to pay his first visit to Mrs. Hale. 
The mystery that Margaret hoped their late habits of intimacy had broken 
through, was resumed. She was excluded from the room, while Dixon was 
admitted. Margaret was not a ready lover, but where she loved she loved 
passionately, and with no small degree of jealousy. 
</p>
               <p>She went into her 
mother's bed-room, lust behind the drawing-room, and paced it up and down, 
while awaiting the doctor's coming out. Every now and then she stopped to 
listen; she fancied she heard a moan. She clenched her hands tight, and held 
her breath. She was sure she heard a moan. Then all was still for a few 
minutes more; and then there was the moving of chairs, the raised voices, all 
the little disturbances of leave-taking. 
</p>
               <p>When she heard the door open, she 
went quickly out of the bed-room. 
</p>
               <p>'My father is from home, Dr. Donaldson; 
he has to attend a pupil at this hour. May I trouble you to come into his 
room down stairs?' 
</p>
               <p>She saw, and triumphed over all the obstacles which 
Dixon threw in her way; assuming her rightful position as daughter of the 
house in something of the spirit of the Elder Brother, which quelled the old 
servant's officiousness very effectually. Margaret's conscious assumption of 
this unusual dignity of demeanour towards Dixon, gave her an instant's 
amusement in the midst of her anxiety. She knew, from the surprised 
expression on Dixon's face, how ridiculously grand she herself must be 
looking; and the idea carried her down stairs into the room; it gave her that 
length of oblivion from the keen sharpness of the recollection of the actual 
business in hand. Now, that came back, and seemed to take away her breath. It 
was a moment or two before she could utter a word. 
</p>
               <p>But she spoke with an 
air of command, as she asked:—' 
</p>
               <p>'What is the matter with mamma? You will 
oblige me by telling the simple truth.' Then, seeing a slight hesitation on 
the doctor's part, she added— 
</p>
               <p>'I am the only child she has—here, I mean. 
My father is not sufficiently alarmed, I fear; and, therefore, if there is 
any serious apprehension, it must be broken to him gently. I can do this. I 
can nurse my mother. Pray, speak, sir; to see your face, and not be able to 
read it, gives me a worse dread than I trust any words of yours will 
justify.' 
</p>
               <p>'My dear young lady, your mother seems to have a most attentive 
and efficient servant, who is more like her friend—' 
</p>
               <p>'I am her daughter, 
sir.' 
</p>
               <p>'But when I tell you she expressly desired that you might not be 
told—' 
</p>
               <p>'I am not good or patient enough to submit to the prohibition. 
Besides, I am sure you are too wise—too experienced to have promised to keep 
the secret.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well,' said he, half-smiling, though sadly enough, 'there you 
are right. I did not promise. In fact, I fear, the secret will be known soon 
enough without my revealing it.' 
</p>
               <p>He paused. Margaret went very white, and 
compressed her lips a little more. Otherwise not a feature moved. With the 
quick insight into character, without which no medical man can rise to the 
eminence of Dr. Donaldson, he saw that she would exact the full truth; that 
she would know if one iota was withheld; and that the withholding would be 
torture more acute than the knowledge of it. He spoke two short sentences in 
a low voice, watching her all the time; for the pupils of her eyes dilated 
into a black horror and the whiteness of her complexion became livid. He 
ceased speaking. He waited for that look to go off,—for her gasping breath 
to come. Then she said:— 
</p>
               <p>'I thank you most truly, sir, for your 
confidence. That dread has haunted me for many weeks. It is a true, real 
agony. My poor, poor mother!' her lips began to quiver, and he let her have 
the relief of tears, sure of her power of self-control to check them. 
</p>
               <p>A few 
tears—those were all she shed, before she recollected the many questions she 
longed to ask. 
</p>
               <p>'Will there be much suffering?' 
</p>
               <p>He shook his head. 'That 
we cannot tell. It depends on constitution; on a thousand things. But the 
late discoveries of medical science have given us large power of 
alleviation.' 
</p>
               <p>'My father!' said Margaret, trembling all over. 
</p>
               <p>'I do not 
know Mr. Hale. I mean, it is difficult to give advice. But I should say, bear 
on, with the knowledge you have forced me to give you so abruptly, till the 
fact which I could not with-hold has become in some degree familiar to you, 
so that you may, without too great an effort, be able to give what comfort 
you can to your father. Before then,—my visits, which, of course, I shall 
repeat from time to time, although I fear I can do nothing but alleviate,—a 
thousand little circumstances will have occurred to awaken his alarm, to 
deepen it—so that he will be all the better prepared.—Nay, my dear young 
lady—nay, my dear—I saw Mr. Thornton, and I honour your father for the 
sacrifice he has made, however mistaken I may believe him to be. —Well, this 
once, if it will please you, my dear. Only remember, when I come again, I 
come as a friend. And you must learn to look upon me as such, because seeing 
each other—getting to know each other at such times as these, is worth years 
of morning calls.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret could not speak for crying: but she wrung his 
hand at parting. 
</p>
               <p>'That's what I call a fine girl!' thought Dr. Donaldson, 
when he was seated in his carriage, and had time to examine his ringed hand, 
which had slightly suffered from her pressure. 'Who would have thought that 
little hand could have given such a squeeze? But the bones were well put 
together, and that gives immense power. What a queen she is! With her head 
thrown back at first, to force me into speaking the truth; and then bent so 
eagerly forward to listen. Poor thing! I must see she does not overstrain 
herself. Though it's astonishing how much those thorough-bred creatures can 
do and suffer. That girl's game to the back-bone. Another, who had gone that 
deadly colour, could never have come round without either fainting or 
hysterics. But she wouldn't do either—not she! And the very force of her 
will brought her round. Such a girl as that would win my heart, if I were 
thirty years younger. It's too late now. Ah! here we are at the Archers'.' So 
out he jumped, with thought, wisdom, experience, sympathy, and ready to 
attend to the calls made upon them by this family, just as if there were none 
other in the world. 
</p>
               <p>Meanwhile, Margaret had returned into her father's 
study for a moment, to recover strength before going upstairs into her 
mother's presence. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, my God, my God! but this is terrible. How shall I 
bear it? Such a deadly disease! no hope! Oh, mamma, mamma, I wish I had never 
gone to aunt Shaw's, and been all those precious years away from you! Poor 
mamma! how much she must have borne! Oh, I pray thee, my God, that her 
sufferings may not be too acute, too dreadful. How shall I bear to see them? 
How can I bear papa's agony? He must not be told yet; not all at once. It 
would kill him. But I won't lose another moment of my own dear, precious 
mother.' 
</p>
               <p>She ran upstairs. Dixon was not in the room. Mrs. Hale lay back in 
an easy chair, with a soft white shawl wrapped around her, and a becoming cap 
put on, in expectation of the doctor's visit. Her face had a little faint 
colour in it, and the very exhaustion after the examination gave it a 
peaceful look. Margaret was surprised to see her look so calm. 
</p>
               <p>'Why, 
Margaret, how strange you look! What is the matter?' And then, as the idea 
stole into her mind of what was indeed the real state of the case, she added, 
as if a little displeased: 'you have not been seeing Dr. Donaldson, and 
asking him any questions— have you, child?' Margaret did not reply—only 
looked wistfully towards her. Mrs. Hale became more displeased. 'He would 
not, surely, break his word to me, and'— 
</p>
               <p>'Oh yes, mamma, he did. I made 
him. It was I—blame me.'She knelt down by her mother's side, and caught her 
hand—she would not let it go, though Mrs. Hale tried to pull it away. She 
kept kissing it, and the hot tears she shed bathed it. 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret, it was 
very wrong of you. You knew I did not wish you to know.' But, as if tired 
with the contest, she left her hand in Margaret's clasp, and by-and-by she 
returned the pressure faintly. That encouraged Margaret to speak. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, 
mamma! let me be your nurse. I will learn anything Dixon can teach me. But 
you know I am your child, and I do think I have a right to do everything for 
you.' 
</p>
               <p>'You don't know what you are asking,' said Mrs. Hale, with a 
shudder. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, I do. I know a great deal more than you are aware of Let me 
be your nurse. Let me try, at any rate. No one has ever shall ever try so 
hard as I will do. It will be such a comfort, mamma.' 
</p>
               <p>'My poor child! Well, 
you shall try. Do you know, Margaret, Dixon and I thought you would quite 
shrink from me if you knew—' 
</p>
               <p>'Dixon thought!' said Margaret, her lip 
curling. 'Dixon could not give me credit for enough true love—for as much as 
herself! She thought, I suppose, that I was one of those poor sickly women 
who like to lie on rose leaves, and be fanned all day; Don't let Dixon's 
fancies come any more between you and me, mamma. Don't, please!' implored 
she. 
</p>
               <p>'Don't be angry with Dixon,' said Mrs. Hale, anxiously. Margaret 
recovered herself. 
</p>
               <p>'No! I won't. I will try and be humble, and learn her 
ways, if you will only let me do all I can for you. Let me be in the first 
place, mother—I am greedy of that. I used to fancy you would forget me while 
I was away at aunt Shaw's, and cry myself to sleep at nights with that notion 
in my head.' 
</p>
               <p>'And I used to think, how will Margaret bear our makeshift 
poverty after the thorough comfort and luxury in Harley Street, till I have 
many a time been more ashamed of your seeing our contrivances at Helstone 
than of any stranger finding them out.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, mamma! and I did so enjoy 
them. They were so much more amusing than all the jog-trot Harley Street 
ways. The wardrobe shelf with handles, that served as a supper-tray on grand 
occasions! And the old tea-chests stuffed and covered for ottomans! I think 
what you call the makeshift contrivances at dear Helstone were a charming 
part of the life there.' 
</p>
               <p>'I shall never see Helstone again, Margaret,' said 
Mrs. Hale, the tears welling up into her eyes. Margaret could not reply. Mrs. 
Hale went on. 'While I was there, I was for ever wanting to leave it. Every 
place seemed pleasanter. And now I shall die far away from it. I am rightly 
punished.' 
</p>
               <p>'You must not talk so,' said Margaret, impatiently. 'He said you 
might live for years. Oh, mother! we will have you back at Helstone 
yet.' 
</p>
               <p>'No never! That I must take as a just penance. But, 
Margaret—Frederick!' 
</p>
               <p>At the mention of that one word, she suddenly cried 
out loud, as in some sharp agony. It seemed as if the thought of him upset 
all her composure, destroyed the calm, overcame the exhaustion. Wild 
passionate cry succeeded to cry—'Frederick! Frederick! Come to me. I am 
dying. Little first-born child, come to me once again!' 
</p>
               <p>She was in violent 
hysterics. Margaret went and called Dixon in terror. Dixon came in a huff, 
and accused Margaret of having over-excited her mother. Margaret bore all 
meekly, only trusting that her father might not return. In spite of her 
alarm, which was even greater than the occasion warranted, she obeyed all 
Dixon's directions promptly and well, without a word of self-justification. 
By so doing she mollified her accuser. They put her mother to bed, and 
Margaret sate by her till she fell asleep, and afterwards till Dixon beckoned 
her out of the room, and, with a sour face, as if doing something against the 
grain, she bade her drink a cup of coffee which she had prepared for her in 
the drawing-room, and stood over her in a commanding attitude as she did 
so. 
</p>
               <p>'You shouldn't have been so curious, Miss, and then you wouldn't have 
needed to fret before your time. It would have come soon enough. And now, I 
suppose, you'll tell master, and a pretty household I shall have of 
you!' 
</p>
               <p>'No, Dixon,' said Margaret, sorrowfully, 'I will not tell papa. He 
could not bear it as I can.' And by way of proving how well she bore it, she 
burst into tears. 
</p>
               <p>'Ay! I knew how it would be. Now you'll waken your mamma, 
just after she's gone to sleep so quietly. Miss Margaret my dear, I've had to 
keep it down this many a week; and though I don't pretend I can love her as 
you do, yet I loved her better than any other man, woman, or child—no one 
but Master Frederick ever came near her in my mind. Ever since Lady 
Beresford's maid first took me in to see her dressed out in white crape, and 
corn-ears, and scarlet poppies, and I ran a needle down into my finger, and 
broke it in, and she tore up her worked pocket-handkerchief, after they'd cut 
it out, and came in to wet the bandages again with lotion when she returned 
from the ball—where she'd been the prettiest young lady of all—I've never 
loved any one like her. I little thought then that I should live to see her 
brought so low. I don't mean no reproach to nobody. Many a one calls you 
pretty and handsome, and what not. Even in this smoky place, enough to blind 
one's eyes, the owls can see that. But you'll never be like your mother for 
beauty—never; not if you live to be a hundred.' 
</p>
               <p>'Mamma is very pretty 
still. Poor mamma!' 
</p>
               <p>'Now don't ye set off again, or I shall give way at 
last' (whimpering). 'You'll never stand master's coming home, and 
questioning, at this rate. Go out and take a walk, and come in something 
like. Many's the time I've longed to walk it off—the thought of what was the 
matter with her, and how it must all end.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, Dixon!' said Margaret, 'how 
often I've been cross with you, not knowing what a terrible secret you had to 
bear!' 
</p>
               <p>'Bless you, child! I like to see you showing a bit of a spirit. It's 
the good old Beresford blood. Why, the last Sir John but two shot his steward 
down, there where he stood, for just telling him that he'd racked the 
tenants, and he'd racked the tenants till he could get no more money off them 
than he could get skin off a flint.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, Dixon, I won't shoot you, and 
I'll try not to be cross again.' 
</p>
               <p>'You never have. If I've said it at times, 
it has always been to myself, just in private, by way of making a little 
agreeable conversation, for there's no one here fit to talk to. And when you 
fire up, you're the very image of Master Frederick. I could find in my heart 
to put you in a passion any day, just to see his stormy look coming like a 
great cloud over your face. But now you go out, Miss. I'll watch over missus; 
and as for master, his books are company enough for him, if he should come 
in.'  
</p>
               <p>'I will go,' said Margaret. She hung about Dixon for a minute or so, 
as if afraid and irresolute; then suddenly kissing her, she went quickly out 
of the room. 
</p>
               <p>'Bless her!' said Dixon. 'She's as sweet as a nut. There are 
three people I love: it's missus, Master Frederick, and her. Just them three. 
That's all. The rest be hanged, for I don't know what they're in the world 
for. Master was born, I suppose, for to marry missus. If I thought he loved 
her properly, I might get to love him in time. But he should ha' made a deal 
more on her, and not been always reading, reading, thinking, thinking. See 
what it has brought him to! Many a one who never reads nor thinks either, 
gets to be Rector, and Dean, and what not; and I dare say master might, if 
he'd just minded missus, and let the weary reading and thinking alone.—There 
she goes' (looking out of the window as she heard the front door shut). 'Poor 
young lady! her clothes look shabby to what they did when she came to 
Helstone a year ago. Then she hadn't so much as a darned stocking or a 
cleaned pair of gloves in all her wardrobe. And now—!' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.17" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XVII</head>
               <head>WHAT IS A STRIKE?</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'There are briars besetting every path, </l>
                  <l>Which call for patient care; </l>
                  <l>There is a cross in every lot, </l>
                  <l>And an earnest need for prayer.' </l>
                  <l>ANON. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Margaret went out heavily and unwillingly enough. But the length of a 
street—yes, the air of a Milton Street—cheered her young blood before she 
reached her first turning. Her step grew lighter, her lip redder. She began 
to take notice, instead of having her thoughts turned so exclusively inward. 
She saw unusual loiterers in the streets: men with their hands in their 
pockets sauntering along; loud-laughing and loud-spoken girls clustered 
together, apparently excited to high spirits, and a boisterous independence 
of temper and behaviour. The more ill-looking of the men—the discreditable 
minority—hung about on the steps of the beer-houses and gin-shops, smoking, 
and commenting pretty freely on every passer-by. Margaret disliked the 
prospect of the long walk through these streets, before she came to the 
fields which she had planned to reach. Instead, she would go and see Bessy 
Higgins. It would not be so refreshing as a quiet country walk, but still it 
would perhaps be doing the kinder thing. 
</p>
               <p>Nicholas Higgins was sitting by 
the fire smoking, as she went in. Bessy was rocking herself on the other 
side. 
</p>
               <p>Nicholas took the pipe out of his mouth, and standing up, pushed his 
chair towards Margaret; he leant against the chimney piece in a lounging 
attitude, while she asked Bessy how she was. 
</p>
               <p>'Hoo's rather down i' th' 
mouth in regard to spirits, but hoo's better in health. Hoo doesn't like this 
strike. Hoo's a deal too much set on peace and quietness at any price.' 
</p>
               <p>'This is th' third strike I've seen,' said she, sighing, as if that was 
answer and explanation enough. 
</p>
               <p>'Well, third time pays for all. See if we 
don't dang th' masters this time. See if they don't come, and beg us to come 
back at our own price. That's all. We've missed it afore time, I grant yo'; 
but this time we'n laid our plans desperate deep.' 
</p>
               <p>'Why do you strike?' 
asked Margaret. 'Striking is leaving off work till you get your own rate of 
wages, is it not? You must not wonder at my ignorance; where I come from I 
never heard of a strike.' 
</p>
               <p>'I wish I were there,' said Bessy, wearily. 'But 
it's not for me to get sick and tired o' strikes. This is the last I'll see. 
Before it's ended I shall be in the Great City—the Holy Jerusalem.' 
</p>
               <p>'Hoo's 
so full of th' life to come, hoo cannot think of th' present. Now I, yo' see, 
am bound to do the best I can here. I think a bird i' th' hand is worth two 
i' th' bush. So them's the different views we take on th' strike 
question.' 
</p>
               <p>'But,' said Margaret, 'if the people struck, as you call it, 
where I come from, as they are mostly all field labourers, the seed would not 
be sown, the hay got in, the corn reaped.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well?' said he. He had resumed 
his pipe, and put his 'well' in the form of an interrogation. 
</p>
               <p>'Why,' she 
went on, 'what would become of the farmers.' 
</p>
               <p>He puffed away. 'I reckon 
they'd have either to give up their farms, or to give fair rate of 
wage.' 
</p>
               <p>'Suppose they could not, or would not do the last; they could not 
give up their farms all in a minute, however much they might wish to do so; 
but they would have no hay, nor corn to sell that year; and where would the 
money come from to pay the labourers' wages the next?' 
</p>
               <p>Still puffing away. 
At last he said: 
</p>
               <p>'I know nought of your ways down South. I have heerd 
they're a pack of spiritless, down-trodden men; welly clemmed to death; too 
much dazed wi' clemming to know when they're put upon. Now, it's not so here. 
We known when we're put upon; and we'en too much blood in us to stand it. We 
just take our hands fro' our looms, and say, “Yo' may clem us, but yo'll not 
put upon us, my masters!” And be danged to 'em, they shan't this time!' 
</p>
               <p>'I 
wish I lived down South,' said Bessy. 
</p>
               <p>'There's a deal to bear there,' said 
Margaret. 'There are sorrows to bear everywhere. There is very hard bodily 
labour to be gone through, with very little food to give strength.' 
</p>
               <p>'But 
it's out of doors,' said Bessy. 'And away from the endless, endless noise, 
and sickening heat.' 
</p>
               <p>'It's sometimes in heavy rain, and sometimes in bitter 
cold. A young person can stand it; but an old man gets racked with 
rheumatism, and bent and withered before his time; yet he must just work on 
the same, or else go to the workhouse.' 
</p>
               <p>'I thought yo' were so taken wi' 
the ways of the South country.' 
</p>
               <p>'So I am,' said Margaret, smiling a little, 
as she found herself thus caught. 'I only mean, Bessy, there's good and bad 
in everything in this world; and as you felt the bad up here, I thought it 
was but fair you should know the bad down there.' 
</p>
               <p>'And yo' say they never 
strike down there?' asked Nicholas, abruptly. 
</p>
               <p>'No!' said Margaret; 'I think 
they have too much sense.' 
</p>
               <p>'An' I think,' replied he, dashing the ashes out 
of his pipe with so much vehemence that it broke, 'it's not that they've too 
much sense, but that they've too little spirit.' 
</p>
               <p>'O, father!' said Bessy, 
'what have ye gained by striking? Think of that first strike when mother 
died—how we all had to clem—you the worst of all; and yet many a one went 
in every week at the same wage, till all were gone in that there was work 
for; and some went beggars all their lives at after.' 
</p>
               <p>'Ay,' said he. 'That 
there strike was badly managed. Folk got into th' management of it, as were 
either fools or not true men. Yo'll see, it'll be different this 
time.' 
</p>
               <p>'But all this time you've not told me what you're striking for,' 
said Margaret, again. 
</p>
               <p>'Why, yo' see, there's five or six masters who have 
set themselves again paying the wages they've been paying these two years 
past, and flourishing upon, and getting richer upon. And now they come to us, 
and say we're to take less. And we won't. We'll just clem them to death 
first; and see who'll work for 'em then. They'll have killed the goose that 
laid 'em the golden eggs, I reckon.' 
</p>
               <p>'And so you plan dying, in order to be 
revenged upon them!' 
</p>
               <p>'No,' said he, 'I dunnot. I just look forward to the 
chance of dying at my post sooner than yield. That's what folk call fine and 
honourable in a soldier, and why not in a poor weaver-chap?' 
</p>
               <p>'But,' said 
Margaret, 'a soldier dies in the cause of the Nation—in the cause of 
others.' 
</p>
               <p>He laughed grimly. 'My lass,' said he, 'yo're but a young wench, 
but don't yo' think I can keep three people—that's Bessy, and Mary, and 
me—on sixteen shilling a week? Dun yo' think it's for mysel' I'm striking 
work at this time? It's just as much in the cause of others as yon 
soldier—only m'appen, the cause he dies for is just that of somebody he 
never clapt eyes on, nor heerd on all his born days, while I take up John 
Boucher's cause, as lives next door but one, wi' a sickly wife, and eight 
childer, none on 'em factory age; and I don't take up his cause only, though 
he's a poor good-for-nought, as can only manage two looms at a time, but I 
take up th' cause o' justice. Why are we to have less wage now, I ask, than 
two year ago?' 
</p>
               <p>'Don't ask me,' said Margaret; 'I am very ignorant. Ask some 
of your masters. Surely they will give you a reason for it. It is not merely 
an arbitrary decision of theirs, come to without reason.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yo're just a 
foreigner, and nothing more,' said he, contemptuously. 'Much yo' know about 
it. Ask th' masters! They'd tell us to mind our own business, and they'd mind 
theirs. Our business being, yo' understand, to take the bated' wage, and be 
thankful, and their business to bate us down to clemming point, to swell 
their profits. That's what it is.' 
</p>
               <p>'But said Margaret, determined not to 
give way, although she saw she was irritating him, 'the state of trade may be 
such as not to enable them to give you the same remuneration. 
</p>
               <p>'State o' 
trade! That's just a piece o' masters' humbug. It's rate o' wages I was 
talking of. Th' masters keep th' state o' trade in their own hands; and just 
walk it forward like a black bug-a-boo, to frighten naughty children with 
into being good. I'll tell yo' it's their part,—their cue, as some folks 
call it,—to beat us down, to swell their fortunes; and it's ours to stand up 
and fight hard,—not for ourselves alone, but for them round about us—for 
justice and fair play. We help to make their profits, and we ought to help 
spend 'em. It's not that we want their brass so much this time, as we've done 
many a time afore. We'n getten money laid by; and we're resolved to stand and 
fall together; not a man on us will go in for less wage than th' Union says 
is our due. So I say, “hooray for the strike,” and let Thornton, and 
Slickson, and Hamper, and their set look to it!' 
</p>
               <p>'Thornton!' said Margaret. 
'Mr. Thornton of Marlborough Street?' 
</p>
               <p>'Aye! Thornton o' Marlborough Mill, 
as we call him.' 
</p>
               <p>'He is one of the masters you are striving with, is he 
not? What sort of a master is he?' 
</p>
               <p>'Did yo' ever see a bulldog? Set a 
bulldog on hind legs, and dress him up in coat and breeches, and yo'n just 
getten John Thornton.' 
</p>
               <p>'Nay,' said Margaret, laughing, 'I deny that. Mr. 
Thornton is plain enough, but he's not like a bulldog, with its short broad 
nose, and snarling upper lip.' 
</p>
               <p>'No! not in look, I grant yo'. But let John 
Thornton get hold on a notion, and he'll stick to it like a bulldog; yo' 
might pull him away wi' a pitch-fork ere he'd leave go. He's worth fighting 
wi', is John Thornton. As for Slickson, I take it, some o' these days he'll 
wheedle his men back wi' fair promises; that they'll just get cheated out of 
as soon as they're in his power again. He'll work his fines well out on 'em, 
I'll warrant. He's as slippery as an eel, he is. He's like a cat,—as sleek, 
and cunning, and fierce. It'll never be an honest up and down fight wi' him, 
as it will be wi' Thornton. Thornton's as dour as a door-nail; an obstinate 
chap, every inch on him,—th' oud bulldog!' 
</p>
               <p>'Poor Bessy!' said Margaret, 
turning round to her. 'You sigh over it all. You don't like struggling and 
fighting as your father does, do you?' 
</p>
               <p>'No!' said she, heavily. 'I'm sick 
on it. I could have wished to have had other talk about me in my latter days, 
than just the clashing and clanging and clattering that has wearied a' my 
life long, about work and wages, and masters, and hands, and 
knobsticks.' 
</p>
               <p>'Poor wench! latter days be farred! Thou'rt looking a sight 
better already for a little stir and change. Beside, I shall be a deal here 
to make it more lively for thee.' 
</p>
               <p>'Tobacco-smoke chokes me!' said she, 
querulously. 
</p>
               <p>'Then I'll never smoke no more i' th' house!' he replied, 
tenderly. 'But why didst thou not tell me afore, thou foolish wench?' 
</p>
               <p>She 
did not speak for a while, and then so low that only Margaret heard her: 
</p>
               <p>'I 
reckon, he'll want a' the comfort he can get out o' either pipe or drink 
afore he's done.' 
</p>
               <p>Her father went out of doors, evidently to finish his 
pipe. 
</p>
               <p>Bessy said passionately, 
</p>
               <p>'Now am not I a fool,—am I not, 
Miss?—there, I knew I ought for to keep father at home, and away fro' the 
folk that are always ready for to tempt a man, in time o' strike, to go 
drink,—and there my tongue must needs quarrel with this pipe o' his'n,—and 
he'll go off, I know he will,—as often as he wants to smoke—and nobody 
knows where it'll end. I wish I'd letten myself be choked first.' 
</p>
               <p>'But 
does your father drink?' asked Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'No—not to say drink,' replied 
she, still in the same wild excited tone. 'But what win ye have? There are 
days wi' you, as wi' other folk, I suppose, when yo' get up and go through 
th' hours, just longing for a bit of a change—a bit of a fillip, as it were. 
I know I ha' gone and bought a four-pounder out o' another baker's shop to 
common on such days, just because I sickened at the thought of going on for 
ever wi' the same sight in my eyes, and the same sound in my ears, and the 
same taste i' my mouth, and the same thought (or no thought, for that matter) 
in my head, day after day, for ever. I've longed for to be a man to go 
spreeing, even it were only a tramp to some new place in search o' work. And 
father—all men—have it stronger in 'em than me to get tired o' sameness and 
work for ever. And what is 'em to do? It's little blame to them if they do go 
into th' gin-shop for to make their blood flow quicker, and more lively, and 
see things they never see at no other time—pictures, and looking-glass, and 
such like. But father never was a drunkard, though maybe, he's got worse for 
drink, now and then. Only yo' see,' and now her voice took a mournful, 
pleading tone, 'at times o' strike there's much to knock a man down, for all 
they start so hopefully; and where's the comfort to come fro'? He'll get 
angry and mad—they all do—and then they get tired out wi' being angry and 
mad, and maybe ha' done things in their passion they'd be glad to forget. 
Bless yo'r sweet pitiful face! but yo' dunnot know what a strike is 
yet.' 
</p>
               <p>'Come, Bessy,' said Margaret, 'I won't say you're exaggerating, 
because I don't know enough about it: but, perhaps, as you're not well, 
you're only looking on one side, and there is another and a brighter to be 
looked to.' 
</p>
               <p>'It's all well enough for yo' to say so, who have lived in 
pleasant green places all your life long, and never known want or care, or 
wickedness either, for that matter.' 
</p>
               <p>'Take care,' said Margaret, her cheek 
flushing, and her eye lightening, 'how you judge, Bessy. I shall go home to 
my mother, who is so ill—so ill, Bessy, that there's no outlet but death for 
her out of the prison of her great suffering; and yet I must speak cheerfully 
to my father, who has no notion of her real state, and to whom the knowledge 
must come gradually. The only person—the only one who could sympathise with 
me and help me—whose presence could comfort my mother more than any other 
earthly thing—is falsely accused—would run the risk of death if he came to 
see his dying mother. This I tell you—only you, Bessy. You must not mention 
it. No other person in Milton—hardly any other person in England knows. Have 
I not care? Do I not know anxiety, though I go about well-dressed, and have 
food enough? Oh, Bessy, God is just, and our lots are well portioned out by 
Him, although none but He knows the bitterness of our souls.' 
</p>
               <p>'I ask your 
pardon,' replied Bessy, humbly. 'Sometimes, when I've thought o' my life, and 
the little pleasure I've had in it, I've believed that, maybe, I was one of 
those doomed to die by the falling of a star from heaven; “And the name of 
the star is called Wormwood;' and the third part of the waters became 
wormwood; and men died of the waters, because they were made bitter.” One can 
bear pain and sorrow better if one thinks it has been prophesied long before 
for one: somehow, then it seems as if my pain was needed for the fulfilment; 
otherways it seems all sent for nothing.' 
</p>
               <p>'Nay, Bessy—think!' said 
Margaret. 'God does not willingly afflict. Don't dwell so much on the 
prophecies, but read the clearer parts of the Bible.' 
</p>
               <p>'I dare say it would 
be wiser; but where would I hear such grand words of promise—hear tell o' 
anything so far different fro' this dreary world, and this town above a', as 
in Revelations? Many's the time I've repeated the verses in the seventh 
chapter to myself, just for the sound. It's as good as an organ, and as 
different from every day, too. No, I cannot give up Revelations. It gives me 
more comfort than any other book i' the Bible.' 
</p>
               <p>'Let me come and read you 
some of my favourite chapters.' 
</p>
               <p>'Ay,' said she, greedily, 'come. Father 
will maybe hear yo'. He's deaved wi' my talking; he says it's all nought to 
do with the things o' to-day, and that's his business.' 
</p>
               <p>'Where is your 
sister?' 
</p>
               <p>'Gone fustian-cutting. I were loth to let her go; but somehow we 
must live; and th' Union can't afford us much.' 
</p>
               <p>'Now I must go. You have 
done me good, Bessy.' 
</p>
               <p>'I done you good!' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes. I came here very sad, and 
rather too apt to think my own cause for grief was the only one in the world. 
And now I hear how you have had to bear for years, and that makes me 
stronger.' 
</p>
               <p>'Bless yo'! I thought a' the good-doing was on the side of 
gentle folk. I shall get proud if I think I can do good to yo'.' 
</p>
               <p>'You won't 
do it if you think about it. But you'll only puzzle yourself if you do, 
that's one comfort.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yo're not like no one I ever seed. I dunno what to 
make of yo'.' 
</p>
               <p>'Nor I of myself. Good-bye!' 
</p>
               <p>Bessy stilled her rocking to 
gaze after her. 
</p>
               <p>'I wonder if there are many folk like her down South. She's 
like a breath of country air, somehow. She freshens me up above a bit. Who'd 
ha' thought that face—as bright and as strong as the angel I dream of—could 
have known the sorrow she speaks on? I wonder how she'll sin. All on us must 
sin. I think a deal on her, for sure. But father does the like, I see. And 
Mary even. It's not often hoo's stirred up to notice much.' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.18" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XVIII</head>
               <head>LIKES AND DISLIKES</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'My heart revolts within me, and two voices </l>
                  <l>Make themselves audible within my bosom.' </l>
                  <l>WALLENSTEIN. </l>
               </q>
               <p>On Margaret's return home she found two letters on the table: one was a 
note for her mother,—the other, which had come by the post, was evidently 
from her Aunt Shaw—covered with foreign post-marks—thin, silvery, and 
rustling. She took up the other, and was examining it, when her father came 
in suddenly: 
</p>
               <p>'So your mother is tired, and gone to bed early! I'm afraid, 
such a thundery day was not the best in the world for the doctor to see her. 
What did he say? Dixon tells me he spoke to you about her.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret 
hesitated. Her father's looks became more grave and anxious: 
</p>
               <p>'He does not 
think her seriously ill?' 
</p>
               <p>'Not at present; she needs care, he says; he was 
very kind, and said he would call again, and see how his medicines 
worked.' 
</p>
               <p>'Only care—he did not recommend change of air?—he did not say 
this smoky town was doing her any harm, did he, Margaret?' 
</p>
               <p>'No! not a 
word,' she replied, gravely. 'He was anxious, I think.' 
</p>
               <p>'Doctors have that 
anxious manner; it's professional,' said he. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret saw, in her father's 
nervous ways, that the first impression of possible danger was made upon his 
mind, in spite of all his making light of what she told him. He could not 
forget the subject,—could not pass from it to other things; he kept 
recurring to it through the evening, with an unwillingness to receive even 
the slightest unfavourable idea, which made Margaret inexpressibly 
sad. 
</p>
               <p>'This letter is from Aunt Shaw, papa. She has got to Naples, and finds 
it too hot, so she has taken apartments at Sorrento. But I don't think she 
likes Italy.' 
</p>
               <p>'He did not say anything about diet, did he?' 
</p>
               <p>'It was to be 
nourishing, and digestible. Mamma's appetite is pretty good, I 
think.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes! and that makes it all the more strange he should have thought 
of speaking about diet.' 
</p>
               <p>'I asked him, papa.' Another pause. Then Margaret 
went on: 'Aunt Shaw says, she has sent me some coral ornaments, papa; but,' 
added Margaret, half smiling, 'she's afraid the Milton Dissenters won't 
appreciate them. She has got all her ideas of Dissenters from the Quakers, 
has not she?' 
</p>
               <p>'If ever you hear or notice that your mother wishes for 
anything, be sure you let me know. I am so afraid she does not tell me always 
what she would like. Pray, see after that girl Mrs. Thornton named. If we had 
a good, efficient house-servant, Dixon could be constantly with her, and I'd 
answer for it we'd soon set her up amongst us, if care will do it. She's been 
very much tired of late, with the hot weather, and the difficulty of getting 
a servant. A little rest will put her quite to rights—eh, Margaret?' 
</p>
               <p>'I 
hope so,' said Margaret,—but so sadly, that her father took notice of it. He 
pinched her cheek. 
</p>
               <p>'Come; if you look so pale as this, I must rouge you up 
a little. Take care of yourself, child, or you'll be wanting the doctor 
next.' 
</p>
               <p>But he could not settle to anything that evening. He was continually 
going backwards and forwards, on laborious tiptoe, to see if his wife was 
still asleep. Margaret's heart ached at his restlessness—his trying to 
stifle and strangle the hideous fear that was looming out of the dark places 
of his heart. 
</p>
               <p>He came back at last, somewhat comforted. 
</p>
               <p>'She's awake now, 
Margaret. She quite smiled as she saw me standing by her. Just her old smile. 
And she says she feels refreshed, and ready for tea. Where's the note for 
her? She wants to see it. I'll read it to her while you make tea.' 
</p>
               <p>The note 
proved to be a formal invitation from Mrs. Thornton, to Mr., Mrs., and Miss 
Hale to dinner, on the twenty-first instant. Margaret was surprised to find 
an acceptance contemplated, after all she had learnt of sad probabilities 
during the day. But so it was. The idea of her husband's and daughter's going 
to this dinner had quite captivated Mrs. Hale's fancy, even before Margaret 
had heard the contents of the note. It was an event to diversify the monotony 
of the invalid's life; and she clung to the idea of their going, with even 
fretful pertinacity when Margaret objected. 
</p>
               <p>'Nay, Margaret? if she wishes 
it, I'm sure we'll both go willingly. She never would wish it unless she felt 
herself really stronger—really better than we thought she was, eh, 
Margaret?' said Mr. Hale, anxiously, as she prepared to write the note of 
acceptance, the next day. 
</p>
               <p>'Eh! Margaret?' questioned he, with a nervous 
motion of his hands. It seemed cruel to refuse him the comfort he craved for. 
And besides, his passionate refusal to admit the existence of fear, almost 
inspired Margaret herself with hope. 
</p>
               <p>'I do think she is better since last 
night,' said she. 'Her eyes look brighter, and her complexion 
clearer.' 
</p>
               <p>'God bless you,' said her father, earnestly. 'But is it true? 
Yesterday was so sultry every one felt ill. It was a most unlucky day for Mr. 
Donaldson to see her on.' 
</p>
               <p>So he went away to his day's duties, now 
increased by the preparation of some lectures he had promised to deliver to 
the working people at a neighbouring Lyceum. He had chosen Ecclesiastical 
Architecture as his subject, rather more in accordance with his own taste and 
knowledge than as falling in with the character of the place or the desire 
for particular kinds of information among those to whom he was to lecture. 
And the institution itself, being in debt, was only too glad to get a gratis 
course from an educated and accomplished man like Mr. Hale, let the subject 
be what it might. 
</p>
               <p>'Well, mother,' asked Mr. Thornton that night, 'who have 
accepted your invitations for the twenty-first?' 
</p>
               <p>'Fanny, where are the 
notes? The Slicksons accept, Collingbrooks accept, Stephenses accept, Browns 
decline. Hales—father and daughter come,—mother too great an 
invalid—Macphersons come, and Mr. Horsfall, and Mr. Young. I was thinking of 
asking the Porters, as the Browns can't come.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very good. Do you know, I'm 
really afraid Mrs. Hale is very far from well, from what Dr. Donaldson 
says.' 
</p>
               <p>'It's strange of them to accept a dinner-invitation if she's very 
ill,' said Fanny. 
</p>
               <p>'I didn't say very ill,' said her brother, rather 
sharply. 'I only said very far from well. They may not know it either.' And 
then he suddenly remembered that, from what Dr. Donaldson had told him, 
Margaret, at any rate, must be aware of the exact state of the case. 
</p>
               <p>'Very 
probably they are quite aware of what you said yesterday, John—of the great 
advantage it would be to them—to Mr. Hale, I mean, to be introduced to such 
people as the Stephenses and the Collingbrooks.' 
</p>
               <p>'I'm sure that motive 
would not influence them. No! I think I understand how it is.' 
</p>
               <p>'John!' said 
Fanny, laughing in her little, weak, nervous way. 'How you profess to 
understand these Hales, and how you never will allow that we can know 
anything about them. Are they really so very different to most people one 
meets with?' 
</p>
               <p>She did not mean to vex him; but if she had intended it, she 
could not have done it more thoroughly. He chafed in silence, however, not 
deigning to reply to her question. 
</p>
               <p>'They do not seem to me out of the 
common way,' said Mrs. Thornton. 'He appears a worthy kind of man enough; 
rather too simple for trade—so it's perhaps as well he should have been a 
clergyman first, and now a teacher. She's a bit of a fine lady, with her 
invalidism; and as for the girl—she's the only one who puzzles me when I 
think about her,—which I don't often do. She seems to have a great notion of 
giving herself airs; and I can't make out why. I could almost fancy she 
thinks herself too good for her company at times. And yet they're not rich, 
from all I can hear they never have been.' 
</p>
               <p>'And she's not accomplished, 
mamma. She can't play.' 
</p>
               <p>'Go on, Fanny. What else does she want to bring her 
up to your standard?' 
</p>
               <p>'Nay! John,' said his mother, 'that speech of Fanny's 
did no harm. I myself heard Miss Hale say she could not play. If you would 
let us alone, we could perhaps like her, and see her merits.' 
</p>
               <p>'I'm sure I 
never could!' murmured Fanny, protected by her mother. Mr. Thornton heard, 
but did not care to reply. He was walking up and down the dining-room, 
wishing that his mother would order candles, and allow him to set to work at 
either reading or writing, and so put a stop to the conversation. But he 
never thought of interfering in any of the small domestic regulations that 
Mrs. Thornton observed, in habitual remembrance of her old 
economies. 
</p>
               <p>'Mother,' said he, stopping, and bravely speaking out the truth, 
'I wish you would like Miss Hale.' 
</p>
               <p>'Why?' asked she, startled by his 
earnest, yet tender manner. 'You're never thinking of marrying her?—a girl 
without a penny.' 
</p>
               <p>'She would never have me,' said he, with a short 
laugh. 
</p>
               <p>'No, I don't think she would,' answered his mother. 'She laughed in 
my face, when I praised her for speaking out something Mr. Bell had said in 
your favour. I liked the girl for doing it so frankly, for it made me sure 
she had no thought of you; and the next minute she vexed me so by seeming to 
think——Well, never mind! Only you're right in saying she's too good an 
opinion of herself to think of you. The saucy jade! I should like to know 
where she'd find a better!' 
</p>
               <p>If these words hurt her son, the dusky light 
prevented him from betraying any emotion. In a minute he came up quite 
cheerfully to his mother, and putting one hand lightly on her shoulder, 
said: 
</p>
               <p>'Well, as I'm just as much convinced of the truth of what you have 
been saying as you can be; and as I have no thought or expectation of ever 
asking her to be my wife, you'll believe me for the future that I'm quite 
disinterested in speaking about her. I foresee trouble for that girl—perhaps 
want of motherly care—and I only wish you to be ready to be a friend to her, 
in case she needs one. Now, Fanny,' said he, 'I trust you have delicacy 
enough to understand, that it is as great an injury to Miss Hale as to me—in 
fact, she would think it a greater—to suppose that I have any reason, more 
than I now give, for begging you and my mother to show her every kindly 
attention.' 
</p>
               <p>'I cannot forgive her her pride,' said his mother; 'I will 
befriend her, if there is need, for your asking, John. I would befriend 
Jezebel herself if you asked me. But this girl, who turns up her nose at us 
all—who turns up her nose at you——' 
</p>
               <p>'Nay, mother; I have never yet put 
myself, and I mean never to put myself, within reach of her 
contempt.' 
</p>
               <p>'Contempt, indeed!'—(One of Mrs. Thornton's expressive 
snorts.)—'Don't go on speaking of Miss Hale, John, if I've to be kind to 
her. When I'm with her, I don't know if I like or dislike her most; but when 
I think of her, and hear you talk of her, I hate her. I can see she's given 
herself airs to you as well as if you'd told me out.' 
</p>
               <p>'And if she has,' 
said he—and then he paused for a moment—then went on: 'I'm not a lad, to be 
cowed by a proud look from a woman, or to care for her misunderstanding me 
and my position. I can laugh at it!' 
</p>
               <p>'To be sure! and at her too, with her 
fine notions and haughty tosses!' 
</p>
               <p>'I only wonder why you talk so much about 
her, then,' said Fanny. 'I'm sure, I'm tired enough of the 
subject.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well!' said her brother, with a shade of bitterness. 'Suppose we 
find some more agreeable subject. What do you say to a strike, by way of 
something pleasant to talk about?' 
</p>
               <p>'Have the hands actually turned out?' 
asked Mrs. Thornton, with vivid interest. 
</p>
               <p>'Hamper's men are actually out. 
Mine are working out their week, through fear of being prosecuted for breach 
of contract I'd have had every one of them up and punished for it, that left 
his work before his time was out.' 
</p>
               <p>'The law expenses would have been more 
than the hands them selves were worth—a set of ungrateful naughts!' said his 
mother. 
</p>
               <p>'To be sure. But I'd have shown them how I keep my word, and how I 
mean them to keep theirs. They know me by this time. Slickson's men are 
off—pretty certain he won't spend money in getting them punished. We're in 
for a turn-out, mother.' 
</p>
               <p>'I hope there are not many orders in hand?' 
</p>
               <p>'Of 
course there are. They know that well enough. But they don't quite understand 
all, though they think they do.' 
</p>
               <p>'What do you mean, John?' 
</p>
               <p>Candles had 
been brought, and Fanny had taken up her interminable piece of worsted-work, 
over which she was yawning; throwing herself back in her chair, from time to 
time, to gaze at vacancy, and think of nothing at her ease. 
</p>
               <p>'Why,' said he, 
'the Americans are getting their yarns so into the general market, that our 
only chance is producing them at a lower rate. If we can't, we may shut up 
shop at once, and hands and masters go alike on tramp. Yet these fools go 
back to the prices paid three years ago—nay, some of their leaders quote 
Dickinson's prices now—though they know as well as we do that, what with 
fines pressed out of their wages as no honourable man would extort them, and 
other ways which I for one would scorn to use, the real rate of wage paid at 
Dickinson's is less than at ours. Upon my word, mother, I wish the old 
combination-laws were in force. It is too bad to find out that 
fools—ignorant wayward men like these—just by uniting their weak silly 
heads, are to rule over the fortunes of those who bring all the wisdom that 
knowledge and experience, and often painful thought and anxiety, can give. 
The next thing will be—indeed, we're all but come to it now—that we shall 
have to go and ask—stand hat in hand—and humbly ask the secretary of the 
Spinner' Union to be so kind as to furnish us with labour at their own price. 
That's what they want—they, who haven't the sense to see that, if we don't 
get a fair share of the profits to compensate us for our wear and tear here 
in England, we can move off to some other country; and that, what with home 
and foreign competition, we are none of us likely to make above a fair share, 
and may be thankful enough if we can get that, in an average number of 
years.' 
</p>
               <p>'Can't you get hands from Ireland? I wouldn't keep these fellows a 
day. I'd teach them that I was master, and could employ what servants I 
liked.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes! to be sure, I can; and I will, too, if they go on long. It 
will be trouble and expense, and I fear there will be some danger; but I will 
do it, rather than give in.' 
</p>
               <p>'If there is to be all this extra expense, I'm 
sorry we're giving a dinner just now.' 
</p>
               <p>'So am I,—not because of the 
expense, but because I shall have much to think about, and many unexpected 
calls on my time. But we must have had Mr. Horsfall, and he does not stay in 
Milton long. And as for the others, we owe them dinners, and it's all one 
trouble.' 
</p>
               <p>He kept on with his restless walk—not speaking any more, but 
drawing a deep breath from time to time, as if endeavouring to throw off some 
annoying thought. Fanny asked her mother numerous small questions, all having 
nothing to do with the subject, which a wiser person would have perceived was 
occupying her attention. Consequently, she received many short answers. She 
was not sorry when, at ten o'clock, the servants filed in to prayers. These 
her mother always read,—first reading a chapter. They were now working 
steadily through the Old Testament. When prayers were ended, and his mother 
had wished him goodnight, with that long steady look of hers which conveyed 
no expression of the tenderness that was in her heart, but yet had the 
intensity of a blessing, Mr. Thornton continued his walk. All his business 
plans had received a check, a sudden pull-up, from this approaching turn-out. 
The forethought of many anxious hours was thrown away, utterly wasted by 
their insane folly, which would injure themselves even more than him, though 
no one could set any limit to the mischief they were doing. And these were 
the men who thought themselves fitted to direct the masters in the disposal 
of their capital! Hamper had said, only this very day, that if he were ruined 
by the strike, he would start life again, comforted by the conviction that 
those who brought it on were in a worse predicament than he himself,—for he 
had head as well as hands, while they had only hands; and if they drove away 
their market, they could not follow it, nor turn to anything else. But this 
thought was no consolation to Mr. Thornton. It might be that revenge gave him 
no pleasure; it might be that he valued the position he had earned with the 
sweat of his brow, so much that he keenly felt its being endangered by the 
ignorance or folly of others,—so keenly that he had no thoughts to spare for 
what would he the consequences of their conduct to themselves. He paced up 
and down, setting his teeth a little now and then. At last it struck two. The 
candles were flickering in their sockets. He lighted his own, muttering to 
himself: 
</p>
               <p>'Once for all, they shall know whom they have got to deal with. I 
can give them a fortnight,—no more. If they don't see their madness before 
the end of that time, I must have hands from Ireland. I believe it's 
Slickson's doing,—confound him and his dodges! He thought he was 
overstocked; so he seemed to yield at first, when the deputation came to 
him,—and of course, he only confirmed them in their folly, as he meant to 
do. That's where it spread from.' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.19" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XIX</head>
               <head>ANGEL VISITS</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'As angels in some brighter dreams </l>
                  <l>Call to the soul when man doth sleep, </l>
                  <l>So some strange thoughts transcend our wonted themes, </l>
                  <l>And into glory peep.' </l>
                  <l>HENRY VAUGHAN. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Mrs. Hale was curiously amused and interested by the idea of the Thornton 
dinner party. She kept wondering about the details, with something of the 
simplicity of a little child, who wants to have all its anticipated pleasures 
described beforehand. But the monotonous life led by invalids often makes 
them like children, inasmuch as they have neither of them any sense of 
proportion in events, and seem each to believe that the walls and curtains 
which shut in their world, and shut out everything else, must of necessity be 
larger than anything hidden beyond. Besides, Mrs. Hale had had her vanities 
as a girl; had perhaps unduly felt their mortification when she became a poor 
clergyman's wife;—they had been smothered and kept down; but they were not 
extinct; and she liked to think of seeing Margaret dressed for a party, and 
discussed what she should wear, with an unsettled anxiety that amused 
Margaret, who had been more accustomed to society in her one in Harley Street 
than her mother in five and twenty years of Helstone. 
</p>
               <p>'Then you think you 
shall wear your white silk. Are you sure it will fit? It's nearly a year 
since Edith was married!' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh yes, mamma! Mrs. Murray made it, and it's 
sure to be right; it may be a straw's breadth shorter or longer-waisted, 
according to my having grown fat or thin. But I don't think I've altered in 
the least.' 
</p>
               <p>'Hadn't you better let Dixon see it? It may have gone yellow 
with lying by.' 
</p>
               <p>'If you like, mamma. But if the worst comes to the worst, 
I've a very nice pink gauze which aunt Shaw gave me, only two or three months 
before Edith was married. That can't have gone yellow.' 
</p>
               <p>'No! but it may 
have faded.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well! then I've a green silk. I feel more as if it was the 
embarrassment of riches.' 
</p>
               <p>'I wish I knew what you ought to wear,' said Mrs. 
Hale, nervously. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret's manner changed instantly. 'Shall I go and put 
them on one after another, mamma, and then you could see which you liked 
best?' 
</p>
               <p>'But—yes! perhaps that will be best.' 
</p>
               <p>So off Margaret went. She 
was very much inclined to play some pranks when she was dressed up at such an 
unusual hour; to make her rich white silk balloon out into a cheese, to 
retreat backwards from her mother as if she were the queen; but when she 
found that these freaks of hers were regarded as interruptions to the serious 
business, and as such annoyed her mother, she became grave and sedate. What 
had possessed the world (her world) to fidget so about her dress, she could 
not understand; but that very after noon, on naming her engagement to Bessy 
Higgins (apropos of the servant that Mrs. Thornton had promised to inquire 
about), Bessy quite roused up at the intelligence. 
</p>
               <p>'Dear! and are you going 
to dine at Thornton's at Marlborough Mills?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, Bessy. Why are you so 
surprised?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, I dunno. But they visit wi' a' th' first folk in 
Milton.' 
</p>
               <p>'And you don't think we're quite the first folk in Milton, eh, 
Bessy?' 
</p>
               <p>Bessy's cheeks flushed a little at her thought being thus easily 
read. 
</p>
               <p>'Well,' said she, 'yo' see, they thinken a deal o' money here and I 
reckon yo've not getten much.' 
</p>
               <p>'No,' said Margaret, 'that's very true. But 
we are educated people, and have lived amongst educated people. Is there 
anything so wonderful, in our being asked out to dinner by a man who owns 
himself inferior to my father by coming to him to be instructed? I don't mean 
to blame Mr. Thornton. Few drapers' assistants, as he was once, could have 
made themselves what he is.' 
</p>
               <p>'But can yo' give dinners back, in yo'r small 
house ? Thornton's house is three times as big.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, I think we could 
manage to give Mr. Thornton a dinner back, as you call it. Perhaps not in 
such a large room, nor with so many people. But I don't think we've thought 
about it at all in that way.' 
</p>
               <p>'I never thought yo'd be dining with 
Thorntons,' repeated I Bessy. 'Why, the mayor hissel' dines there; and the 
members of Parliament and all.' 
</p>
               <p>'I think I could support the honour of 
meeting the mayor of Milton. 
</p>
               <p>'But them ladies dress so grand!' said Bessy, 
with an anxious look at Margaret's print gown, which her Milton eyes 
appraised at sevenpence a yard. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret's face dimpled up into a merry 
laugh. 'Thank You, Bessy, for thinking so kindly about my looking nice among 
all the smart people. But I've plenty of grand gowns,—a week ago, I should 
have said they were far too grand for anything I should ever want again. But 
as I'm to dine at Mr. Thornton's, and perhaps to meet the mayor, I shall put 
on my very best gown, you may be sure.' 
</p>
               <p>'What win yo' wear?' asked Bessy, 
somewhat relieved. 
</p>
               <p>'White silk,' said Margaret. 'A gown I had for a 
cousin's wedding, a year ago. 
</p>
               <p>'That'll do!' said Bessy, falling back in her 
chair. 'I should be loth to have yo' looked down upon. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! I'll be fine 
enough, if that will save me from being looked down upon in Milton.' 
</p>
               <p>'I 
wish I could see you dressed up,' said Bessy. 'I reckon, yo're not what folk 
would ca' pretty; yo've not red and white enough for that. But dun yo' know, 
I ha' dreamt of yo', long afore ever I seed yo'.' 
</p>
               <p>'Nonsense, Bessy!' 
</p>
               <p>'Ay, 
but I did. Yo'r very face,—looking wi' yo'r clear steadfast eyes out o' th' 
darkness, wi' yo'r hair blown off from yo'r brow, and going out like rays 
round yo'r forehead, which was just as smooth and as straight as it is 
now,—and yo' always came to give me strength, which I seemed to gather out 
o' yo'r deep comforting eyes,—and yo' were drest in shining raiment—just as 
yo'r going to be drest. So, yo' see, it was yo'!' 
</p>
               <p>'Nay, Bessy,' said 
Margaret, gently, 'it was but a dream.' 
</p>
               <p>'And why might na I dream a dream 
in my affliction as well as others? Did not many a one i' the Bible? Ay, and 
see visions too! Why, even my father thinks a deal o' dreams! I tell yo' 
again, I saw yo' as plainly, coming swiftly towards me, wi' yo'r hair blown 
back wi' the very swiftness o' the motion, just like the way it grows, a 
little standing off like; and the white shining dress on yo've getten to 
wear. Let me come and see yo' in it. I want to see yo' and touch yo' as in 
very deed yo' were in my dream.' 
</p>
               <p>'My dear Bessy, it is quite a fancy of 
yours.' 
</p>
               <p>'Fancy or no fancy,—yo've come, as I knew yo' would, when I saw 
yo'r movement in my dream,—and when yo're here about me, I reckon I feel 
easier in my mind, and comforted, just as a fire comforts one on a dree day. 
Yo' said it were on th' twenty-first; please God, I'll come and see 
yo'.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh Bessy! you may come and welcome; but don't talk so—it really 
makes me sorry. It does indeed.' 
</p>
               <p>'Then I'll keep it to mysel', if I bite my 
tongue out. Not but what it's true for all that.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was silent. At 
last she said, 
</p>
               <p>'Let us talk about it sometimes, if you think it true. But 
not now. Tell me, has your father turned out?' 
</p>
               <p>'Ay!' said Bessy, 
heavily—in a manner very different from that she had spoken in but a minute 
or two before. 'He and many another,—all Hamper's men,—and many a one 
besides. Th' women are as bad as th' men, in their savageness, this time. 
Food is high,—and they mun have food for their childer, I reckon. Suppose 
Thorntons sent 'em their dinner out,—th' same money, spent on potatoes and 
meal, would keep many a crying babby quiet, and hush up its mother's heart 
for a bit!' 
</p>
               <p>'Don't speak so!' said Margaret. 'You'll make me feel wicked 
and guilty in going to this dinner.' 
</p>
               <p>'No!' said Bessy. 'Some's pre-elected 
to sumptuous feasts, and purple and fine linen,—may be yo're one on 'em. 
Others toil and moil all their lives long—and the very dogs are not pitiful 
in our days, as they were in the days of Lazarus. But if yo' ask me to cool 
yo'r tongue wi' th' tip of my finger, I'll come across the great gulf to yo' 
just for th' thought o' what yo've been to me here.' 
</p>
               <p>'Bessy! you're very 
feverish! I can tell it in the touch of your hand, as well as in what you're 
saying. It won't be division enough, in that awful day, that some of us have 
been beggars here, and some of us have been rich,—we shall not be judged by 
that poor accident, but by our faithful following of Christ.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret got 
up, and found some water and soaking her pocket-handkerchief in it, she laid 
the cool wetness on Bessy's forehead, and began to chafe the stone-cold feet. 
Bessy shut her eyes, and allowed herself to be soothed. At last she 
said, 
</p>
               <p>'Yo'd ha' been deaved out o' yo'r five wits, as well as me, if yo'd 
had one body after another coming in to ask for father, and staying to tell 
me each one their tale. Some spoke o' deadly hatred, and made my blood run 
cold wi' the terrible things they said o' th' masters,—but more, being 
women, kept plaining, plaining (wi' the tears running down their cheeks, and 
never wiped away, nor heeded), of the price o' meat, and how their childer 
could na sleep at nights for th' hunger.' 
</p>
               <p>'And do they think the strike 
will mend this?' asked Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'They say so,' replied Bessy. 'They do say 
trade has been good for long, and the masters has made no end o' money; how 
much father doesn't know, but, in course, th' Union does; and, as is natural, 
they wanten their share o' th' profits, now that food is getting dear; and 
th' Union says they'll not be doing their duty if they don't make the masters 
give 'em their share. But masters has getten th' upper hand somehow; and I'm 
feared they'll keep it now and evermore. It's like th' great battle o' 
Armageddon, the way they keep on, grinning and fighting at each other, till 
even while they fight, they are picked off into the pit.' 
</p>
               <p>Just then, 
Nicholas Higgins came in. He caught his daughter's last words. 
</p>
               <p>'Ay! and 
I'll fight on too; and I'll get it this time. It'll not take long for to make 
'em give in, for they've getten a pretty lot of orders, all under contract; 
and they'll soon find out they'd better give us our five per cent than lose 
the profit they'll gain; let alone the fine for not fulfilling the contract. 
Aha, my masters! I know who'll win.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret fancied from his manner that 
he must have been drinking, not so much from what he said, as from the 
excited way in which he spoke; and she was rather confirmed in this idea by 
the evident anxiety Bessy showed to hasten her departure. Bessy said to 
her,— 
</p>
               <p>'The twenty-first—that's Thursday week. I may come and see yo' 
dressed for Thornton's, I reckon. What time is yo'r dinner?' 
</p>
               <p>Before 
Margaret could answer, Higgins broke out, 
</p>
               <p>'Thornton's! Ar' t' going to 
dine at Thornton's? Ask him to give yo' a bumper to the success of his 
orders. By th' twenty-first, I reckon, he'll be pottered in his brains how to 
get 'em done in time. Tell him, there's seven hundred'll come marching into 
Marlborough Mills, the morning after he gives the five per cent, and will 
help him through his contract in no time. You'll have 'em all there. My 
master, Hamper. He's one o' th' oud-fashioned sort. Ne'er meets a man bout an 
oath or a curse; I should think he were going to die if he spoke me civil; 
but arter all, his bark's waur than his bite, and yo' may tell him one o' his 
turn-outs said so, if yo' like. Eh! but yo'll have a lot of prize mill-owners 
at Thornton's! I should like to get speech o' them, when they're a bit 
inclined to sit still after dinner, and could na run for the life on 'em. I'd 
tell 'em my mind. I'd speak up again th' hard way they're driving on 
us!' 
</p>
               <p>'Good-bye!' said Margaret, hastily. 'Good-bye, Bessy! I shall look to 
see you on the twenty-first, if you're well enough.' 
</p>
               <p>The medicines and 
treatment which Dr. Donaldson had ordered for Mrs. Hale, did her so much good 
at first that not only she herself, but Margaret, began to hope that he might 
have been mistaken, and that she could recover permanently. As for Mr. Hale, 
although he had never had an idea of the serious nature of their 
apprehensions, he triumphed over their fears with an evident relief, which 
proved how much his glimpse into the nature of them had affected him. Only 
Dixon croaked for ever into Margaret's ear. However, Margaret defied the 
raven, and would hope. 
</p>
               <p>They needed this gleam of brightness in-doors, for 
out-of-doors, even to their uninstructed eyes, there was a gloomy brooding 
appearance of discontent. Mr. Hale had his own acquaintances among the 
working men, and was depressed with their earnestly told tales of suffering 
and long-endurance. They would have scorned to speak of what they had to bear 
to any one who might, from his position, have understood it without their 
words. But here was this man, from a distant county, who was perplexed by the 
workings of the system into the midst of which he was thrown, and each was 
eager to make him a judge, and to bring witness of his own causes for 
irritation. Then Mr. Hale brought all his budget of grievances, and laid it 
before Mr. Thornton, for him, with his experience as a master, to arrange 
them, and explain their origin; which he always did, on sound economical 
principles; showing that, as trade was conducted, there must always be a 
waxing and waning of commercial prosperity; and that in the waning a certain 
number of masters, as well as of men, must go down into ruin, and be no more 
seen among the ranks of the happy and prosperous. He spoke as if this 
consequence were so entirely logical, that neither employers nor employed had 
any right to complain if it became their fate: the employer to turn aside 
from the race he could no longer run, with a bitter sense of incompetency and 
failure—wounded in the struggle—trampled down by his fellows in their haste 
to get rich—slighted where he once was honoured—humbly asking for, instead 
of bestowing, employment with a lordly hand. Of course, speaking so of the 
fate that, as a master, might be his own in the fluctuations of commerce, he 
was not likely to have more sympathy with that of the workmen, who were 
passed by in the swift merciless improvement or alteration who would fain lie 
down and quietly die out of the world that needed them not, but felt as if 
they could never rest in their graves for the clinging cries of the beloved 
and helpless they would leave behind; who envied the power of the wild bird, 
that can feed her young with her very heart's blood. Margaret's whole soul 
rose up against him while he reasoned in this way—as if commerce were 
everything and humanity nothing. She could hardly, thank him for the 
individual kindness, which brought him that very evening to offer her—for 
the delicacy which made him understand that he must offer her 
privately—every convenience for illness that his own wealth or his mother's 
foresight had caused them to accumulate in their household, and which, as he 
learnt from Dr. Donaldson, Mrs. Hale might possibly require. His presence, 
after the way he had spoken—his bringing before her the doom, which she was 
vainly trying to persuade herself might yet be averted from her mother—all 
conspired to set Margaret's teeth on edge, as she looked at him, and listened 
to him. What business had he to be the only person, except Dr. Donaldson and 
Dixon, admitted to the awful secret, which she held shut up in the most dark 
and sacred recess of her heart—not daring to look at it, unless she invoked 
heavenly strength to bear the sight—that, some day soon, she should cry 
aloud for her mother, and no answer would come out of the blank, dumb 
darkness? Yet he knew all. She saw it in his pitying eyes. She heard it in 
his grave and tremulous voice. How reconcile those eyes, that voice, with the 
hard-reasoning, dry, merciless way in which he laid down axioms of trade, and 
serenely followed them out to their full consequences? The discord jarred 
upon her inexpressibly. The more because of the gathering woe of which she 
heard from Bessy. To be sure, Nicholas Higgins, the father, spoke 
differently. He had been appointed a committee-man, and said that he knew 
secrets of which the exoteric knew nothing. He said this more expressly and 
particularly, on the very day before Mrs. Thornton's dinner-party, when 
Margaret, going in to speak to Bessy, found him arguing the point with 
Boucher, the neighbour of whom she had frequently heard mention, as by turns 
exciting Higgins's compassion, as an unskilful workman with a large family 
depending upon him for support, and at other times enraging his more 
energetic and sanguine neighbour by his want of what the latter called 
spirit. It was very evident that Higgins was in a passion when Margaret 
entered. Boucher stood, with both hands on the rather high mantel-piece, 
swaying himself a little on the support which his arms, thus placed, gave 
him, and looking wildly into the fire, with a kind of despair that irritated 
Higgins, even while it went to his heart. Bessy was rocking herself violently 
backwards and forwards, as was her wont (Margaret knew by this time) when she 
was agitated, Her sister Mary was tying on her bonnet (in great clumsy bows, 
as suited her great clumsy fingers), to go to her fustian-cutting, blubbering 
out loud the while, and evidently longing to be away from a scene that 
distressed her. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret came in upon this scene. She stood for a moment at 
the door—then, her finger on her lips, she stole to a seat on the squab near 
Bessy. Nicholas saw her come in, and greeted her with a gruff, but not 
unfriendly nod. Mary hurried out of the house catching gladly at the open 
door, and crying aloud when she got away from her father's presence. It was 
only John Boucher that took no notice whatever who came in and who went 
out. 
</p>
               <p>'It's no use, Higgins. Hoo cannot live long a' this'n. Hoo's just 
sinking away—not for want o' meat hersel'—but because hoo cannot stand th' 
sight o' the little ones clemming. Ay, clemming! Five shilling a week may do 
well enough for thee, wi' but two mouths to fill, and one on 'em a wench who 
can welly earn her own meat. But it's clemming to us. An' I tell thee 
plain—if hoo dies as I'm 'feard hoo will afore we've getten th' five per 
cent, I'll fling th' money back i' th' master's face, and say, “Be domned to 
yo'; be domned to th' whole cruel world o' yo'; that could na leave me th' 
best wife that ever bore childer to a man!” An' look thee, lad, I'll hate 
thee, and th' whole pack o' th' Union. Ay, an' chase yo' through heaven wi' 
my hatred,—I will, lad! I will,—if yo're leading me astray i' this matter. 
Thou saidst, Nicholas, on Wednesday sennight—and it's now Tuesday i' th' 
second week—that afore a fortnight we'd ha' the masters coming a-begging to 
us to take back our' work, at our own wage—and time's nearly up,—and 
there's our lile Jack lying a-bed, too weak to cry, but just every now and 
then sobbing up his heart for want o' food,—our lile Jack, I tell thee, lad! 
Hoo's never looked up sin' he were born, and hoo loves him as if he were her 
very life,—as he is,—for I reckon he'll ha' cost me that precious 
price,—our lile Jack, who wakened me each morn wi' putting his sweet little 
lips to my great rough fou' face, a-seeking a smooth place to kiss,—an' he 
lies clemming.' Here the deep sobs choked the poor man, and Nicholas looked 
up, with eyes brimful of tears, to Margaret, before he could gain courage to 
speak. 
</p>
               <p>'Hou'd up, man. Thy lile Jack shall na' clem. I ha' getten brass, 
and we'll go buy the chap a sup o' milk an' a good four-pounder this very 
minute. What's mine's thine, sure enough, i' thou'st i' want. Only, dunnot 
lose heart, man!' continued he, as he fumbled in a tea-pot for what money he 
had. 'I lay yo' my heart and soul we'll win for a' this: it's but bearing on 
one more week, and yo just see th' way th' masters 'll come round, praying on 
us to come back to our mills. An' th' Union,—that's to say, I—will take 
care yo've enough for th' childer and th' missus. So dunnot turn faint-heart, 
and go to th' tyrants a-seeking work.' 
</p>
               <p>The man turned round at these 
words,—turned round a face so white, and gaunt, and tear-furrowed, and 
hopeless, that its very calm forced Margaret to weep. 
</p>
               <p>'Yo' know well, that 
a worser tyrant than e'er th' masters were says “Clem to death, and see 'em 
a' clem to death, ere yo' dare go again th' Union.” Yo' know it well, 
Nicholas, for a' yo're one on 'em. Yo' may be kind hearts, each separate; but 
once banded together, yo've no more pity for a man than a wild 
hunger-maddened wolf.' 
</p>
               <p>Nicholas had his hand on the lock of the door—he 
stopped and turned round on Boucher, close following: 
</p>
               <p>'So help me God! man 
alive—if I think not I'm doing best for thee, and for all on us. If I'm 
going wrong when I think I'm going right, it's their sin, who ha' left me 
where I am, in my ignorance. I ha' thought till my brains ached,—Beli' me, 
John, I have. An' I say again, there's no help for us but having faith i' th' 
Union. They'll win the day, see if they dunnot!' 
</p>
               <p>Not one word had Margaret 
or Bessy spoken. They had hardly uttered the sighing, that the eyes of each 
called to the other to bring up from the depths of her heart. At last Bessy 
said, 
</p>
               <p>'I never thought to hear father call on God again. But yo' heard him 
say, “So help me God!”' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes!' said Margaret. 'Let me bring you what money 
I can spare,—let me bring you a little food for that poor man's children. 
Don't let them know it comes from any one but your father. It will be but 
little.' 
</p>
               <p>Bessy lay back without taking any notice of what Margaret said. 
She did not cry—she only quivered up her breath, 
</p>
               <p>'My heart's drained dry 
o' tears,' she said. 'Boucher's been in these days past, a telling me of his 
fears and his troubles. He's but a weak kind o' chap, I know, but he's a man 
for a' that; and tho' I've been angry, many a time afore now, wi' him an' his 
wife, as knew no more nor him how to manage, yet, yo' see, all folks isn't 
wise, yet God lets 'em live—ay, an' gives 'em some one to love, and be loved 
by, just as good as Solomon. An', if sorrow comes to them they love, it hurts 
'em as sore as e'er it did Solomon. I can't make it out. Perhaps it's as well 
such a one as Boucher has th' Union to see after him. But I'd just like for 
to see th' mean as make th' Union, and put 'em one by one face to face wi' 
Boucher. I reckon, if they heard him, they'd tell him (if I cotched 'em one 
by one), he might go back and get what he could for his work, even if it 
weren't so much as they ordered.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret sat utterly silent. How was she 
ever to go away into comfort and forget that man's voice, with the tone of 
unutterable agony, telling more by far than his words of what he had to 
suffer? She took out her purse; she had not much in it of what she could call 
her own, but what she had she put into Bessy's hand without 
speaking. 
</p>
               <p>'Thank yo'. There's many on 'em gets no more, and is not so bad 
off,—leastways does not show it as he does. But father won't let 'em want, 
now he knows.  Yo' see, Boucher's been pulled down wi' his childer,—and her 
being so cranky, and a' they could pawn has gone this last twelvemonth. Yo're 
not to think we'd ha' letten 'em clem, for all we're a bit pressed oursel'; 
if neighbours doesn't see after neighbours, I dunno who will.' Bessy seemed 
almostafraid lest Margaret should think they had not the will, and, to a 
certain degree, the power of helping one whom she evidently regarded as 
having a claim upon them. 'Besides,' she went on, 'father is sure and 
positive the masters must give in within these next few days,—that they 
canna hould on much longer. But I thank yo' all the same,—I thank yo' for 
mysel', as much as for Boucher, for it just makes my heart warm to yo' more 
and more.' 
</p>
               <p>Bessy seemed much quieter to-day, but fearfully languid a 
exhausted. As she finished speaking, she looked so faint and weary that 
Margaret became alarmed. 
</p>
               <p>'It's nout,' said Bessy. 'It's not death yet. I 
had a fearfu' night wi' dreams—or somewhat like dreams, for I were wide 
awake—and I'm all in a swounding daze to-day,—only yon poor chap made me 
alive again. No! it's not death yet, but death is not far off. Ay! Cover me 
up, and I'll may be sleep, if th' cough will let me.  Good night—good 
afternoon, m'appen I should say—but th' light is dim an' misty to-day.' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.20" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XX</head>
               <head>MEN AND GENTLEMEN</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Old and young, boy, let 'em all eat, I have it; </l>
                  <l>Let 'em have ten tire of teeth a-piece, I care not.' </l>
                  <l>ROLLO, DUKE OF NORMANDY. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Margaret went home so painfully occupied with what she had heard and seen 
that she hardly knew how to rouse herself up to the duties which awaited her; 
the necessity for keeping up a constant flow of cheerful conversation for her 
mother, who, now that she was unable to go out, always looked to Margaret's 
return from the shortest walk as bringing in some news. 
</p>
               <p>'And can your 
factory friend come on Thursday to see you dressed?' 
</p>
               <p>'She was so ill I 
never thought of asking her,' said Margaret, dolefully. 
</p>
               <p>'Dear! Everybody is 
ill now, I think,' said Mrs. Hale, with a little of the jealousy which one 
invalid is apt to feel of another. 'But it must be very sad to be ill in one 
of those little back streets.' (Her kindly nature prevailing, and the old 
Helstone habits of thought returning.) 'It's bad enough here. What could you 
do for her, Margaret? Mr. Thornton has sent me some of his old port wine 
since you went out. Would a bottle of that do her good, think you?' 
</p>
               <p>'No, 
mamma! I don't believe they are very poor,—at least, they don't speak as if 
they were; and, at any rate, Bessy's illness is consumption—she won't want 
wine. Perhaps, I might take her a little preserve, made of our dear Helstone 
fruit. No! there's another family to whom I should like to give—Oh mamma, 
mamma! how am I to dress up in my finery, and go off and away to smart 
parties, after the sorrow I have seen to-day?' exclaimed Margaret, bursting 
the bounds she had preordained for herself before she came in, and telling 
her mother of what she had seen and heard at Higgins's cottage. 
</p>
               <p>It 
distressed Mrs. Hale excessively. It made her restlessly irritated till she 
could do something. She directed Margaret to pack up a basket in the very 
drawing-room, to be sent there and then to the family; and was almost angry 
with her for saying, that it would not signify if it did not go till morning, 
as she knew Higgins had provided for their immediate wants, and she herself 
had left money with Bessy. Mrs. Hale called her unfeeling for saying this; 
and never gave herself breathing-time till the basket was sent out of the 
house. Then she said: 
</p>
               <p>'After all, we may have been doing wrong. It was only 
the last time Mr. Thornton was here that he said, those were no true friends 
who helped to prolong the struggle by assisting the turn outs. And this 
Boucher-man was a turn-out, was he not?' 
</p>
               <p>The question was referred to Mr. 
Hale by his wife, when he came up-stairs, fresh from giving a lesson to Mr. 
Thornton, which had ended in conversation, as was their wont. Margaret did 
not care if their gifts had prolonged the strike; she did not think far 
enough for that, in her present excited state. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale listened, and tried 
to be as calm as a judge; he recalled all that had seemed so clear not 
half-an-hour before, as it came out of Mr. Thornton's lips; and then he made 
an unsatisfactory compromise. His wife and daughter had not only done quite 
right in this instance, but he did not see for a moment how they could have 
done otherwise. Nevertheless, as a general rule, it was very true what Mr. 
Thornton said, that as the strike, if prolonged, must end in the masters' 
bringing hands from a distance (if, indeed, the final result were not, as it 
had often been before, the invention of some machine which would diminish the 
need of hands at all), why, it was clear enough that the kindest thing was to 
refuse all help which might bolster them up in their folly. But, as to this 
Boucher, he would go and see him the first thing in the morning, and try and 
find out what could be done for him. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale went the next morning, as he 
proposed. He did not find Boucher at home, but he had a long talk with his 
wife; promised to ask for an Infirmary order for her; and, seeing the plenty 
provided by Mrs. Hale, and somewhat lavishly used by the children, who were 
masters down-stairs in their father's absence, he came back with a more 
consoling and cheerful account than Margaret had dared to hope for; indeed, 
what she had said the night before had prepared her father for so much worse 
a state of things that, by a reaction of his imagination, he described all as 
better than it really was. 
</p>
               <p>'But I will go again, and see the man himself,' 
said Mr. Hale. 'I hardly know as yet how to compare one of these houses with 
our Helstone cottages. I see furniture here which our labourers would never 
have thought of buying, and food commonly used which they would consider 
luxuries; yet for these very families there seems no other resource, now that 
their weekly wages are stopped, but the pawn-shop. One had need to learn a 
different language, and measure by a different standard, up here in 
Milton.' 
</p>
               <p>Bessy, too, was rather better this day. Still she was so weak that 
she seemed to have entirely forgotten her wish to see Margaret dressed—if, 
indeed, that had not been the feverish desire of a half-delirious 
state. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret could not help comparing this strange dressing of hers, to 
go where she did not care to be—her heart heavy with various anxieties—with 
the old, merry, girlish toilettes that she and Edith had performed scarcely 
more than a year ago. Her only pleasure now in decking herself out was in 
thinking that her mother would take delight in seeing her dressed. She 
blushed when Dixon, throwing the drawing-room door open, made an appeal for 
admiration. 
</p>
               <p>'Miss Hale looks well, ma'am,—doesn't she? Mrs. Shaw's coral 
couldn't have come in better. It just gives the right touch of colour, ma'am. 
Otherwise, Miss Margaret, you would have been too pale.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret's black 
hair was too thick to be plaited; it needed rather to be twisted round and 
round, and have its fine silkiness compressed into massive coils, that 
encircled her head like a crown, and then were gathered into a large spiral 
knot behind. She kept its weight together by two large coral pins, like small 
arrows for length. Her white silk sleeves were looped up with strings of the 
same material, and on her neck, just below the base of her curved and 
milk-white throat, there lay heavy coral beads. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, Margaret! how I should 
like to be going with you to one of the old Barrington assemblies,—taking 
you as Lady Beresford used to take me.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret kissed her mother for this 
little burst of maternal vanity; but she could hardly smile at it, she felt 
so much out of spirits. 
</p>
               <p>'I would rather stay at home with you,—much 
rather, mamma.' 
</p>
               <p>'Nonsense, darling! Be sure you notice the dinner well. I 
shall like to hear how they manage these things in Milton. Particularly the 
second course, dear. Look what they have instead of game.' 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Hale would 
have been more than interested,—she would have been astonished, if she had 
seen the sumptuousness of the dinner-table and its appointments. Margaret, 
with her London cultivated taste, felt the number of delicacies to be 
oppressive one half of the quantity would have been enough, and the effect 
lighter and more elegant. But it was one of Mrs. Thornton's rigorous laws of 
hospitality, that of each separate dainty enough should be provided for all 
the guests to partake, if they felt inclined. Careless to abstemiousness in 
her daily habits, it was part of her pride to set a feast before such of her 
guests as cared for it. Her son shared this feeling. He had never 
known—though he might have imagined, and had the capability to relish—any 
kind of society but that which depended on an exchange of superb meals and 
even now, though he was denying himself the personal expenditure of an 
unnecessary sixpence, and had more than once regretted that the invitations 
for this dinner had been sent out, still, as it was to be, he was glad to see 
the old magnificence of preparation. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret and her father were the first 
to arrive. Mr. Hale was anxiously punctual to the time specified. There was 
no one up-stairs in the drawing-room but Mrs. Thornton and Fanny. Every cover 
was taken off, and the apartment blazed forth in yellow silk damask and a 
brilliantly-flowered carpet. Every corner seemed filled up with ornament, 
until it became a weariness to the eye, and presented a strange contrast to 
the bald ugliness of the look-out into the great mill-yard, where wide 
folding gates were thrown open for the admission of carriages. The mill 
loomed high on the left-hand side of the windows, casting a shadow down from 
its many stories, which darkened the summer evening before its time. 
</p>
               <p>'My 
son was engaged up to the last moment on business. He will be here directly, 
Mr. Hale. May I beg you to take a seat?' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale was standing at one of 
the windows as Mrs. Thornton spoke. He turned away, saying, 
</p>
               <p>'Don't you find 
such close neighbourhood to the mill rather unpleasant at times?' 
</p>
               <p>She drew 
herself up: 
</p>
               <p>'Never. I am not become so fine as to desire to forget the 
source of my son's wealth and power. Besides, there is not such another 
factory in Milton. One room alone is two hundred and twenty square 
yards.' 
</p>
               <p>'I meant that the smoke and the noise—the constant going out and 
coming in of the work-people, might be annoying!' 
</p>
               <p>'I agree with you, Mr. 
Hale!' said Fanny. 'There is a continual smell of steam, and oily 
machinery—and the noise is perfectly deafening.' 
</p>
               <p>'I have heard noise that 
was called music far more deafening. The engine-room is at the street-end of 
the factory; we hardly hear it, except in summer weather, when all the 
windows are open; and as for the continual murmur of the work-people, it 
disturbs me no more than the humming of a hive of bees. If I think of it at 
all, I connect it with my son, and feel how all belongs to him, and that his 
is the head that directs it. Just now, there are no sounds to come from the 
mill; the hands have been ungrateful enough to turn out, as perhaps you have 
heard. But the very business (of which I spoke, when you entered), had 
reference to the steps he is going to take to make them learn their place.' 
The expression on her face, always stern, deepened into dark anger, as she 
said this. Nor did it clear away when Mr. Thornton entered the room; for she 
saw, in an instant, the weight of care and anxiety which he could not shake 
off, although his guests received from him a greeting that appeared both 
cheerful and cordial. He shook hands with Margaret. He knew it was the first 
time their hands had met, though she was perfectly unconscious of the fact. 
He inquired after Mrs. Hale, and heard Mr. Hale's sanguine, hopeful account; 
and glancing at Margaret, to understand how far she agreed with her father, 
he saw that no dissenting shadow crossed her face. And as he looked with this 
intention, he was struck anew with her great beauty. He had never seen her in 
such dress before and yet now it appeared as if such elegance of attire was 
so befitting her noble figure and lofty serenity of countenance, that she 
ought to go always thus apparelled. She was talking to Fanny; about what, he 
could not hear; but he saw his sister's restless way of continually arranging 
some part of her gown, her wandering eyes, now glancing here, now there, but 
without any purpose in her observation; and he contrasted them uneasily with 
the large soft eyes that looked forth steadily at one object, as if from out 
their light beamed some gentle influence of repose: the curving lines of the 
red lips, just parted in the interest of listening to what her companion 
said—the head a little bent forwards, so as to make a long sweeping line 
from the summit, where the light caught on the glossy raven hair, to the 
smooth ivory tip of the shoulder; the round white arms, and taper hands, laid 
lightly across each other, but perfectly motionless in their pretty attitude. 
Mr. Thornton sighed as he took in all this with one of his sudden 
comprehensive glances. And then he turned his back to the young ladies, and 
threw himself, with an effort, but with all his heart and soul, into a 
conversation with Mr. Hale. 
</p>
               <p>More people came—more and more. Fanny left 
Margaret's side, and helped her mother to receive her guests. Mr. Thornton 
felt that in this influx no one was speaking to Margaret, and was restless 
under this apparent neglect. But he never went near her himself; he did not 
look at her. Only, he knew what she was doing—or not doing—better than he 
knew the movements of any one else in the room. Margaret was so unconscious 
of herself, and so much amused by watching other people, that she never 
thought whether she was left unnoticed or not. Somebody took her down to 
dinner; she did not catch the name; nor did he seem much inclined to talk to 
her. There was a very animated conversation going on among the gentlemen; the 
ladies, for the most part, were silent, employing themselves in taking notes 
of the dinner and criticising each other's dresses. Margaret caught the clue 
to the general conversation, grew interested and listened attentively. Mr. 
Horsfall, the stranger, whose visit to the town was the original germ of the 
party, was asking questions relative to the trade and manufactures of the 
place; and the rest of the gentlemen—all Milton men,—were giving him 
answers and explanations. Some dispute arose, which was warmly contested; it 
was referred to Mr. Thornton, who had hardly spoken before; but who now gave 
an opinion, the grounds of which were so clearly stated that even the 
opponents yielded. Margaret's attention was thus called to her host; his 
whole manner as master of the house, and entertainer of his friends, was so 
straightforward, yet simple and modest, as to be thoroughly dignified. 
Margaret thought she had never seen him to so much advantage. When he had 
come to their house, there had been always something, either of 
over-eagerness or of that kind of vexed annoyance which seemed ready to 
pre-suppose that he was unjustly judged, and yet felt too proud to try and 
make himself better understood. But now, among his fellows, there was no 
uncertainty as to his position. He was regarded by them as a man of great 
force of character; of power in many ways. There was no need to struggle for 
their respect. He had it, and he knew it; and the security of this gave a 
fine grand quietness to his voice and ways, which Margaret had missed 
before. 
</p>
               <p>He was not in the habit of talking to ladies; and what he did say 
was a little formal. To Margaret herself he hardly spoke at all. She was 
surprised to think how much she enjoyed this dinner. She knew enough now to 
understand many local interests—nay, even some of the technical words 
employed by the eager mill-owners. She silently took a very decided part in 
the question they were discussing. At any rate, they talked in desperate 
earnest,—not in the used-up style that wearied her so in the old London 
parties. She wondered that with all this dwelling on the manufactures and 
trade of the place, no allusion was made to the strike then pending. She did 
not yet know how coolly such things were taken by the masters, as having only 
one possible end. To be sure, the men were cutting their own throats, as they 
had done many a time before; but if they would be fools, and put themselves 
into the hands of a rascally set of paid delegates,' they must take the 
consequence. One or two thought Thornton looked out of spirits; and, of 
course, he must lose by this turn-out. But it was an accident that might 
happen to themselves any day; and Thornton was as good to manage a strike as 
any one; for he was as iron a chap as any in Milton. The hands had mistaken 
their man in trying that dodge on him. And they chuckled inwardly at the idea 
of the workmen's discomfiture and defeat, in their attempt to alter one iota 
of what Thornton had decreed. 
</p>
               <p>It was rather dull for Margaret after dinner. 
She was glad when the gentlemen came, not merely because she caught her 
father's eye to brighten her sleepiness up; but because she could listen to 
something larger and grander than the petty interests which the ladies had 
been talking about. She liked the exultation in the sense of power which 
these Milton men had. It might be rather rampant in its display, and savour 
of boasting; but still they seemed to defy the old limits of possibility, in 
a kind of fine intoxication, caused by the recollection of what had been 
achieved, and what yet should be. If in her cooler moments she might not 
approve of their spirit in all things, still there was much to admire in 
their forgetfulness of themselves and the present, in their anticipated 
triumphs over all inanimate matter at some future time which none of them 
should live to see. She was rather startled when Mr. Thornton spoke to her, 
close at her elbow: 
</p>
               <p>'I could see you were on our side in our discussion at 
dinner,—were you not, Miss Hale?' 
</p>
               <p>'Certainly. But then I know so little 
about it. I was surprised, however, to find from what Mr. Horsfall said, that 
there were others who thought in so diametrically opposite a manner, as the 
Mr. Morison he spoke about. He cannot be a gentleman—is he?' 
</p>
               <p>'I am not 
quite the person to decide on another's gentlemanliness, Miss Hale. I mean, I 
don't quite understand your application of the word. But I should say that 
this Morison is no true man. I don't know who he is; I merely judge him from 
Mr. Horsfall's account.' 
</p>
               <p>'I suspect my “gentleman” includes your “true 
man.”' 
</p>
               <p>'And a great deal more, you would imply. I differ from you. A man is 
to me a higher and a completer being than a gentleman.' 
</p>
               <p>'What do you mean?' 
asked Margaret. 'We must understand the words differently.' 
</p>
               <p>'I take it that 
“gentleman” is a term that only describes a person in his relation to others; 
but when we speak of him as “a man,” we consider him not merely with regard 
to his fellow-men, but in relation to himself,—to life—to time—to 
eternity. A cast-away lonely as Robinson Crusoe—a prisoner immured in a 
dungeon for life—nay, even a saint in Patmos, has his endurance, his 
strength, his faith, best described by being spoken of as “a man.” I am 
rather weary of this word “gentlemanly,” which seems to me to be often 
inappropriately used, and often, too, with such exaggerated distortion of 
meaning, while the full simplicity of the noun “man,” and the adjective 
“manly” are unacknowledged—that I am induced to class it with the cant of 
the day.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret thought a moment,—but before she could speak her slow 
conviction, he was called away by some of the eager manufacturers, whose 
speeches she could not hear, though she could guess at their import by the 
short clear answers Mr. Thornton gave, which came steady and firm as the boom 
of a distant minute gun. They were evidently talking of the turn-out, and 
suggesting what course had best be pursued. She heard Mr. Thornton 
say: 
</p>
               <p>'That has been done.' Then came a hurried murmur, in which two or 
three joined. 
</p>
               <p>'All those arrangements have been made.' 
</p>
               <p>Some doubts were 
implied, some difficulties named by Mr. Slickson, who took hold of Mr. 
Thornton's arm, the better to impress his words. Mr. Thornton moved slightly 
away, lifted his eyebrows a very little, and then replied: 
</p>
               <p>'I take the 
risk. You need not join in it unless you choose.' Still some more fears were 
urged. 
</p>
               <p>'I'm not afraid of anything so dastardly as incendiarism. We are 
open enemies; and I can protect myself from any violence that I apprehend. 
And I will assuredly protect all others who come to me for work. They know my 
determination by this time, as well and as fully as you do.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Horsfall 
took him a little on one side, as Margaret conjectured, to ask him some other 
question about the strike; but, in truth, it was to inquire who she herself 
was—so quiet, so stately, and so beautiful. 
</p>
               <p>'A Milton lady?' asked he, as 
the name was given. 
</p>
               <p>'No! from the south of England—Hampshire, I believe,' 
was the cold, indifferent answer. 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Slickson was catechising Fanny on 
the same subject. 
</p>
               <p>'Who is that fine distinguished-looking girl? a sister of 
Mr. Horsfall's?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh dear, no! That is Mr. Hale, her father, talking now to 
Mr. Stephens. He gives lessons; that is to say, he reads with young men. My 
brother John goes to him twice a week, and so he begged mamma to ask them 
here, in hopes of getting him known. I believe, we have some of their 
prospectuses, if you would like to have one.' 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Thornton! Does he really 
find time to read with a tutor, in the midst of all his business,—and this 
abominable strike in hand as well?' 
</p>
               <p>Fanny was not sure, from Mrs. 
Slickson's manner, whether she ought to be proud or ashamed of her brother's 
conduct; and, like all people who try and take other people's 'ought' for the 
rule of their feelings, she was inclined to blush for any singularity of 
action. Her shame was interrupted by the dispersion of the guests. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.21" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XXI</head>
               <head>THE DARK NIGHT</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'On earth is known to none </l>
                  <l>The smile that is not sister to a tear.' </l>
                  <l>ELLIOTT. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Margaret and her father walked home. The night was fine, the streets 
clean, and with her pretty white silk, like Leezie Lindsay's gown o' green 
satin, in the ballad, 'kilted up to her knee,' she was off with her 
father—ready to dance along with the excitement of the cool, fresh night 
air. 
</p>
               <p>'I rather think Thornton is not quite easy in his mind about this 
strike. He seemed very anxious to-night.' 
</p>
               <p>'I should wonder if he were not. 
But he spoke with his usual coolness to the others, when they suggested 
different things, just before we came away.' 
</p>
               <p>'So he did after dinner as 
well. It would take a good deal to stir him from his cool manner of speaking; 
but his face strikes me as anxious.' 
</p>
               <p>'I should be, if I were he. He must 
know of the growing anger and hardly smothered hatred of his workpeople, who 
all look upon him as what the Bible calls a “hard man,”—not so much unjust 
as unfeeling; clear in judgment, standing upon his “rights” as no human being 
ought to stand, considering what we and all our petty rights are in the sight 
of the Almighty. I am glad you think he looks anxious. When I remember 
Boucher's half mad words and ways, I cannot bear to think how coolly Mr. 
Thornton spoke.' 
</p>
               <p>'In the first place, I am not so convinced as you are 
about that man Boucher's utter distress; for the moment, he was badly off, I 
don't doubt. But there is always a mysterious supply of money from these 
Unions; and, from what you said, it was evident the man was of a passionate, 
demonstrative nature, and gave strong expression to all he felt.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, 
papa!' 
</p>
               <p>'Well! I only want you to do justice to Mr. Thornton, who is, I 
suspect, of an exactly opposite nature,—a man who is far too proud to show 
his feelings. Just the character I should have thought beforehand, you would 
have admired, Margaret.' 
</p>
               <p>'So I do,—so I should; but I don't feel quite so 
sure as you do of the existence of those feelings. He is a man of great 
strength of character,—of unusual intellect, considering the few advantages 
he has had.' 
</p>
               <p>'Not so few. He has led a practical life from a very early 
age; has been called upon to exercise judgment and self-control. All that 
developes one part of the intellect. To be sure, he needs some of the 
knowledge of the past, which gives the truest basis for conjecture as to the 
future; but he knows this need,—he perceives it, and that is something. You 
are quite prejudiced against Mr. Thornton, Margaret.' 
</p>
               <p>'He is the first 
specimen of a manufacturer—of a person engaged in trade—that I had ever the 
opportunity of studying, papa. He is my first olive: let me make a face while 
I swallow it. I know he is good of his kind, and by and by I shall like the 
kind. I rather think I am already beginning to do so. I was very much 
interested by what the gentlemen were talking about, although I did not 
understand half of it. I was quite sorry when Miss Thornton came to take me 
to the other end of the room, saying she was sure I should be uncomfortable 
at being the only lady among so many gentlemen. I had never thought about it, 
I was so busy listening; and the ladies were so dull, papa—oh, so dull! Yet 
I think it was clever too. It reminded me of our old game of having each so 
many nouns to introduce into a sentence.' 
</p>
               <p>'What do you mean, child?' asked 
Mr. Hale. 
</p>
               <p>'Why, they took nouns that were signs of things which gave 
evidence of wealth,—housekeepers, under-gardeners, extent of glass, valuable 
lace, diamonds, and all such things; and each one formed her speech so as to 
bring them all in, in the prettiest accidental manner possible.' 
</p>
               <p>'You will 
be as proud of your one servant when you get her, if all is true about her 
that Mrs. Thornton says.' 
</p>
               <p>'To be sure, I shall. I felt like a great 
hypocrite to-night, sitting there in my white silk gown, with my idle hands 
before me, when I remembered all the good, thorough, house-work they had done 
to-day. They took me for a fine lady, I'm sure.' 
</p>
               <p>'Even I was mistaken 
enough to think you looked like a lady my dear,' said Mr. Hale, quietly 
smiling. 
</p>
               <p>But smiles were changed to white and trembling looks, when they 
saw Dixon's face, as she opened the door. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, master!—Oh, Miss Margaret! 
Thank God you are come! Dr. Donaldson is here. The servant next door went for 
him, for the charwoman is gone home. She's better now; but, oh, sir! I 
thought she'd have died an hour ago.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale caught Margaret's arm to 
steady himself from falling. He looked at her face, and saw an expression 
upon it of surprise and extremest sorrow, but not the agony of terror that 
contracted his own unprepared heart. She knew more than he did, and yet she 
listened with that hopeless expression of awed apprehension. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! I should 
not have left her—wicked daughter that I am!' moaned forth Margaret, as she 
supported her trembling father's hasty steps up-stairs. Dr. Donaldson met 
them on the landing. 
</p>
               <p>'She is better now,' he whispered. 'The opiate has 
taken effect. The spasms were very bad: no wonder they frightened your maid; 
but she'll rally this time.' 
</p>
               <p>'This time! Let me go to her!' Half an hour 
ago, Mr. Hale was a middle-aged man; now his sight was dim, his senses 
wavering, his walk tottering, as if he were seventy years of age. 
</p>
               <p>Dr. 
Donaldson took his arm, and led him into the bedroom. Margaret followed 
close. There lay her mother, with an unmistakable look on her face. She might 
be better now; she was sleeping, but Death had signed her for his own, and it 
was clear that ere long he would return to take possession. Mr. Hale looked 
at her for some time without a word. Then he began to shake all over, and, 
turning away from Dr. Donaldson's anxious care, he groped to find the door; 
he could not see it, although several candles, brought in the sudden 
affright, were burning and flaring there. He staggered into the drawing-room, 
and felt about for a chair. Dr. Donaldson wheeled one to him, and placed him 
in it. He felt his pulse. 
</p>
               <p>'Speak to him, Miss Hale. We must rouse 
him.' 
</p>
               <p>'Papa!' said Margaret, with a crying voice that was wild with pain. 
'Papa! Speak to me!' The speculation came again into his eyes, and he made a 
great effort. 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret, did you know of this? Oh, it was cruel of 
you!' 
</p>
               <p>'No, sir, it was not cruel!' replied Dr. Donaldson, with quick 
decision. 'Miss Hale acted under my directions. There may have been a 
mistake, but it was not cruel. Your wife will be a different creature 
to-morrow, I trust. She has had spasms, as I anticipated, though I did not 
tell Miss Hale of my apprehensions. She has taken the opiate I brought with 
me; she will have a good long sleep; and to-morrow, that look which has 
alarmed you so much will have passed away.' 
</p>
               <p>'But not the disease?' 
</p>
               <p>Dr. 
Donaldson glanced at Margaret. Her bent head, her face raised with no appeal 
for a temporary reprieve, showed that quick observer of human nature that she 
thought it better that the whole truth should be told. 
</p>
               <p>'Not the disease. We 
cannot touch the disease, with all our poor vaunted skill. We can only delay 
its progress—alleviate the pain it causes. Be a man, sir—a Christian. Have 
faith in the immortality of the soul, which no pain, no mortal disease, can 
assail or touch!' 
</p>
               <p>But all the reply he got, was in the choked words, 'You 
have never been married, Dr. Donaldson; you do not know what it is,' and in 
the deep, manly sobs, which went through the stillness of the night like 
heavy pulses of agony. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret knelt by him, caressing him with tearful 
caresses. No one, not even Dr. Donaldson, knew how the time went by. Mr. Hale 
was the first to dare to speak of the necessities of the present 
moment. 
</p>
               <p>'What must we do?' asked he. 'Tell us both. Margaret is my 
staff—my right hand.' 
</p>
               <p>Dr. Donaldson gave his clear, sensible directions. 
No fear for to-night—nay, even peace for to-morrow, and for many days yet. 
But no enduring hope of recovery. He advised Mr. Hale to go to bed, and leave 
only one to watch the slumber, which he hoped would be undisturbed. He 
promised to come again early in the morning. And with a warm and kindly shake 
of the hand, he left them. 
</p>
               <p>They spoke but few words; they were too much 
exhausted by their terror to do more than decide upon the immediate course of 
action. Mr. Hale was resolved to sit up through the night, and all that 
Margaret could do was to prevail upon him to rest on the drawing-room sofa. 
Dixon stoutly and bluntly refused to go to bed; and, as for Margaret, it was 
simply impossible that she should leave her mother, let all the doctors in 
the world speak of 'husbanding resources,' and 'one watcher only being 
required.' So, Dixon sat, and stared, and winked, and drooped, and picked 
herself up again with a jerk, and finally gave up the battle, and fairly 
snored. Margaret had taken off her gown and tossed it aside with a sort of 
impatient disgust, and put on her dressing-gown. She felt as if she never 
could sleep again; as if her whole senses were acutely vital, and all endued 
with double keenness, for the purposes of watching. Every sight and 
sound—nay, even every thought, touched some nerve to the very quick. For 
more than two hours, she heard her father's restless movements in the next 
room. He came perpetually to the door of her mother's chamber, pausing there 
to listen, till she, not hearing his close unseen presence, went and opened 
it to tell him how all went on, in reply to the questions his baked lips 
could hardly form. At last he, too, fell asleep, and all the house was still. 
Margaret sate behind the curtain thinking. Far away in time, far away in 
space, seemed all the interests of past days. Not more than thirty-six hours 
ago, she cared for Bessy Higgins and her father, and her heart was wrung for 
Boucher; now, that was all like a dreaming memory of some former 
life;—everything that had passed out of doors seemed dissevered from her 
mother, and therefore unreal. Even Harley Street appeared more distinct; 
there she remembered, as if it were yesterday, how she had pleased herself 
with tracing out her mother's features in her Aunt Shaw's face,—and how 
letters had come, making her dwell on the thoughts of home with all the 
longing of love. Helstone, itself, was in the dim past. The dull gray days of 
the preceding winter and spring, so uneventless and monotonous, seemed more 
associated with what she cared for now above all price. She would fain have 
caught at the skirts of that departing time, and prayed it to return, and 
give her back what she had too little valued while it was yet in her 
possession. What a vain show Life seemed! How unsubstantial, and flickering, 
and flitting! It was as if from some aerial belfry, high up above the stir 
and jar of the earth, there was a bell continually tolling, 'All are 
shadows!—all are passing!—all is past!' And when the morning dawned, cool 
and gray, like many a happier morning before—when Margaret looked one by one 
at the sleepers, it seemed as if the terrible night were unreal as a dream; 
it, too, was a shadow. It, too, was past. 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Hale herself was not aware 
when she awoke, how ill she had been the night before. She was rather 
surprised at Dr. Donaldson's early visit, and perplexed by the anxious faces 
of husband and child. She consented to remain in bed that day, saying she 
certainly was tired; but, the next, she insisted on getting up; and Dr. 
Donaldson gave his consent to her returning into the drawing-room. She was 
restless and uncomfortable in every position, and before night she became 
very feverish. Mr. Hale was utterly listless, and incapable of deciding on 
anything. 
</p>
               <p>'What can we do to spare mamma such another night?' asked 
Margaret on the third day. 
</p>
               <p>'It is, to a certain degree, the reaction after 
the powerful opiates I have been obliged to use. It is more painful for you 
to see than for her to bear, I believe. But, I think, if we could get a 
water-bed it might be a good thing. Not but what she will be better 
to-morrow; pretty much like herself as she was before this attack. Still, I 
should like her to have a water-bed. Mrs. Thornton has one, I know. I'll try 
and call there this afternoon. Stay,' said he, his eye catching on Margaret's 
face, blanched with watching in a sick room, 'I'm not sure whether I can go; 
I've a long round to take. It would do you no harm to have a brisk walk to 
Marlborough Street, and ask Mrs. Thornton if she can spare 
it.' 
</p>
               <p>'Certainly,' said Margaret. 'I could go while mamma is asleep this 
afternoon. I'm sure Mrs. Thornton would lend it to us.' 
</p>
               <p>Dr. Donaldson's 
experience told them rightly. Mrs. Hale seemed to shake off the consequences 
of her attack, and looked brighter and better this afternoon than Margaret 
had ever hoped to see her again. Her daughter left her after dinner, sitting 
in her easy chair, with her hand lying in her husband's, who looked more worn 
and suffering than she by far. Still, he could smile now-rather slowly, 
rather faintly, it is true; but a day or two before, Margaret never thought 
to see him smile again. 
</p>
               <p>It was about two miles from their house in Crampton 
Crescent to Marlborough Street. It was too hot to walk very quickly. An 
August sun beat straight down into the street at three o'clock in the 
afternoon. Margaret went along, without noticing anything very different from 
usual in the first mile and a half of her journey; she was absorbed in her 
own thoughts, and had learnt by this time to thread her way through the 
irregular stream of human beings that flowed through Milton streets. But, by 
and by, she was struck with an unusual heaving among the mass of people in 
the crowded road on which she was entering. They did not appear to be moving 
on, so much as talking, and listening, and buzzing with excitement, without 
much stirring from the spot where they might happen to be. Still, as they 
made way for her, and, wrapt up in the purpose of her errand, and the 
necessities that suggested it, she was less quick of observation than she 
might have been, if her mind had been at ease, she had got into Marlborough 
Street before the full conviction forced itself upon her, that there was a 
restless, oppressive sense of irritation abroad among the people; a 
thunderous atmosphere, morally as well as physically, around her. From every 
narrow lane opening out on Marlborough Street came up a low distant roar, as 
of myriads of fierce indignant voices. The inhabitants of each poor squalid 
dwelling were gathered round the doors and windows, if indeed they were not 
actually standing in the middle of the narrow ways—all with looks intent 
towards one point. Marlborough Street itself was the focus of all those human 
eyes, that betrayed intensest interest of various kinds; some fierce with 
anger, some lowering with relentless threats, some dilated with fear, or 
imploring entreaty; and, as Margaret reached the small side-entrance by the 
folding doors, in the great dead wall of Marlborough mill-yard and waited the 
porter's answer to the bell, she looked round and heard the first long 
far-off roll of the tempest;—saw the first slow-surging wave of the dark 
crowd come, with its threatening crest, tumble over, and retreat, at the far 
end of the street, which a moment ago, seemed so full of repressed noise, but 
which now was ominously still; all these circumstances forced themselves on 
Margaret's notice, but did not sink down into her pre-occupied heart. She did 
not know what they meant—what was their deep significance; while she did 
know, did feel the keen sharp pressure of the knife that was soon to stab her 
through and through by leaving her motherless. She was trying to realise 
that, in order that, when it came, she might be ready to comfort her 
father. 
</p>
               <p>The porter opened the door cautiously, not nearly wide enough to 
admit her. 
</p>
               <p>'It's you, is it, ma'am?' said he, drawing a long breath, and 
widening the entrance, but still not opening it fully. Margaret went in. He 
hastily bolted it behind her. 
</p>
               <p>'Th' folk are all coming up here I reckon?' 
asked he. 
</p>
               <p>'I don't know. Something unusual seemed going on; but this street 
is quite empty, I think.' 
</p>
               <p>She went across the yard and up the steps to the 
house door. There was no near sound,—no steam-engine at work with beat and 
pant,—no click of machinery, or mingling and clashing of many sharp voices; 
but far away, the ominous gathering roar, deep-clamouring. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.22" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XXII</head>
               <head>A BLOW AND ITS CONSEQUENCES</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'But work grew scarce, while bread grew dear, </l>
                  <l>And wages lessened, too; </l>
                  <l>For Irish hordes were bidders here, </l>
                  <l>Our half-paid work to do.' </l>
                  <l>CORN LAW RHYMES. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Margaret was shown into the drawing-room. It had returned into its normal 
state of bag and covering. The windows were half open because of the heat, 
and the Venetian blinds covered the glass,—so that a gray grim light, 
reflected from the pavement below, threw all the shadows wrong, and combined 
with the green-tinged upper light to make even Margaret's own face, as she 
caught it in the mirrors, look ghastly and wan. She sat and waited; no one 
came. Every now and then, the wind seemed to bear the distant multitudinous 
sound nearer; and yet there was no wind! It died away into profound stillness 
between whiles. 
</p>
               <p>Fanny came in at last. 
</p>
               <p>'Mamma will come directly, Miss 
Hale. She desired me to apologise to you as it is. Perhaps you know my 
brother has imported hands from Ireland, and it has irritated the Milton 
people excessively—as if he hadn't a right to get labour where he could; and 
the stupid wretches here wouldn't work for him; and now they've frightened 
these poor Irish starvelings so with their threats, that we daren't let them 
out. You may see them huddled in that top room in the mill,—and they're to 
sleep there, to keep them safe from those brutes, who will neither work nor 
let them work. And mamma is seeing about their food, and John is speaking to 
them, for some of the women are crying to go back. Ah! here's mamma!' 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. 
Thornton came in with a look of black sternness on her face, which made 
Margaret feel she had arrived at a bad time to trouble her with her request. 
However, it was only in compliance with Mrs. Thornton's expressed desire, 
that she would ask for whatever they might want in the progress of her 
mother's illness. Mrs. Thornton's brow contracted, and her mouth grew set, 
while Margaret spoke with gentle modesty of her mother's restlessness, and 
Dr. Donaldson's wish that she should have the relief of a water-bed. She 
ceased. Mrs. Thornton did not reply immediately. Then she started up and 
exclaimed— 
</p>
               <p>'They're at the gates! Call John, Fanny,—call him in from the 
mill! They're at the gates! They'll batter them in! Call John, I say!' 
</p>
               <p>And 
simultaneously, the gathering tramp—to which she had been listening, instead 
of heeding Margaret's words—was heard just right outside the wall, and an 
increasing din of angry voices raged behind the wooden barrier, which shook 
as if the unseen maddened crowd made battering-rams of their bodies, and 
retreated a short space only to come with more united steady impetus against 
it, till their great beats made the strong gates quiver, like reeds before 
the wind. 
</p>
               <p>The women gathered round the windows, fascinated to look on the 
scene which terrified them. Mrs. Thornton, the women-servants, Margaret,—all 
were there. Fanny had returned, screaming up-stairs as if pursued at every 
step, and had thrown herself in hysterical sobbing on the sofa. Mrs. Thornton 
watched for her son, who was still in the mill. He came out, looked up at 
them—the pale cluster of faces—and smiled good courage to them, before he 
locked the factory-door. Then he called to one of the women to come down and 
undo his own door, which Fanny had fastened behind her in her mad flight. 
Mrs. Thornton herself went. And the sound of his well-known and commanding 
voice, seemed to have been like the taste of blood to the infuriated 
multitude outside. Hitherto they had been voiceless, wordless, needing all 
their breath for their hard-labouring efforts to break down the gates. But 
now, hearing him speak inside, they set up such a fierce unearthly groan, 
that even Mrs. Thornton was white with fear as she preceded him into the 
room. He came in a little flushed, but his eyes gleaming, as in answer to the 
trumpet-call of danger, and with a proud look of defiance on his face, that 
made him a noble, if not a handsome man. Margaret had always dreaded lest her 
courage should fail her in any emergency, and she should be proved to be, 
what she dreaded lest she was—a coward. But now, in this real great time of 
reasonable fear and nearness of terror, she forgot herself, and felt only an 
intense sympathy—intense to painfulness—in the interests of the 
moment. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton came frankly forwards: 
</p>
               <p>'I'm sorry, Miss Hale, you 
have visited us at this unfortunate moment, when, I fear, you may be involved 
in whatever risk we have to bear. Mother! hadn't you better go into the back 
rooms? I'm not sure whether they may not have made their way from Pinner's 
Lane into the stable-yard; but if not, you will be safer there than here. Go 
Jane!' continued he, addressing the upper-servant. And she went, followed by 
the others. 
</p>
               <p>'I stop here!' said his mother. 'Where you are, there I stay.' 
And indeed, retreat into the back rooms was of no avail; the crowd had 
surrounded the outbuildings at the rear, and were sending forth their: awful 
threatening roar behind. The servants retreated into the garrets, with many a 
cry and shriek. Mr. Thornton smiled scornfully as he heard them. He glanced 
at Margaret, standing all by herself at the window nearest the factory. Her 
eyes glittered, her colour was deepened on cheek and lip. As if she felt his 
look, she turned to him and asked a question that had been for some time in 
her mind: 
</p>
               <p>'Where are the poor imported work-people? In the factory 
there?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes! I left them cowered up in a small room, at the head of a back 
flight of stairs; bidding them run all risks, and escape down there, if they 
heard any attack made on the mill-doors. But it is not them—it is me they 
want.' 
</p>
               <p>'When can the soldiers be here?' asked his mother, in a low but not 
unsteady voice. 
</p>
               <p>He took out his watch with the same measured composure with 
which he did everything. He made some little calculation: 
</p>
               <p>'Supposing 
Williams got straight off when I told him, and hadn't to dodge about amongst 
them—it must be twenty minutes yet.' 
</p>
               <p>'Twenty minutes!' said his mother, 
for the first time showing her terror in the tones of her voice. 
</p>
               <p>'Shut down 
the windows instantly, mother,' exclaimed he: 'the gates won't bear such 
another shock. Shut down that window, Miss Hale.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret shut down her 
window, and then went to assist Mrs. Thornton's trembling fingers. 
</p>
               <p>From 
some cause or other, there was a pause of several minutes in the unseen 
street. Mrs. Thornton looked with wild anxiety at her son's countenance, as 
if to gain the interpretation of the sudden stillness from him. His face was 
set into rigid lines of contemptuous defiance; neither hope nor fear could be 
read there. 
</p>
               <p>Fanny raised herself up: 
</p>
               <p>'Are they gone?' asked she, in a 
whisper. 
</p>
               <p>'Gone!' replied he. 'Listen!' 
</p>
               <p>She did listen; they all could 
hear the one great straining breath; the creak of wood slowly yielding; the 
wrench of iron; the mighty fall of the ponderous gates. Fanny stood up 
tottering—made a step or two towards her mother, and fell forwards into her 
arms in a fainting fit. Mrs. Thornton lifted her up with a strength that was 
as much that of the will as of the body, and carried her away. 
</p>
               <p>'Thank God!' 
said Mr. Thornton, as he watched her out. 'Had you not better go upstairs, 
Miss Hale?' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret's lips formed a 'No!'—but he could not hear her 
speak, for the tramp of innumerable steps right under the very wall of the 
house, and the fierce growl of low deep angry voices that had a ferocious 
murmur of satisfaction in them, more dreadful than their baffled cries not 
many minutes before. 
</p>
               <p>'Never mind!' said he, thinking to encourage her. 'I 
am very sorry you should have been entrapped into all this alarm; but it 
cannot last long now; a few minutes more, and the soldiers will be 
here.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, God!' cried Margaret, suddenly; 'there is Boucher. I know his 
face, though he is livid with rage,—he is fighting to get to the 
front—look! look!' 
</p>
               <p>'Who is Boucher?' asked Mr. Thornton, coolly, and 
coming close to the window to discover the man in whom Margaret took such an 
interest. As soon as they saw Mr. Thornton, they set up a yell,—to call it 
not human is nothing,—it was as the demoniac desire of some terrible wild 
beast for the food that is withheld from his ravening. Even he drew hack for 
a moment, dismayed at the intensity of hatred he had provoked. 
</p>
               <p>'Let them 
yell!' said he. 'In five minutes more—. I only hope my poor Irishmen are not 
terrified out of their wits by such a fiendlike noise. Keep up your courage 
for five minutes, Miss Hale.' 
</p>
               <p>'Don't be afraid for me,' she said hastily. 
'But what in five minutes? Can you do nothing to soothe these poor creatures? 
It is awful to see them.' 
</p>
               <p>'The soldiers will be here directly, and that 
will bring them to reason.' 
</p>
               <p>'To reason!' said Margaret, quickly. 'What kind 
of reason?' 
</p>
               <p>'The only reason that does with men that make themselves into 
wild beasts. By heaven! they've turned to the mill-door!' 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Thornton,' 
said Margaret, shaking all over with her passion, 'go down this instant, if 
you are not a coward. Go down and face them like a man. Save these poor 
strangers, whom you have decoyed here. Speak to your workmen as if they were 
human beings. Speak to them kindly. Don't let the soldiers come in and cut 
down poor-creatures who are driven mad. I see one there who is. If you have 
any courage or noble quality in you, go out and speak to them, man to 
man.' 
</p>
               <p>He turned and looked at her while she spoke. A dark cloud came over 
his face while he listened. He set his teeth as he heard her words. 
</p>
               <p>'I will 
go. Perhaps I may ask you to accompany me downstairs, and bar the door behind 
me; my mother and sister will need that protection.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! Mr. Thornton! I 
do not know—I may be wrong—only—' 
</p>
               <p>But he was gone; he was downstairs in 
the hall; he had unbarred the front door; all she could do, was to follow him 
quickly, and fasten it behind him, and clamber up the stairs again with a 
sick heart and a dizzy head. Again she took her place by the farthest window. 
He was on the steps below; she saw that by the direction of a thousand angry 
eyes; but she could neither see nor hear any-thing save the savage 
satisfaction of the rolling angry murmur. She threw the window wide open. 
Many in the crowd were mere boys; cruel and thoughtless,—cruel because they 
were thoughtless; some were men, gaunt as wolves, and mad for prey. She knew 
how it was; they were like Boucher, with starving children at home—relying 
on ultimate success in their efforts to get higher wages, and enraged beyond 
measure at discovering that Irishmen were to be brought in to rob their 
little ones of bread. Margaret knew it all; she read it in Boucher's face, 
forlornly desperate and livid with rage. If Mr. Thornton would but say 
something to them—let them hear his voice only—it seemed as if it would be 
better than this wild beating and raging against the stony silence that 
vouchsafed them. no word, even of anger or reproach. But perhaps he was 
speaking now; there was a momentary hush of their noise, inarticulate as that 
of a troop of animals. She tore her bonnet off; and bent forwards to hear. 
She could only see; for if Mr. Thornton had indeed made the attempt to speak, 
the momentary instinct to listen to him was past and gone, and the people 
were raging worse than ever. He stood with his arms folded; still as a 
statue; his face pale with repressed excitement. They were trying to 
intimidate him—to make him flinch; each was urging the other on to some 
immediate act of personal violence. Margaret felt intuitively, that in an 
instant all would be uproar; the first touch would cause an explosion, in 
which, among such hundreds of infuriated men and reckless boys, even Mr. 
Thornton's life would be unsafe,—that in another instant the stormy passions 
would have passed their bounds, and swept away all barriers of reason, or 
apprehension of consequence. Even while she looked, she saw lads in the 
back-ground stooping to take off their heavy wooden clogs—the readiest 
missile they could find; she saw it was the spark to the gunpowder, and, with 
a cry, which no one heard, she rushed out of the room, down stairs,—she had 
lifted the great iron bar of the door with an imperious force—had thrown the 
door open wide—and was there, in face of that angry sea of men, her eyes 
smiting them with flaming arrows of reproach. The clogs were arrested in the 
hands that held them—the countenances, so fell not a moment before, now 
looked irresolute, and as if asking what this meant. For she stood between 
them and their enemy. She could not speak, but held out her arms towards them 
till she could recover breath. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, do not use violence! He is one man, and 
you are many; but her words died away, for there was no tone in her voice; it 
was but a hoarse whisper. Mr. Thornton stood a little on one side; he had 
moved away from behind her, as if jealous of anything that should come 
between him and danger. 
</p>
               <p>'Go!' said she, once more (and now her voice was 
like a cry). 'The soldiers are sent for—are coming. Go peaceably. Go away. 
You shall have relief from your complaints, whatever they are.' 
</p>
               <p>'Shall them 
Irish blackguards be packed back again?' asked one from out the crowd, with 
fierce threatening in his voice. 
</p>
               <p>'Never, for your bidding!' exclaimed Mr. 
Thornton. And instantly the storm broke. The hootings rose and filled the 
air,—but Margaret did not hear them. Her eye was on the group of lads who 
had armed themselves with their clogs some time before. She saw their 
gesture—she knew its meaning,—she read their aim. Another moment, and Mr. 
Thornton might be smitten down,—he whom she had urged and goaded to come to 
this perilous place. She only thought how she could save him. She threw her 
arms around him; she made her body into a shield from the fierce people 
beyond. Still, with his arms folded, he shook her off. 
</p>
               <p>'Go away,' said he, 
in his deep voice. 'This is no place for you.' 
</p>
               <p>'It is!' said she. 'You did 
not see what I saw.' If she thought her sex would be a protection,—if, with 
shrinking eyes she had turned away from the terrible anger of these men, in 
any hope that ere she looked again they would have paused and reflected, and 
slunk away, and vanished,—she was wrong. Their reckless passion had carried 
them too far to stop—at least had carried some of them too far; for it is 
always the savage lads, with their love of cruel excitement, who head the 
riot—reckless to what bloodshed it may lead. A clog whizzed through the air. 
Margaret's fascinated eyes watched its progress; it missed its aim, and she 
turned sick with affright, but changed not her position, only hid her face on 
Mr. Thornton's arm. Then she turned and spoke again:' 
</p>
               <p>'For God's sake! do 
not damage your cause by this violence. You do not know what you are doing.' 
She strove to make her words distinct. 
</p>
               <p>A sharp pebble flew by her, grazing 
forehead and cheek, and drawing a blinding sheet of light before her eyes. 
She lay like one dead on Mr. Thornton's shoulder. Then he unfolded his arms, 
and held her encircled in one for an instant: 
</p>
               <p>'You do well!' said he. 'You 
come to oust the innocent stranger You fall—you hundreds—on one man; and 
when a woman comes before you, to ask you for your own sakes to be reasonable 
creatures, your cowardly wrath falls upon her! You do well!' They were silent 
while he spoke. They were watching, open-eyed and open-mouthed, the thread of 
dark-red blood which wakened them up from their trance of passion. Those 
nearest the gate stole out ashamed; there was a movement through all the 
crowd—a retreating movement. Only one voice cried out: 
</p>
               <p>'Th' stone were 
meant for thee; but thou wert sheltered behind a woman!' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton 
quivered with rage. The blood-flowing had made Margaret conscious—dimly, 
vaguely conscious. He placed her gently on the door-step, her head leaning 
against the frame. 
</p>
               <p>'Can you rest there?' he asked. But without waiting for 
her answer, he went slowly down the steps right into the middle of the crowd. 
'Now kill me, if it is your brutal will. There is no woman to shield me here. 
You may beat me to death—you will never move me from what I have determined 
upon—not you!' He stood amongst them, with his arms folded, in precisely the 
same attitude as he had been in on the steps. 
</p>
               <p>But the retrograde movement 
towards the gate had begun—as unreasoningly, perhaps as blindly, as the 
simultaneous anger. Or, perhaps, the idea of the approach of the soldiers, 
and the sight of that pale, upturned face, with closed eyes, still and sad as 
marble, though the tears welled out of the long entanglement of eyelashes and 
dropped down; and, heavier, slower plash than even tears, came the drip of 
blood from her wound. Even the most desperate—Boucher himself—drew back, 
faltered away, scowled, and finally went off, muttering curses on the master, 
who stood in his unchanging attitude, looking after their retreat with 
defiant eyes. The moment that retreat had changed into a flight (as it was 
sure from its very character to do), he darted up the steps to 
Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>She tried to rise without his help. 
</p>
               <p>'It is nothing,' she said, 
with a sickly smile. 'The skin is grazed, and I was stunned at the moment. 
Oh, I am so thankful they are gone!' And she cried without restraint. 
</p>
               <p>He 
could not sympathise with her. His anger had not abated; it was rather rising 
the more as his sense of immediate danger was passing away. The distant clank 
of the soldiers was heard just five minutes too late to make this vanished 
mob feel the power of authority and order. He hoped they would see the 
troops, and be quelled by the thought of their narrow escape. While these 
thoughts crossed his mind, Margaret clung to the doorpost to steady 
herself:but a film came over her eyes—he was only just in time to catch her. 
'Mother—mother!' cried he; 'Come down—they are gone, and Miss Hale is 
hurt!' He bore her into the dining-room, and laid her on the sofa there; laid 
her down softly, and looking on her pure white face, the sense of what she 
was to him came upon him so keenly that he spoke it out in his pain: 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, 
my Margaret—my Margaret! no one can tell what you are to me! Dead—cold as 
you lie there, you are the only woman I ever loved! Oh, 
Margaret—Margaret!' 
</p>
               <p>Inarticulately as he spoke, kneeling by her, and 
rather moaning than saying the words, he started up, ashamed of himself, as 
his mother came in. She saw nothing, but her son a little paler, a little 
sterner than usual. 
</p>
               <p>'Miss Hale is hurt, mother. A stone has grazed her 
temple. She has lost a good deal of blood, I'm afraid.' 
</p>
               <p>'She looks very 
seriously hurt,—I could almost fancy her dead,' said Mrs. Thornton, a good 
deal alarmed. 
</p>
               <p>'It is only a fainting-fit. She has spoken to me since.' But 
all the blood in his body seemed to rush inwards to his heart as he spoke, 
and he absolutely trembled. 
</p>
               <p>'Go and call Jane,—she can find me the things 
I want; and do you go to your Irish people, who are crying and shouting as if 
they were mad with fright.' 
</p>
               <p>He went. He went away as if weights were tied 
to every limb that bore him from her. He called Jane; he called his sister. 
She should have all womanly care, all gentle tendance. But every pulse beat 
in him as he remembered how she had come down and placed herself in foremost 
danger,—could it be to save him? At the time, he had pushed her aside, and 
spoken gruffly; he had seen nothing but the unnecessary danger she had placed 
herself in. He went to his Irish people, with every nerve in his body 
thrilling at the thought of her, and found it difficult to understand enough 
of what they were saying to soothe and comfort away their fears. There, they 
declared, they would not stop; they claimed to be sent back. 
</p>
               <p>And so he had 
to think, and talk, and reason. 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Thornton bathed Margaret's temples 
with eau de Cologne. As the spirit touched the wound, which till then neither 
Mrs. Thornton nor Jane had perceived, Margaret opened her eyes; but it was 
evident she did not know where she was, nor who they were. The dark circles 
deepened, the lips quivered and contracted, and she became insensible once 
more. 
</p>
               <p>'She has had a terrible blow,' said Mrs. Thornton. 'Is there any one 
who will go for a doctor?' 
</p>
               <p>'Not me, ma'am, if you please,' said Jane, 
shrinking back. 'Them rabble may be all about; I don't think the cut is so 
deep, ma'am, as it looks.' 
</p>
               <p>'I will not run the chance. She was hurt in our 
house. If you are a coward, Jane, I am not. I will go.' 
</p>
               <p>'Pray, ma'am, let 
me send one of the police. There's ever so many come up, and soldiers 
too.' 
</p>
               <p>'And yet you're afraid to go! I will not have their time taken up 
with our errands. They'll have enough to do to catch some of the mob. You 
will not be afraid to stop in this house,' she asked contemptuously, 'and go 
on bathing Miss Hale's forehead, shall you? I shall not be ten minutes 
away.' 
</p>
               <p>'Couldn't Hannah go, ma'am?' 
</p>
               <p>'Why Hannah? Why any but you? No, 
Jane, if you don't go, I do.' 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Thornton went first to the room in which 
she had left Fanny stretched on the bed. She started up as her mother 
entered. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, mamma, how you terrified me! I thought you were a man that 
had got into the house.' 
</p>
               <p>'Nonsense! The men are all gone away. There are 
soldiers all round the place, seeking for their work now it is too late. Miss 
Hale is lying on the dining-room sofa badly hurt. I am going for the 
doctor.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! don't, mamma! they'll murder you.' She clung to he mother's 
gown. Mrs. Thornton wrenched it away with no gentle hand. 
</p>
               <p>'Find me some one 
else to go but that girl must not bleed to death.' 
</p>
               <p>'Bleed! oh, how horrid! 
How has she got hurt?' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't know,—I have no time to ask. Go down to 
her, Fanny, and do try to make yourself of use. Jane is with her; and I trust 
it looks worse than it is. Jane has refused to leave the house, cowardly 
woman! And I won't put myself in the way of any more refusals from my 
servants, so I am going myself.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, dear, dear!' said Fanny, crying, and 
preparing to go down rather than be left alone, with the thought of wounds 
and bloodshed in the very house. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, Jane!' said she, creeping into the 
dining-room, 'what is the matter? How white she looks! How did she get hurt? 
Did they throw stones into the drawing-room?' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret did indeed look 
white and wan, although her senses were beginning to return to her. But the 
sickly daze of the swoon made her still miserably faint. She was conscious of 
movement around her, and of refreshment from the eau de Cologne, and a 
craving for the bathing to go on without intermission; but when they stopped 
to talk, she could no more have opened her eyes, or spoken to ask for more 
bathing, than the people who lie in death-like trance can move, or utter 
sound, to arrest the awful preparations for their burial, while they are yet 
fully aware, not merely of the actions of those around them, but of the idea 
that is the motive for such actions. 
</p>
               <p>Jane paused in her bathing, to reply 
to Miss Thornton's question. 
</p>
               <p>'She'd have been safe enough, miss, if she'd 
stayed in the drawing-room, or come up to us; we were in the front garret, 
and could see it all, out of harm's way.' 
</p>
               <p>'Where was she, then?' said 
Fanny, drawing nearer by slow degrees, as she became accustomed to the sight 
of Margaret's pale face. 
</p>
               <p>'Just before the front door—with master!' said 
Jane, significantly. 
</p>
               <p>'With John! with my brother! How did she get 
there?' 
</p>
               <p>'Nay, miss, that's not for me to say,' answered Jane, with a slight 
toss of her head. 'Sarah did'—— 
</p>
               <p>'Sarah what?' said Fanny, with impatient 
curiosity. 
</p>
               <p>Jane resumed her bathing, as if what Sarah did or said was not 
exactly the thing she liked to repeat. 
</p>
               <p>'Sarah what?' asked Fanny, sharply. 
'Don't speak in these half sentences, or I can't understand you.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, 
miss, since you will have it—Sarah, you see, was in the best place for 
seeing, being at the right-hand window; and she says, and said at the very 
time too, that she saw Miss Hale with her arms about master's neck, hugging 
him before all the people.' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't believe it,' said Fanny. 'I know she 
cares for my brother; any one can see that; and I dare say, she'd give her 
eyes if he'd marry her,—which he never will, I can tell her. But I don't 
believe she'd be so bold and forward as to put her arms round his 
neck.' 
</p>
               <p>'Poor young lady! she's paid for it dearly if she did. It's my 
belief, that the blow has given her such an ascendency of blood to the head 
as she'll never get the better from. She looks like a corpse now.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, I 
wish mamma would come!' said Fanny, wringing her hands. 'I never was in the 
room with a dead person before.' 
</p>
               <p>'Stay, miss! She's not dead: her eye-lids 
are quivering, and here's wet tears a-coming down her cheeks. Speak to her, 
Miss Fanny!' 
</p>
               <p>'Are you better now?' asked Fanny, in a quavering voice. 
</p>
               <p>No 
answer; no sign of recognition; but a faint pink colour returned to her lips, 
although the rest of her face was ashen pale. 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Thornton came hurriedly 
in, with the nearest surgeon she could find. 
</p>
               <p>'How is she? Are you better, 
my dear?' as Margaret opened her filmy eyes, and gazed dreamily at her. 'Here 
is Mr. Lowe come to see you.' 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Thornton spoke loudly and distinctly, as 
to a deaf person. Margaret tried to rise, and drew her ruffled, luxuriant 
hair instinctly over the cut. 
</p>
               <p>'I am better now,' said she, in a very low, 
faint voice. I was a little sick.' 
</p>
               <p>She let him take her hand and feel her 
pulse. The bright colour came for a moment into her face, when he asked to 
examine the wound in her forehead; and she glanced up at Jane, as if 
shrinking from her inspection more than from the doctor's. 
</p>
               <p>'It is not much, 
I think. I am better now. I must go home.' 
</p>
               <p>'Not until I have applied some 
strips of plaster; and you have rested a little.' 
</p>
               <p>She sat down hastily, 
without another word, and allowed it to be bound up. 
</p>
               <p>'Now, if you please,' 
said she, 'I must go. Mamma will not see it, I think. It is under the hair, 
is it not?' 
</p>
               <p>'Quite; no one could tell.' 
</p>
               <p>'But you must not go,' said Mrs. 
Thornton, impatiently. 'You are not fit to go. 
</p>
               <p>'I must,' said Margaret, 
decidedly. 'Think of mamma. If they should hear—— Besides, I must go,' said 
she, vehemently. 'I cannot stay here. May I ask for a cab?' 
</p>
               <p>'You are quite 
flushed and feverish,' observed Mr. Lowe. 
</p>
               <p>'It is only with being here, when 
I do so want to go. The air—getting away, would do me more good than 
anything,' pleaded she. 
</p>
               <p>'I really believe it is as she says,' Mr. Lowe 
replied. 'If her mother is so ill as you told me on the way here, it may be 
very serious if she hears of this riot, and does not see her daughter back at 
the time she expects. The injury is not deep. I will fetch a cab, if your 
servants are still afraid to go out.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, thank you!' said Margaret. 'It 
will do me more good than anything. It is the air of this room that makes me 
feel so miserable.' 
</p>
               <p>She leant back on the sofa, and closed her eyes. Fanny 
beckoned her mother out of the room, and told her something that made her 
equally anxious with Margaret for the departure of the latter. Not that she 
fully believed Fanny's statement; but she credited enough to make her manner 
to Margaret appear very much constrained, at wishing her good-bye. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Lowe 
returned in the cab. 
</p>
               <p>'If you will allow me, I will see you home, Miss Hale. 
The streets are not very quiet yet.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret's thoughts were quite alive 
enough to the present to make her desirous of getting rid of both Mr. Lowe 
and the cab before she reached Crampton Crescent, for fear of alarming her 
father and mother. Beyond that one aim she would not look. That ugly dream of 
insolent words spoken about herself, could never be forgotten—but could be 
put aside till she was stronger—for, oh! she was very weak; and her mind 
sought for some present fact to steady itself upon, and keep it from utterly 
losing consciousness in another hideous, sickly swoon. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.23" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XXIII</head>
               <head>MISTAKES</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Which when his mother saw, she in her mind </l>
                  <l>Was troubled sore, ne wist well what to ween.' </l>
                  <l>SPENSER. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Margaret had not been gone five minutes when Mr. Thornton came in, his 
face all a-glow. 
</p>
               <p>'I could not come sooner: the superintendent would—— 
Where is she?' He looked round the dining-room, and then almost fiercely at 
his mother, who was quietly re-arranging the disturbed furniture, and did not 
instantly reply. 'Where is Miss Hale?' asked he again. 
</p>
               <p>'Gone home,' said 
she, rather shortly. 
</p>
               <p>'Gone home!' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes. She was a great deal better. 
Indeed, I don't believe it was so very much of a hurt; only some people faint 
at the least thing.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am sorry she is gone home,' said he, walking 
uneasily about. 'She could not have been fit for it.' 
</p>
               <p>'She said she was; 
and Mr. Lowe said she was. I went for him myself.' 
</p>
               <p>'Thank you, mother.' He 
stopped, and partly held out his hand to give her a grateful shake. But she 
did not notice the movement. 
</p>
               <p>'What have you done with your Irish 
people?' 
</p>
               <p>'Sent to the Dragon for a good meal for them, poor wretches. And 
then, luckily, I caught Father Grady, and I've asked him in to speak to them, 
and dissuade them from going off in a body. How did Miss Hale go home? I'm 
sure she could not walk.' 
</p>
               <p>'She had a cab. Everything was done properly, 
even to the paying. Let us talk of something else. She has caused disturbance 
enough.' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't know where I should have been but for her.' 
</p>
               <p>'Are you 
become so helpless as to have to be defended by a girl?' asked Mrs. Thornton, 
scornfully. 
</p>
               <p>He reddened. 'Not many girls would have taken the blows on 
herself which were meant for me;—meant with right down good-will, too.' 
</p>
               <p>'A 
girl in love will do a good deal,' replied Mrs. Thornton, 
shortly. 
</p>
               <p>'Mother!' He made a step forwards; stood still; heaved with 
passion. 
</p>
               <p>She was a little startled at the evident force he used to keep 
himself calm. She was not sure of the nature of the emotions she had 
provoked. It was only their violence that was clear. Was it anger? His eyes 
glowed, his figure was dilated, his breath came thick and fast. It was a 
mixture of joy, of anger, of pride, of glad surprise, of panting doubt; but 
she could not read it. Still it made her uneasy,—as the presence of all 
strong feeling, of which the cause is not fully understood or sympathised in, 
always has this effect. She went to the side-board, opened a drawer, and took 
out a duster, which she kept there for any occasional purpose. She had seen a 
drop of eau de Cologne on the polished arm of the sofa, and instinctively 
sought to wipe it off. But she kept her back turned to her son much longer 
than was necessary; and when she spoke, her voice seemed unusual and 
constrained. 
</p>
               <p>'You have taken some steps about the rioters, I suppose? You 
don't apprehend any more violence, do you? Where were the police? Never at 
hand when they're wanted!' 
</p>
               <p>'On the contrary, I saw three or four of them, 
when the gates gave way, struggling and beating about in fine fashion; and 
more came running up just when the yard was clearing. I might have given some 
of the fellows in charge then, if I had had my wits about me. But there will 
be no difficulty, plenty of people can Identify them.' 
</p>
               <p>'But won't they come 
back to-night?' 
</p>
               <p>'I'm going to see about a sufficient guard for the 
premises. I have appointed to meet Captain Hanbury in half an hour at the 
station.' 
</p>
               <p>'You must have some tea first.' 
</p>
               <p>'Tea! Yes, I suppose I must. 
It's half-past six, and I may be out for some time. Don't sit up for me, 
mother.' 
</p>
               <p>'You expect me to go to bed before I have seen you safe, do 
you?' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, perhaps not.' He hesitated for a moment. 'But if I've time, I 
shall go round by Crampton, after I've arranged with the police and seen 
Hamper and Clarkson.' Their eyes met; they looked at each other intently for 
a minute. Then she asked: 
</p>
               <p>'Why are you going round by Crampton?' 
</p>
               <p>'To ask 
after Miss Hale.' 
</p>
               <p>'I will send. Williams must take the water-bed she came 
to ask for. He shall inquire how she is.' 
</p>
               <p>'I must go myself.' 
</p>
               <p>'Not merely 
to ask how Miss Hale is?' 
</p>
               <p>'No, not merely for that. I want to thank her for 
the way in which she stood between me and the mob.' 
</p>
               <p>'What made you go down 
at all? It was putting your head into the lion's mouth!' 
</p>
               <p>He glanced sharply 
at her; saw that she did not know what had passed between him and Margaret in 
the drawing-room; and replied by another question: 
</p>
               <p>'Shall you be afraid to 
be left without me, until I can get some of the police; or had we better send 
Williams for them now, and they could be here by the time we have done tea? 
There's no time to be lost. I must be off in a quarter of an hour.' 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. 
Thornton left the room. Her servants wondered at her directions, usually so 
sharply-cut and decided, now confused and uncertain. Mr. Thornton remained in 
the dining-room, trying to think of the business he had to do at the 
police-office, and in reality thinking of Margaret. Everything seemed dim and 
vague beyond—behind—besides the touch of her arms round his neck—the soft 
clinging which made the dark colour come and go in his cheek as he thought of 
it. 
</p>
               <p>The tea would have been very silent, but for Fanny's perpetual 
description of her own feelings; how she had been alarmed—and then thought 
they were gone —and then felt sick and faint and trembling in every 
limb. 
</p>
               <p>'There, that's enough,' said her brother, rising from the table. 'The 
reality was enough for me.' He was going to leave the room, when his mother 
stopped him with her hand upon his arm. 
</p>
               <p>'You will come back here before you 
go to the Hales', said she, in a low, anxious voice. 
</p>
               <p>'I know what I know,' 
said Fanny to herself. 
</p>
               <p>'Why? Will it be too late to disturb them?' 
</p>
               <p>'John, 
come back to me for this one evening. It will be late for Mrs. Hale. But that 
is not it. To-morrow, you will——  Come back to-night, John!' She had seldom 
pleaded with her son at all—she was too proud for that: but she had never 
pleaded in vain. 
</p>
               <p>'I will return straight here after I have done my business 
You will be sure to inquire after them?—after her?' 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Thornton was by 
no means a talkative companion to Fanny, nor yet a good listener while her 
son was absent. But on his return, her eyes and ears were keen to see and to 
listen to all the details which he could give, as to the steps he had taken 
to secure himself, and those whom he chose to employ, from any repetition of 
the day's outrages. He clearly saw his object. Punishment and suffering, were 
the natural consequences to those who had taken part in the riot. All that 
was necessary, in order that property should be protected, and that the will 
of the proprietor might cut to his end, clean and sharp as a 
sword. 
</p>
               <p>'Mother! You know what I have got to say to Miss Hale, 
to-morrow?' 
</p>
               <p>The question came upon her suddenly, during a pause in which 
she, at least, had forgotten Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>She looked up at him. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes!  I do. 
You can hardly do otherwise.' 
</p>
               <p>'Do otherwise! I don't understand you.' 
</p>
               <p>'I 
mean that, after allowing her feelings so to overcome her, I consider you 
bound in honour—' 
</p>
               <p>'Bound in honour,' said he, scornfully. 'I'm afraid 
honour has nothing to do with it. “Her feelings overcome her!” What feelings 
do you mean?' 
</p>
               <p>'Nay, John, there is no need to be angry. Did she not rush 
down, and cling to you to save you from danger?' 
</p>
               <p>'She did!' said he. 'But, 
mother,' continued he, stopping short in his walk right in front of her, 'I 
dare not hope. I never was fainthearted before; but I cannot believe such a 
creature cares for me.' 
</p>
               <p>'Don't be foolish, John. Such a creature! Why, she 
might be a duke's daughter, to hear you speak. And what proof more would you 
have, I wonder, of her caring for you? I can believe she has had a struggle 
with her aristocratic way of viewing things; but I like her the better for 
seeing clearly at last. It is a good deal for me to say,' said Mrs. Thornton, 
smiling slowly, while the tears stood in her eyes; 'for after to-night, I 
stand second. It was to have you to myself, all to myself, a few hours 
longer, that I begged you not to go till to-morrow!' 
</p>
               <p>'Dearest mother!' 
(Still love is selfish, and in an instant he reverted to his own hopes and 
fears in a way that drew the cold creeping shadow over Mrs. Thornton's 
heart.) 'But I know she does not care for me. I shall put myself at her 
feet—I must. If it were but one chance in a thousand—or a million—I should 
do it.' 
</p>
               <p>'Don't fear!' said his mother, crushing down her own personal 
mortification at the little notice he had taken of the rare ebullition of her 
maternal feelings—of the pang of jealousy that betrayed the intensity of her 
disregarded love. 'Don't be afraid,' she said, coldly. 'As far as love may go 
she may be worthy of you. It must have taken a good deal to overcome her 
pride. Don't be afraid, John,' said she, kissing him, as she wished him 
good-night. And she went slowly and majestically out of the room. But when 
she got into her own, she locked the door, and sate down to cry unwonted 
tears. 
</p>
               <p>
</p>
               <p>Margaret entered the room (where her father and mother still sat, 
holding low conversation together), looking very pale and white. She came 
close up to them before she could trust herself to speak. 
</p>
               <p>'Mrs. Thornton 
will send the water-bed, mamma.' 
</p>
               <p>'Dear, how tired you look! Is it very hot, 
Margaret?' 
</p>
               <p>'Very hot, and the streets are rather rough with the 
strike.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret's colour came back vivid and bright as ever; but it faded 
away instantly. 
</p>
               <p>'Here has been a message from Bessy Higgins, asking you to 
go to her,' said Mrs. Hale. 'But I'm sure you look too tired.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes!' said 
Margaret. 'I am tired, I cannot go.' 
</p>
               <p>She was very silent and trembling 
while she made tea. She was thankful to see her father so much occupied with 
her mother as not to notice her looks. Even after her mother went to bed, he 
was not content to be absent from her, but undertook to read her to sleep. 
Margaret was alone. 
</p>
               <p>'Now I will think of it—now I will remember it all. I 
could not before—I dared not.' She sat still in her chair, her hands clasped 
on her knees, her lips compressed, her eyes fixed as one who sees a vision. 
She drew a deep breath. 
</p>
               <p>'I, who hate scenes—I, who have despised people 
for showing emotion—who have thought them wanting in self-control—I went 
down and must needs throw myself into the melee, like a romantic fool! Did I 
do any good? They would have gone away without me I dare say.' But this was 
over-leaping the rational conclusion,—as in an instant her well-poised 
judgment felt. 'No, perhaps they would not. I did some good. But what 
possessed me to defend that man as if he were a helpless child! Ah!' said 
she, clenching her hands together, 'it is no wonder those people thought I 
was in love with him, after disgracing myself in that way. I in love—and 
with him too!' Her pale cheeks suddenly became one flame of fire; and she 
covered her face with her hands. When she took them away, her palms were wet 
with scalding tears. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh how low I am fallen that they should say that of 
me! I could not have been so brave for any one else, just because he was so 
utterly indifferent to me—if, indeed, I do not positively dislike him. It 
made me the more anxious that there should be fair play on each side; and I 
could see what fair play was. It was not fair, said she, vehemently, 'that he 
should stand there—sheltered, awaiting the soldiers, who might catch those 
poor maddened creatures as in a trap—without an effort on his part, to bring 
them to reason. And it was worse than unfair for them to set on him as they 
threatened. I would do it again, let who will say what they like of me. If I 
saved one blow, one cruel, angry action that might otherwise have been 
committed, I did a woman's work. Let them insult my maiden pride as they 
will—I walk pure before God!' 
</p>
               <p>She looked up, and a noble peace seemed to 
descend and calm her face, till it was 'stiller than chiselled 
marble.' 
</p>
               <p>Dixon came in: 
</p>
               <p>'If you please, Miss Margaret, here's the 
water-bed from Mrs. Thornton's. It's too late for to-night, I'm afraid, for 
missus is nearly asleep: but it will do nicely for to-morrow.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very,' said 
Margaret. 'You must send our best thanks.' 
</p>
               <p>Dixon left the room for a 
moment. 
</p>
               <p>'If you please, Miss Margaret, he says he's to ask particular how 
you are. I think he must mean missus; but he says his last words were, to ask 
how Miss Hale was.' 
</p>
               <p>'Me!' said Margaret, drawing herself up. 'I am quite 
well. Tell him I am perfectly well.' But her complexion was as deadly white 
as her handkerchief; and her head ached intensely. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale now came in. He 
had left his sleeping wife; and wanted, as Margaret saw, to be amused and 
interested by something that she was to tell him. With sweet patience did she 
bear her pain, without a word of complaint; and rummaged up numberless small 
subjects for conversation—all except the riot, and that she never named 
once. It turned her sick to think of it. 
</p>
               <p>'Good-night, Margaret. I have 
every chance of a good night myself, and you are looking very pale with your 
watching. I shall call Dixon if your mother needs anything. Do you go to bed 
and sleep like a top; for I'm sure you need it, poor child!' 
</p>
               <p>'Good-night, 
papa.' 
</p>
               <p>She let her colour go—the forced smile fade away—the eyes grow 
dull with heavy pain. She released her strong will from its laborious task. 
Till morning she might feel ill and weary. 
</p>
               <p>She lay down and never stirred. 
To move hand or foot, or even so much as one finger, would have been an 
exertion beyond the powers of either volition or motion. She was so tired, so 
stunned, that she thought she never slept at all; her feverish thoughts 
passed and repassed the boundary between sleeping and waking, and kept their 
own miserable identity. She could not be alone, prostrate, powerless as she 
was,—a cloud of faces looked up at her, giving her no idea of fierce vivid 
anger, or of personal danger, but a deep sense of shame that she should thus 
be the object of universal regard—a sense of shame so acute that it seemed 
as if she would fain have burrowed into the earth to hide herself, and yet 
she could not escape out of that unwinking glare of many eyes. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.24" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XXIV</head>
               <head>MISTAKES CLEARED UP</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Your beauty was the first that won the place, </l>
                  <l>And scal'd the walls of my undaunted heart, </l>
                  <l>Which, captive now, pines in a caitive case, </l>
                  <l>Unkindly met with rigour for desert;— </l>
                  <l>Yet not the less your servant shall abide, </l>
                  <l>In spite of rude repulse or silent pride.' </l>
                  <l>WILLIAM FOWLER. </l>
               </q>
               <p>The next morning, Margaret dragged herself up, thankful that the night was 
over,—unrefreshed, yet rested. All had gone well through the house; her 
mother had only wakened once. A little breeze was stirring in the hot air, 
and though there were no trees to show the playful tossing movement caused by 
the wind among the leaves, Margaret knew how, somewhere or another, by 
way-side, in copses, or in thick green woods, there was a pleasant, 
murmuring, dancing sound,—a rushing and falling noise, the very thought of 
which was an echo of distant gladness in her heart. 
</p>
               <p>She sat at her work in 
Mrs. Hale's room. As soon as that fore-noon slumber was over, she would help 
her mother to dress after. dinner, she would go and see Bessy Higgins. She 
would banish all recollection of the Thornton family,—no need to think of 
them till they absolutely stood before her in flesh and blood. But, of 
course, the effort not to think of them brought them only the more strongly 
before her; and from time to time, the hot flush came over her pale face 
sweeping it into colour, as a sunbeam from between watery clouds comes 
swiftly moving over the sea. 
</p>
               <p>Dixon opened the door very softly, and stole 
on tiptoe up to Margaret, sitting by the shaded window. 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Thornton, Miss 
Margaret. He is in the drawing-room.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret dropped her sewing. 
</p>
               <p>'Did 
he ask for me? Isn't papa come in?' 
</p>
               <p>'He asked for you, miss; and master is 
out.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very well, I will come,' said Margaret, quietly. But she lingered 
strangely. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton stood by one of the windows, with his back to the 
door, apparently absorbed in watching something in the street. But, in truth, 
he was afraid of himself. His heart beat thick at the thought of her coming. 
He could not forget the touch of her arms around his neck, impatiently felt 
as it had been at the time; but now the recollection of her clinging defence 
of him, seemed to thrill him through and through,—to melt away every 
resolution, all power of self-control, as if it were wax before a fire. He 
dreaded lest he should go forwards to meet her, with his arms held out in 
mute entreaty that she would come and nestle there, as she had done, all 
unheeded, the day before, but never unheeded again. His heart throbbed loud 
and quick Strong man as he was, he trembled at the anticipation of what he 
had to say, and how it might be received. She might droop, and flush, and 
flutter to his arms, as to her natural home and resting-place. One moment, he 
glowed with impatience at the thought that she might do this, the next, he 
feared a passionate rejection, the very idea of which withered up his future 
with so deadly a blight that he refused to think of it. He was startled by 
the sense of the presence of some one else in the room. He turned round. She 
had come in so gently, that he had never heard her; the street noises had 
been more distinct to his inattentive ear than her slow movements, in her 
soft muslin gown. 
</p>
               <p>She stood by the table, not offering to sit down. Her 
eyelids were dropped half over her eyes; her teeth were shut, not compressed; 
her lips were just parted over them, allowing the white line to be seen 
between their curve. Her slow deep breathings dilated her thin and beautiful 
nostrils; it was the only motion visible on her countenance. The fine-grained 
skin, the oval cheek, the rich outline of her mouth, its corners deep set in 
dimples,—were all wan and pale to-day; the loss of their usual natural 
healthy colour being made more evident by the heavy shadow of the dark hair, 
brought down upon the temples, to hide all sign of the blow she had received. 
Her head, for all its drooping eyes, was thrown a little back, in the old 
proud attitude. Her long arms hung motion-less by her sides. Altogether she 
looked like some prisoner, falsely accused of a crime that she loathed and 
despised, and from which she was too indignant to justify herself 
</p>
               <p>Mr. 
Thornton made a hasty step or two forwards; recovered himself, and went with 
quiet firmness to the door (which she had left open), and shut it. Then he 
came back, and stood opposite to her for a moment, receiving the general 
impression of her beautiful presence, before he dared to disturb it, perhaps 
to repel it, by what he had to say. 
</p>
               <p>'Miss Hale, I was very ungrateful 
yesterday—' 
</p>
               <p>'You had nothing to be grateful for,' said she, raising her 
eyes, and looking full and straight at him. 'You mean, I suppose, that you 
believe you ought to thank me for what I did.' In spite of herself—in 
defiance of her anger—the thick blushes came all over her face, and burnt 
into her very eyes; which fell not nevertheless from their grave and steady 
look. 'It was only a natural instinct; any woman would have done just the 
same. We all feel the sanctity of our sex as a high privilege when we see 
danger. I ought rather,' said she, hastily, 'to apologise to you, for having 
said thoughtless words which sent you down into the danger.' 
</p>
               <p>'It was not 
your words; it was the truth they conveyed, pun-gently as it was expressed. 
But you shall not drive me off upon that, and so escape the expression of my 
deep gratitude, my—' he was on the verge now; he would not speak in the 
haste of his hot passion; he would weigh each word. He would; and his will 
was triumphant. He stopped in mid career. 
</p>
               <p>'I do not try to escape from 
anything,' said she. 'I simply say, that you owe me no gratitude; and I may 
add, that any expression of it will be painful to me, because I do not feel 
that I deserve it. Still, if it will relieve you from even a fancied 
obligation, speak on.' 
</p>
               <p>'I do not want to be relieved from any obligation,' 
said he, goaded by her calm manner. Fancied, or not fancied—I question not 
myself to know which—I choose to believe that I owe my very life to 
you—ay—smile, and think it an exaggeration if you will. I believe it, 
because it adds a value to that life to think—oh, Miss Hale!' continued he, 
lowering his voice to such a tender intensity of passion that she shivered 
and trembled before him, 'to think circumstance so wrought, that whenever I 
exult in existence henceforward, I may say to myself, “All this gladness in 
life, all honest pride in doing my work in the world, all this keen sense of 
being, I owe to her!” And it doubles the gladness, it makes the pride glow, 
it sharpens the sense of existence till I hardly know if it is pain or 
pleasure, to think that I owe it to one—nay, you must, you shall hear'—said 
he, stepping forwards with stern determination—'to one whom I love, as I do 
not believe man ever loved woman before.' He held her hand tight in his. He 
panted as he listened for what should come. He threw the hand away with 
indignation, as he heard her icy tone; for icy it was, though the words came 
faltering out, as if she knew not where to find them. 
</p>
               <p>'Your way of speaking 
shocks me. It is blasphemous. I cannot help it, if that is my first feeling. 
It might not be so, I dare say, if I understood the kind of feeling you 
describe. I do not want to vex you; and besides, we must speak gently, for 
mamma is asleep; but your whole manner offends me—' 
</p>
               <p>'How!' exclaimed he. 
'Offends you! I am indeed most unfortunate.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes!' said she, with 
recovered dignity. 'I do feel offended; and, I think, justly. You seem to 
fancy that my conduct of yesterday'—again the deep carnation blush, but this 
time with eyes kindling with indignation rather than shame—'was a personal 
act between you and me; and that you may come and thank me for it, instead of 
perceiving, as a gentleman would—yes! a gentleman,' she repeated, in 
allusion to their former conversation about that word, 'that any woman, 
worthy of the name of woman, would come forward to shield, with her 
reverenced helplessness, a man in danger from the violence of 
numbers.' 
</p>
               <p>'And the gentleman thus rescued is forbidden the relief of 
thanks!' he broke in contemptuously. 'I am a man. I claim the right of 
expressing my feelings.' 
</p>
               <p>'And I yielded to the right; simply saying that 
you gave me pain by insisting upon it,' she replied, proudly. 'But you seem 
to have imagined, that I was not merely guided by womanly instinct, but'—and 
here the passionate tears (kept down for long—struggled with vehemently) 
came up into her eyes, and choked her voice—'but that I was prompted by some 
particular feeling for you—you! Why, there was not a man—not a poor 
desperate man in all that crowd—for whom I had not more sympathy—for whom I 
should not have done what little I could more heartily.' 
</p>
               <p>'You may speak on, 
Miss Hale. I am aware of all these misplaced sympathies of yours. I now 
believe that it was only your innate sense of oppression—(yes; I, though a 
master, may be oppressed)—that made you act so nobly as you did. I know you 
despise me; allow me to say, it is because you do not understand me.' 
</p>
               <p>'I do 
not care to understand,' she replied, taking hold of the table to steady 
herself; for she thought him cruel—as, indeed, he was—and she was weak with 
her indignation. 
</p>
               <p>'No, I see you do not. You are unfair and 
unjust.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret compressed her lips. She would not speak in answer to 
such accusations. But, for all that—for all his savage words, he could have 
thrown himself at her feet, and kissed the hem of her wounded pride fell hot 
and fast. He waited awhile, longing for garment. She did not speak; she did 
not move. The tears of her to say something, even a taunt, to which he might 
reply. But she was silent. He took up his hat. 
</p>
               <p>'One word more. You look as 
if you thought it tainted you to be loved by me. You cannot avoid it. Nay, I, 
if I would, cannot cleanse you from it. But I would not, if I could. I have 
never loved any woman before: my life has been too busy, my thoughts too much 
absorbed with other things. Now I love, and will love. But do not be afraid 
of too much expression on my part.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am not afraid,' she replied, lifting 
herself straight up. 'No one yet has ever dared to be impertinent to me, and 
no one ever shall. But, Mr. Thornton, you have been very kind to my father,' 
said she, changing her whole tone and bearing to a most womanly softness. 
'Don't let us go on making each other angry. Pray don't!' He took no notice 
of her words: he occupied himself in smoothing the nap of his hat with his 
coat-sleeve, for half a minute or so; and then, rejecting her offered hand, 
and making as if he did not see her grave look of regret, he turned abruptly 
away, and left the room. Margaret caught one glance at his face before he 
went. 
</p>
               <p>When he was gone, she thought she had seen the gleam of washed tears 
in his eyes; and that turned her proud dislike into something different and 
kinder, if nearly as painful—self-reproach for having caused such 
mortification to any one. 
</p>
               <p>'But how could I help it?' asked she of herself. 
'I never liked him. I was civil; but I took no trouble to conceal my 
indifference. Indeed, I never thought about myself or him, so my manners must 
have shown the truth. All that yesterday, he might mistake. But that is his 
fault, not mine. I would do it again, if need were, though it does lead me 
into all this shame and trouble.' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c1.25" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XXV</head>
               <head>FREDERICK</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Revenge may have her own; </l>
                  <l>Roused discipline aloud proclaims their cause, </l>
                  <l>And injured navies urge their broken laws.' </l>
                  <l>BYRON. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Margaret began to wonder whether all offers were as unexpected 
beforehand,—as distressing at the time of their occurrence, as the two she 
had had. An involuntary comparison between Mr. Lennox and Mr. Thornton arose 
in her mind. She had been sorry, that an expression of any other feeling than 
friendship had been lured out by circumstances from Henry Lennox. That regret 
was the predominant feeling, on the first occasion of her receiving a 
proposal. She had not felt so stunned—so impressed as she did now, when 
echoes of Mr. Thornton's voice yet lingered about the room. In Lennox's case, 
he seemed for a moment to have slid over the boundary between friendship and 
love; and the instant afterwards, to regret it nearly as much as she did, 
although for different reasons. In Mr. Thornton's case, as far as Margaret 
knew, there was no intervening stage of friendship. Their intercourse had 
been one continued series of opposition. Their opinions clashed; and indeed, 
she had never perceived that he had cared for her opinions, as belonging to 
her, the individual. As far as they defied his rock-like power of character, 
his passion-strength, he seemed to throw them off from him with contempt, 
until she felt the weariness of the exertion of making useless protests; and 
now, he had come, in this strange wild passionate way, to make known his love 
For, although at first it had struck her, that his offer was forced and 
goaded out of him by sharp compassion for the exposure she had made of 
herself,—which he, like others, might misunderstand—yet, even before he 
left the room,—and certainly, not five minutes after, the clear conviction 
dawned upon her, shined bright upon her, that he did love her; that he had 
loved her; that he would love her. And she shrank and shuddered as under the 
fascination of some great power, repugnant to her whole previous life. She 
crept away, and hid from his idea. But it was of no use. To parody a line oat 
of Fairfax's Tasso— 
<q>
                     <l>'His strong idea wandered through her thought.' </l>
                  </q>
               </p>
               <p>She disliked him the more for having mastered her inner will. How 
dared he say that he would love her still, even though she shook him off with 
contempt? She wished she had spoken more—stronger. Sharp, decisive speeches 
came thronging into her mind, now that it was too late to utter them. The 
deep impression made by the interview, was like that of a horror in a dream; 
that will not leave the room although we waken up, and rub our eyes, and 
force a stiff rigid smile upon our lips. It is there—there, cowering and 
gibbering, with fixed ghastly eyes, in some corner of the chamber, listening 
to hear whether we dare to breathe of its presence to any one. And we dare 
not; poor cowards that we are! 
</p>
               <p>And so she shuddered away from the threat of 
his enduring love. What did he mean? Had she not the power to daunt him? She 
would see. It was more daring than became a man to threaten her so. Did he 
ground it upon the miserable yesterday? If need were, she would do the same 
to-morrow,—by a crippled beggar, willingly and gladly,—but by him, she 
would do it, just as bravely, in spite of his deductions, and the cold slime 
of women's impertinence. She did it because it was right, and simple, and 
true to save where she could save; even to try to save. 'Fais ce que dois, 
advienne que pourra.' 
</p>
               <p>Hitherto she had not stirred from where he had left 
her; no outward circumstances had roused her out of the trance of thought in 
which she had been plunged by his last words, and by the look of his deep 
intent passionate eyes, as their flames had made her own fall before them. 
She went to the window, and threw it open, to dispel the oppression which 
hung around her. Then she went and opened the door, with a sort of impetuous 
wish to shake off the recollection of the past hour in the company of others, 
or in active exertion. But all was profoundly hushed in the noonday stillness 
of a house, where an invalid catches the unrefreshing sleep that is denied to 
the night-hours. Margaret would not be alone. What should she do? 'Go and see 
Bessy Higgins, of course,' thought she, as the recollection of the message 
sent the night before flashed into her mind. And away she went. 
</p>
               <p>When she 
got there, she found Bessy lying on the settle, moved close to the fire, 
though the day was sultry and oppressive. She was laid down quite flat, as if 
resting languidly after some paroxysm of pain. Margaret felt sure she ought 
to have the greater freedom of breathing which a more sitting posture would 
procure; and, without a word, she raised her up, and so arranged the pillows, 
that Bessy was more at ease, though very languid. 
</p>
               <p>'I thought I should na' 
ha' seen yo' again,' said she, at last, looking wistfully in Margaret's 
face. 
</p>
               <p>'I'm afraid you're much worse. But I could not have come yesterday, 
my mother was so ill—for many reasons,' said Margaret, colouring. 
</p>
               <p>'Yo'd 
m'appen think I went beyond my place in sending Mary for yo'. But the 
wranglin' and the loud voices had just torn me to pieces, and I thought when 
father left, oh! if I could just hear her voice, reading me some words o' 
peace and promise, I could die away into the silence and rest o' God, lust as 
a babby is hushed up to sleep by its mother's lullaby.' 
</p>
               <p>'Shall I read you a 
chapter, now?' 
</p>
               <p>'Ay, do! M'appen I shan't listen to th' sense, at first; it 
will seem far away—but when yo' come to words I like—to th' comforting 
texts—it'll seem close in my ear, and going through me as it 
were.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret began. Bessy tossed to and fro. If, by an effort, she 
attended for one moment, it seemed as though she were convulsed into double 
restlessness the next. At last, she burst out 'Don't go on reading. It's no 
use. I'm blaspheming all the time in my mind, wi' thinking angrily on what 
canna be helped.—Yo'd hear of th' riot, m'appen, yesterday at Marlborough 
Mills? Thornton's factory, yo' know.' 
</p>
               <p>'Your father was not there, was he?' 
said Margaret, colouring deep. 
</p>
               <p>'Not he. He'd ha' given his right hand if it 
had never come to pass. It's that that's fretting me. He's fairly knocked 
down in his mind by it. It's no use telling him, fools will always break out 
o bounds. Yo' never saw a man so down-hearted as he is.' 
</p>
               <p>'But why?' asked 
Margaret. 'I don't understand.' 
</p>
               <p>'Why yo' see, he's a committee-man on this 
special strike'. Th' Union appointed him because, though I say it as 
shouldn't say it, he's reckoned a deep chap, and true to th' back-bone. And 
he and t other committee-men laid their plans. They were to hou'd together 
through thick and thin; what the major part thought, t'others were to think, 
whether they would or no. And above all there was to be no going again the 
law of the land. Folk would go with them if they saw them striving and 
starving wi' dumb patience; but if there was once any noise o' fighting and 
struggling—even wi' knobsticks—all was up, as they knew by th' experience 
of many, and many a time before. They would try and get speech o' th' 
knobsticks, and coax 'em, and reason wi' 'em, and m'appen warn 'em off; but 
whatever came, the Committee charged all members o' th' Union to lie down and 
die, if need were, without striking a blow; and then they reckoned they were 
sure o' carrying th' public with them. And beside all that, Committee knew 
they were right in their demand, and they didn't want to have right all mixed 
up wi' wrong, till folk can't separate it, no more nor I can th' 
physic-powder from th' jelly yo' gave me to mix it in; jelly is much the 
biggest, but powder tastes it all through. Well, I've told yo' at length 
about this'n, but I'm tired out. Yo' just think for yo'rsel, what it mun be 
for father to have a' his work undone, and by such a fool as Boucher, who 
must needs go right again the orders of Committee, and ruin th' strike, just 
as bad as if he meant to be a Judas. Eh! but father giv'd it him last night! 
He went so far as to say, he'd go and tell police where they might find th' 
ringleader o' th' riot; he'd give him up to th' mill-owners to do what they 
would wi' him. He'd show the world that th' real leaders o' the strike were 
not such as Boucher, but steady thoughtful men; good hands, and good 
citizens, who were friendly to law and judgment, and would uphold order; who 
only wanted their right wage, and wouldn't work, even though they starved, 
till they got 'em; but who would ne'er injure property or life: For,' 
dropping her voice, 'they do say, that Boucher threw a stone at Thornton's 
sister, that welly killed her.' 
</p>
               <p>'That's not true,' said Margaret. 'It was 
not Boucher that threw the stone'—she went first red, then white. 
</p>
               <p>'Yo'd be 
there then, were yo'?' asked Bessy languidly for indeed, she had spoken with 
many pauses, as if speech was unusually difficult to her. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes. Never mind. 
Go on. Only it was not Boucher that threw the stone. But what did he answer 
to your father?' 
</p>
               <p>'He did na' speak words. He were all in such a tremble wi' 
spent passion, I could na' bear to look at him. I heard his breath coming 
quick, and at one time I thought he were sobbing. But when father said he'd 
give him up to police, he gave a great cry, and struck father on th' face wi' 
his closed fist, and he off like lightning. Father were stunned wi' the blow 
at first, for all Boucher were weak wi' passion and wi' clemming. He sat down 
a bit, and put his hand afore his eyes; and then made for th' door. I dunno' 
where I got strength, but I threw mysel' off th' settle and clung to him. 
“Father, father!” said I. “Thou'll never go peach on that poor clemmed man. 
I'll never leave go on thee, till thou sayst thou wunnot.” “Dunnot be a 
fool,” says he, “words come readier than deeds to most men. I never thought 
o' telling th' police on him; though by G—, he deserves it, and I should na' 
ha' minded if some one else had done the dirty work, and got him clapped up. 
But now he has strucken me, I could do it less nor ever, for it would be 
getting other men to take up my quarrel. But if ever he gets well o'er this 
clemming, and is in good condition, he and I'll have an up and down fight, 
purring an' a', and I'll see what I can do for him.” And so father shook me 
off,—for indeed, I was low and faint enough, and his face was all clay 
white, where it weren't bloody, and turned me sick to look at. And I know not 
if I slept or waked, or were in a dead swoon, till Mary come in; and I telled 
her to fetch yo' to me. And now dunnot talk to me, but just read out th' 
chapter. I'm easier in my mind for having spit it out; but I want some 
thoughts of the world that's far away to take the weary taste of it out o' my 
mouth. Read me—not a sermon chapter, but a story chapter; they've pictures 
in them, which I see when my eyes are shut. Read about the New Heavens, and 
the New Earth; and m'appen I'll forget this.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret read in her soft low 
voice. Though Bessy's eyes were shut, she was listening for some time, for 
the moisture of tears gathered heavy on her eyelashes. At last she slept; 
with many starts, and muttered pleadings. Margaret covered her up, and left 
her, for she had an uneasy consciousness that she might be wanted at home, 
and yet, until now, it seemed cruel to leave the dying girl. 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Hale was 
in the drawing-room on her daughter's return. It was one of her better days, 
and she was full of praises of the water-bed. It had been more like the beds 
at Sir John Beresford's than anything she had slept on since. She did not 
know how it was, but people seemed to have lost the art of making the same 
kind of beds as they used to do in her youth. One would think it was easy 
enough; there was the same kind of feathers to be had, and yet somehow, till 
this last night she did not know when she had had a good sound resting 
sleep. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale suggested, that something of the merits of the featherbeds 
of former days might be attributed to the activity of youth, which gave a 
relish to rest; but this idea was not kindly received by his wife. 
</p>
               <p>'No, 
indeed, Mr. Hale, it was those beds at Sir John's. Now, Margaret, you're 
young enough, and go about in the day; are the beds comfortable? I appeal to 
you. Do they give you a feeling of perfect repose when you lie down upon 
them; or rather, don't you toss about, and try in vain to find an easy 
position, and waken in the morning as tired as when you went to 
bed?' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret laughed. 'To tell the truth, mamma, I've never thought about 
my bed at all, what kind it is. I'm so sleepy at night, that if I only lie 
down anywhere, I nap off directly. So I don't think I'm a competent witness. 
But then, you know, I never had the opportunity of trying Sir John 
Beresford's beds. I never was at Oxenham.' 
</p>
               <p>'Were not you? Oh, no! to be 
sure. It was poor darling Fred I took with me, I remember. I only went to 
Oxenham once after I was married,—to your Aunt Shaw's wedding; and poor 
little Fred was the baby then. And I know Dixon did not like changing from 
lady's maid to nurse, and I was afraid that if I took her near her old home, 
and amongst her own people, she might want to leave me. But poor baby was 
taken ill at Oxenham, with his teething; and, what with my being a great deal 
with Anna just before her marriage, and not being very strong myself, Dixon 
had more of the charge of him than she ever had before; and it made her so 
fond of him, and she was so proud when he would turn away from every one and 
cling to her, that I don't believe she ever thought of leaving me again; 
though it was very different from what she'd been accustomed to. Poor Fred! 
Every body loved him. He was born with the gift of winning hearts. It makes 
me think very badly of Captain Reid when I know that he disliked my own dear 
boy. I think it a certain proof he had a bad heart. Ah! Your poor father, 
Margaret. He has left the room. He can't bear to hear Fred spoken of.' 
</p>
               <p>'I 
love to hear about him, mamma. Tell me all you like; you never can tell me 
too much. Tell me what he was like as a baby.' 
</p>
               <p>'Why, Margaret, you must not 
be hurt, but he was much prettier than you were. I remember, when I first saw 
you in Dixon's arms, I said, “Dear, what an ugly little thing!” And she said, 
“It's not every child that's like Master Fred, bless him!” Dear! how well I 
remember it. Then I could have had Fred in my arms every minute of the day, 
and his cot was close by my bed; and now,now—Margaret—I don't know where my 
boy is, and sometimes I think I shall never see him again.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret sat 
down by her mother's sofa on a little stool, and softly took hold of her 
hand, caressing it and kissing it, as if to comfort. Mrs. Hale cried without 
restraint. At last, she sat straight, stiff up on the sofa, and turning round 
to her daughter, she said with tearful, almost solemn earnestness, 'Margaret, 
if I can get better,—if God lets me have a chance of recovery, it must be 
through seeing my son Frederick once more. It will waken up all the poor 
springs of health left in me. 
</p>
               <p>She paused, and seemed to try and gather 
strength for something more yet to be said. Her voice was choked as she went 
on—was quavering as with the contemplation of some strange, yet 
closely-present idea. 
</p>
               <p>'And, Margaret, if I am to die—if I am one of those 
appointed to die before many weeks are over—I must see my child first. I 
cannot think how it must be managed; but I charge you, Margaret, as you 
yourself hope for comfort in your last illness, bring him to me that I may 
bless him. Only for five minutes, Margaret. There could be no danger in five 
minutes. Oh, Margaret, let me see him before I die!' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret did not think 
of anything that might be utterly unreasonable in this speech: we do not look 
for reason or logic in the passionate entreaties of those who are sick unto 
death; we are stung with the recollection of a thousand slighted 
opportunities of fulfilling the wishes of those who will soon pass away from 
among us: and do they ask us for the future happiness of our lives, we lay it 
at their feet, and will it away from us. But this wish of Mrs. Hale's was so 
natural, so just, so right to both parties, that Margaret felt as if, on 
Frederick's account as well as on her mother's, she ought to overlook all 
intermediate chances of danger, and pledge herself to do everything in her 
power for its realisation. The large, pleading, dilated eyes were fixed upon 
her wistfully, steady in their gaze, though the poor white lips quivered like 
those of a child. Margaret gently rose up and stood opposite to her frail 
mother; so that she might gather the secure fulfilment of her wish from the 
calm steadiness of her daughter's face. 
</p>
               <p>'Mamma, I will write to-night, and 
tell Frederick what you say. I am as sure that he will come directly to us, 
as I am sure of my life. Be easy, mamma, you shall see him as far as anything 
earthly can be promised.' 
</p>
               <p>'You will write to-night? Oh, Margaret! the post 
goes out at five—you will write by it, won't you? I have so few hours 
left—I feel, dear, as if I should not recover, though sometimes your father 
over-persuades me into hoping; you will write directly, won't you? Don't lose 
a single post; for just by that very post I may miss him.' 
</p>
               <p>'But, mamma, 
papa is out.' 
</p>
               <p>'Papa is out! and what then? Do you mean that he would deny 
me this last wish, Margaret? Why, I should not be ill—be dying—if he had 
not taken me away from Helstone, to this unhealthy, smoky, sunless 
place.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, mamma!' said Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes; it is so, indeed. He knows it 
himself; he has said so many a time. He would do anything for me; you don't 
mean he would refuse me this last wish— prayer, if you will. And, indeed, 
Margaret, the longing to see Frederick stands between me and God. I cannot 
pray till I have this one thing; indeed, I cannot. Don't lose time, dear, 
dear Margaret. Write by this very next post. Then he may be here—here in 
twenty-two days! For he is sure to come. No cords or chains can keep him. In 
twenty-two days I shall see my boy.' She fell back, and for a short time she 
took no notice of the fact that Margaret sat motionless, her hand shading her 
eyes. 
</p>
               <p>'You are not writing!' said her mother at last 'Bring me some pens 
and paper; I will try and write myself.' She sat up, trembling all over with 
feverish eagerness. Margaret took her hand down and looked at her mother 
sadly. 
</p>
               <p>'Only wait till papa comes in. Let us ask him how best to do 
it.' 
</p>
               <p>'You promised, Margaret, not a quarter of an hour ago;—you said he 
should come.' 
</p>
               <p>'And so he shall, mamma; don't cry, my own dear mother. I'll 
write here, now,—you shall see me write,—and it shall go by this very post; 
and if papa thinks fit, he can write again when he comes in,—it is only a 
day's delay. Oh, mamma, don't cry so pitifully,—it cuts me to the 
heart.' 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Hale could not stop her tears; they came hysterically; and, in 
truth, she made no effort to control them, but rather called up all the 
pictures of the happy past, and the probable future—painting the scene when 
she should lie a corpse, with the son she had longed to see in life weeping 
over her, and she unconscious of his presence—till she was melted by 
self-pity into a state of sobbing and exhaustion that made Margaret's heart 
ache. But at last she was calm, and greedily watched her daughter, as she 
began her letter; wrote it with swift urgent entreaty; sealed it up 
hurriedly, for fear her mother should ask to see it: and then, to make 
security most sure, at Mrs. Hale's own bidding, took it herself to the 
post-office. She was coming home when her father overtook her. 
</p>
               <p>'And where 
have you been, my pretty maid?' asked he. 
</p>
               <p>'To the post-office,—with a 
letter; a letter to Frederick. Oh, papa, perhaps I have done wrong: but mamma 
was seized with such a passionate yearning to see him—she said it would make 
her well again,—and then she said that she must see him before she died,—I 
cannot tell you how urgent she was! Did I do wrong?' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale did not reply 
at first. Then he said: 
</p>
               <p>'You should have waited till I came in, 
Margaret.' 
</p>
               <p>'I tried to persuade her—' and then she was silent. 
</p>
               <p>'I don't 
know,' said Mr. Hale, after a pause. 'She ought to see him if she wishes it 
so much, for I believe it would do her much more good than all the doctor's 
medicine,—and, perhaps, set her up altogether; but the danger to him, I'm 
afraid, is very great.' 
</p>
               <p>'All these years since the mutiny, papa?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes; 
it is necessary, of course, for government to take very stringent measures 
for the repression of offences against authority, more particularly in the 
navy, where a commanding officer needs to be surrounded in his men's eyes 
with a vivid consciousness of all the power there is at home to back him, and 
take up his cause, and avenge any injuries offered to him, if need be. Ah! 
it's no matter to them how far their authorities have tyrannised,—galled 
hasty tempers to madness,—or, if that can be any excuse afterwards, it is 
never allowed for in the first instance; they spare no expense, they send out 
ships,—they scour the seas to lay hold of the offenders,—the lapse of years 
does not wash out the memory of the offence,—it is a fresh and vivid crime 
on the Admiralty books till it is blotted out by blood.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, papa, what 
have I done! And yet it seemed so right at the time. I'm sure Frederick 
himself, would run the risk.' 
</p>
               <p>'So he would; so he should! Nay, Margaret, 
I'm glad it is done, though I durst not have done it myself. I'm thankful it 
is as it is; I should have hesitated till, perhaps, it might have been too 
late to do any good. Dear Margaret, you have done what is right about it; and 
the end is beyond our control.' 
</p>
               <p>It was all very well; but her father's 
account of the relentless manner in which mutinies were punished made 
Margaret shiver and creep. If she had decoyed her brother home to blot out 
the memory of his error by his blood! She saw her father's anxiety lay deeper 
than the source of his latter cheering words. She took his arm and walked 
home pensively and wearily by his side. 
</p>
            </div>
         </div>
         <div xml:id="v2" type="Volume">
            <div xml:id="c2.1" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER I</head>
               <head>MOTHER AND SON</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'I have found that holy place of rest </l>
                  <l>Still changeless.' </l>
                  <l>MRS. HEMANS. </l>
               </q>
               <p>When Mr. Thornton had left the house that morning he was almost blinded by 
his baffled passion. He was as dizzy as if Margaret, instead of looking, and 
speaking, and moving like a tender graceful woman, had been a sturdy 
fish-wife, and given him a sound blow with her fists. He had positive bodily 
pain,—a violent headache, and a throbbing intermittent pulse. He could not 
bear the noise, the garish light, the continued rumble and movement of the 
street. He called himself a fool for suffering so; and yet he could not, at 
the moment, recollect the cause of his suffering, and whether it was adequate 
to the consequences it had produced. It would have been a relief to him, if 
he could have sat down and cried on a door-step by a little child, who was 
raging and storming, through his passionate tears, at some injury he had 
received. He said to himself, that he hated Margaret, but a wild, sharp 
sensation of love cleft his dull, thunderous feeling like lightning, even as 
he shaped the words expressive of hatred. His greatest comfort was in hugging 
his torment; and in feeling, as he had indeed said to her, that though she 
might despise him, contemn him, treat him with her proud sovereign 
indifference, he did not change one whit. She could not make him change. He 
loved her, and would love her; and defy her, and this miserable bodily 
pain. 
</p>
               <p>He stood still for a moment, to make this resolution firm and clear. 
There was an omnibus passing—going into the country; the conductor thought 
he was wishing for a place, and stopped near the pavement. It was too much 
trouble to apologise and explain; so he mounted upon it, and was borne 
away,—past long rows of houses—then past detached villas with trim gardens, 
till they came to real country hedge-rows, and, by-and-by, to a small country 
town. Then every body got down; and so did Mr. Thornton, and because they 
walked away he did so too. He went into the fields, walking briskly, because 
the sharp motion relieved his mind. He could remember all about it now; the 
pitiful figure he must have cut; the absurd way in which he had gone and done 
the very thing he had so often agreed with himself in thinking would be the 
most foolish thing in the world; and had met with exactly the consequences 
which, in these wise moods, he had always fore-told were certain to follow, 
if he ever did make such a fool of himself. Was he bewitched by those 
beautiful eyes, that soft, half-open, sighing mouth which lay so close upon 
his shoulder only yesterday? He could not even shake off the recollection 
that she had been there; that her arms had been round him, once—if never 
again. He only caught glimpses of her; he did not understand her altogether. 
At one time she was so brave, and at another so timid; now so tender, and 
then so haughty and regal-proud. And then he thought over every time he had 
ever seen her once again, by way of finally forgetting her. He saw her in 
every dress, in every mood, and did not know which became her best. Even this 
morning, how magnificent she had looked,—her eyes flashing out upon him at 
the idea that, because she had shared his danger yesterday, she had cared for 
him the least! 
</p>
               <p>If Mr. Thornton was a fool in the morning, as he assured 
himself at least twenty times he was, he did not grow much wiser in the 
afternoon. All that he gained in return for his sixpenny omnibus ride, was a 
more vivid conviction that there never was, never could be, any one like 
Margaret; that she did not love him and never would; but that she—no! nor 
the whole world—should never hinder him from loving her. And so he returned 
to the little market-place, and remounted the omnibus to return to 
Milton. 
</p>
               <p>It was late in the afternoon when he was set down, near his 
warehouse. The accustomed places brought back the accustomed habits and 
trains of thought. He knew how much he had to do—more than his usual work, 
owing to the commotion of the day before. He had to see his brother 
magistrates; he had to complete the arrangements, only half made in the 
morning, for the comfortand safety of his newly imported Irish hands; he had 
to secure them from all chance of communication with the discontented 
work-people of Milton. Last of all, he had to go home and encounter his 
mother. 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Thornton had sat in the dining-room all day, every moment 
expecting the news of her son's acceptance by Miss Hale. She had braced 
herself up many and many a time, at some sudden noise in the house; had 
caught up the half-dropped work, and begun to ply her needle diligently, 
though through dimmed spectacles, and with an unsteady hand! and many times 
had the door opened, and some indifferent person entered on some 
insignificant errand. Then her rigid face unstiffened from its gray 
frost-bound expression, and the features dropped into the relaxed look of 
despondency, so unusual to their sternness. She wrenched herself away from 
the contemplation of all the dreary changes that would be brought about to 
herself by her son's marriage; she forced her thoughts into the accustomed 
household grooves. The newly-married couple-to-be would need fresh household 
stocks of linen; and Mrs. Thornton had clothes-basket upon clothes-basket, 
full of table-cloths and napkins, brought in, and began to reckon up the 
store. There was some confusion between what was hers, and consequently 
marked G. H. T. (for George and Hannah Thornton), and what was her 
son's—bought with his money, marked with his initials. Some of those marked 
G. H. T. were Dutch damask of the old kind, exquisitely fine; none were like 
them now. Mrs. Thornton stood looking at them long,—they had been her pride 
when she was first married. Then she knit her brows, and pinched and 
compressed her lips tight, and carefully unpicked the G. H. She went so far 
as to search for the Turkey-red marking-thread to put in the new initials; 
but it was all used,—and she had no heart to send for any more just yet. So 
she looked fixedly at vacancy; a series of visions passing before her, in all 
of which her son was the principal, the sole object,—her son, her pride, her 
property. Still he did not come. Doubtless he was with Miss Hale. The new 
love was displacing her already from her place as first in his heart. A 
terrible pain—a pang of vain jealousy—shot through her: she hardly knew 
whether it was more physical or mental; but it forced her to sit down. In a 
moment, she was up again as straight as ever,—a grim smile upon her face for 
the first time that day, ready for the door opening, and the rejoicing 
triumphant one, who should never know the sore regret his mother felt at his 
marriage. In all this, there was little thought enough of the future 
daughter-in-law as an individual. She was to be John's wife. To take Mrs. 
Thornton's place as mistress of the house, was only one of the rich 
consequences which decked out the supreme glory; all household plenty and 
comfort, all purple and fine linen, honour, love, obedience, troops of 
friends, would all come as naturally as jewels on a king's robe, and be as 
little thought of for their separate value. To be chosen by John, would 
separate a kitchen-wench from the rest of the world. And Miss Hale was not so 
bad. If she had been a Milton lass, Mrs. Thornton would have positively liked 
her. She was pungent, and had taste, and spirit, and flavour in her. True, 
she was sadly prejudiced, and veryignorant; but that was to be expected from 
her southern breeding. A strange sort of mortified comparison of Fanny with 
her, went on in Mrs. Thornton's mind; and for once she spoke harshly to her 
daughter; abused her roundly; and then, as if by way of penance, she took up 
Henry's Commentaries, and tried to fix her attention on it, instead of 
pursuing the employment she took pride and pleasure in, and continuing her 
inspection of the table-linen. 
</p>
               <p>
                  <hi>His</hi> step at last! She heard him, even 
while she thought she was finishing a sentence; while her eye did pass over 
it, and her memory could mechanically have repeated it word for word, she 
heard him come in at the hall-door. Her quickened sense could interpret every 
sound of motion: now he was at the hat-stand—now at the very room-door. Why 
did he pause? Let her know the worst. 
</p>
               <p>Yet her head was down over the book; 
she did not look up. He came close to the table, and stood still there, 
waiting till she should have finished the paragraph which apparently absorbed 
her. By an effort she looked up. Well, John?' 
</p>
               <p>He knew what that little 
speech meant. But he had steeled himself. He longed to reply with a jest; the 
bitterness of his heart could have uttered one, but his mother deserved 
better of him. He came round behind her, so that she could not see his looks, 
and, bending back her gray, stony face, he kissed it, murmuring: 
</p>
               <p>'No one 
loves me,—no one cares for me, but you, mother.' 
</p>
               <p>He turned away and stood 
leaning his head against the mantel-piece, tears forcing themselves into his 
manly eyes. She stood up,—she tottered. For the first time in her life, the 
strong woman tottered. She put her hands on his shoulders; she was a tall 
woman. She looked into his face; she made him look at her. 
</p>
               <p>'Mother's love 
is given by God, John. It holds fast for ever and ever. A girl's love is like 
a puff of smoke,—it changes with every wind. And she would not have you, my 
own lad, would not she?' She set her teeth; she showed them like a dog for 
the whole length of her mouth. He shook his head. 
</p>
               <p>'I am not fit for her, 
mother; I knew I was not.' 
</p>
               <p>She ground out words between her closed teeth. 
He could not hear what she said; but the look in her eyes interpreted it to 
be a curse,—if not as coarsely worded, as fell in intent as ever was 
uttered. And yet her heart leapt up light, to know he was her own 
again. 
</p>
               <p>'Mother!' said he, hurriedly, 'I cannot hear a word against her. 
Spare me,—spare me! I am very weak in my sore heart;—I love her yet; I love 
her more than ever.' 
</p>
               <p>'And I hate her,' said Mrs. Thornton, in a low fierce 
voice. 'I tried not to hate her, when she stood between you and me, 
because,—I said to myself,—she will make him happy; and I would give my 
heart's blood to do that. But now, I hate her for your misery's sake. Yes, 
John, it's no use hiding up your aching heart from me. I am the mother that 
bore you, and your sorrow is my agony; and if you don't hate her, I 
do.' 
</p>
               <p>'Then, mother, you make me love her more. She is unjustly treated by 
you, and I must make the balance even. But why do we talk of love or hatred? 
She does not care for me, and that is enough,—too much. Let us never name 
the subject again. It is the only thing you can do for me in the matter. Let 
us never name her.' 
</p>
               <p>'With all my heart. I only wish that she, and all 
belonging to her, were swept back to the place they came from.' 
</p>
               <p>He stood 
still, gazing into the fire for a minute or two longer. Her dry dim eyes 
filled with unwonted tears as she looked at him; but she seemed just as grim 
and quiet as usual when he next spoke. 
</p>
               <p>'Warrants are out against three men 
for conspiracy, mother. The riot yesterday helped to knock up the 
strike.' 
</p>
               <p>And Margaret's name was no more mentioned between Mrs. Thornton 
and her son. They fell back into their usual mode of talk,—about facts, not 
opinions, far less feelings. Their voices and tones were calm and cold a 
stranger might have gone away and thought that he had never seen such frigid 
indifference of demeanour between such near relations. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.2" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER II</head>
               <head>FRUIT-PIECE</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'For never any thing can be amiss </l>
                  <l>When simpleness and duty tender it.' </l>
                  <l>MIDSUMMER NIGHT'S DREAM. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Mr. Thornton went straight and clear into all the interests of the 
following day. There was a slight demand for finished goods; and as it 
affected his branch of the trade, he took advantage of it, and drove hard 
bargains. He was sharp to the hour at the meeting of his brother 
magistrates,—giving them the best assistance of his strong sense, and his 
power of seeing consequences at a glance, and so coming to a rapid decision. 
Older men, men of long standing in the town, men of far greater 
wealth—realised and turned into land, while his was all floating capital, 
engaged in his trade—looked to him for prompt, ready wisdom. He was the one 
deputed to see and arrange with the police—to lead in all the requisite 
steps. And he cared for their unconscious deference no more than for the soft 
west wind, that scarcely made the smoke from the great tall chimneys swerve 
in its straight upward course. He was not aware of the silent respect paid to 
him. If it had been otherwise, he would have felt it as an obstacle in his 
progress to the object he had in view. As it was, he looked to the speedy 
accomplishment of that alone. It was his mother's greedy ears that sucked in, 
from the women-kind of these magistrates and wealthy men, how highly Mr. This 
or Mr. That thought of Mr. Thornton; that if he had not been there, things 
would have gone on very differently,—very badly, indeed. He swept off his 
business right and left that day. It seemed as though his deep mortification 
of yesterday, and the stunned purposeless course of the hours afterwards, had 
cleared away all the mists from his intellect. He felt his power and revelled 
in it. He could almost defy his heart. If he had known it, he could have sang 
the song of the miller who lived by the river Dee:— 
<q>
                     <l>'I care for nobody— </l>
                     <l>Nobody cares for me.' </l>
                  </q>
               </p>
               <p>The evidence against Boucher, and other 
ringleaders of the riot, was taken before him; that against the three others, 
for conspiracy, failed. But he sternly charged the police to be on the watch; 
for the swift right arm of the law should be in readiness to strike, as soon 
as they could prove a fault. And then he left the hot reeking room in the 
borough court, and went out into the fresher, but still sultry street. It 
seemed as though he gave way all at once; he was so languid that he could not 
control his thoughts; they would wander to her; they would bring back the 
scene,—not of his repulse and rejection the day before but the looks, the 
actions of the day before that. He went along the crowded streets 
mechanically, winding in and out among the people, but never seeing 
them,—almost sick with longing for that one half-hour—that one brief space 
of time when she clung to him, and her heart beat against his—to come once 
again. 
</p>
               <p>'Why, Mr. Thornton you're cutting me very coolly, I must say. And 
how is Mrs. Thornton? Brave weather this! We doctors don't like it, I can 
tell you!' 
</p>
               <p>'I beg your pardon, Dr. Donaldson. I really didn't see you. My 
mother's quite well, thank you. It is a fine day, and good for the harvest, I 
hope. If the wheat is well got in, we shall have a brisk trade next year, 
whatever you doctors have.' 
</p>
               <p>'Ay, ay. Each man for himself Your bad weather, 
and your bad times, are my good ones. When trade is bad, there's more 
undermining of health, and preparation for death, going on among you Milton 
men than you're aware of.' 
</p>
               <p>'Not with me, Doctor. I'm made of iron. The news 
of the worst bad debt I ever had, never made my pulse vary. This strike, 
which affects me more than any one else in Milton,—more than Hamper,—never 
comes near my appetite. You must go elsewhere for a patient, Doctor.' 
</p>
               <p>'By 
the way, you've recommended me a good patient, poor lady! Not to go on 
talking in this heartless way, I seriously believe that Mrs. Hale—that lady 
in Crampton, you know—hasn't many weeks to live. I never had any hope of 
cure, as I think I told you; but I've been seeing her to-day, and I think 
very badly of her.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton was silent. The vaunted steadiness of 
pulse failed him for an instant. 
</p>
               <p>'Can I do anything, Doctor?' he asked, in 
an altered voice. 'You know—you would see, that money is not very plentiful; 
are there any comforts or dainties she ought to have?' 
</p>
               <p>'No,' replied the 
Doctor, shaking his head. 'She craves for fruit,—she has a constant fever on 
her; but jargonelle pears will do as well as anything, and there are 
quantities of them in the market.' 
</p>
               <p>'You will tell me, if there is anything 
I can do, I'm sure, replied Mr. Thornton. 'I rely upon you.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! never 
fear! I'll not spare your purse,—I know it's deep enough. I wish you'd give 
me carte-blanche for all my patients, and all their wants.' 
</p>
               <p>But Mr. 
Thornton had no general benevolence,—no universal philanthropy; few even 
would have given him credit for strong affections. But he went straight to 
the first fruit-shop in Milton, and chose out the bunch of purple grapes with 
the most delicate bloom upon them,—the richest-coloured peaches,—the 
freshest vine-leaves. They were packed into a basket, and the shopman awaited 
the answer to his inquiry, 'Where shall we send them to, sir?' 
</p>
               <p>There was no 
reply. 'To Marlborough Mills, I suppose, sir?' 
</p>
               <p>'No!' Mr. Thornton said. 
'Give the basket to me,—I'll take it.' 
</p>
               <p>It took up both his hands to carry 
it; and he had to pass through the busiest part of the town for feminine 
shopping. Many a young lady of his acquaintance turned to look after him, and 
thought it strange to see him occupied just like a porter or an 
errand-boy. 
</p>
               <p>He was thinking, 'I will not be daunted from doing as I choose 
by the thought of her. I like to take this fruit to the poor mother, and it 
is simply right that I should. She shall never scorn me out of doing what I 
please. A pretty joke, indeed, if, for fear of a haughty girl, I failed in 
doing a kindness to a man I liked I do it for Mr. Hale; I do it in defiance 
of her.' 
</p>
               <p>He went at an unusual pace, and was soon at Crampton. He went 
upstairs two steps at a time, and entered the drawing-room before Dixon could 
announce him,—his face flushed, his eyes shining with kindly earnestness. 
Mrs. Hale lay on the sofa, heated with fever. Mr. Hale was reading aloud. 
Margaret was working on a low stool by her mother's side. Her heart 
fluttered, if his did not, at this interview. But he took no notice of her, 
hardly of Mr. Hale himself; he went up straight with his basket to Mrs. Hale, 
and said, in that subdued and gentle tone, which is so touching when used by 
a robust man in full health, speaking to a feeble invalid— 
</p>
               <p>'I met Dr. 
Donaldson, ma'am, and as he said fruit would be good for you, I have taken 
the liberty—the great liberty of bringing you some that seemed to me fine.' 
Mrs. Hale was excessively surprised; excessively pleased; quite in a tremble 
of eagerness. Mr. Hale with fewer words expressed a deeper 
gratitude. 
</p>
               <p>'Fetch a plate, Margaret—a basket—anything.' Margaret stood up 
by the table, half afraid of moving or making any noise to arouse Mr. 
Thornton into a consciousness of her being in the room. She thought it would 
be awkward for both to be brought into conscious collision; and fancied that, 
from her being on a low seat at first, and now standing behind her father, he 
had overlooked her in his haste. As if he did not feel the consciousness of 
her presence all over, though his eyes had never rested on her! 
</p>
               <p>'I must 
go,' said he, 'I cannot stay. If you will forgive this liberty,—my rough 
ways,—too abrupt, I fear—but I will be more gentle next time. You will 
allow me the pleasure of bringing you some fruit again, if I should see any 
that is tempting. Good afternoon, Mr. Hale. Good-bye, ma'am.' 
</p>
               <p>He was gone. 
Not one word: not one look to Margaret. She believed that he had not seen 
her. She went for a plate in silence, and lifted the fruit out tenderly, with 
the points of her delicate taper fingers. It was good of him to bring it; and 
after yesterday too! 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! it is so delicious!' said Mrs. Hale, in a feeble 
voice. 'How kind of him to think of me! Margaret love, only taste these 
grapes! Was it not good of him?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes!' said Margaret, 
quietly. 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret!' said Mrs. Hale, rather querulously, 'you won't like 
anything Mr. Thornton does. I never saw anybody so prejudiced.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale 
had been peeling a peach for his wife; and, cutting off a small piece for 
himself, he said: 
</p>
               <p>'If I had any prejudices, the gift of such delicious 
fruit as this would melt them all away. I have not tasted such fruit—no! not 
even in Hampshire—since I was a boy; and to boys, I fancy, all fruit is 
good. I remember eating sloes and crabs with a relish. Do you remember the 
matted-up currant bushes, Margaret, at the corner of the west-wall in the 
garden at home?' 
</p>
               <p>Did she not? Did she not remember every weather-stain on 
the old stone wall; the gray and yellow lichens that marked it like a map; 
the little crane's-bill that grew in the crevices? She had been shaken by the 
events of the last two days; her whole life just now was a strain upon her 
fortitude; and, somehow, these careless words of her father's, touching on 
the remembrance of the sunny times of old, made her start up, and, dropping 
her sewing on the ground, she went hastily out of the room into her own 
little chamber. She had hardly given way to the first choking sob, when she 
became aware of Dixon standing at her drawers, and evidently searching for 
something. 
</p>
               <p>'Bless me, miss! How you startled me! Missus is not worse, is 
she? Is anything the matter?' 
</p>
               <p>'No, nothing. Only I'm silly, Dixon, and want 
a glass of water. What are you looking for? I keep my muslins in that 
drawer.' 
</p>
               <p>Dixon did not speak, but went on rummaging. The scent of lavender 
came out and perfumed the room. 
</p>
               <p>At last Dixon found what she wanted; what 
it was Margaret could not see. Dixon faced round, and spoke to her: 
</p>
               <p>'Now I 
don't like telling you what I wanted, because you've fretting enough to go 
through, and I know you'll fret about this. I meant to have kept it from you 
till night, may be, or such times as that.' 
</p>
               <p>'What is the matter? Pray, tell 
me, Dixon, at once.' 
</p>
               <p>'That young woman you go to see—Higgins, I 
mean.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well?' 
</p>
               <p>'Well! she died this morning, and her sister is here—come 
to beg a strange thing. It seems, the young woman who died had a fancy for 
being buried in something of yours, and so the sister's come to ask for 
it,—and I was looking for a night-cap that wasn't too good to give 
away.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! let me find one,' said Margaret, in the midst of her tears. 
'Poor Bessy! I never thought I should not see her again.' 
</p>
               <p>'Why, that's 
another thing. This girl down-stairs wanted me to ask you, if you would like 
to see her.' 
</p>
               <p>'But she's dead!' said Margaret, turning a little pale. 'I 
never saw a dead person. No! I would rather not.' 
</p>
               <p>'I should never have 
asked you, if you hadn't come in. I told her you wouldn't.' 
</p>
               <p>'I will go down 
and speak to her,' said Margaret, afraid lest Dixon's harshness of manner 
might wound the poor girl. So, taking the cap in her hand, she went to the 
kitchen. Mary's face was all swollen with crying, and she burst out afresh 
when she saw Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, ma'am, she loved yo', she loved yo', she did 
indeed!' And for a long time, Margaret could not get her to say anything more 
than this. At last, her sympathy, and Dixon's scolding, forced out a few 
facts. Nicholas Higgins had gone out in the morning, leaving Bessy as well as 
on the day before. But in an hour she was taken worse; some neighbour ran to 
the room where Mary was working; they did not know where to find her father; 
Mary had only come in a few minutes before she died. 
</p>
               <p>'It were a day or two 
ago she axed to be buried in somewhat o' yourn. She were never tired o' 
talking o' yo'. She used to say yo' were the prettiest thing she'd ever 
clapped eyes on. She loved yo' dearly Her last words were, “Give her my 
affectionate respects; and keep father fro' drink.” Yo'll come and see her, 
ma'am. She would ha' thought it a great compliment, I know.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret 
shrank a little from answering. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, perhaps I may. Yes, I will. I'll come 
before tea. But where's your father, Mary?' 
</p>
               <p>Mary shook her head, and stood 
up to be going. 
</p>
               <p>'Miss Hale,' said Dixon, in a low voice, 'where's the use 
o' your going to see the poor thing laid out? I'd never say a word against 
it, if it could do the girl any good; and I wouldn't mind a bit going myself, 
if that would satisfy her. They've just a notion, these common folks, of its 
being a respect to the departed. Here,' said she, turning sharply round, 
'I'll come and see your sister. Miss Hale is busy, and she can't come, or 
else she would.' 
</p>
               <p>The girl looked wistfully at Margaret. Dixon's coming 
might be a compliment, but it was not the same thing to the poor sister, who 
had had her little pangs of jealousy, during Bessy's lifetime, at the 
intimacy between her and the young lady. 
</p>
               <p>'No, Dixon!' said Margaret with 
decision. 'I will go. Mary, you shall see me this afternoon.' And for fear of 
her own cowardice, she went away, in order to take from herself any chance of 
changing her determination. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.3" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER III</head>
               <head>COMFORT IN SORROW</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Through cross to crown!—And though thy spirit's life </l>
                  <l>Trials untold assail with giant strength, </l>
                  <l>Good cheer! good cheer! Soon ends the bitter strife, </l>
                  <l>And thou shalt reign in peace with Christ at length.' </l>
                  <l>KOSEGARTEN. </l>
               </q>
               <p>'Ay sooth, we feel too strong in weal, to need Thee on that road;But woe 
being come, the soul is dumb, that crieth not on “God.”'MRS. BROWNING.That 
afternoon she walked swiftly to the Higgins's house. Mary was looking out for 
her, with a half-distrustful face. Margaret smiled into her eyes to re-assure 
her. They passed quickly through the house-place, upstairs, and into the 
quiet presence of the dead. Then Margaret was glad that she had come. The 
face, often so weary with pain, so restless with troublous thoughts, had now 
the faint soft smile of eternal rest upon it. The slow tears gathered into 
Margaret's eyes, but a deep calm entered into her soul. And that was death! 
It looked more peaceful than life. All beautiful scriptures came into her 
mind. 'They rest from their labours.' 'The weary are at rest.' 'He giveth His 
beloved sleep.' 
</p>
               <p>Slowly, slowly Margaret turned away from the bed. Mary was 
humbly sobbing in the back-ground. They went down stairs without a 
word. 
</p>
               <p>Resting his hand upon the house-table, Nicholas Higgins stood in the 
midst of the floor; his great eyes startled open by the news he had heard, as 
he came along the court, from many busy tongues. His eyes were dry and 
fierce; studying the reality of her death; bringing himself to understand 
that her place should know her no more. For she had been sickly, dying so 
long, that he had persuaded himself she would not die; that she would 'pull 
through.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret felt as if she had no business to be there, familiarly 
acquainting herself with the surroundings of death which he, the father, had 
only just learnt. There had been a pause of an instant on the steep crooked 
stair, when she first saw him; but now she tried to steal past his abstracted 
gaze, and to leave him in the solemn circle of his household misery. 
</p>
               <p>Mary 
sat down on the first chair she came to, and throwing her apron over her 
head, began to cry. 
</p>
               <p>The noise appeared to rouse him. He took sudden hold of 
Margaret's arm, and held her till he could gather words to speak. seemed dry; 
they came up thick, and choked, and hoarse: 
</p>
               <p>'Were yo' with her? Did yo' see 
her die?' 
</p>
               <p>'No!' replied Margaret, standing still with the utmost patience, 
now she found herself perceived. It was some time before he spoke again, but 
he kept his hold on her arm. 
</p>
               <p>'All men must die,' said he at last, with a 
strange sort of gravity, which first suggested to Margaret the idea that he 
had been drinking—not enough to intoxicate himself, but enough to make his 
thoughts bewildered. 'But she were younger than me.' Still he pondered over 
the event, not looking at Margaret, though he grasped her tight. Suddenly, he 
looked up at her with a wild searching inquiry in his glance. 'Yo're sure and 
certain she's dead—not in a dwam, a faint?—she's been so before, 
often.' 
</p>
               <p>'She is dead,' replied Margaret. She felt no fear in speaking to 
him, though he hurt her arm with his gripe, and wild gleams came across the 
stupidity of his eyes. 
</p>
               <p>'She is dead!' she said. 
</p>
               <p>He looked at her still 
with that searching look, which seemed to fade out of his eyes as he gazed. 
Then he suddenly let go his hold of Margaret, and, throwing his body half 
across the table, he shook it and every piece of furniture in the room, with 
his violent sobs. Mary came trembling towards him. 
</p>
               <p>'Get thee gone!—get 
thee gone!' he cried, striking wildly and blindly at her. 'What do I care for 
thee?' Margaret took her hand, and held it softly in hers. He tore his hair, 
he beat his head against the hard wood, then he lay exhausted and stupid. 
Still his daughter and Margaret did not move. Mary trembled from head to 
foot. 
</p>
               <p>At last—it might have been a quarter of an hour, it might have been 
an hour—he lifted himself up. His eyes were swollen and bloodshot, and he 
seemed to have forgotten that any one was by; he scowled at the watchers when 
he saw them. He Shook himself heavily, gave them one more sullen look, spoke 
never a word, but made for the door. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, father, father!' said Mary, 
throwing herself upon his arm,—'not to-night! Any night but to-night. Oh, 
help me! he's going out to drink again! Father, I'll not leave yo'. Yo' may 
strike, but I'll not leave yo'. She told me last of all to keep yo' fro' 
drink!' 
</p>
               <p>But Margaret stood in the doorway, silent yet commanding. He looked 
up at her defyingly. 
</p>
               <p>'It's my own house. Stand out o' the way, wench, or 
I'll make yo'!' He had shaken off Mary with violence; he looked ready to 
strike Margaret. But she never moved a feature—never took her deep, serious 
eyes off him. He stared back on her with gloomy fierceness. If she had 
stirred hand or foot, he would have thrust her aside with even more violence 
than he had used to his own daughter, whose face was bleeding from her fall 
against a chair. 
</p>
               <p>'What are yo' looking at me in that way for?' asked he at 
last, daunted and awed by her severe calm. 'If yo' think for to keep me from 
going what gait I choose, because she loved yo'—and in my own house, too, 
where I never asked yo' to come, yo're mista'en. It's very hard upon a man 
that he can't go to the only comfort left.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret felt that he 
acknowledged her power. What could she do next? He had seated himself on a 
chair, close to the door; half-conquered, half-resenting; intending to go out 
as soon as she left her position, but unwilling to use the violence he had 
threatened not five minutes before. Margaret laid her hand on his 
arm. 
</p>
               <p>'Come with me,' she said. 'Come and see her!' 
</p>
               <p>The voice in which she 
spoke was very low and solemn; but there was no fear or doubt expressed in 
it, either of him or of his compliance. He sullenly rose up. He stood 
uncertain, with dogged irresolution upon his face. She waited him there; 
quietly and patiently waited for his time to move. He had a strange pleasure 
in making her wait; but at last he moved towards the stairs. 
</p>
               <p>She and he 
stood by the corpse. 
</p>
               <p>'Her last words to Mary were, “Keep my father fro' 
drink.”' 
</p>
               <p>'It canna hurt her now,' muttered he. 'Nought can hurt her now.' 
Then, raising his voice to a wailing cry, he went on: 'We may quarrel and 
fall out—we may make peace and be friends—we may clem to skin and bone—and 
nought o' all our griefs will ever touch her more. Hoo's had her portion on 
'em. What wi' hard work first, and sickness at last, hoo's led the life of a 
dog. And to die without knowing one good piece o' rejoicing in all her days! 
Nay, wench, whatever hoo said, hoo can know nought about it now, and I mun 
ha' a sup o' drink just to steady me again sorrow.' 
</p>
               <p>'No,' said Margaret, 
softening with his softened manner. 'You shall not. If her life has been what 
you say, at any rate she did not fear death as some do. Oh, you should have 
heard her speak of the life to come—the life hidden with God, that she is 
now gone to.' 
</p>
               <p>He shook his head, glancing sideways up at Margaret as he did 
so. His pale, haggard face struck her painfully. 
</p>
               <p>'You are sorely tired. 
Where have you been all day—not at work?' 
</p>
               <p>'Not at work, sure enough,' said 
he, with a short, grim laugh. 'Not at what you call work. I were at the 
Committee, till I were sickened out wi' trying to make fools hear reason. I 
were fetched to Boucher's wife afore seven this morning. She's bed-fast, but 
she were raving and raging to know where her dunder-headed brute of a chap 
was, as if I'd to keep him—as if he were fit to be ruled by me. The d—d 
fool, who has put his foot in all our plans! And I've walked my feet sore wi' 
going about for to see men who wouldn't be seen, now the law is raised again 
us. And I were sore-hearted, too, which is worse than sore-footed; and if I 
did see a friend who ossed to treat me, I never knew hoo lay a-dying here. 
Bess, lass, thou'd believe me, thou wouldst—wouldstn't thou?' turning to the 
poor dumb form with wild appeal. 
</p>
               <p>'I am sure,' said Margaret, 'I am sure you 
did not know: it was quite sudden. But now, you see, it would be different; 
you do know; you do see her lying there; you hear what she said with her last 
breath. You will not go?' 
</p>
               <p>No answer. In fact, where was he to look for 
comfort? 
</p>
               <p>'Come home with me,' said she at last, with a bold venture, half 
trembling at her own proposal as she made it. 'At least you shall have some 
comfortable food, which I'm sure you need.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yo'r father's a parson?' asked 
he, with a sudden turn in his ideas. 
</p>
               <p>'He was,' said Margaret, 
shortly. 
</p>
               <p>'I'll go and take a dish o' tea with him, since yo've asked me. 
I've many a thing I often wished to say to a parson, and I'm not particular 
as to whether he's preaching now, or not.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was perplexed; his 
drinking tea with her father, who would be totally unprepared for his 
visitor—her mother so ill—seemed utterly out of the question; and yet if 
she drew back now, it would be worse than ever—sure to drive him to the 
gin-shop. She thought that if she could only get him to their own house, it 
was so great a step gained that she would trust to the chapter ofaccidents 
for the next. 
</p>
               <p>'Goodbye, ou'd wench! We've parted company at last, we have! 
But thou'st been a blessin' to thy father ever sin' thou wert born. Bless thy 
white lips, lass,—they've a smile on 'em now! and I'm glad to see it once 
again, though I'm lone and forlorn for evermore.' 
</p>
               <p>He stooped down and 
fondly kissed his daughter; covered up her face, and turned to follow 
Margaret. She had hastily gone down stairs to tell Mary of the arrangement; 
to say it was the only way she could think of to keep him from the 
gin-palace; to urge Mary to come too, for her heart smote her at the idea of 
leaving the poor affectionate girl alone. But Mary had friends among the 
neighbours, she said, who would come in and sit a bit with her, it was all 
right; but father— 
</p>
               <p>He was there by them as she would have spoken more. He 
had shaken off his emotion, as if he was ashamed of having ever given way to 
it; and had even o'erleaped himself so much that he assumed a sort of bitter 
mirth, like the crackling of thorns under a pot. 
</p>
               <p>'I'm going to take my tea 
wi' her father, I am!' 
</p>
               <p>But he slouched his cap low down over his brow as he 
went out into the street, and looked neither to the right nor to the left, 
while he tramped along by Margaret's side; he feared being upset by the 
words, still more the looks, of sympathising neighbours. So he and Margaret 
walked in silence. 
</p>
               <p>As he got near the street in which he knew she lived, he 
looked down at his clothes, his hands, and shoes. 
</p>
               <p>'I should m'appen ha' 
cleaned mysel', first?' 
</p>
               <p>It certainly would have been desirable, but 
Margaret assured him he should be allowed to go into the yard, and have soap 
and towel provided; she could not let him slip out of her hands just 
then. 
</p>
               <p>While he followed the house-servant along the passage, and through 
the kitchen, stepping cautiously on every dark mark in the pattern of the 
oil-cloth, in order to conceal his dirty foot-prints, Margaret ran upstairs. 
She met Dixon on the landing. 
</p>
               <p>'How is mamma?—where is papa?' 
</p>
               <p>Missus was 
tired, and gone into her own room. She had wanted to go to bed, but Dixon had 
persuaded her to lie down on the sofa, and have her tea brought to her there; 
it would be better than getting restless by being too long in bed. 
</p>
               <p>So far, 
so good. But where was Mr. Hale? In the drawing-room. Margaret went in half 
breathless with the hurried story she had to tell. Of course, she told it 
incompletely; and her father was rather 'taken aback' by the idea of the 
drunken weaver awaiting him in his quiet study, with whom he was expected to 
drink tea, and on whose behalf Margaret was anxiously pleading. The meek, 
kind-hearted Mr. Hale would have readily tried to console him in his grief, 
but, unluckily, the point Margaret dwelt upon most forcibly was the fact of 
his having been drinking, and her having brought him home with her as a last 
expedient to keep him from the gin-shop. One little event had come out of 
another so naturally that Margaret was hardly conscious of what she had done, 
till she saw the slight look of repugnance on her father's face. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, papa! 
he really is a man you will not dislike—if you won't be shocked to begin 
with.' 
</p>
               <p>'But, Margaret, to bring a drunken man home—and your mother so 
ill!' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret's countenance fell. 'I am sorry, papa. He is very quiet—he 
is not tipsy at all. He was only rather strange at first, but that might be 
the shock of poor Bessy's death.' Margaret's eyes filled with tears. Mr. Hale 
took hold of her sweet pleading face in both his hands, and kissed her 
forehead. 
</p>
               <p>'It is all right, dear. I'll go and make him as comfortable as I 
can, and do you attend to your mother. Only, if you can come in and make a 
third in the study, I shall be glad.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, yes—thank you.' But as Mr. Hale 
was leaving the room, she ran after him: 
</p>
               <p>'Papa—you must not wonder at what 
he says: he's an——I mean he does not believe in much of what we do.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh 
dear! a drunken infidel weaver!' said Mr. Hale to himself, in dismay. But to 
Margaret he only said, 'If your mother goes to sleep, be sure you come 
directly.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret went into her mother's room. Mrs. Hale lifted herself 
up from a doze. 
</p>
               <p>'When did you write to Frederick, Margaret? Yesterday, or 
the day before?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yesterday, mamma.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yesterday. And the letter 
went?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes. I took it myself' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, Margaret, I'm so afraid of his 
coming! If he should be recognised! If he should be taken! If he should be 
executed, after all these years that he has kept away and lived in safety! I 
keep falling asleep and dreaming that he is caught and being tried.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, 
mamma, don't be afraid. There will be some risk no doubt; but we will lessen 
it as much as ever we can. And it is so little! Now, if we were at Helstone, 
there would be twenty—a hundred times as much. There, everybody would 
remember him and if there was a stranger known to be in the house, they would 
be sure to guess it was Frederick; while here, nobody knows or cares for us 
enough to notice what we do. Dixon will keep the door like a dragon—won't 
you, Dixon—while he is here?' 
</p>
               <p>'They'll be clever if they come in past me!' 
said Dixon, showing her teeth at the bare idea. 
</p>
               <p>'And he need not go out, 
except in the dusk, poor fellow!' 
</p>
               <p>'Poor fellow!' echoed Mrs. Hale. 'But I 
almost wish you had not written. Would it be too late to stop him if you 
wrote again, Margaret?' 
</p>
               <p>'I'm afraid it would, mamma,' said Margaret, 
remembering the urgency with which she had entreated him to come directly, if 
he wished to see his mother alive. 
</p>
               <p>'I always dislike that doing things in 
such a hurry,' said Mrs. Hale. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was silent. 
</p>
               <p>'Come now, ma am,' 
said Dixon, with a kind of cheerful authority, 'you know seeing Master 
Frederick is just the very thing of all others you're longing for. And I'm 
glad Miss Margaret wrote off straight, without shilly-shallying. I've had a 
great mind to do it myself. And we'll keep him snug, depend upon it. There's 
only Martha in the house that would not do a good deal to save him on a 
pinch; and I've been thinking she might go and see her mother just at that 
very time. She's been saying once or twice she should like to go, for her 
mother has had a stroke since she came here, only she didn't like to ask. But 
I'll see about her being safe off, as soon as we know when he comes, God 
bless him! So take your tea, ma'am, in comfort, and trust to me.' 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Hale 
did trust in Dixon more than in Margaret. Dixon's words quieted her for the 
time. Margaret poured out the tea in silence, trying to think of something 
agreeable to say; but her thoughts made answer something like Daniel 
O'Rourke, when the man-in-the-moon asked him to get off his reaping-hook. 
'The more you ax us, the more we won't stir.' The more she tried to think of 
something anything besides the danger to which Frederick would be 
exposed—the more closely her imagination clung to the unfortunate idea 
presented to her. Her mother prattled with Dixon, and seemed to have utterly 
forgotten the possibility of Frederick being tried and executed—utterly 
forgotten that at her wish, if by Margaret's deed, he was summoned into this 
danger. Her mother was one of those who throw out terrible possibilities, 
miserable probabilities, unfortunate chances of all kinds, as a rocket throws 
out sparks; but if the sparks light on some combustible matter, they smoulder 
first, and burst out into a frightful flame at last. Margaret was glad when, 
her filial duties gently and carefully performed, she could go down into the 
study. She wondered how her father and Higgins had got on. 
</p>
               <p>In the first 
place, the decorous, kind-hearted, simple, old-fashioned gentleman, had 
unconsciously called out, by his own refinement and courteousness of manner, 
all the latent courtesy in the other. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale treated all his 
fellow-creatures alike: it never entered into his head to make any difference 
because of their rank. He placed a chair for Nicholas stood up till he, at 
Mr. Hale's request, took a seat; and called him, invariably, 'Mr. Higgins,' 
instead of the curt 'Nicholas' or 'Higgins,' to which the 'drunken infidel 
weaver' had been accustomed. But Nicholas was neither an habitual drunkard 
nor a thorough infidel. He drank to drown care, as he would have himself 
expressed it: and he was infidel so far as he had never yet found any form of 
faith to which he could attach himself, heart and soul. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was a 
little surprised, and very much pleased, when she found her father and 
Higgins in earnest conversation—each speaking with gentle politeness to the 
other, however their opinions might clash. Nicholas—clean, tidied (if only 
at the pump-trough), and quiet spoken—was a new creature to her, who had 
only seen him in the rough independence of his own hearthstone. He had 
'slicked' his hair down with the fresh water; he had adjusted his 
neck-handkerchief, and borrowed an odd candle-end to polish his clogs with 
and there he sat, enforcing some opinion on her father, with a strong 
Darkshire accent, it is true, but with a lowered voice, and a good, earnest 
composure on his face. Her father, too, was interested in what his companion 
was saying. He looked round as she came in, smiled, and quietly gave her his 
chair, and then sat down afresh as quickly as possible, and with a little bow 
of apology to his guest for the interruption. Higgins nodded to her as a sign 
of greeting; and she softly adjusted her working materials on the table, and 
prepared to listen. 
</p>
               <p>'As I was a-sayin, sir, I reckon yo'd not ha' much 
belief in yo' if yo' lived here,—if yo'd been bred here. I ax your pardon if 
I use wrong words; but what I mean by belief just now, is a-thinking on 
sayings and maxims and promises made by folk yo' never saw, about the things 
and the life, yo' never saw, nor no one else. Now, yo' say these are true 
things, and true sayings, and a true life. I just say, where's the proof? 
There's many and many a one wiser, and scores better learned than I am around 
me,—folk who've had time to think on these things,—while my time has had to 
be gi'en up to getting my bread. Well, I sees these people. Their lives is 
pretty much open to me. They're real folk. They don't believe i' the 
Bible,—not they. They may say they do, for form's sake; but Lord, sir, d'ye 
think their first cry i' th' morning is, “What shall I do to get hold on 
eternal life?” or “What shall I do to fill my purse this blessed day? Where 
shall I go? What bargains shall I strike?” The purse and the gold and the 
notes is real things; things as can be felt and touched; them's realities; 
and eternal life is all a talk, very fit for—I ax your pardon, sir; yo'r a 
parson out o' work, I believe. Well! I'll never speak disrespectful of a man 
in the same fix as I'm in mysel'. But I'll just ax yo another question, sir, 
and I dunnot want yo to answer it, only to put in yo'r pipe, and smoke it, 
afore yo' go for to set down us, who only believe in what we see, as fools 
and noddies. If salvation, and life to come, and what not, was true—not in 
men's words, but in men's hearts' core—dun yo' not think they'd din us wi' 
it as they do wi' political 'conomy? They're mighty anxious to come round us 
wi' that piece o' wisdom; but t'other would be a greater convarsion, if it 
were true.' 
</p>
               <p>'But the masters have nothing to do with your religion. All 
that they are connected with you in is trade,—so they think,—and all that 
it concerns them, therefore, to rectify your opinions in is the science of 
trade.' 
</p>
               <p>'I'm glad, sir,' said Higgins, with a curious wink of his eye, 
'that yo' put in, “so they think.” I'd ha' thought yo' a hypocrite, I'm 
afeard, if yo' hadn't, for all yo'r a parson, or rayther because yo'r a 
parson. Yo' see, if yo'd spoken o' religion as a thing that, if it was true, 
it didn't concern all men to press on all men's attention, above everything 
else in this 'varsal earth, I should ha' thought yo' a knave for to be a 
parson; and I'd rather think yo' a fool than a knave. No offence, I hope, 
sir.' 
</p>
               <p>'None at all. You consider me mistaken, and I consider you far more 
fatally mistaken. I don't expect to convince you in a day,—not in one 
conversation; but let us know each other, and speak freely to each other 
about these things, and the truth will prevail. I should not believe in God 
if I did not believe that. Mr. Higgins, I trust, whatever else you have given 
up, you believe'—(Mr. Hale's voice dropped low in reverence)—'you believe 
in Him.' 
</p>
               <p>Nicholas Higgins suddenly stood straight, stiff up. Margaret 
started to her feet,—for she thought, by the working of his face, he was 
going into convulsions. Mr. Hale looked at her dismayed. At last Higgins 
found words: 
</p>
               <p>'Man! I could fell yo' to the ground for tempting me. Whatten 
business have yo' to try me wi' your doubts? Think o' her lying theere, after 
the life hoo's led and think then how yo'd deny me the one sole comfort 
left—that there is a God, and that He set her her life. I dunnot believe 
she'll ever live again,' said he, sitting down, and drearily going on, as if 
to the unsympathising fire. 'I dunnot believe in any other life than this, in 
which she dreed such trouble, and had such never-ending care; and I cannot 
bear to think it were all a set o' chances, that might ha' been altered wi' a 
breath o' wind. There's many a time when I've thought I didna believe in God, 
but I've never put it fair out before me in words, as many men do. I may ha' 
laughed at those who did, to brave it out like—but I have looked round at 
after, to see if He heard me, if so be there was a He; but to-day, when I'm 
left desolate, I wunnot listen to yo' wi' yo'r questions, and yo'r doubts. 
There's but one thing steady and quiet i' all this reeling world, and, reason 
or no reason, I'll cling to that. It's a' very well for happy 
folk'—— 
</p>
               <p>Margaret touched his arm very softly. She had not spoken before, 
nor had he heard her rise. 
</p>
               <p>'Nicholas, we do not want to reason; you 
misunderstand my father. We do not reason—we believe; and so do you. It is 
the one sole comfort in such times.' 
</p>
               <p>He turned round and caught her hand. 
'Ay! it is, it is—(brushing away the tears with the back of his hand). 
—'But yo' know, she's lying dead at home and I'm welly dazed wi' sorrow, and 
at times I hardly know what I'm saying. It's as if speeches folk ha' 
made—clever and smart things as I've thought at the time—come up now my 
heart's welly brossen. Th' strike's failed as well; dun yo' know that, miss? 
I were coming whoam to ask her, like a beggar as I am, for a bit o' comfort 
i' that trouble; and I were knocked down by one who telled me she were 
dead—just dead That were all; but that were enough for me. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale blew 
his nose, and got up to snuff the candles in order to conceal his emotion. 
'He's not an infidel, Margaret; how could you say so?' muttered he 
reproachfully 'I've a good mind to read him the fourteenth chapter of 
Job.' 
</p>
               <p>'Not yet, papa, I think. Perhaps not at all. Let us ask him about the 
strike, and give him all the sympathy he needs, and hoped to have from poor 
Bessy.' 
</p>
               <p>So they questioned and listened. The workmen's calculations were 
based (like too many of the masters') on false premises. They reckoned on 
their fellow-men as if they possessed the calculable powers of machines, no 
more, no less; no allowance for human passions getting the better of reason, 
as in the case of Boucher and the rioters; and believing that the 
representations of their injuries would have the same effect on strangers far 
away, as the injuries (fancied or real) had upon themselves. They were 
consequently surprised and indignant at the poor Irish, who had allowed 
themselves to be imported and brought over to take their places. This 
indignation was tempered, in some degree, by contempt for 'them Irishers,' 
and by pleasure at the idea of the bungling way in which they would set to 
work, and perplex their new masters with their ignorance and stupidity, 
strange exaggerated stories of which were already spreading through the town. 
But the most cruel cut of all was that of the Milton workmen, who had defied 
and disobeyed the commands of the Union to keep the peace, whatever came; who 
had originated discord in the camp, and spread the panic of the law being 
arrayed against them. 
</p>
               <p>'And so the strike is at an end,' said 
Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Ay, miss. It's save as save can. Th' factory doors will need 
open wide to-morrow to let in all who'll be axing for work; if it's only just 
to show they'd nought to do wi' a measure, which if we'd been made o' th' 
right stuff would ha' brought wages up to a point they'n not been at this ten 
year.' 
</p>
               <p>'You'll get work, shan't you?' asked Margaret. 'You're a famous 
workman, are not you?' 
</p>
               <p>'Hamper'll let me work at his mill, when he cuts off 
his right hand—not before, and not after,' said Nicholas, quietly. Margaret 
was silenced and sad. 
</p>
               <p>'About the wages,' said Mr. Hale. 'You'll not be 
offended, but I think you make some sad mistakes. I should like to read you 
some remarks in a book I have.' He got up and went to his 
book-shelves. 
</p>
               <p>'Yo' needn't trouble yoursel', sir,' said Nicholas. 'Their 
book-stuff goes in at one ear and out at t'other. I can make nought on't. 
Afore Hamper and me had this split, th' overlooker telled him I were stirring 
up the men to ask for higher wages; and Hamper met me one day in th' yard. 
He'd a thin book i' his hand, and says he, “Higgins, I'm told you're one of 
those damned fools that think you can get higher wages for asking for 'em; 
ay, and keep 'em up too, when you've forced 'em up. Now, I'll give yo' a 
chance and try if yo've any sense in yo'. Here's a book written by a friend 
o' mine, and if yo'll read it yo'll see how wages find their own level, 
without either masters or men having aught to do with them; except the men 
cut their own throats wi' striking, like the confounded noodles they are.” 
Well, now, sir, I put it to yo', being a parson, and having been in th' 
preaching line, and having had to try and bring folk o'er to what yo' thought 
was a right way o' thinking—did yo' begin by calling 'em fools and such 
like, or didn't yo' rayther give 'em some kind words at first, to make 'em 
ready for to listen and be convinced, if they could; and in yo'r preaching, 
did yo' stop every now and then, and say, half to them and half to yo'rsel', 
“But yo're such a pack o' fools, that I've a strong notion it's no use my 
trying to put sense into yo'?” I were not i' th' best state, I'll own, for 
taking in what Hamper's friend had to say—I were so vexed at the way it were 
put to me;—but I thought, “Come, I'll see what these chaps has got to say, 
and try if it's them or me as is th' noodle.” So I took th' book and tugged 
at it; but, Lord bless yo', it went on about capital and labour, and labour 
and capital, till it fair sent me off to sleep. I ne'er could rightly fix i' 
my mind which was which; and it spoke on 'em as if they was vartues or vices; 
and what I wanted for to know were the rights o' men, whether they were rich 
or poor—so be they only were men.' 
</p>
               <p>'But for all that,' said Mr. Hale, 'and 
granting to the full the offensiveness, the folly, the unchristianness of Mr. 
Hamper's way of speaking to you in recommending his friend's book, yet if it 
told you what he said it did, that wages find their own level, and that the 
most successful strike can only force them up for a moment, to sink in far 
greater proportion afterwards, in consequence of that very strike, the book 
would have told you the truth.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, sir,' said Higgins, rather doggedly; 
'it might, or it might not. There's two opinions go to settling that point. 
But suppose it was truth double strong, it were no truth to me if I couldna 
take it in. I daresay there's truth in yon Latin book on your shelves; but 
it's gibberish and not truth to me, unless I know the meaning o' the words. 
If yo', sir, or any other knowledgable, patient man come to me, and says 
he'll larn me what the words mean, and not blow me up if I'm a bit stupid, or 
forget how one thing hangs on another—why, in time I may get to see the 
truth of it; or I may not. I'll not be bound to say I shall end in thinking 
the same as any man. And I'm not one who think truth can be shaped out in 
words, all neat and clean, as th' men at th' foundry cut out sheet-iron. Same 
bones won't go down wi' every one. It'll stick here i' this man's throat, and 
there i' t'other's. Let alone that, when down, it may be too strong for this 
one, too weak for that. Folk who sets up to doctor th' world wi' their truth, 
mun suit different for different minds; and be a bit tender in th' way of 
giving it too, or th' poor sick fools may spit it out i' their faces. Now 
Hamper first gi'es me a box on my ear, and then he throws his big bolus at 
me, and says he reckons it'll do me no good, I'm such a fool, but there it 
is.' 
</p>
               <p>'I wish some of the kindest and wisest of the masters would meet some 
of you men, and have a good talk on these things; it would, surely, be the 
best way of getting over your difficulties, which, I do believe, arise from 
your ignorance—excuse me, Mr. Higgins—on subjects which it is for the 
mutual interest of both masters and men should be well understood by both. I 
wonder'—(half to his daughter), 'if Mr. Thornton might not be induced to do 
such a thing?' 
</p>
               <p>'Remember, papa,' said she in a very low voice, 'what he 
said one day—about governments, you know.' She was unwilling to make any 
clearer allusion to the conversation they had held on the mode of governing 
work-people—by giving men intelligence enough to rule themselves, or by a 
wise despotism on the part of the master—for she saw that Higgins had caught 
Mr. Thornton's name, if not the whole of the speech: indeed, he began to 
speak of him. 
</p>
               <p>'Thornton! He's the chap as wrote off at once for these 
Irishers; and led to th' riot that ruined th' strike. Even Hamper wi' all his 
bullying, would ha' waited a while—but it's a word and a blow wi' Thornton. 
And, now, when th' Union would ha' thanked him for following up th' chase 
after Boucher, and them chaps as went right again our commands, it's Thornton 
who steps forrard and coolly says that, as th' strike's at an end, he, as 
party injured, doesn't want to press the charge again the rioters. I thought 
he'd had more pluck. I thought he'd ha' carried his point, and had his 
revenge in an open way; but says he (one in court telled me his very words) 
“they are well known; they will find the natural punishment of their conduct, 
in the difficulty they will meet wi' in getting employment. That will be 
severe enough.” I only wish they'd cotched Boucher, and had him up before 
Hamper. I see th' oud tiger setting on him! would he ha' let him off? Not 
he!' 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Thornton was right,' said Margaret. You are angry against 
Boucher, Nicholas; or else you would be the first to see, that where the 
natural punishment would be severe enough for the offence, any farther 
punishment would be something like revenge. 
</p>
               <p>'My daughter is no great friend 
of Mr. Thornton's,' said Mr. Hale, smiling at Margaret; while she, as red as 
any carnation, began to work with double diligence, 'but I believe what she 
says is the truth. I like him for it.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, sir, this strike has been a 
weary piece o' business to me; and yo'll not wonder if I'm a bit put out wi' 
seeing it fail, just for a few men who would na suffer in silence, and hou'd 
out, brave and firm.' 
</p>
               <p>'You forget!' said Margaret. 'I don't know much of 
Boucher; but the only time I saw him it was not his own sufferings he spoke 
of, but those of his sick wife—his little children.' 
</p>
               <p>'True! but he were 
not made of iron himsel'. He'd ha' cried out for his own sorrows, next. He 
were not one to bear.' 
</p>
               <p>'How came he into the Union?' asked Margaret 
innocently. 'You don't seem to have much respect for him; nor gained much 
good from having him in.' 
</p>
               <p>Higgins's brow clouded. He was silent for a 
minute or two.Then he said, shortly enough: 
</p>
               <p>'It's not for me to speak o' 
th' Union. What they does, they does. Them that is of a trade mun hang 
together; and if they're not willing to take their chance along wi' th' rest, 
th' Union has ways and means.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale saw that Higgins was vexed at the 
turn the conversation had taken, and was silent. Not so Margaret, though she 
saw Higgins's feeling as clearly as he did. By instinct she felt, that if he 
could but be brought to express himself in plain words, something clear would 
be gained on which to argue for the right and the just. 
</p>
               <p>'And what are the 
Union's ways and means?' 
</p>
               <p>He looked up at her, as if on' the point of dogged 
resistance to her wish for information. But her calm face, fixed on his, 
patient and trustful, compelled him to answer. 
</p>
               <p>'Well! If a man doesn't 
belong to th' Union, them as works next looms has orders not to speak to 
him—if he's sorry or ill it's a' the same; he's out o' bounds; he's none o' 
us; he comes among us, he works among us, but he's none o' us. I' some places 
them's fined who speaks to him. Yo' try that, miss; try living a year or two 
among them as looks away if yo' look at 'em; try working within two yards o' 
crowds o' men, who, yo' know, have a grinding grudge at yo' in their 
hearts—to whom if yo' say yo'r glad, not an eye brightens, nor a lip 
moves,—to whom if your heart's heavy, yo' can never say nought, because 
they'll ne'er take notice on your sighs or sad looks (and a man 's no man 
who'll groan out loud 'bout folk asking him what 's the matter?)—just yo' 
try that, miss—ten hours for three hundred days, and yo'll know a bit what 
th' Union is.' 
</p>
               <p>'Why!' said Margaret, 'what tyranny this is! Nay, Higgins, I 
don't care one straw for your anger. I know you can't be angry with me if you 
would, and I must tell you the truth: that I never read, in all the history I 
have read, of a more slow, lingering torture than this. And you belong to the 
Union! And you talk of the tyranny of the masters!' 
</p>
               <p>'Nay,' said Higgins, 
'yo' may say what yo' like! The dead stand between yo and every angry word o' 
mine. D' ye think I forget who's lying <hi>there</hi>, and how hoo loved yo'? 
And it's th' masters as has made us sin, if th' Union is a sin. Not this 
generation maybe, but their fathers. Their fathers ground our fathers to the 
very dust; ground us to powder! Parson! I reckon, I've heerd my mother read 
out a text, “The fathers have eaten sour grapes and th' children's teeth are 
set on edge.” It's so wi' them. In those days of sore oppression th' Unions 
began; it were a necessity. It's a necessity now, according to me. It's a 
withstanding of injustice, past, present, or to come. It may be like war; 
along wi' it come crimes; but I think it were a greater crime to let it 
alone. Our only chance is binding men together in one common interest; and if 
some are cowards and some are fools, they mun come along and join the great 
march, whose only strength is in numbers.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh!' said Mr. Hale, sighing, 
'your Union in itself would be beautiful, glorious,—it would be Christianity 
itself—if it were but for an end which affected the good of all, instead of 
that of merely one class as opposed to another.' 
</p>
               <p>'I reckon it's time for me 
to be going, sir,' said Higgins, as the clock struck ten. 
</p>
               <p>'Home?' said 
Margaret very softly. He understood her, and took her offered hand. 'Home, 
miss. Yo' may trust me, tho' I am one o' th' Union.' 
</p>
               <p>'I do trust you most 
thoroughly, Nicholas.' 
</p>
               <p>'Stay!' said Mr. Hale, hurrying to the book-shelves. 
'Mr. Higgins! I'm sure you'll join us in family prayer?' 
</p>
               <p>Higgins looked at 
Margaret, doubtfully. Hey grave sweet eyes met his; there was no compulsion, 
only deep interest in them. He did not speak, but he kept his 
place. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret the Churchwoman, her father the Dissenter, Higgins the 
Infidel, knelt down together. It did them no harm. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.4" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER IV</head>
               <head>A RAY OF SUNSHINE</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Some wishes crossed my mind and dimly cheered it, </l>
                  <l>And one or two poor melancholy pleasures, </l>
                  <l>Each in the pale unwarming light of hope, </l>
                  <l>Silvering its flimsy wing, flew silent by— </l>
                  <l>Moths in the moonbeam!' </l>
                  <l>COLERIDGE. </l>
               </q>
               <p>The next morning brought Margaret a letter from Edith. It was affectionate 
and inconsequent like the writer. But the affection was charming to 
Margaret's own affectionate nature; and she had grown up with the 
inconsequence, so she did not perceive it. It was as follows:— 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, 
Margaret, it is worth a journey from England to see my boy! He is a superb 
little fellow, especially in his caps, and most especially in the one you 
sent him, you good, dainty-fingered, persevering little lady! Having made all 
the mothers here envious, I want to show him to somebody new, and hear a 
fresh set of admiring expressions; perhaps, that's all the reason; perhaps it 
is not,—nay, possibly, there is just a little cousinly love mixed with it; 
but I do want you so much to come here, Margaret! I'm sure it would be the 
very best thing for Aunt Hale's health; everybody here is young and well, and 
our skies are always blue, and our sun always shines, and the band plays 
deliciously from morning till night; and, to come back to the burden of my 
ditty, my baby always smiles. I am constantly wanting you to draw him for me, 
Margaret. It does not signify what he is doing; that very thing is prettiest, 
gracefulest, best. I think I love him a great deal better than my husband, 
who is getting stout, and grumpy,—what he calls “busy.” No! he is not. He 
has just come in with news of such a charming pic-nic, given by the officers 
of the Hazard, at anchor in the bay below. Because he has brought in such a 
pleasant piece of news, I retract all I said just now. Did not somebody burn 
his hand for having said or done something he was sorry for? Well, I can't 
burn mine, because it would hurt me, and the scar would be ugly; but I'll 
retract all I said as fast as I can. Cosmo is quite as great a darling as 
baby, and not a bit stout, and as un-grumpy as ever husband was; only, 
sometimes he is very, very busy. I may say that without love—wifely 
duty—where was I?—I had something very particular to say, I know, once. Oh, 
it is this—Dearest Margaret! —you must come and see me; it would do Aunt 
Hale good, as I said before. Get the doctor to order it for her. Tell him 
that it's the smoke of Milton that does her harm. I have no doubt it is that, 
really. Three months (you must not come for less) of this delicious 
climate—all sunshine, and grapes as common as blackberries, would quite cure 
her. I don't ask my uncle'—(Here the letter became more constrained, and 
better written; Mr. Hale was in the corner, like a naughty child, for having 
given up his living.)—'because, I dare say, he disapproves of war, and 
soldiers, and bands of music; at least, I know that many Dissenters are 
members of the Peace Society, and I am afraid he would not like to come; but, 
if he would, dear, pray say that Cosmo and I will do our best to make him 
happy; and I'll hide up Cosmo's red coat and sword, and make the band play 
all sorts of grave, solemn things; or, if they do play pomps and vanities, it 
shall be in double slow time. Dear Margaret, if he would like to accompany 
you and Aunt Hale, we will try and make it pleasant, though I'm rather afraid 
of any one who has done something for conscience sake. You never did, I hope. 
Tell Aunt Hale not to bring many warm clothes, though I'm afraid it will be 
late in the year before you can come. But you have no idea of the heat here! 
I tried to wear my great beauty Indian shawl at a pic-nic. I kept myself up 
with proverbs as long as I could; “Pride must abide,”—and such wholesome 
pieces of pith; but it was of no use. I was like mamma's little dog Tiny with 
an elephant's trappings on; smothered, hidden, killed with my finery; so I 
made it into a capital carpet for us all to sit down upon. Here's this boy of 
mine, Margaret,—if you don't pack up your things as soon as you get this 
letter, a  come straight off to see him, I shall think you're descended from 
King Herod!' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret did long for a day of Edith's life—her freedom from 
care, her cheerful home, her sunny skies. If a wish could have transported 
her, she would have gone off; just for one day. She yearned for the strength 
which such a change would give,—even for a few hours to be in the midst of 
that bright life, and to feel young again. Not yet twenty! and she had had to 
bear up against such hard pressure that she felt quite old. That was her 
first feeling after reading Edith's letter. Then she read it again, and, 
forgetting herself, was amused at its likeness to Edith's self, and was 
laughing merrily over it when Mrs. Hale came into the drawing-room, leaning 
on Dixon's arm. Margaret flew to adjust the pillows. Her mother seemed more 
than usually feeble. 
</p>
               <p>'What were you laughing at, Margaret?' asked she, as 
soon as she had recovered from the exertion of settling herself on the 
sofa. 
</p>
               <p>'A letter I have had this morning from Edith. Shall I read it you, 
mamma?' 
</p>
               <p>She read it aloud, and for a time it seemed to interest her mother, 
who kept wondering what name Edith had given to her boy, and suggesting all 
probable names, and all possible reasons why each and all of these names 
should be given. Into the very midst of these wonders Mr. Thornton came, 
bringing another offering of fruit for Mrs. Hale. He could not—say rather, 
he would not—deny himself the chance of the pleasure of seeing Margaret. He 
had no end in this but the present gratification. It was the sturdy 
wilfulness of a man usually most reasonable and self-controlled. He entered 
the room, taking in at a glance the fact of Margaret's presence; but after 
the first cold distant bow, he never seemed to let his eyes fall on her 
again. He only stayed to present his peaches—to speak some gentle kindly 
words—and then his cold offended eyes met Margaret's with a grave farewell, 
as he left the room. She sat down silent and pale. 
</p>
               <p>'Do you know, Margaret, 
I really begin quite to like Mr. Thornton.' 
</p>
               <p>No answer at first. Then 
Margaret forced out an icy 'Do you?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes! I think he is really getting 
quite polished in his manners.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret's voice was more in order now. 
She replied, 
</p>
               <p>'He is very kind and attentive,—there is no doubt of that.' 
</p>
               <p>'I wonder Mrs. Thornton never calls. She must know I am ill, because of 
the water-bed.' 
</p>
               <p>'I dare say, she hears how you are from her son.' 
</p>
               <p>'Still, 
I should like to see her You have so few friends here, Margaret.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret 
felt what was in her mother's thoughts,—a tender craving to bespeak the 
kindness of some woman towards the daughter that might be so soon left 
motherless. But she could not speak. 
</p>
               <p>'Do you think,' said Mrs. Hale, after 
a pause, 'that you could go and ask Mrs. Thornton to come and see me? Only 
once,—I don't want to be troublesome.' 
</p>
               <p>'I will do anything, if you wish 
it, mamma,—but if—but when Frederick comes——' 
</p>
               <p>'Ah, to be sure! we must 
keep our doors shut,—we must let no one in. I hardly know whether I dare 
wish him to come or not. Sometimes I think I would rather not. Sometimes I 
have such frightful dreams about him.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, mamma! we'll take good care. I 
will put my arm in the bolt sooner than he should come to the slightest harm. 
Trust the care of him to me, mamma. I will watch over him like a lioness over 
her young.' 
</p>
               <p>'When can we hear from him?' 
</p>
               <p>'Not for a week yet, 
certainly,—perhaps more.' 
</p>
               <p>'We must send Martha away in good time. It would 
never do to have her here when he comes, and then send her off in a 
hurry.' 
</p>
               <p>'Dixon is sure to remind us of that. I was thinking that, if we 
wanted any help in the house while he is here, we could perhaps get Mary 
Higgins. She is very slack of work, and is a good girl, and would take pains 
to do her best, I am sure, and would sleep at home, and need never come 
upstairs, so as to know who is in the house.' 
</p>
               <p>'As you please. As Dixon 
pleases. But, Margaret, don't get to use these horrid Milton words. “Slack of 
work:” it is a provincialism. What will your aunt Shaw say, if she hears you 
use it on her return?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, mamma! don't try and make a bugbear of aunt 
Shaw' said Margaret, laughing. 'Edith picked up all sorts of military slang 
from Captain Lennox, and aunt Shaw never took any notice of it.' 
</p>
               <p>'But yours 
is factory slang.' 
</p>
               <p>'And if I live in a factory town, I must speak factory 
language when I want it. Why, mamma, I could astonish you with a great many 
words you never heard in your life. I don't believe you know what a knobstick 
is.' 
</p>
               <p>'Not I, child. I only know it has a very vulgar sound and I don't want 
to hear you using it.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very well, dearest mother, I won't. Only I shall 
have to use a whole explanatory sentence instead.' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't like this 
Milton,' said Mrs. Hale. 'Edith is right enough in saying it's the smoke that 
has made me so ill.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret started up as her mother said this. Her 
father had just entered the room, and she was most anxious that the faint 
impression she had seen on his mind that the Milton air had injured her 
mother's health, should not be deepened,—should not receive any 
confirmation. She could not tell whether he had heard what Mrs. Hale had said 
or not; but she began speaking hurriedly of other things, unaware that Mr. 
Thornton was following him. 
</p>
               <p>'Mamma is accusing me of having picked up a 
great deal of vulgarity since we came to Milton.' 
</p>
               <p>The 'vulgarity' Margaret 
spoke of, referred purely to the use of local words, and the expression arose 
out of the conversation they had just been holding. But Mr. Thornton's brow 
darkened; and Margaret suddenly felt how her speech might be misunderstood by 
him; so, in the natural sweet desire to avoid giving unnecessary pain, she 
forced herself to go forwards with a little greeting, and continue what she 
was saying, addressing herself to him expressly. 
</p>
               <p>'Now, Mr. Thornton, though 
“knobstick” has not a very pretty sound, is it not expressive? Could I do 
without it, in speaking of the thing it represents? If using local words is 
vulgar, I was very vulgar in the Forest,—was I not, mamma?' 
</p>
               <p>It was unusual 
with Margaret to obtrude her own subject of conversation on others; but, in 
this case, she was so anxious to prevent Mr. Thornton from feeling annoyance 
at the words he had accidentally overheard, that it was not until she had 
done speaking that she coloured all over with consciousness, more especially 
as Mr. Thornton seemed hardly to understand the exact gist or bearing of what 
she was saying, but passed her by, with a cold reserve of ceremonious 
movement, to speak to Mrs. Hale. 
</p>
               <p>The sight of him reminded her of the wish 
to see his mother, and commend Margaret to her care. Margaret, sitting in 
burning silence, vexed and ashamed of her difficulty in keeping her right 
place, and her calm unconsciousness of heart, when Mr. Thornton was by, heard 
her mother's slow entreaty that Mrs. Thornton would come and see her; see her 
soon; to-morrow, if it were possible. Mr. Thornton promised that she 
should—conversed a little, and then took his leave; and Margaret's movements 
and voice seemed at once released from some invisible chains. He never looked 
at her; and yet, the careful avoidance of his eyes betokened that in some way 
he knew exactly where, if they fell by chance, they would rest on her. If she 
spoke, he gave no sign of attention, and yet his next speech to any one else 
was modified by what she had said; sometimes there was an express answer to 
what she had remarked, but given to another person as though unsuggested by 
her. It was not the bad manners of ignorance it was the wilful bad manners 
arising from deep offence. It was wilful at the time, repented of afterwards. 
But no deep plan, no careful cunning could have stood him in such good stead. 
Margaret thought about him more than she had ever done before; not with any 
tinge of what is called love, but with regret that she had wounded him so 
deeply,—and with a gentle, patient striving to return to their former 
position of antagonistic friendship; for a friend's position was what she 
found that he had held in her regard, as well as in that of the rest of the 
family. There was a pretty humility in her behaviour to him, as if mutely 
apologising for the over-strong words which were the reaction from the deeds 
of the day of the riot. 
</p>
               <p>But he resented those words bitterly. They rung in 
his ears; and he was proud of the sense of justice which made him go on in 
every kindness he could offer to her parents. He exulted in the power he 
showed in compelling himself to face her, whenever he could think of any 
action which might give her father or mother pleasure. He thought that he 
disliked seeing one who had mortified him so keenly; but he was mistaken. It 
was a stinging pleasure to be in the room with her, and feel her presence. 
But he was no great analyser of his own motives, and was mistaken as [ have 
said. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.5" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER V</head>
               <head>HOME AT LAST</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'The saddest birds a season find to sing.' </l>
                  <l>SOUTHWELL. </l>
               </q>
               <q>
                  <l>'Never to fold the robe o'er secret pain, </l>
                  <l>Never, weighed down by memory's clouds again, </l>
                  <l>To bow thy head! Thou art gone home!' </l>
                  <l>MRS. HEMANS. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Mrs. Thornton came to see Mrs. Hale the next morning. She was much worse. 
One of those sudden changes—those great visible strides towards death, had 
been taken in the night, and her own family were startled by the gray sunken 
look her features had assumed in that one twelve hours of suffering. Mrs. 
Thornton—who had not seen her for weeks—was softened all at once. She had 
come because her son asked it from her as a personal favour, but with all the 
proud bitter feelings of her nature in arms against that family of which 
Margaret formed one. She doubted the reality of Mrs. Hale's illness; she 
doubted any want beyond a momentary fancy on that lady's part, which should 
take her out of her previously settled course of employment for the day. She 
told her son that she wished they had never come near the place; that he had 
never got acquainted with them; that there had been no such useless languages 
as Latin and Greek ever invented. He bore all this pretty silently; but when 
she had ended her invective against the dead languages, he quietly returned 
to the short, curt, decided expression of his wish that she should go and see 
Mrs. Hale at the time appointed, as most likely to be convenient to the 
invalid. Mrs. Thornton submitted with as bad a grace as she could to her 
son's desire, all the time liking him the better for having it; and 
exaggerating in her own mind the same notion that he had of extraordinary 
goodness on his part in so perseveringly keeping up with the Hales. 
</p>
               <p>His 
goodness verging on weakness (as all the softer virtues did in her mind), and 
her own contempt for Mr. and Mrs. Hale, and positive dislike to Margaret, 
were the ideas which occupied Mrs. Thornton, till she was struck into 
nothingness before the dark shadow of the wings of the angel of death. There 
lay Mrs. Hale—a mother like herself—a much younger woman than she was,—on 
the bed from which there was no sign of hope that she might ever rise again 
No more variety of light and shade for her in that darkened room; no power of 
action, scarcely change of movement; faint alternations of whispered sound 
and studious silence; and yet that monotonous life seemed almost too much! 
When Mrs. Thornton, strong and prosperous with life, came in, Mrs. Hale lay 
still, although from the look on her face she was evidently conscious of who 
it was. But she did not even open her eyes for a minute or two. The heavy 
moisture of tears stood on the eye-lashes before she looked up, then with her 
hand groping feebly over the bed-clothes, for the touch of Mrs. Thornton's 
large firm fingers, she said, scarcely above her breath—Mrs. Thornton had to 
stoop from her erectness to listen,— 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret—you have a daughter—my 
sister is in Italy. My child will be without a mother;—in a strange 
place,—if I die—will you'—— 
</p>
               <p>And her filmy wandering eyes fixed 
themselves with an intensity of wistfulness on Mrs. Thornton's face For a 
minute, there was no change in its rigidness; it was stern and unmoved;—nay, 
but that the eyes of the sick woman were growing dim with the slow-gathering 
tears, she might have seen a dark cloud cross the cold features. And it was 
no thought of her son, or of her living daughter Fanny, that stirred her 
heart at last; but a sudden remembrance, suggested by something in the 
arrangement of the room,—of a little daughter—dead in infancy—long years 
ago—that, like a sudden sunbeam, melted the icy crust, behind which there 
was a real tender woman. 
</p>
               <p>'You wish me to be a friend to Miss Hale,' said 
Mrs. Thornton, in her measured voice, that would not soften with her heart, 
but came out distinct and clear. 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Hale, her eyes still fixed on Mrs. 
Thornton's face, pressed the hand that lay below hers on the coverlet. She 
could not speak. Mrs. Thornton sighed, 'I will. be a true friend, if 
circumstances require it Not a tender friend. That I cannot be,'—('to her,' 
she was on the point of adding, but she relented at the sight of that poor, 
anxious face.)—'It is not my nature to show affection even where I feel it, 
nor do I volunteer advice in general. Still, at your request,—if it will be 
any comfort to you, I will promise you.' Then came a pause. Mrs. Thornton was 
too conscientious to promise what she did not mean to perform; and to perform 
any-thing in the way of kindness on behalf of Margaret, more disliked at this 
moment than ever, was difficult; almost impossible. 
</p>
               <p>'I promise,' said she, 
with grave severity; which, after all, inspired the dying woman with faith as 
in something more stable than life itself,—flickering, flitting, wavering 
life! 'I promise that in any difficulty in which Miss Hale'—— 
</p>
               <p>'Call her 
Margaret!' gasped Mrs. Hale. 
</p>
               <p>'In which she comes to me for help, I will 
help her with every power I have, as if she were my own daughter. I also 
promise that if ever I see her doing what I think is wrong'—— 
</p>
               <p>'But 
Margaret never does wrong—not wilfully wrong,' pleaded Mrs. Hale. Mrs. 
Thornton went on as before; as if she had not heard: 
</p>
               <p>'If ever I see her 
doing what I believe to be wrong—such wrong not touching me or mine, in 
which case I might be supposed to have an interested motive—I will tell her 
of it, faithfully and plainly, as I should wish my own daughter to be 
told.' 
</p>
               <p>There was a long pause. Mrs. Hale felt that this promise did not 
include all; and yet it was much. It had reservations in it which she did not 
understand; but then she was weak, dizzy, and tired. Mrs. Thornton was 
reviewing all the probable cases in which she had pledged herself to act. She 
had a fierce pleasure in the idea of telling Margaret unwelcome truths, in 
the shape of performance of duty. Mrs. Hale began to speak: 
</p>
               <p>'I thank you. I 
pray God to bless you. I shall never see you again in this world. But my last 
words are, I thank you for your promise of kindness to my child.' 
</p>
               <p>'Not 
kindness!' testified Mrs. Thornton, ungraciously truthful to the last. But 
having eased her conscience by saying these words, she was not sorry that 
they were not heard. She pressed Mrs. Hale's soft languid hand; and rose up 
and went her way out of the house without seeing a creature. 
</p>
               <p>During the 
time that Mrs. Thornton was having this interview with Mrs. Hale, Margaret 
and Dixon were laying their heads together, and consulting how they should 
keep Frederick's coming a profound secret to all out of the house. A letter 
from him might now be expected any day; and he would assuredly follow quickly 
on its heels. Martha must be sent away on her holiday; Dixon must keep stern 
guard on the front door, only admitting the few visitors that ever came to 
the house into Mr. Hale's room down-stairs—Mrs. Hale's extreme illness 
giving her a good excuse for this. If Mary Higgins was required as a help to 
Dixon in the kitchen she was to hear and see as little of Frederick as 
possible; and he was, if necessary to be spoken of to her under the name of 
Mr. Dickinson. But. her sluggish and incurious nature was the greatest 
safeguard of all. 
</p>
               <p>They resolved that Martha should leave them that very 
afternoon for this visit to her mother. Margaret wished that she had been 
sent away on the previous day, as she fancied it might be thought strange to 
give a servant a holiday when her mistress's state required so much 
attendance. 
</p>
               <p>Poor Margaret! All that afternoon she had to act the part of a 
Roman daughter, and give strength out of her own scanty stock to her father. 
Mr. hale would hope, would not despair, between the attacks of his wife's 
malady; he buoyed himself up in every respite from her pain, and believed 
that it was the beginning of ultimate recovery. And so, when the paroxysms 
came on, each more severe than the last, they were fresh agonies, and greater 
disappointments to him. This afternoon, he sat in the drawing-room, unable to 
bear the solitude of his study, or to employ himself in any way. He buried 
his head in his arms, which lay folded on the table. Margaret's heart ached 
to see him; yet, as he did not speak, she did not like to volunteer any 
attempt at comfort.  Martha was gone. Dixon sat with Mrs. Hale while she 
slept. The house was very still and quiet, and darkness came on, without any 
movement to procure candles. Margaret sat at the window, looking out at the 
lamps and the street, but seeing nothing,—only alive to her father's heavy 
sighs. She did not like to go down for lights, lest the tacit restraint of 
her presence being withdrawn, he might give way to more violent emotion, 
without her being at hand to comfort him. Yet she was just thinking that she 
ought to go and see after the well-doing of the kitchen fire, which there was 
nobody but herself to attend to when she heard the muffled door-ring with so 
violent a pull, that the wires jingled all through the house, though the 
positive sound was not great. She started up, passed her father, who had 
never moved at the veiled, dull sound,—returned, and kissed him tenderly. 
And still he never moved, nor took any notice of her fond embrace. Then she 
went down softly, through the dark, to the door. Dixon would have put the 
chain on before she opened it, but Margaret had not a thought of fear in her 
pre-occupied mind. A man's tall figure stood between her and the luminous 
street. He was looking away; but at the sound of the latch he turned quickly 
round. 
</p>
               <p>'Is this Mr. Hale's?' said he, in a clear, full, delicate voice. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret trembled all over; at first she did not answer. In a moment she 
sighed out, 
</p>
               <p>'Frederick!' and stretched out both her hands to Catch his, and 
draw him in. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, Margaret!' said he, holding her off by her shoulders, 
after they had kissed each other, as if even in that darkness he could see 
her face, and read in its expression a quicker answer to his question than 
words could give,— 
</p>
               <p>'My mother! is she alive?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, she is alive, dear, 
dear brother! She—as ill as she can be she is; but alive! She is 
alive!' 
</p>
               <p>'Thank God!' said he. 
</p>
               <p>'Papa is utterly prostrate with this great 
grief.' 
</p>
               <p>'You expect me, don't you?' 
</p>
               <p>'No, we have had no letter.' 
</p>
               <p>'Then 
I have come before it. But my mother knows I am coming?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! we all knew 
you would come. But wait a little! Step in here. Give me your hand. What is 
this? Oh! your carpet-bag. Dixon has shut the shutters; but this is papa's 
study, and I can take you to a chair to rest yourself for a few minutes; 
while I go and tell him.' 
</p>
               <p>She groped her way to the taper and the lucifer 
matches. She suddenly felt shy, when the little feeble light made them 
visible. All she could see was, that her brother's face was unusually dark in 
complexion, and she caught the stealthy look of a pair of remarkably long-cut 
blue eyes, that suddenly twinkled up with a droll consciousness of their 
mutual purpose of inspecting each other. But though the brother and sister 
had an instant of sympathy in their reciprocal glances, they did not exchange 
a word; only, Margaret felt sure that she should like her brother as a 
companion as much as she already loved him as a near relation. Her heart was 
wonderfully lighter as she went up-stairs; the sorrow was no less in reality, 
but it became less oppressive from having some one in precisely the same 
relation to it as that in which she stood. Not her father's desponding 
attitude had power to damp her now. He lay across the table, helpless as 
ever; but she had the spell by which to rouse him. She used it perhaps too 
violently in her own great relief. 
</p>
               <p>'Papa,' said she, throwing her arms 
fondly round his neck; pulling his weary head up in fact with her gentle 
violence, till it rested in her arms, and she could look into his eyes, and 
let them gain strength and assurance from hers. 
</p>
               <p>'Papa! guess who is 
here!' 
</p>
               <p>He looked at her; she saw the idea of the truth glimmer into their 
filmy sadness, and be dismissed thence as a wild imagination. 
</p>
               <p>He threw 
himself forward, and hid his face once more in his stretched-out arms, 
resting upon the table as heretofore. She heard him whisper; she bent 
tenderly down to listen. 'I don't know. Don't tell me it is Frederick—not 
Frederick. I cannot bear it,—I am too weak. And his mother is dying!'He 
began to cry and wail like a child. It was so different to all which Margaret 
had hoped and expected, that she turned sick with disappointment, and was 
silent for an instant. Then she spoke again—very differently—not so 
exultingly, far more tenderly and carefully. 
</p>
               <p>'Papa, it is Frederick! Think 
of mamma, how glad she will be! And oh, for her sake, how glad we ought to 
be! For his sake, too,—our poor, poor boy!' 
</p>
               <p>Her father did not change his 
attitude, but he seemed to be trying to understand the fact. 
</p>
               <p>'Where is he?' 
asked he at last, his face still hidden in his prostrate arms. 
</p>
               <p>'In your 
study, quite alone. I lighted the taper, and ran up to tell you. He is quite 
alone, and will be wondering why—' 
</p>
               <p>'I will go to him,' broke in her 
father; and he lifted himself up and leant on her arm as on that of a 
guide. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret led him to the study door, but her spirits were so agitated 
that she felt she could not bear to see the meeting. She turned away, and ran 
up-stairs, and cried most heartily. It was the first time she had dared to 
allow herself this relief for days. The strain had been terrible, as she now 
felt. But Frederick was come! He, the one precious brother, was there, safe, 
amongst them again! She could hardly believe it. She stopped her crying, and 
opened her bedroom door. She heard no sound of voices, and almost feared she 
might have dreamt. She went down-stairs, and listened at the study door. She 
heard the buzz of voices; and that was enough. She went into the kitchen, and 
stirred up the fire, and lighted the house, and prepared for the wanderer's 
refreshment. How fortunate it was that her mother slept! She knew that she 
did, from the candle-lighter thrust through the keyhole of her bedroom door. 
The traveller could be refreshed and bright, and the first excitement of the 
meeting with his father all be over, before her mother became aware of 
anything unusual. 
</p>
               <p>When all was ready, Margaret opened the study door, and 
went in like a serving-maiden, with a heavy tray. held in her extended arms. 
She was proud of serving Frederick. But he, when he saw her, sprang up in a 
minute, and relieved her of her burden. It was a type, a sign, of all the 
coming relief which his presence would bring. The brother and sister arranged 
the table together, saying little, but their hands touching, and their eyes 
speaking the natural language of expression, so intelligible to those of the 
same blood. The fire had gone out; and Margaret applied herself to light it, 
for the evenings had begun to be chilly; and yet it was desirable to make all 
noises as distant as possible from Mrs. Hale's room. 
</p>
               <p>'Dixon says it is a 
gift to light a fire; not an art to be acquired.' 
</p>
               <p>'Poeta nascitur, non 
fit,' murmured Mr. Hale; and Margaret was glad to hear a quotation once more, 
however languidly given. 
</p>
               <p>'Dear old Dixon! How we shall kiss each other!' 
said Frederick. 'She used to kiss me, and then look in my face to be sure I 
was the right person, and then set to again! But, Margaret, what a bungler 
you are! I never saw such a little awkward, good-for-nothing pair of hands. 
Run away, and wash them, ready to cut bread-and-butter for me, and leave the 
fire. I'll manage it. Lighting fires is one of my natural 
accomplishments.' 
</p>
               <p>So Margaret went away; and returned; and passed in and 
out of the room, in a glad restlessness that could not be satisfied with 
sitting still. The more wants Frederick had, the better she was pleased; and 
he understood all this by instinct. It was a joy snatched in the house of 
mourning, and the zest of it was all the more pungent, because they knew in 
the depths of their hearts what irremediable sorrow awaited them. 
</p>
               <p>In the 
middle, they heard Dixon's foot on the stairs. Mr. Hale started from his 
languid posture in his great armchair, from which he had been watching his 
children in a dreamy way, as if they were acting some drama of happiness, 
which it was pretty to look at, but which was distinct from reality, and in 
which he had no part. He stood up, and faced the door, showing such a 
strange, sudden anxiety to conceal Frederick from the sight of any person 
entering, even though it were the faithful Dixon, that a shiver came over 
Margaret's heart: it reminded her of the new fear in their lives. She caught 
at Frederick's arm, and clutched it tight, while a stern thought compressed 
her brows, and caused her to set her teeth. And yet they knew it was only 
Dixon's measured tread. They heard her walk the length of the passage, into 
the kitchen. Margaret rose up. 
</p>
               <p>I will go to her, and tell her. And I shall 
hear how mamma is.' Mrs. Hale was awake. She rambled at first; but after they 
had given her some tea she was refreshed, though not disposed to talk. It was 
better that the night should pass over before she was told of her son's 
arrival. Dr. Donaldson's appointed visit would bring nervous excitement 
enough for the evening; and he might tell them how to prepare her for seeing 
Frederick. He was there, in the house; could be summoned at any 
moment. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret could not sit still. It was a relief to her to aid Dixon 
in all her preparations for 'Master Frederick.' It seemed as though she never 
could be tired again. Each glimpse into the room where he sate by his father, 
conversing with him, about, she knew not what, nor cared to know,—was 
increase of strength to her. Her own time for talking and hearing would come 
at last, and she was too certain of this to feel in a hurry to grasp it now. 
She took in his appearance and liked it. He had delicate features, redeemed 
from effeminacy by the swarthiness of his complexion, and his quick intensity 
of expression. His eyes were generally merry-looking, but at times they and 
his mouth so suddenly changed, and gave her such an idea of latent passion, 
that it almost made her afraid. But this look was only for an instant; and 
had in it no doggedness, no vindictiveness; it was rather the instantaneous 
ferocity of expression that comes over the countenances of all natives of 
wild or southern countries—a ferocity which enhances the charm of the 
childlike softness into which such a look may melt away. Margaret might fear 
the violence of the impulsive nature thus occasionally betrayed, but there 
was nothing in it to make her distrust, or recoil in the least, from the 
new-found brother. On the contrary, all their intercourse was peculiarly 
charming to her from the very first. She knew then how much responsibility 
she had had to bear, from the exquisite sensation of relief which she felt in 
Frederick's presence. He understood his father and mother—their characters 
and their weaknesses, and went along with a careless freedom, which was yet 
most delicately careful not to hurt or wound any of their feelings. He seemed 
to know instinctively when a little of the natural brilliancy of his manner 
and conversation would not jar on the deep depression of his father, or might 
relieve his mother's pain. Whenever it would have been out of tune, and out 
of time, his patient devotion and watchfulness came into play, and made him 
an admirable nurse. Then Margaret was almost touched into tears by the 
allusions which he often made to their childish days in the New Forest; he 
had never forgotten her—or Helstone either—all the time he had been roaming 
among distant countries and foreign people. She might talk to him of the old 
spot, and never fear tiring him. She had been afraid of him before he came, 
even while she had longed for his coming; seven or eight years had, she felt, 
produced such great changes in herself that, forgetting how much of the 
original Margaret was left, she had reasoned that if her tastes and feelings 
had so materially altered, even in her stay-at-home life, his wild career, 
with which she was but imperfectly acquainted, must have almost substituted 
another Frederick for the tall stripling in his middy's uniform, whom she 
remembered looking up to with such admiring awe. But in their absence they 
had grown nearer to each other in age, as well as in many other things. And 
so it was that the weight, this sorrowful time, was lightened to Margaret. 
Other light than that of Frederick's presence she had none. For a few hours, 
the mother rallied on seeing her son. She sate with his hand in hers; she 
would not part with it even while she slept; and Margaret had to feed him 
like a baby, rather than that he should disturb her mother by removing a 
finger. Mrs. Hale wakened while they were thus engaged; she slowly moved her 
head round on the pillow, and smiled at her children, as she understood what 
they were doing, and why it was done. 
</p>
               <p>'I am very selfish,' said she; 'but 
it will not be for long.' Frederick bent down and kissed the feeble hand that 
imprisoned his. 
</p>
               <p>This state of tranquillity could not endure for many days, 
nor perhaps for many hours; so Dr. Donaldson assured Margaret. After the kind 
doctor had gone away, she stole down to Frederick, who, during the visit, had 
been adjured to remain quietly concealed in the back parlour, usually Dixon's 
bedroom, but now given up to him. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret told him what Dr. Donaldson 
said. 
</p>
               <p>'I don't believe it,' he exclaimed. 'She is very ill; she may be 
dangerously ill, and in immediate danger, too; but I can't imagine that she 
could be as she is, if she were on the point of death. Margaret! she should 
have some other advice—some London doctor. Have you never thought of 
that?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes,' said Margaret, 'more than once. But I don't believe it would 
do any good. And, you know, we have not the money to bring any great London 
surgeon down, and I am sure Dr. Donaldson is only second in skill to the very 
best,—if, indeed, he is to them.' 
</p>
               <p>Frederick began to walk up and down the 
room impatiently. 
</p>
               <p>'I have credit in Cadiz,' said he, 'but none here, owing 
to this wretched change of name. Why did my father leave Helstone? That was 
the blunder.' 
</p>
               <p>'It was no blunder,' said Margaret gloomily. 'And above all 
possible chances, avoid letting papa hear anything like what you have just 
been saying. I can see that he is tormenting himself already with the idea 
that mamma would never have been ill if we had stayed at Helstone, and you 
don't know papa's agonising power of self-reproach!' 
</p>
               <p>Frederick walked away 
as if he were on the quarter-deck. At last he stopped right opposite to 
Margaret, and looked at her drooping and desponding attitude for an 
instant. 
</p>
               <p>'My little Margaret!' said he, caressing her.  'Let us hope as 
long as we can. Poor little woman! what! is this face all wet with tears? I 
will hope. I will, in spite of a thousand doctors. Bear up, Margaret, and be 
brave enough to hope!' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret choked in trying to speak, and when she did 
it was very low. 
</p>
               <p>'I must try to be meek enough to trust. Oh, Frederick! 
mamma was getting to love me so! And I was getting to understand her. And now 
comes death to snap us asunder!' 
</p>
               <p>'Come, come, come! Let us go up-stairs, 
and do something, rather than waste time that may be so precious. Thinking 
has, many a time, made me sad, darling; but doing never did in all my life. 
My theory is a sort of parody on the maxim of “Get money, my son, honestly if 
you can; but get money. My precept is, “Do something, my sister, do good if 
you can; but, at any rate, do something.”' 
</p>
               <p>'Not excluding mischief,' said 
Margaret, smiling faintly through her tears. 
</p>
               <p>'By no means. What I do 
exclude is the remorse afterwards. Blot your misdeeds out (if you are 
particularly conscientious), by a good deed, as soon as you can; just as we 
did a correct sum at school on the slate, where an incorrect one was only 
half rubbed out. It was better than wetting our sponge with our tears; both 
less loss of time where tears had to be waited for, and a better effect at 
last.' 
</p>
               <p>If Margaret thought Frederick's theory rather a rough one at first, 
she saw how he worked it out into continual production of kindness in fact. 
After a bad night with his mother (for he insisted on taking his turn as a 
sitter-up) he was busy next morning before breakfast, contriving a leg-rest 
for Dixon, who was beginning to feel the fatigues of watching. At 
breakfast-time, he interested Mr. Hale with vivid, graphic, rattling accounts 
of the wild life he had led in Mexico, South America, and elsewhere. Margaret 
would have given up the effort in despair to rouse Mr. Hale out of his 
dejection; it would even have affected herself and rendered her incapable of 
talking at all. But Fred, true to his theory, did something perpetually; and 
talking was the only thing to be done, besides eating, at breakfast. 
</p>
               <p>Before 
the night of that day, Dr. Donaldson's opinion was proved to be too well 
founded. Convulsions came on; and when they ceased, Mrs. Hale was 
unconscious. Her husband might lie by her shaking the bed with his sobs; her 
son's strong arms might lift her tenderly up into a comfortable position; her 
daughter's hands might bathe her face; but she knew them not. She would never 
recognise them again, till they met in Heaven. 
</p>
               <p>Before the morning came all 
was over. 
</p>
               <p>Then Margaret rose from her trembling and despondency, and became 
as a strong angel of comfort to her father and brother. For Frederick had 
broken down now, and all his theories were of no use to him. He cried so 
violently when shut up alone in his little room at night, that Margaret and 
Dixon came down in affright to warn him to be quiet: for the house partitions 
were but thin, and the next-door neighbours might easily hear his youthful 
passionate sobs, so different from the slower trembling agony of after-life, 
when we become inured to grief, and dare not be rebellious against the 
inexorable doom, knowing who it is that decrees. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret sate with her 
father in the room with the dead. If he had cried, she would have been 
thankful. But he sate by the bed quite quietly; only, from time to time, he 
uncovered the face, and stroked it gently, making a kind of soft inarticulate 
noise, like that of some mother-animal caressing her young. He took no notice 
of Margaret's presence. Once or twice she came up to kiss him; and he 
submitted to it, giving her a little push away when she had done, as if her 
affection disturbed him from his absorption in the dead. He started when he 
heard Frederick's cries, and shook his head:—'Poor boy! poor boy!' he said, 
and took no more notice. Margaret's heart ached within her. She could not 
think of her own loss in thinking of her father's case. The night was wearing 
away, and the day was at hand, when, without a word of preparation, 
Margaret's voice broke upon the stillness of the room, with a clearness of 
sound that startled even herself: 'Let not your heart be troubled,' it said; 
and she went steadily on through all that chapter of unspeakable 
consolation. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.6" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER VI</head>
               <head>'SHOULD AULD ACQUAINTANCE BE FORGOT?'</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Show not that manner, and these features all,  </l>
                  <l>The serpent's cunning, and the sinner's fall?' </l>
                  <l>CRABBE. </l>
               </q>
               <p>The chill, shivery October morning came; not the October morning of the 
country, with soft, silvery mists, clearing off before the sunbeams that 
bring out all the gorgeous beauty of colouring, but the October morning of 
Milton, whose silver mists were heavy fogs, and where the sun could only show 
long dusky streets when he did break through and shine. Margaret went 
languidly about, assisting Dixon in her task of arranging the house. Her eyes 
were continually blinded by tears, but she had no time to give way to regular 
crying. The father and brother depended upon her; while they were giving way 
to grief, she must be working, planning, considering. Even the necessary 
arrangements for the funeral seemed to devolve upon her. 
</p>
               <p>When the fire was 
bright and crackling—when everything was ready for breakfast, and the 
tea-kettle was singing away, Margaret gave a last look round the room before 
going to summon Mr. Hale and Frederick. She wanted everything to look as 
cheerful as possible; and yet, when it did so, the contrast between it and 
her own thoughts forced her into sudden weeping. She was kneeling by the 
sofa, hiding her face in the cushions that no one might hear her cry, when 
she was touched on the shoulder by Dixon. 
</p>
               <p>'Come, Miss Hale—come, my dear! 
You must not give way, or where shall we all be? There is not another person 
in the house fit to give a direction of any kind, and there is so much to be 
done. There's who's to manage the funeral; and who's to come to it; and where 
it's to be; and all to be settled: and Master Frederick's like one crazed 
with crying, and master never was a good one for settling; and, poor 
gentleman, he goes about now as if he was lost. It's bad enough, my dear, I 
know; but death comes to us all; and you're well off never to have lost any 
friend till now.'Perhaps so. But this seemed a loss by itself; not to bear 
comparison with any other event in the world. Margaret did not take any 
comfort from what Dixon said, but the unusual tenderness of the prim old 
servant's manner touched her to the heart; and, more from a desire to show 
her gratitude for this than for any other reason, she roused herself up, and 
smiled in answer to Dixon's anxious look at her; and went to tell her father 
and brother that breakfast was ready. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale came—as if in a dream, or 
rather with the unconscious motion of a sleep-walker, whose eyes and mind 
perceive other things than what are present. Frederick came briskly in, with 
a forced cheerfulness, grasped her hand, looked into her eyes, and burst into 
tears. She had to try and think of little nothings to say all breakfast-time, 
in order to prevent the recurrence of her companions' thoughts too strongly 
to the last meal they bad taken together, when there had been a continual 
strained listening for some sound or signal from the sick-room. 
</p>
               <p>After 
breakfast, she resolved to speak to her father, about the funeral. He shook 
his head, and assented to all she proposed, though many of her propositions 
absolutely contradicted one another. Margaret gained no real decision from 
him; and was leaving the room languidly, to have a consultation with Dixon, 
when Mr. Hale motioned her back to his side. 
</p>
               <p>'Ask Mr. Bell,' said he in a 
hollow voice. 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Bell!' said she, a little surprised. 'Mr. Bell of 
Oxford?' 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Bell,' he repeated. 'Yes. He was my groom's-man.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret 
understood the association. 
</p>
               <p>'I will write to-day,' said she. He sank again 
into listlessness. All morning she toiled on, longing for rest, but in a 
continual whirl of melancholy business. 
</p>
               <p>Towards evening, Dixon said to 
her: 
</p>
               <p>'I've done it, miss. I was really afraid for master, that he'd have a 
stroke with grief. He's been all this day with poor missus; and when I've 
listened at the door, I've heard him talking to her, and talking to her, as 
if she was alive. When I went in he would be quite quiet, but all in a maze 
like. So I thought to myself, he ought to be roused; and if it gives him a 
shock at first, it will, maybe, be the better afterwards. So I've been and 
told him, that I don't think it's safe for Master Frederick to be here. And I 
don't. It was only on Tuesday, when I was out, that I met-a Southampton 
man—the first I've seen since I came to Milton; they don't make their way 
much up here, I think. Well, it was young Leonards, old Leonards the draper's 
son, as great a scamp as ever lived—who plagued his father almost to death, 
and then ran off to sea. I never could abide him. He was in the Orion at the 
same time as Master Frederick, I know; though I don't recollect if he was 
there at the mutiny.' 
</p>
               <p>'Did he know you?' said Margaret, eagerly. 
</p>
               <p>'Why, 
that's the worst of it. I don't believe he would have known me but for my 
being such a fool as to call out his name. He were a Southampton man, in a 
strange place, or else I should never have been so ready to call cousins with 
him, a nasty, good-for-nothing fellow. Says he, “Miss Dixon! who would ha' 
thought of seeing you here? But perhaps I mistake, and you're Miss Dixon no 
longer?” So I told him he might still address me as an unmarried lady, though 
if I hadn't been so particular, I'd had good chances of matrimony. He was 
polite enough: “He couldn't look at me and doubt me.” But I were not to be 
caught with such chaff from such a fellow as him, and so I told him; and, by 
way of being even, I asked him after his father (who I knew had turned him 
out of doors), as if they was the best friends as ever was. So then, to spite 
me—for you see we were getting savage, for all we were so civil to each 
other—he began to inquire after Master Frederick, and said, what a scrape 
he'd got into (as if Master Frederick's scrapes would ever wash George 
Leonards' white, or make 'em look otherwise than nasty, dirty black), and how 
he'd be hung for mutiny if ever he were caught, and how a hundred pound 
reward had been offered for catching him, and what a disgrace he had been to 
his family—all to spite me, you see, my dear, because before now I've helped 
old Mr. Leonards to give George a good rating, down in Southampton. So I 
said, there were other families be thankful if they could think they were 
earning an honest living as I knew, who had far more cause to blush for their 
sons, and to far away from home. To which he made answer, like the impudent 
chap he is, that he were in a confidential situation, and if I knew of any 
young man who had been so unfortunate as to lead vicious courses, and wanted 
to turn steady, he'd have no objection to lend him his patronage. He, indeed! 
Why, he'd corrupt a sairt. I've not felt so bad myself for years as when I 
were standing talking to him the other day. I could have cried to think I 
couldn't spite him better, for he kept smiling in my face, as if he took all 
my compliments for earnest; and I couldn't see that he minded what I said in 
the least, while I was mad with all his speeches.' 
</p>
               <p>'But you did not tell 
him anything about us—about Frederick?' 
</p>
               <p>'Not I,' said Dixon. 'He had never 
the grace to ask where I was staying; and I shouldn't have told him if he had 
asked. Nor did I ask him what his precious situation was. He was waiting for 
a bus, and just then it drove up, and he hailed it. But, to plague me to the 
last, he turned back before he got in, and said, “If you can help me to trap 
Lieutenant Hale, Miss Dixon, we'll go partners in the reward. I know you'd 
like to be my partner, now wouldn't you? Don't be shy, but say yes.” And he 
jumped on the bus, and I saw his ugly face leering at me with a wicked smile 
to think how he'd had the last word of plaguing.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was made very 
uncomfortable by this account of Dixon's. 
</p>
               <p>'Have you told Frederick?' asked 
she. 
</p>
               <p>'No,' said Dixon. 'I were uneasy in my mind at knowing that bad 
Leonards was in town; but there was so much else to think about that I did 
not dwell on it at all.  But when I saw master sitting so stiff, and with his 
eyes so glazed and sad, I thought it might rouse him to have to think of 
Master Frederick's safety a bit. So I told him all, though I blushed to say 
how a young man had been speaking to me. And it has done master good. And if 
we're to keep Master Frederick in hiding, he would have to go, poor fellow, 
before Mr. Bell came.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, I'm not afraid of Mr. Bell; but I am afraid of 
this Leonards. I must tell Frederick. What did Leonards look like?' 
</p>
               <p>'A 
bad-looking fellow, I can assure you, miss. Whiskers such as I should be 
ashamed to wear—they are so red. And for all he said he'd got a confidential 
situation, he was dressed in fustian just like a working-man.' 
</p>
               <p>It was 
evident that Frederick must go.  Go, too, when he had so completely vaulted 
into his place in the family, and promised to be such a stay and staff to his 
father and sister. Go, when his cares for the living mother, and sorrow for 
the dead, seemed to make him one of those peculiar people who are bound to us 
by a fellow-love for them that are taken away. Just as Margaret was thinking 
all this, sitting over the drawing-room fire—her father restless and uneasy 
under the pressure of this newly-aroused fear, of which he had not as yet 
spoken—Frederick came in, his brightness dimmed, but the extreme violence of 
his grief passed away. He came up to Margaret, and kissed her 
forehead. 
</p>
               <p>'How wan you look, Margaret!' said he in a low voice. 'You have 
been thinking of everybody, and no one has thought of you. Lie on this 
sofa—there is nothing for you to do.' 
</p>
               <p>'That is the worst,' said Margaret, 
in a sad whisper. But she went and lay down, and her brother covered her feet 
with a shawl, and then sate on the ground by her side; and the two began to 
talk in a subdued tone. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret told him all that Dixon had related of her 
interview with young Leonards. Frederick's lips closed with a long whew of 
dismay. 
</p>
               <p>'I should just like to have it out with that young fellow. A worse 
sailor was never on board ship—nor a much worse man either. I declare, 
Margaret—you know the circumstances of the whole affair?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, mamma told 
me.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, when all the sailors who were good for anything were indignant 
with our captain, this fellow, to curry favour—pah! And to think of his 
being here! Oh, if he'd a notion I was within twenty miles of him, he'd 
ferret me out to pay off old grudges. I'd rather anybody had the hundred 
pounds they think I am worth than that rascal. What a pity poor old Dixon 
could not be persuaded to give me up, and make a provision for her old 
age!' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, Frederick, hush! Don't talk so.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale came towards them, 
eager and trembling. He had overheard what they were saying. He took 
Frederick's hand in both of his: 
</p>
               <p>'My boy, you must go. It is very bad—but 
I see you must. You have done all you could—you have been a comfort to 
her.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, papa, must he go?' said Margaret, pleading against her own 
conviction of necessity. 
</p>
               <p>'I declare, I've a good mind to face it out, and 
stand my trial. If I could only pick up my evidence! I cannot endure the 
thought of being in the power of such a blackguard as Leonards. I could 
almost have enjoyed—in other circumstances—this stolen visit: it has had 
all the charm which the French-woman attributed to forbidden 
pleasures.' 
</p>
               <p>'One of the earliest things I can remember,' said Margaret, 
'was your being in some great disgrace, Fred, for stealing apples. We had 
plenty of our own—trees loaded with them; but some one had told you that 
stolen fruit tasted sweetest, which you took au pied de la lettre, and off 
you went a-robbing. You have not changed your feelings much since 
then.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes—you must go,' repeated Mr. Hale, answering Margaret's 
question, which she had asked some time ago. His thoughts were fixed on one 
subject, and it was an effort to him to follow the zig-zag remarks of his 
children—an effort which ho did not make. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret and Frederick looked at 
each other. That quick momentary sympathy would be theirs no longer if he 
went away. So much was understood through eyes that could not be put into 
words. Both coursed the same thought till it was lost in sadness. Frederick 
shook it off first: 
</p>
               <p>'Do you know, Margaret, I was very nearly giving both 
Dixon and myself a good fright this afternoon. I was in my bedroom; I had 
heard a ring at the front door, but I thought the ringer must have done his 
business and gone away long ago; so I was on the point of making my 
appearance in the passage, when, as I opened my room door, I saw Dixon coming 
downstairs; and she frowned and kicked me into hiding again. I kept the door 
open, and heard a message given to some man that was in my father's study, 
and that then went away. Who could it have been? Some of the 
shopmen?' 
</p>
               <p>'Very likely,' said Margaret, indifferently. 'There was a little 
quiet man who came up for orders about two o'clock.' 
</p>
               <p>'But this was not a 
little man—a great powerful fellow; and it was past four when he was 
here.' 
</p>
               <p>'It was Mr. Thornton,' said Mr. Hale. They were glad to have drawn 
him into the conversation. 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Thornton!' said Margaret, a little 
surprised. 'I thought——' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, little one, what did you think?' asked 
Frederick, as she did not finish her sentence. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, only,' said she, 
reddening and looking straight at him, 'I fancied you meant some one of a 
different class, not a gentleman; somebody come on an errand.' 
</p>
               <p>'He looked 
like some one of that kind,' said Frederick, carelessly. 'I took him for a 
shopman, and he turns out a manufacturer.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was silent. She 
remembered how at first, before she knew his character, she had spoken and 
thought of him just as Frederick was doing. It was but a natural impression 
that was made upon him, and yet she was a little annoyed by it. She was 
unwilling to speak; she wanted to make Frederick understand what kind of 
person Mr. Thornton was—but she was tongue-tied. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale went on. 'He 
came to offer any assistance in his power, I believe. But I could not see 
him. I told Dixon to ask him if he would like to see you—I think I asked her 
to find you, and you would go to him. I don't know what I said.' 
</p>
               <p>'He has 
been a very agreeable acquaintance, has he not?' asked Frederick, throwing 
the question like a ball for any one to catch who chose. 
</p>
               <p>'A very kind 
friend,' said Margaret, when her father did not answer. 
</p>
               <p>Frederick was 
silent for a time. At last he spoke: 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret, it is painful to think I 
can never thank those who have shown you kindness. Your acquaintances and 
mine must be separate. Unless, indeed, I run the chances of a court-martial, 
or unless you and my father would come to Spain.' He threw out this last 
suggestion as a kind of feeler; and then suddenly made the plunge. 'You don't 
know how I wish you would. I have a good position—the chance of a better,' 
continued he, reddening like a girl. 'That Dolores Barbour that I was telling 
you of, Margaret—I only wish you knew her; I am sure you would like—no, 
love is the right word, like is so poor—you would love her, father, if you 
knew her. She is not eighteen; but if she is in the same mind another year, 
she is to be my wife. Mr. Barbour won't let us call it an engagement. But if 
you would come, you would find friends everywhere, besides Dolores. Think of 
it, father. Margaret, be on my side.' 
</p>
               <p>'No—no more removals for me,' said 
Mr. Hale. 'One removal has cost me my wife. No more removals in this life. 
She will be here; and here will I stay out my appointed time.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, 
Frederick,' said Margaret, 'tell us more about her. I never thought of this; 
but I am so glad. You will have some one to love and care for you out there. 
Tell us all about it.' 
</p>
               <p>'In the first place, she is a Roman Catholic. That's 
the only objection I anticipated. But my father's change of opinion—nay, 
Margaret, don't sigh.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret had reason to sigh a little more before the 
conversation ended. Frederick himself was Roman Catholic in fact, though not 
in profession as yet. This was, then, the reason why his sympathy in her 
extreme distress at her father's leaving the Church had been so faintly 
expressed in his letters. She had thought it was the carelessness of a 
sailor; but the truth was, that even then he was himself inclined to give up 
the form of religion into which he had been baptised, only that his opinions 
were tending in exactly the opposite direction to those of his father. How 
much love had to do with this change not even Frederick himself could have 
told. Margaret gave up talking about this branch of the subject at last; and, 
returning to the fact of the engagement, she began to consider it in some 
fresh light: 
</p>
               <p>'But for her sake, Fred, you surely will try and clear 
yourself of the exaggerated charges brought against you, even if the charge 
of mutiny itself be true. If there were to be a court-martial, and you could 
find your witnesses, you might, at any rate, show how your disobedience to 
authority was because that authority was unworthily exercised.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale 
roused himself up to listen to his son's answer. 
</p>
               <p>'In the first place, 
Margaret, who is to hunt up my witnesses? All of them are sailors, drafted 
off to other ships, except those whose evidence would go for very little, as 
they took part, or sympathised in the affair. In the next place, allow me to 
tell you, you don't know what a court-martial is, and consider it as an 
assembly where justice is administered, instead of what it really is—a court 
where authority weighs nine-tenths in the balance, and evidence forms only 
the other tenth. In such cases, evidence itself can hardly escape being 
influenced by the prestige of authority.' 
</p>
               <p>'But is it not worth trying, to 
see how much evidence might be discovered and arrayed on your behalf? At 
present, all those who knew you formerly, believe you guilty without any 
shadow of excuse. You have never tried to justify yourself, and we have never 
known where to seek for proofs of your justification. Now, for Miss Barbour's 
sake, make your conduct as clear as you can in the eye of the world. She may 
not care for it; she has, I am sure, that trust in you that we all have; but 
you ought not to let her ally herself to one under such a serious charge, 
without showing the world exactly how it is you stand. You disobeyed 
authority—that was bad; but to have stood by, without word or act, while the 
authority was brutally used, would have been infinitely worse. People know 
what you did; but not the motives that elevate it out of a crime into an 
heroic protection of the weak. For Dolores' sake, they ought to know.' 
</p>
               <p>'But 
how must I make them know? I am not sufficiently sure of the purity and 
justice of those who would be my judges, to give myself up to a 
court-martial, even if I could bring a whole array of truth-speaking 
witnesses. I can't send a bellman about, to cry aloud and proclaim in the 
streets what you are pleased to call my heroism. No one would read a pamphlet 
of self-justification so long after the deed, even if I put one out.' 
</p>
               <p>'Will 
you consult a lawyer as to your chances of exculpation?' asked Margaret, 
looking up, and turning very red. 
</p>
               <p>'I must first catch my lawyer, and have a 
look at him, and see how I like him, before I make him into my confidant. 
Many a briefless barrister might twist his conscience into thinking, that he 
could earn a hundred pounds very easily by doing a good action—in giving me, 
a criminal, up to justice.' 
</p>
               <p>'Nonsense, Frederick!—because I know a lawyer 
on whose honour I can rely; of whose cleverness in his profession people 
speak very highly; and who would, I think, take a good deal of trouble for 
any of—of Aunt Shaw's relations Mr. Henry Lennox, papa.' 
</p>
               <p>'I think it is a 
good idea,' said Mr. Hale. 'But don't propose anything which will detain 
Frederick in England. Don't, for your mother's sake.' 
</p>
               <p>'You could go to 
London to-morrow evening by a night-train,' continued Margaret, warming up 
into her plan. 'He must go to-morrow, I'm afraid, papa,' said she, tenderly; 
'we fixed that, because of Mr. Bell, and Dixon's disagreeable 
acquaintance.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes; I must go to-morrow,' said Frederick decidedly. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. 
Hale groaned. 'I can't bear to part with you, and yet I am miserable with 
anxiety as long as you stop here.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well then,' said Margaret, 'listen to 
my plan. He gets to London on Friday morning. I will—you might—no! it would 
be better for me to give him a note to Mr. Lennox. You will find him at his 
chambers in the Temple.' 
</p>
               <p>'I will write down a list of all the names I can 
remember on board the Orion. I could leave it with him to ferret them out. He 
is Edith's husband's brother, isn't he? I remember your naming him in your 
letters. I have money in Barbour's hands. I can pay a pretty long bill, if 
there is any chance of success Money, dear father, that I had meant for a 
different purpose; so I shall only consider it as borrowed from you and 
Margaret.' 
</p>
               <p>'Don't do that,' said Margaret. 'You won't risk it if you do. 
And it will be a risk only it is worth trying. You can sail from London as 
well as from Liverpool?' 
</p>
               <p>'To be sure, little goose. Wherever I feel water 
heaving under a plank, there I feel at home. I'll pick up some craft or other 
to take me off, never fear. I won't stay twenty-four hours in London, away 
from you on the one hand, and from somebody else on the other.' 
</p>
               <p>It was 
rather a comfort to Margaret that Frederick took it into his head to look 
over her shoulder as she wrote to Mr. Lennox. If she had not been thus 
compelled to write steadily and concisely on, she might have hesitated over 
many a word, and been puzzled to choose between many an expression, in the 
awkwardness of being the first to resume the intercourse of which the 
concluding event had been so unpleasant to both sides. However, the note was 
taken from her before she had even had time to look it over, and treasured up 
in a pocket-book, out of which fell a long lock of black hair, the sight of 
which caused Frederick's eyes to glow with pleasure. 
</p>
               <p>'Now you would like to 
see that, wouldn't you?' said he. 'No! you must wait till you see her herself 
She is too perfect to be known by fragments. No mean brick shall be a 
specimen of the building of my palace.' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.7" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER VII</head>
               <head>MISCHANCES</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'What! remain to be </l>
                  <l>Denounced—dragged, it may be, in chains.' </l>
                  <l>WERNER. </l>
               </q>
               <p>All the next day they sate together—they three.  Mr. Hale hardly ever 
spoke but when his children asked him questions, and forced him, as it were, 
into the present. Frederick's grief was no more to be seen or heard; the 
first paroxysm had passed over, and now he was ashamed of having been so 
battered down by emotion; and though his sorrow for the loss of his mother 
was a deep real feeling, and would last out his life, it was never to be 
spoken of again. Margaret, not so passionate at first, was more suffering 
now. At times she cried a good deal; and her manner, even when speaking on 
indifferent things, had a mournful tenderness about it, which was deepened 
whenever her looks fell on Frederick, and she thought of his rapidly 
approaching departure. She was glad he was going, on her father's account, 
however much she might grieve over it on her own. The anxious terror in which 
Mr. Hale lived lest his son should be detected and captured, far out-weighed 
the pleasure he derived from his presence. The nervousness had increased 
since Mrs. Hale's death, probably because he dwelt upon it more exclusively. 
He started at every unusual sound; and was never comfortable unless Frederick 
sate out of the immediate view of any one entering the room. Towards evening 
he said: 
</p>
               <p>'You will go with Frederick to the station, Margaret? I shall want 
to know he is safely off. You will bring me word that he is clear of Milton, 
at any rate?' 
</p>
               <p>'Certainly,' said Margaret. 'I shall like it, if you won't be 
lonely without me, papa.' 
</p>
               <p>'No, no! I should always be fancying some one had 
known him, and that he had been stopped, unless you could tell me you had 
seen him off. And go to the Outwood station. It is quite as near, and not so 
many people about. Take a cab there. There is less risk of his being seen. 
What time is your train, Fred?' 
</p>
               <p>'Ten minutes past six; very nearly dark. So 
what will you do, Margaret?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, I can manage. I am getting very brave and 
very hard. it is a well-lighted road all the way home, if it should be dark. 
But I was out last week much later.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was thankful when the parting 
was over—the parting from the dead mother and the living father. She hurried 
Frederick into the cab, in order to shorten a scene which she saw was so 
bitterly painful to her father, who would accompany his son as he took his 
last look at his mother. Partly in consequence of this, and partly owing to 
one of the very common mistakes in the 'Railway Guide' as to the times when 
trains arrive at the smaller stations, they found, on reaching Outwood, that 
they had nearly twenty minutes to spare. The booking-office was not open, so 
they could not even take the ticket. They accordingly went down the flight of 
steps that led to the level of the ground below the railway. There was a 
broad cinder-path diagonally crossing a field which lay along-side of the 
carriage-road, and they went there to walk backwards and forwards for the few 
minutes they had to spare. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret's hand lay in Frederick's arm. He took 
hold of it affectionately. 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret! I am going to consult Mr. Lennox as 
to the chance of exculpating myself, so that I may return to England whenever 
I choose, more for your sake than for the sake of any one else. I can't bear 
to think of your lonely position if anything should happen to my father. He 
looks sadly changed—terribly shaken. I wish you could get him to think of 
the Cadiz plan, for manyreasons. What could you do if he were taken away? You 
have nofriend near. We are curiously bare of relations.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret could 
hardly keep from crying at the tender anxiety with which Frederick was 
bringing before her an event which she herself felt was not very improbable, 
so severely had the cares of the last few months told upon Mr. Hale. But she 
tried to rally as she said: 
</p>
               <p>'There have been such strange unexpected 
changes in my life during these last two years, that I feel more than ever 
that it is not worth while to calculate too closely what I should do if any 
future event took place. I try to think only upon the present.' She paused; 
they were standing still for a moment, close on the field side of the stile 
leading into the road; the setting sun fell on their faces. Frederick held 
her hand in his, and looked with wistful anxiety into her face, reading there 
more care and trouble than she would betray by words. She went on: 
</p>
               <p>'We 
shall write often to one another, and I will promise—for I see it will set 
your mind at ease—to tell you every worry I have. Papa is'—she started a 
little, a hardly visible start—but Frederick felt the sudden motion of the 
hand he held, and turned his full face to the road, along which a horseman 
was slowly riding, just passing the very stile where they stood. Margaret 
bowed; her bow was stiffly returned. 
</p>
               <p>'Who is that?' said Frederick, almost 
before he was out of hearing.Margaret was a little drooping, a little 
flushed, as she replied: 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Thornton; you saw him before, you 
know.' 
</p>
               <p>'Only his back. He is an unprepossessing-looking fellow. What a 
scowl he has!' 
</p>
               <p>'Something has happened to vex him,' said Margaret, 
apologetically. 'You would not have thought him unprepossessing if you had 
seen him with mamma.' 
</p>
               <p>'I fancy it must be time to go and take my ticket. If 
I had known how dark it would be, we wouldn't have sent back the cab, 
Margaret.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, don't fidget about that. I can take a cab here, if I like; 
or go back by the rail-road, when I should have shops and people and lamps 
all the way from the Milton station-house. Don't think of me; take care of 
yourself. I am sick with the thought that Leonards may be in the same train 
with you. Look well into the carriage before you get in.' 
</p>
               <p>They went back to 
the station. Margaret insisted upon going into the full light of the flaring 
gas inside to take the ticket. Some idle-looking young men were lounging 
about with the stationmaster. Margaret thought she had seen the face of one 
of them before, and returned him a proud look of offended dignity for his 
somewhat impertinent stare of undisguised admiration. She went hastily to her 
brother, who was standing outside, and took hold of his arm. 'Have you got 
your bag? Let us walk about here on the platform,' said she, a little 
flurried at the idea of so soon being left alone, and her bravery oozing out 
rather faster than she liked to acknowledge even to herself. She heard a step 
following them along the flags; it stopped when they stopped, looking out 
along the line and hearing the whizz of the coming train. They did not speak; 
their hearts were too full. Another moment, and the train would be here; a 
minute more, and he would be gone. Margaret almost repented the urgency with 
which she had entreated him to go to London; it was throwing more chances of 
detection in his way. If he had sailed for Spain by Liverpool, he might have 
been off in two or three hours. 
</p>
               <p>Frederick turned round, right facing the 
lamp, where the gas darted up in vivid anticipation of the train. A man in 
the dress of a railway porter started forward; a bad-looking man, who seemed 
to have drunk himself into a state of brutality, although his senses were in 
perfect order. 
</p>
               <p>'By your leave, miss!' said he, pushing Margaret rudely on 
one side, and seizing Frederick by the collar. 
</p>
               <p>'Your name is Hale, I 
believe?' 
</p>
               <p>In an instant—how, Margaret did not see, for everything danced 
before her eyes—but by some sleight of wrestling, Frederick had tripped him 
up, and he fell from the height of three or four feet, which the platform was 
elevated above the space of soft ground, by the side of the railroad. There 
he lay. 
</p>
               <p>'Run, run!' gasped Margaret. 'The train is here. It was Leonards, 
was it? oh, run! I will carry your bag.' And she took him by the arm to push 
him along with all her feeble force. A door was opened in a carriage—he 
jumped in; and as he leant out t say, 'God bless you, Margaret!' the train 
rushed past her; an she was left standing alone. She was so terribly sick and 
faint that she was thankful to he able to turn into the ladies' waiting-room, 
and sit down for an instant. At first she could do nothing but gasp for 
breath. It was such a hurry; such a sickening alarm; such a near chance. If 
the train had not been there at the moment, the man would have jumped up 
again and called for assistance to arrest him. She wondered if the man had 
got up: she tried to remember if she had seen him move; she wondered if he 
could have been seriously hurt. She ventured out; the platform was all 
alight, but still quite deserted; she went to the end, and looked over, 
somewhat fearfully. No one was there; and then she was glad she had made 
herself go, and inspect, for otherwise terrible thoughts would have haunted 
her dreams. And even as it was, she was so trembling and affrighted that she 
felt she could not walk home along the road, which did indeed seem lonely and 
dark, as she gazed down upon it from the blaze of the station. She would wait 
till the down train passed and take her seat in it. But what if Leonards 
recognised her as Frederick's companion! She peered about, before venturing 
into the booking-office to take her ticket. There were only some railway 
officials standing about; and talking loud to one another. 
</p>
               <p>'So Leonards has 
been drinking again!' said one, seemingly in authority. 'He'll need all his 
boasted influence to keep his place this time.' 
</p>
               <p>'Where is he?' asked 
another, while Margaret, her back towards them, was counting her change with 
trembling fingers, not daring to turn round until she heard the answer to 
this question. 
</p>
               <p>'I don't know. He came in not five minutes ago, with some 
long story or other about a fall he'd had, swearing awfully; and wanted to 
borrow some money from me to go to London by the next up-train. He made all 
sorts of tipsy promises, but I'd something else to do than listen to him; I 
told him to go about his business; and he went off at the front 
door.' 
</p>
               <p>'He's at the nearest vaults, I'll be bound,' said the first speaker. 
'Your money would have gone there too, if you'd been such a fool as to lend 
it.' 
</p>
               <p>'Catch me! I knew better what his London meant. Why, he has never paid 
me off that five shillings'—and so they went on. 
</p>
               <p>And now all Margaret's 
anxiety was for the train to come. She hid herself once more in the ladies' 
waiting-room, and fancied every noise was Leonards' step—every loud and 
boisterous voice was his. But no one came near her until the train drew up; 
when she was civilly helped into a carriage by a porter, into whose face she 
durst not look till they were in motion, and then she saw that it was not 
Leonards'. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.8" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER VIII</head>
               <head>PEACE</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Sleep on, my love, in thy cold bed, </l>
                  <l>Never to be disquieted! </l>
                  <l>My last Good Night—thou wilt not wake </l>
                  <l>Till I thy fate shall overtake.' </l>
                  <l>DR. KING. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Home seemed unnaturally quiet after all this terror and noisy commotion. 
Her father had seen all due preparation made for her refreshment on her 
return; and then sate down again in his accustomed chair, to fall into one of 
his sad waking dreams. Dixon had got Mary Higgins to scold and direct in the 
kitchen; and her scolding was not the less energetic because it was delivered 
in an angry whisper; for, speaking above her breath she would have thought 
irreverent, as long as there was any one dead lying in the house. Margaret 
had resolved not to mention the crowning and closing affright to her father. 
There was no use in speaking about it; it had ended well; the only thing to 
be feared was lest Leonards should in some way borrow money enough to effect 
his purpose of following Frederick to London, and hunting him out there. But 
there were immense chances against the success of any such plan; and Margaret 
determined not to torment herself by thinking of what she could do nothing to 
prevent. Frederick would be as much on his guard as she could put him; and in 
a day or two at most he would be safely out of England. 
</p>
               <p>'I suppose we shall 
hear from Mr. Bell to-morrow,' said Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes,' replied her father. 'I 
suppose so.' 
</p>
               <p>'If he can come, he will be here to-morrow evening, I should 
think.' 
</p>
               <p>'If he cannot come, I shall ask Mr. Thornton to go with me to the 
funeral. I cannot go alone. I should break down utterly.' 
</p>
               <p>'Don't ask Mr. 
Thornton, papa. Let me go with you,' said Margaret, impetuously. 
</p>
               <p>'You! My 
dear, women do not generally go.' 
</p>
               <p>'No: because they can't control 
themselves. Women of our class don't go, because they have no power over 
their emotions, and yet are ashamed of showing them. Poor women go, and don't 
care if they are seen overwhelmed with grief. But I promise you, papa, that 
if you will let me go, I will be no trouble. Don't have a stranger, and leave 
me out. Dear papa! if Mr. Bell cannot come, I shall go. I won't urge my wish 
against your will, if he does.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Bell could not come. He had the gout. 
It was a most affectionate letter, and expressed great and true regret for 
his inability to attend. He hoped to come and pay them a visit soon, if they 
would have him; his Milton property required some looking after, and his 
agent had written to him to say that his presence was absolutely necessary; 
or else he had avoided coming near Milton as long as he could, and now the 
only thing that would reconcile him to this necessary visit was the idea that 
he should see, and might possibly be able to comfort his old 
friend. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret had all the difficulty in the world to persuade her father 
not to invite Mr. Thornton. She had an indescribable repugnance to this step 
being taken. The night before the funeral, came a stately note from Mrs. 
Thornton to Miss Hale, saying that, at her son's desire, their carriage 
should attend the funeral, if it would not be disagreeable to the family. 
Margaret tossed the note to her father. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, don't let us have these 
forms,' said she. 'Let us go alone—you and me, papa. They don't care for us, 
or else he would have offered to go himself, and not have proposed this 
sending an empty carriage.' 
</p>
               <p>'I thought you were so extremely averse to his 
going, Margaret,' said Mr. Hale in some surprise. 
</p>
               <p>'And so I am. I don't 
want him to come at all; and I should especially dislike the idea of our 
asking him. But this seems such a mockery of mourning that I did not expect 
it from him.' She startled her father by bursting into tears. She had been so 
subdued in her grief, so thoughtful for others, so gentle and patient in all 
things, that he could not understand her impatient ways to-night; she seemed 
agitated and restless; and at all the tenderness which her father in his turn 
now lavished upon her, she only cried the more. 
</p>
               <p>She passed so bad a night 
that she was ill prepared for the additional anxiety caused by a letter 
received from Frederick. Mr. Lennox was out of town; his clerk said that he 
would return by the following Tuesday at the latest; that he might possibly 
be at home on Monday. Consequently, after some consideration, Frederick had 
determined upon remaining in London a day or two longer. He had thought of 
coming down to Milton again; the temptation had been very strong; but the 
idea of Mr. Bell domesticated in his father's house, and the alarm he had 
received at the last moment at the railway station, had made him resolve to 
stay in London. Margaret might be assured he would take every precaution 
against being tracked by Leonards. Margaret was thankful that she received 
this letter while her father was absent in her mother's room. If he had been 
present, he would have expected her to read it aloud to him, and it would 
have raised in him a state of nervous alarm which she would have found it 
impossible to soothe away. There was not merely the fact, which disturbed her 
excessively, of Frederick's detention in London, but there were allusions to 
the recognition at the last moment at Milton, and the possibility of a 
pursuit, which made her blood run cold; and how then would it have affected 
her father? Many a time did Margaret repent of having suggested and urged on 
the plan of consulting Mr. Lennox. At the moment, it had seemed as if it 
would occasion so little delay—add so little to the apparently small chances 
of detection; and yet everything that had since occurred had tended to make 
it so undesirable. Margaret battled hard against this regret of hers for what 
could not now be helped; this self-reproach for having said what had at 
thetime appeared to be wise, but which after events were proving to have been 
so foolish. But her father was in too depressed a state of mind and body to 
struggle healthily; he would succumb to all these causes for morbid regret 
over what could not be recalled. Margaret summoned up all her forces to her 
aid. Her father seemed to have forgotten that they had any reason to expect a 
letter from Frederick that morning. He was absorbed in one idea—that the 
last visible token of the presence of his wife was to be carried away from 
him, and hidden from his sight. He trembled pitifully as the undertaker's man 
was arranging his crape draperies around him. He looked wistfully at 
Margaret; and, when released, he tottered towards her, murmuring, 'Pray for 
me, Margaret. I have no strength left in me. I cannot pray. I give her up 
because I must. I try to bear it: indeed I do. I know it is God's will. But I 
cannot see why she died. Pray for me, Margaret, that I may have faith to 
pray. It is a great strait, my child.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret sat by him in the coach, 
almost supporting him in her arms; and repeating all the noble verses of holy 
comfort, or texts expressive of faithful resignation, that she could 
remember. Her voice never faltered; and she herself gained strength by doing 
this. Her father's lips moved after her, repeating the well-known texts as 
her words suggested them; it was terrible to see the patient struggling 
effort to obtain the resignation which he had not strength to take into his 
heart as a part of himself. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret's fortitude nearly gave way as Dixon, 
with a slight motion of her hand, directed her notice to Nicholas Higgins and 
his daughter, standing a little aloof, but deeply attentive to the 
ceremonial. Nicholas wore his usual fustian clothes, but had a bit of black 
stuff sewn round his hat—a mark of mourning which he had never shown to his 
daughter Bessy's memory. But Mr. Hale saw nothing. He went on repeating to 
himself, mechanically as it were, all the funeral service as it was read by 
the officiating clergyman; he sighed twice or thrice when all was ended; and 
then, putting his hand on Margaret's arm, he mutely entreated to be led away, 
as if he were blind, and she his faithful guide. 
</p>
               <p>Dixon sobbed aloud; she 
covered her face with her handkerchief, and was so absorbed in her own grief, 
that she did not perceive that the crowd, attracted on such occasions, was 
dispersing, till she was spoken to by some one close at hand. It was Mr. 
Thornton. He had been present all the time, standing, with bent head, behind 
a group of people, so that, in fact, no one had recognised him. 
</p>
               <p>'I beg your 
pardon,—but, can you tell me how Mr. Hale is? And Miss Hale, too? I should 
like to know how they both are.' 
</p>
               <p>'Of course, sir. They are much as is to be 
expected. Master is terribly broke down. Miss Hale bears up better than 
likely.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton would rather have heard that she was suffering the 
natural sorrow. In the first place, there was selfishness enough in him to 
have taken pleasure in the idea that his great love might come in to comfort 
and console her; much the same kind of strange passionate pleasure which 
comes stinging through a mother's heart, when her drooping infant nestles 
close to her, and is dependent upon her for everything. But this delicious 
vision of what might have been—in which, in spite of all Margaret's repulse, 
he would have indulged only a few days ago—was miserably disturbed by the 
recollection of what he had seen near the Outwood station. 'Miserably 
disturbed!' that is not strong enough. He was haunted by the remembrance of 
the handsome young man, with whom she stood in an attitude of such familiar 
confidence; and the remembrance shot through him like an agony, till it made 
him clench his hands tight in order to subdue the pain. At that late hour, so 
far from home! It took a great moral effort to galvanise his trust—erewhile 
so perfect—in Margaret's pure and exquisite maidenliness, into life; as soon 
as the effort ceased, his trust dropped down dead and powerless: and all 
sorts of wild fancies chased each other like dreams through his mind. Here 
was a little piece of miserable, gnawing confirmation. 'She bore up better 
than likely' under this grief. She had then some hope to look to, so bright 
that even in her affectionate nature it could come in to lighten the dark 
hours of a daughter newly made motherless. Yes! he knew how she would love. 
He had not loved her without gaining that instinctive knowledge of what 
capabilities were in her. Her soul would walk in glorious sunlight if any man 
was worthy, by his power of loving, to win back her love. Even in her 
mourning she would rest with a peaceful faith upon his sympathy. His 
sympathy! Whose? That other man's. And that it was another was enough to make 
Mr. Thornton's pale grave face grow doubly wan and stern at Dixon's 
answer. 
</p>
               <p>'I suppose I may call,' said he coldly. 'On Mr. Hale, I mean. He 
will perhaps admit me after to-morrow or so.' 
</p>
               <p>He spoke as if the answer 
were a matter of indifference to him. But it was not so. For all his pain, he 
longed to see the author of it. Although he hated Margaret at times, when he 
thought of that gentle familiar attitude and all the attendant circumstances, 
he had a restless desire to renew her picture in his mind—a longing for the 
very atmosphere she breathed. He was in the Charybdis of passion, and must 
perforce circle and circle ever nearer round the fatal centre. 
</p>
               <p>'I dare say, 
sir, master will see you. He was very sorry to have to deny you the other 
day; but circumstances was not agreeable just then.' 
</p>
               <p>For some reason or 
other, Dixon never named this interview that she had had with Mr. Thornton to 
Margaret. It might have been mere chance, but so it was that Margaret never 
heard that he had attended her poor mother's funeral. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.9" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER IX</head>
               <head>FALSE AND TRUE</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Truth will fail thee never, never! </l>
                  <l>Though thy bark be tempest-driven, </l>
                  <l>Though each plank be rent and riven, </l>
                  <l>Truth will bear thee on for ever!' </l>
                  <l>ANON. </l>
               </q>
               <p>The 'bearing up better than likely' was a terrible strain upon Margaret. 
Sometimes she thought she must give way, and cry out with pain, as the sudden 
sharp thought came across her, even during her apparently cheerful 
conversations with her father, that she had no longer a mother. About 
Frederick, too, there was great uneasiness. The Sunday post intervened, and 
interfered with their London letters; and on Tuesday Margaret was surprised 
and disheartened to find that there was still no letter. She was quite in the 
dark as to his plans, and her father was miserable at all this uncertainty. 
It broke in upon his lately acquired habit of sitting still in one easy chair 
for half a day together. He kept pacing up and down the room; then out of it; 
and she heard him upon the landing opening and shutting the bed-room doors, 
without any apparent object. She tried to tranquillise him by reading aloud; 
but it was evident he could not listen for long together. How thankful she 
was then, that she had kept to herself the additional cause for anxiety 
produced by their encounter with Leonards. She was thankful to hear Mr. 
Thornton announced. His visit would force her father's thoughts into another 
channel. 
</p>
               <p>He came up straight to her father, whose hands he took and wrung 
without a word—holding them in his for a minute or two, during which time 
his face, his eyes, his look, told of more sympathy than could be put into 
words. Then he turned to Margaret. Not 'better than likely' did she look. Her 
stately beauty was dimmed with much watching and with many tears. The 
expression on her countenance was of gentle patient sadness—nay of positive 
present suffering. He had not meant to greet her otherwise than with his late 
studied coldness of demeanour; but he could not help going up to her, as she 
stood a little aside, rendered timid by the uncertainty of his manner of 
late, and saying the few necessary common-place words in so tender a voice, 
that her eyes filled with tears, and she turned away to hide her emotion. She 
took her work and sate down very quiet and silent. Mr. Thornton's heart beat 
quick and strong, and for the time he utterly forgot the Outwood lane. He 
tried to talk to Mr. Hale: and—his presence always a certain kind of 
pleasure to Mr. Hale, as his power and decision made him, and his opinions, a 
safe, sure port—was unusually agreeable to her father, as Margaret 
saw. 
</p>
               <p>Presently Dixon came to the door and said, 'Miss Hale, you are 
wanted.' 
</p>
               <p>Dixon's manner was so flurried that Margaret turned sick at heart. 
Something had happened to Fred. She had no doubt of that. It was well that 
her father and Mr. Thornton were so much occupied by their 
conversation. 
</p>
               <p>'What is it, Dixon?' asked Margaret, the moment she had shut 
the drawing-room door. 
</p>
               <p>'Come this way, miss,' said Dixon, opening the door 
of what had been Mrs. Hale's bed-chamber, now Margaret's, for her father 
refused to sleep there again after his wife's death. 'It's nothing, miss,' 
said Dixon, choking a little. 'Only a police-inspector. He wants to see you, 
miss. But I dare say, it's about nothing at all.' 
</p>
               <p>'Did he name—' asked 
Margaret, almost inaudibly. 
</p>
               <p>'No, miss; he named nothing. He only asked if 
you lived here, and if he could speak to you. Martha went to the door, and 
let him in; she has shown him into master's study. I went to him myself, to 
try if that would do; but no—it's you, miss, he wants.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret did not 
speak again till her hand was on the lock of the study door. Here she turned 
round and said, 'Take care papa does not come down. Mr. Thornton is with him 
now.' 
</p>
               <p>The inspector was almost daunted by the haughtiness of her manner as 
she entered. There was something of indignation expressed in her countenance, 
but so kept down and controlled, that it gave her a superb air of disdain. 
There was no surprise, no curiosity. She stood awaiting the opening of his 
business there. Not a question did she ask. 
</p>
               <p>'I beg your pardon, ma'am, but 
my duty obliges me to ask you a few plain questions. A man has died at the 
Infirmary, in consequence of a fall, received at Outwood station, between the 
hours of five and six on Thursday evening, the twenty-sixth instant. At the 
time, this fall did not seem of much consequence; but it was rendered fatal, 
the doctors say, by the presence of some internal complaint, and the man's 
own habit of drinking.' 
</p>
               <p>The large dark eyes, gazing straight into the 
inspector's face, dilated a little. Otherwise there was no motion perceptible 
to his experienced observation. Her lips swelled out into a richer curve than 
ordinary, owing to the enforced tension of the muscles, but he did not know 
what was their usual appearance, so as to recognise the unwonted sullen 
defiance of the firm sweeping lines. She never blenched or trembled. She 
fixed him with her eye. Now—as he paused before going on, she said, almost 
as if she would encourage him in telling his tale—'Well—go on!' 
</p>
               <p>'It is 
supposed that an inquest will have to be held; there is some slight evidence 
to prove that the blow, or push, or scuffle that caused the fall, was 
provoked by this poor fellow's half-tipsy impertinence to a young lady, 
walking with the man who pushed the deceased over the edge of the platform. 
This much was observed by some one on the platform, who, however, thought no 
more about the matter, as the blow seemed of slight consequence. There is 
also some reason to identify the lady with yourself; in which case—' 
</p>
               <p>'I 
was not there,' said Margaret, still keeping her expressionless eyes fixed on 
his face, with the unconscious look of a sleep-walker. 
</p>
               <p>The inspector bowed 
but did not speak. The lady standing before him showed no emotion, no 
fluttering fear, no anxiety, no desire to end the interview. The information 
he had received was very vague; one of the porters, rushing out to be in 
readiness for the train, had seen a scuffle, at the other end of the 
platform, between Leonards and a gentleman accompanied by a lady, but heard 
no noise; and before the train had got to its full speed after starting, he 
had been almost knocked down by the headlong run of the enraged half 
intoxicated Leonards, swearing and cursing awfully. He had not thought any 
more about it, till his evidence was routed out by the inspector, who, on 
making some farther inquiry at the railroad station, had heard from the 
station-master that a young lady and gentleman had been there about that 
hour—the lady remarkably handsome—and said, by some grocer's assistant 
present at the time, to be a Miss Hale, living at Crampton, whose family 
dealt at his shop. There was no certainty that the one lady and gentleman 
were identical with the other pair, but there was great probability. Leonards 
himself had gone, half-mad with rage and pain, to the nearest gin-palace for 
comfort; and his tipsy words had not been attended to by the busy waiters 
there; they, however, remembered his starting up and cursing himself for not 
having sooner thought of the electric telegraph, for some purpose unknown; 
and they believed that he left with the idea of going there. On his way, 
overcome by pain or drink, he had lain down in the road, where the police had 
found him and taken him to the Infirmary: there he had never recovered 
sufficient consciousness to give any distinct account of his fall, although 
once or twice he had had glimmerings of sense sufficient to make the 
authorities send for the nearest magistrate, in hopes that he might be able 
to take down the dying man's deposition of the cause of his death. But when 
the magistrate had come, he was rambling about being at sea, and mixing up 
names of captains and lieutenants in an indistinct manner with those of his 
fellow porters at the railway; and his last words were a curse on the 
'Cornish trick' which had, he said, made him a hundred pounds poorer than he 
ought to have been. The inspector ran all this over in his mind—the 
vagueness of the evidence to prove that Margaret had been at the station—the 
unflinching, calm denial which she gave to such a supposition. She stood 
awaiting his next word with a composure that appeared supreme. 
</p>
               <p>'Then, 
madam, I have your denial that you were the lady accompanying the gentleman 
who struck the blow, or gave the push, which caused the death of this poor 
man?' 
</p>
               <p>A quick, sharp pain went through Margaret's brain. 'Oh God! that I 
knew Frederick were safe!' A deep observer of human countenances might have 
seen the momentary agony shoot out of her great gloomy eyes, like the torture 
of some creature brought to bay. But the inspector though a very keen, was 
not a very deep observer. He was a little struck, notwithstanding, by the 
form of the answer, which sounded like a mechanical repetition of her first 
reply—not changed and modified in shape so as to meet his last 
question. 
</p>
               <p>'I was not there,' said she, slowly and heavily. And all this 
time she never closed her eyes, or ceased from that glassy, dream-like stare. 
His quick suspicions were aroused by this dull echo of her former denial. It 
was as if she had forced herself to one untruth, and had been stunned out of 
all power of varying it. 
</p>
               <p>He put up his book of notes in a very deliberate 
manner. Then he looked up; she had not moved any more than if she had been 
some great Egyptian statue. 
</p>
               <p>'I hope you will not think me impertinent when 
I say, that I may have to call on you again. I may have to summon you to 
appear on the inquest, and prove an alibi, if my witnesses' (it was but one 
who had recognised her) 'persist in deposing to your presence at the 
unfortunate event.' He looked at her sharply. She was still perfectly 
quiet—no change of colour, or darker shadow of guilt, on her proud face. He 
thought to have seen her wince: he did not know Margaret Hale. He was a 
little abashed by her regal composure. It must have been a mistake of 
identity. He went on: 
</p>
               <p>'It is very unlikely, ma'am, that I shall have to do 
anything of the kind. I hope you will excuse me for doing what is only my 
duty, although it may appear impertinent.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret bowed her head as he 
went towards the door. Her lips were stiff and dry. She could not speak even 
the common words of farewell. But suddenly she walked forwards, and opened 
the study door, and preceded him to the door of the house, which she threw 
wide open for his exit. She kept her eyes upon him in the same dull, fixed 
manner, until he was fairly out of the house. She shut the door, and went 
half-way into the study; then turned back, as if moved by some passionate 
impulse, and locked the door inside. 
</p>
               <p>Then she went into the study, 
paused—tottered forward—paused again—swayed for an instant where she 
stood, and fell prone on the floor in a dead swoon. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.10" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER X</head>
               <head>EXPIATION</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'There's nought so finely spun </l>
                  <l>But it cometh to the sun.' </l>
               </q>
               <p>Mr. Thornton sate on and on. He felt that his company gave pleasure to Mr. 
Hale; and was touched by the half-spoken wishful entreaty that he would 
remain a little longer—the plaintive 'Don't go yet,' which his poor friend 
put forth from time to time. He wondered Margaret did not return; but it was 
with no view of seeing her that he lingered. For the hour—and in the 
presence of one who was so thoroughly feeling the nothingness of earth—he 
was reasonable and self-controlled. He was deeply interested in all her 
father said 
<q>
                     <l>'Of death, and of the heavy lull, </l>
                     <l>And of the brain that has grown dull.' </l>
                  </q>
               </p>
               <p>It was curious how the presence of Mr. Thornton had power 
over Mr. Hale to make him unlock the secret thoughts which he kept shut up 
even from Margaret. Whether it was that her sympathy would be so keen, and 
show itself in so lively a manner, that he was afraid of the reaction upon 
himself, or whether it was that to his speculative mind all kinds of doubts 
presented themselves at such a time, pleading and crying aloud to be resolved 
into certainties, and that he knew she would have shrunk from the expression 
of any such doubts—nay, from him himself as capable of conceiving 
them—whatever was the reason, he could unburden himself better to Mr. 
Thornton than to her of all the thoughts and fancies and fears that had been 
frost-bound in his brain till now. Mr. Thornton said very little; but every 
sentence he uttered added to Mr. Hale's reliance and regard for him. Was it 
that he paused in the expression of some remembered agony, Mr. Thornton's two 
or three words would complete the sentence, and show how deeply its meaning 
was entered into. Was it a doubt—a fear—a wandering uncertainty seeking 
rest, but finding none—so tear-blinded were its eyes—Mr. Thornton, instead 
of being shocked, seemed to have passed through that very stage of thought 
himself, and could suggest where the exact ray of light was to be found, 
which should make the dark places plain. Man of action as he was, busy in the 
world's great battle, there was a deeper religion binding him to God in his 
heart, in spite of his strong wilfulness, through all his mistakes, than Mr. 
Hale had ever dreamed. They never spoke of such things again, as it happened; 
but this one conversation made them peculiar people to each other; knit them 
together, in a way which no loose indiscriminate talking about sacred things 
can ever accomplish. When all are admitted, how can there be a Holy of 
Holies? 
</p>
               <p>And all this while, Margaret lay as still and white as death on the 
study floor! She had sunk under her burden. It had been heavy in weight and 
long carried; and she had been very meek and patient, till all at once her 
faith had given way, and she had groped in vain for help! There was a pitiful 
contraction of suffering upon her beautiful brows, although there was no 
other sign of consciousness remaining. The mouth—a little while ago, so 
sullenly projected in defiance—was relaxed and livid. 
</p>
               <p>
                  <q>
                     <l>'E par che de la sua labbia si mova </l>
                     <l>Uno spirto soave e pien d'amore, </l>
                     <l>Chi va dicendo a l'anima: sospira!' </l>
                  </q>
               </p>
               <p>The first symptom of returning life was a quivering 
about the lips—a little mute soundless attempt at speech; but the eyes were 
still closed; and the quivering sank into stillness. Then, feebly leaning on 
her arms for an instant to steady herself, Margaret gathered herself up, and 
rose. Her comb had fallen out of her hair; and with an intuitive desire to 
efface the traces of weakness, and bring herself into order again, she sought 
for it, although from time to time, in the course of the search, she had to 
sit down and recover strength. Her head drooped forwards—her hands meekly 
laid one upon the other—she tried to recall the force of her temptation, by 
endeavouring to remember the details which had thrown her into such deadly 
fright; but she could not. She only understood two facts—that Frederick had 
been in danger of being pursued and detected in London, as not only guilty of 
manslaughter, but as the more unpardonable leader of the mutiny, and that she 
had lied to save him. There was one comfort; her lie had saved him, if only 
by gaining some additional time. If the inspector came again to-morrow, after 
she had received the letter she longed for to assure her of her brother's 
safety, she would brave shame, and stand in her bitter penance—she, the 
lofty Margaret—acknowledging before a crowded justice-room, if need were, 
that she had been as 'a dog, and done this thing.' But if he came before she 
heard from Frederick; if he returned, as he had half threatened, in a few 
hours, why! she would tell that lie again; though how the words would come 
out, after all this terrible pause for reflection and self-reproach, without 
betraying her falsehood, she did not know, she could not tell. But her 
repetition of it would gain time—time for Frederick. 
</p>
               <p>She was roused by 
Dixon's entrance into the room; she had just been letting out Mr. 
Thornton. 
</p>
               <p>He had hardly gone ten steps in the street, before a passing 
omnibus stopped close by him, and a man got down, and came up to him, 
touching his hat as he did so. It was the police-inspector. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton 
had obtained for him his first situation in the police, and had heard from 
time to time of the progress of his protege, but they had not often met, and 
at first Mr. Thornton did not remember him. 
</p>
               <p>'My name is Watson—George 
Watson, sir, that you got——' 
</p>
               <p>'Ah, yes! I recollect. Why you are getting 
on famously, I hear.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, sir. I ought to thank you, sir. But it is on a 
little matter of business I made so bold as to speak to you now. I believe 
you were the magistrate who attended to take down the deposition of a poor 
man who died in the Infirmary last night.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes,' replied Mr. Thornton. 'I 
went and heard some kind of a rambling statement, which the clerk said was of 
no great use. I'm afraid he was but a drunken fellow, though there is no 
doubt he came to his death by violence at last. One of my mother's servants 
was engaged to him, I believe, and she is in great distress to-day. What 
about him?' 
</p>
               <p>'Why, sir, his death is oddly mixed up with somebody in the 
house I saw you coming out of just now; it was a Mr. Hale's, I 
believe.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes!' said Mr. Thornton, turning sharp round and looking into 
the inspector's face with sudden interest. 'What about it?' 
</p>
               <p>'Why, sir, it 
seems to me that I have got a pretty distinct chain of evidence, inculpating 
a gentleman who was walking with Miss Hale that night at the Outwood station, 
as the man who struck or pushed Leonards off the platform and so caused his 
death. But the young lady denies that she was there at the time.' 
</p>
               <p>'Miss 
Hale denies she was there!' repeated Mr. Thornton, in an altered voice. 'Tell 
me, what evening was it? What time?' 
</p>
               <p>'About six o'clock, on the evening of 
Thursday, the twenty-sixth.' 
</p>
               <p>They walked on, side by side, in silence for a 
minute or two. The inspector was the first to speak. 
</p>
               <p>'You see, sir, there 
is like to be a coroner's inquest; and I've got a young man who is pretty 
positive,—at least he was at first;—since he has heard of the young lady's 
denial, he says he should not like to swear; but still he's pretty positive 
that he saw Miss Hale at the station, walking about with a gentleman, not 
five minutes before the time, when one of the porters saw a scuffle, which he 
set down to some of Leonards' impudence—but which led to the fall which 
caused his death. And seeing you come out of the very house, sir, I thought I 
might make bold to ask if—you see, it's always awkward having to do with 
cases of disputed identity, and one doesn't like to doubt the word of a 
respectable young woman unless one has strong proof to the contrary.' 
</p>
               <p>'And 
she denied having been at the station that evening!' repeated Mr. Thornton, 
in a low, brooding tone. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, sir, twice over, as distinct as could be. I 
told her I should call again, but seeing you just as I was on my way back 
from questioning the young man who said it was her, I thought I would ask 
your advice, both as the magistrate who saw Leonards on his death-bed, and as 
the gentleman who got me my berth in the force.' 
</p>
               <p>'You were quite right,' 
said Mr. Thornton. 'Don't take any steps till you have seen me again.' 
</p>
               <p>'The 
young lady will expect me to call, from what I said.' 
</p>
               <p>'I only want to 
delay you an hour. It's now three. Come to my warehouse at four.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very 
well, sir!' 
</p>
               <p>And they parted company. Mr. Thornton hurried to his warehouse, 
and, sternly forbidding his clerks to allow any one to interrupt him, he went 
his way to his own private room, and locked the door. Then he indulged 
himself in the torture of thinking it all over, and realising every detail. 
How could he have lulled himself into the unsuspicious calm in which her 
tearful image had mirrored itself not two hours before, till he had weakly 
pitied her and yearned towards her, and forgotten the savage, distrustful 
jealousy with which the sight of her—and that unknown to him—at such an 
hour—in such a place—had inspired him! How could one so pure have stooped 
from her decorous and noble manner of bearing! But was it decorous—was it? 
He hated himself for the idea that forced itself upon him, just for an 
instant—no more—and yet, while it was present, thrilled him with its old 
potency of attraction towards her image. And then this falsehood—how 
terrible must be some dread of shame to be revealed—for, after all, the 
provocation given by such a man as Leonards was, when excited by drinking, 
might, in all probability, be more than enough to justify any one who came 
forward to state the circumstances openly and without reserve! How creeping 
and deadly that fear which could bow down the truthful Margaret to falsehood! 
He could almost pity her. What would be the end of it? She could not have 
considered all she was entering upon; if there was an inquest and the young 
man came forward. Suddenly he started up. There should be no inquest. He 
would save Margaret. He would take the responsibility of preventing the 
inquest, the issue of which, from the uncertainty of the medical testimony 
(which he had vaguely heard the night before, from the surgeon in 
attendance), could be but doubtful; the doctors had discovered an internal 
disease far advanced, and sure to prove fatal; they had stated that death 
might have been accelerated by the fall, or by the subsequent drinking and 
exposure to cold. If he had but known how Margaret would have become involved 
in the affair—if he had but foreseen that she would have stained her 
whiteness by a falsehood, he could have saved her by a word; for the 
question, of inquest or no inquest, had hung trembling in the balance only 
the night before. Miss Hale might love another—was indifferent and 
contemptuous to him—but he would yet do her faithful acts of service of 
which she should never know. He might despise her, but the woman whom he had 
once loved should be kept from shame; and shame it would be to pledge herself 
to a lie in a public court, or otherwise to stand and acknowledge her reason 
for desiring darkness rather than light. 
</p>
               <p>Very gray and stern did Mr. 
Thornton look, as he passed out through his wondering clerks. He was away 
about half an hour; and scarcely less stern did he look when he returned, 
although his errand had been successful. 
</p>
               <p>He wrote two lines on a slip of 
paper, put it in an envelope, and sealed it up. This he gave to one of the 
clerks, saying:— 
</p>
               <p>'I appointed Watson—he who was a packer in the 
warehouse, and who went into the police—to call on me at four o'clock. I 
have just met with a gentleman from Liverpool who wishes to see me before he 
leaves town. Take care to give this note to Watson he calls.' 
</p>
               <p>The note 
contained these words: 
</p>
               <p>'There will be no inquest. Medical evidence not 
sufficient to justify it. Take no further steps. I have not seen the corner; 
but I will take the responsibility.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well,' thought Watson, 'it relieves 
me from an awkward job. None of my witnesses seemed certain of anything 
except the young woman. She was clear and distinct enough; the porter at the 
rail-road had seen a scuffle; or when he found it was likely to bring him in 
as a witness, then it might not have been a scuffle, only a little larking, 
and Leonards might have jumped off the platform himself;—he would not stick 
firm to anything. And Jennings, the grocer's shopman,—well, he was not quite 
so bad, but I doubt if I could have got him up to an oath after he heard that 
Miss Hale flatly denied it. It would have been a troublesome job and no 
satisfaction. And now I must go and tell them they won't be wanted.' 
</p>
               <p>He 
accordingly presented himself again at Mr. Hale's that evening. Her father 
and Dixon would fain have persuaded Margaret to go to bed; but they, neither 
of them, knew the reason for her low continued refusals to do so. Dixon had 
learnt part of the truth-but only part. Margaret would not tell any human 
being of what she had said, and she did not reveal the fatal termination to 
Leonards' fall from the platform. So Dixon curiosity combined with her 
allegiance to urge Margaret to go to rest, which her appearance, as she lay 
on the sofa, showed but too clearly that she required. She did not speak 
except when spoken to; she tried to smile back in reply to her father's 
anxious looks and words of tender enquiry; but, instead of a smile, the wan 
lips resolved themselves into a sigh. He was so miserably uneasy that, at 
last, she consented to go into her own room, and prepare for going to bed. 
She was indeed inclined to give up the idea that the inspector would call 
again that night, as it was already past nine o'clock. 
</p>
               <p>She stood by her 
father, holding on to the back of his chair. 
</p>
               <p>'You will go to bed soon, 
papa, won't you? Don't sit up alone!' 
</p>
               <p>What his answer was she did not 
hear; the words were lost in the far smaller point of sound that magnified 
itself to her fears, and filled her brain. There was a low ring at the 
door-bell. 
</p>
               <p>She kissed her father and glided down stairs, with a rapidity of 
motion of which no one would have thought her capable, who had seen her the 
minute before. She put aside Dixon. 
</p>
               <p>'Don't come; I will open the door. I 
know it is him—I can—I must manage it all myself.' 
</p>
               <p>'As you please, miss!' 
said Dixon testily; but in a moment afterwards, she added, 'But you're not 
fit for it. You are more dead than alive.' 
</p>
               <p>'Am I?' said Margaret, turning 
round and showing her eyes all aglow with strange fire, her cheeks flushed, 
though her lips were baked and livid still. 
</p>
               <p>She opened the door to the 
Inspector, and preceded him into the study. She placed the candle on the 
table, and snuffed it carefully, before she turned round and faced 
him. 
</p>
               <p>'You are late!' said she. 'Well?' She held her breath for the 
answer. 
</p>
               <p>'I'm sorry to have given any unnecessary trouble, ma'am; for, after 
all, they've given up all thoughts of holding an inquest. I have had other 
work to do and other people to see, or I should have been here before 
now.' 
</p>
               <p>'Then it is ended,' said Margaret. 'There is to be no further 
enquiry.' 
</p>
               <p>'I believe I've got Mr. Thornton's note about me,' said the 
Inspector, fumbling in his pocket-book. 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Thornton's!' said 
Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes! he's a magistrate—ah! here it is.' She could not see to 
read it—no, not although she was close to the candle. The words swam before 
her. But she held it in her hand, and looked at it as if she were intently 
studying it. 
</p>
               <p>'I'm sure, ma'am, it's a great weight off my mind; for the 
evidence was so uncertain, you see, that the man had received any blow at 
all,—and if any question of identity came in, it so complicated the case, as 
I told Mr. Thornton—' 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Thornton!' said Margaret, again. 
</p>
               <p>'I met him 
this morning, just as he was coming out of this house, and, as he's an old 
friend of mine, besides being the magistrate who saw Leonards last night, I 
made bold to tell him of my difficulty.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret sighed deeply. She did 
not want to hear any more; she was afraid alike of what she had heard, and of 
what she might hear. She wished that the man would go. She forced herself to 
speak. 
</p>
               <p>'Thank you for calling. It is very late. I dare say it is past ten 
o'clock. Oh! here is the note!' she continued, suddenly interpreting the 
meaning of the hand held out to receive it. He was putting it up, when she 
said, 'I think it is a cramped, dazzling sort of writing. I could not read 
it; will you just read it to me?' 
</p>
               <p>He read it aloud to her. 
</p>
               <p>'Thank you. 
You told Mr. Thornton that I was not there?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, of course, ma'am. I'm 
sorry now that I acted upon information, which seems to have been so 
erroneous. At first the young man was so positive; and now he says that he 
doubted all along, and hopes that his mistake won't have occasioned you such 
annoyance as to lose their shop your custom. Good night, ma'am.' 
</p>
               <p>'Good 
night.' She rang the bell for Dixon to show him out. As Dixon returned up the 
passage Margaret passed her swiftly. 
</p>
               <p>'It is all right!' said she, without 
looking at Dixon; and before the woman could follow her with further 
questions she had sped up-stairs, and entered her bed-chamber, and bolted her 
door. 
</p>
               <p>She threw herself, dressed as she was, upon her bed. She was too much 
exhausted to think. Half an hour or more elapsed before the cramped nature of 
her position, and the chilliness, supervening upon great fatigue, had the 
power to rouse her numbed faculties. Then she began to recall, to combine, to 
wonder. The first idea that presented itself to her was, that all this 
sickening alarm on Frederick's behalf was over; that the strain was past. The 
next was a wish to remember every word of the Inspector's which related to 
Mr. Thornton. When had he seen him? What had he said? What had Mr. Thornton 
done? What were the exact words of his note? And until she could recollect, 
even to the placing or omitting an article, the very expressions which he had 
used in the note, her mind refused to go on with its progress. But the next 
conviction she came to was clear enough;—Mr. Thornton had seen her close to 
Outwood station on the fatal Thursday night, and had been told of her denial 
that she was there. She stood as a liar in his eyes. She was a liar. But she 
had no thought of penitence before God; nothing but chaos and night 
surrounded the one lurid fact that, in Mr. Thornton's eyes, she was degraded. 
She cared not to think, even to herself, of how much of excuse she might 
plead. That had nothing to do with Mr. Thornton; she never dreamed that he, 
or any one else, could find cause for suspicion in what was so natural as her 
accompanying her brother; but what was really false and wrong was known to 
him, and he had a right to judge her. 'Oh, Frederick! Frederick!' she cried, 
'what have I not sacrificed for you!' Even when she fell asleep her thoughts 
were compelled to travel the same circle, only with exaggerated and monstrous 
circumstances of pain. 
</p>
               <p>When she awoke a new idea flashed upon her with all 
the brightness of the morning. Mr. Thornton had learnt her falsehood before 
he went to the coroner; that suggested the thought, that he had possibly been 
influenced so to do with a view of sparing her the repetition of her denial. 
But she pushed this notion on one side with the sick wilfulness of a child. 
If it were so, she felt no gratitude to him, as it only showed her how keenly 
he must have seen that she was disgraced already, before he took such 
unwonted pains to spare her any further trial of truthfulness, which had 
already failed so signally. She would have gone through the whole—she would 
have perjured herself to save Frederick, rather—far rather—than Mr. 
Thornton should have had the knowledge that prompted him to interfere to save 
her. What ill-fate brought him in contact with the Inspector? What made him 
be the very magistrate sent for to receive Leonards' deposition? What had 
Leonards said? How much of it was intelligible to Mr. Thornton, who might 
already, for aught she knew, be aware of the old accusation against 
Frederick, through their mutual friend, Mr. Bell? If so, he had striven to 
save the son, who came in defiance of the law to attend his mother's 
death-bed. And under this idea she could feel grateful—not yet, if ever she 
should, if his interference had been prompted by contempt. Oh! had any one 
such just cause to feel contempt for her? Mr. Thornton, above all people, on 
whom she had looked down from her imaginary heights till now! She suddenly 
found herself at his feet, and was strangely distressed at her fall. She 
shrank from following out the premises to their conclusion, and so 
acknowledging to herself how much she valued his respect and good opinion. 
Whenever this idea presented itself to her at the end of a long avenue of 
thoughts, she turned away from following that path—she would not believe in 
it. 
</p>
               <p>It was later than she fancied, for in the agitation of the previous 
night, she had forgotten to wind up her watch; and Mr. Hale had given 
especial orders that she was not to be disturbed by the usual awakening. By 
and by the door opened cautiously, and Dixon put her head in. Perceiving that 
Margaret was awake, she came forwards with a letter. 
</p>
               <p>'Here's something to 
do you good, miss. A letter from Master Frederick.' 
</p>
               <p>'Thank you, Dixon. How 
late it is!' 
</p>
               <p>She spoke very languidly, and suffered Dixon to lay it on the 
counterpane before her, without putting out a hand to lake it. 
</p>
               <p>'You want 
your breakfast, I'm sure. I will bring it you in a minute. Master has got the 
tray all ready, I know.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret did not reply; she let her go; she felt 
that she must be alone before she could open that letter. She opened it at 
last. The first thing that caught her eye was the date two days earlier than 
she received it. He had then written when he had promised, and their alarm 
might have been spared. But she would read the letter and see. It was hasty 
enough, but perfectly satisfactory. He had seen Henry Lennox, who knew enough 
of the case to shake his head over it, in the first instance, and tell him he 
had done a very daring thing in returning to England, with such an 
accusation, backed by such powerful influence, hanging over him. But when 
they had come to talk it over, Mr. Lennox had acknowledged that there might 
be some chance of his acquittal, if he could but prove his statements by 
credible witnesses—that in such case it might be worth while to stand his 
trial, otherwise it would be a great risk. He would examine—he would take 
every pains. 'It struck me' said Frederick, 'that your introduction, little 
sister of mine, went a long way. Is it so? He made many inquiries, I can 
assure you. He seemed a sharp, intelligent fellow, and in good practice too, 
to judge from the signs of business and the number of clerks about him. But 
these may be only lawyer's dodges. I have just caught a packet on the point 
of sailing—I am off in five minutes. I may have to come back to England 
again on this business, so keep my visit secret. I shall send my father some 
rare old sherry, such as you cannot buy in England,—(such stuff as I've got 
in the bottle before me)! He needs something of the kind—my dear love to 
him—God bless him. I'm sure—here's my cab. P.S.—What an escape that was! 
Take care you don't breathe of my having been—not even to the 
Shaws.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret turned to the envelope; it was marked 'Too late.' The 
letter had probably been trusted to some careless waiter, who had forgotten 
to post it. Oh! what slight cobwebs of chances stand between us and 
Temptation! Frederick had been safe, and out of England twenty, nay, thirty 
hours ago; and it was only about seventeen hours since she had told a 
falsehood to baffle pursuit, which even then would have been vain. How 
faithless she had been! Where now was her proud motto, 'Fais ce que dois, 
advienne que pourra?' If she had but dared to bravely tell the truth as 
regarded herself, defying them to find out what she refused to tell 
concerning another, how light of heart she would now have felt! Not humbled 
before God, as having failed in trust towards Him; not degraded and abased in 
Mr. Thornton's sight. She caught herself up at this with a miserable tremor; 
here was she classing his low opinion of her alongside with the displeasure 
of God. How was it that he haunted her imagination so persistently? What 
could it be? Why did she care for what he thought, in spite of all her pride 
in spite of herself? She believed that she could have borne the sense of 
Almighty displeasure, because He knew all, and could read her penitence, and 
hear her. cries for help in time to come. But Mr. Thornton—why did she 
tremble, and hide her face in the pillow? What strong feeling had overtaken 
her at last? 
</p>
               <p>She sprang out of bed and prayed long and earnestly. It 
soothed and comforted her so to open her heart. But as soon as she reviewed 
her position she found the sting was still there; that she was not good 
enough, nor pure enough to be indifferent to the lowered opinion of a fellow 
creature; that the thought of how he must be looking upon her with contempt, 
stood between her and her sense of wrong-doing. She took her letter in to her 
father as soon as she was drest. There was so slight an allusion to their 
alarm at the rail-road station, that Mr. Hale passed over it without paying 
any attention to it. Indeed, beyond the mere fact of Frederick having sailed 
undiscovered and unsuspected, he did not gather much from the letter at the 
time, he was so uneasy about Margaret's pallid looks. She seemed continually 
on the point of weeping. 
</p>
               <p>'You are sadly overdone, Margaret. It is no 
wonder. But you must let me nurse you now.' 
</p>
               <p>He made her lie down on the 
sofa, and went for a shawl to cover her with. His tenderness released her 
tears; and she cried bitterly. 
</p>
               <p>'Poor child!—poor child!' said he, looking 
fondly at her, as she lay with her face to the wall, shaking with her sobs. 
After a while they ceased, and she began to wonder whether she durst give 
herself the relief of telling her father of all her trouble. But there were 
more reasons against it than for it. The only one for it was the relief to 
herself; and against it was the thought that it would add materially to her 
father's nervousness, if it were indeed necessary for Frederick to come to 
England again; that he would dwell on the circumstance of his son's having 
caused the death of a man, however unwittingly and unwillingly; that this 
knowledge would perpetually recur to trouble him, in various shapes of 
exaggeration and distortion from the simple truth. And about her own great 
fault—he would be distressed beyond measure at her want of courage and 
faith, yet perpetually troubled to make excuses for her. Formerly Margaret 
would have come to him as priest as well as father, to tell him of her 
temptation and her sin; but latterly they had not spoken much on such 
subjects; and she knew not how, in his change of opinions, he would reply if 
the depth of her soul called unto his. No; she would keep her secret, and 
bear the burden alone. Alone she would go before God, and cry for His 
absolution. Alone she would endure her disgraced position in the opinion of 
Mr. Thornton. She was unspeakably touched by the tender efforts of her father 
to think of cheerful subjects on which to talk, and so to take her thoughts 
away from dwelling on all that had happened of late. It was some months since 
he had been so talkative as he was this day. He would not let her sit up, and 
offended Dixon desperately by insisting on waiting upon her himself. 
</p>
               <p>At 
last she smiled; a poor, weak little smile; but it gave him the truest 
pleasure. 
</p>
               <p>'It seems strange to think, that what gives us most hope for the 
future should be called Dolores,' said Margaret. The remark was more in 
character with her father than with her usual self; but to-day they seemed to 
have changed natures. 
</p>
               <p>'Her mother was a Spaniard, I believe: that accounts 
for her religion. Her father was a stiff Presbyterian when I knew him. But it 
is a very soft and pretty name.' 
</p>
               <p>'How young she is!—younger by fourteen 
months than I am. Just, the age that Edith was when she was engaged to 
Captain Lennox. Papa, we will go and see them in Spain.' 
</p>
               <p>He shook his head. 
But he said, 'If you wish it, Margaret. Only let us come back here. It would 
seem unfair—unkind to your mother, who always, I'm afraid, disliked Milton 
so much, if we left it now she is lying here, and cannot go with us. No, 
dear; you shall go and see them, and bring me back a report of my Spanish 
daughter.' 
</p>
               <p>'No, papa, I won't go without you. Who is to take care of you 
when I am gone?' 
</p>
               <p>'I should like to know which of us is taking care of the 
other. But if you went, I should persuade Mr. Thornton to let me give him 
double lessons. We would work up the classics famously. That would be a 
perpetual interest. You might go on, and see Edith at Corfu, if you 
liked.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret did not speak all at once. Then she said rather gravely: 
'Thank you, papa. But I don't want to go. We will hope that Mr. Lennox will 
manage so well, that Frederick may bring Dolores to see us when they are 
married. And as for Edith, the regiment won't remain much longer in Corfu. 
Perhaps we shall see both of them here before another year is out.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. 
Hale's cheerful subjects had come to an end. Some painful recollection had 
stolen across his mind, and driven him into silence. By-and-by Margaret 
said: 
</p>
               <p>'Papa—did you see Nicholas Higgins at the funeral? He was there, and 
Mary too. Poor fellow! it was his way of showing sympathy. He has a good warm 
heart under his bluff abrupt ways.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am sure of it,' replied Mr. Hale. 'I 
saw it all along, even while you tried to persuade me that he was all sorts 
of bad things. We will go and see them to-morrow, if you are strong enough to 
walk so far.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh yes. I want to see them. We did not pay Mary—or rather 
she refused to take it, Dixon says. We will go so as to catch him just after 
his dinner, and before he goes to his work.' 
</p>
               <p>Towards evening Mr. Hale 
said: 
</p>
               <p>'I half expected Mr. Thornton would have called. He spoke of a book 
yesterday which he had, and which I wanted to see. He said he would try and 
bring it to-day.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret sighed. She knew he would not come. He would be 
too delicate to run the chance of meeting her, while her shame must be so 
fresh in his memory. The very mention of his name renewed her trouble, and 
produced a relapse into the feeling of depressed, pre-occupied exhaustion. 
She gave way to listless languor. Suddenly it struck her that this was a 
strange manner to show her patience, or to reward her father for his watchful 
care of her all through the day. She sate up and offered to read aloud. His 
eyes were failing, and he gladly accepted her proposal. She read well: she 
gave the due emphasis; but had any one asked her, when she had ended, the 
meaning of what she had been reading, she could not have told. She was 
smitten with a feeling of ingratitude to Mr. Thornton, inasmuch as, in the 
morning, she had refused to accept the kindness he had shown her in making 
further inquiry from the medical men, so as to obviate any inquest being 
held. Oh! she was grateful! She had been cowardly and false, and had shown 
her cowardliness and falsehood in action that could not be recalled; but she 
was not ungrateful. It sent a glow to her heart, to know how she could feel 
towards one who had reason to despise her. His cause for contempt was so 
just, that she should have respected him less if she had thought he did not 
feel contempt. It was a pleasure to feel how thoroughly she respected him. He 
could not prevent her doing that; it was the one comfort in all this 
misery. 
</p>
               <p>Late in the evening, the expected book arrived, 'with Mr. 
Thornton's kind regards, and wishes to know how Mr. Hale is.' 
</p>
               <p>'Say that I 
am much better, Dixon, but that Miss Hale—' 
</p>
               <p>'No, papa,' said Margaret, 
eagerly—'don't say anything about me. He does not ask.' 
</p>
               <p>'My dear child, 
how you are shivering!' said her father, a few minutes afterwards. 'You must 
go to bed directly. You have turned quite pale!' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret did not refuse to 
go, though she was loth to leave her father alone. She needed the relief of 
solitude after a day of busy thinking, and busier repenting. 
</p>
               <p>But she seemed 
much as usual the next day; the lingering gravity and sadness, and the 
occasional absence of mind, were not unnatural symptoms in the early days of 
grief And almost in proportion to her re-establishment in health, was her 
father's relapse into his abstracted musing upon the wife he had lost, and 
the past era in his life that was closed to him for ever. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.11" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XI</head>
               <head>UNION NOT ALWAYS STRENGTH</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'The steps of the bearers, heavy and slow, </l>
                  <l>The sobs of the mourners, deep and low.' </l>
                  <l>SHELLEY. </l>
               </q>
               <p>At the time arranged the previous day, they set out on their walk to see 
Nicholas Higgins and his daughter. They both were reminded of their recent 
loss, by a strange kind of shyness in their new habiliments, and in the fact 
that it was the first time, for many weeks, that they had deliberately gone 
out together. They drew very close to each other in unspoken 
sympathy. 
</p>
               <p>Nicholas was sitting by the fire-side in his accustomed corner: 
but he had not his accustomed pipe. He was leaning his head upon his hand, 
his arm resting on his knee. He did not get up when he saw them, though 
Margaret could read the welcome in his eye. 
</p>
               <p>'Sit ye down, sit ye down. 
Fire's welly out,' said he, giving it a vigorous poke, as if to turn 
attention away from himself. He was rather disorderly, to be sure, with a 
black unshaven beard of several days' growth, making his pale face look yet 
paler, and a jacket which would have been all the better for patching. 
</p>
               <p>'We 
thought we should have a good chance of finding you, just after dinner-time,' 
said Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'We have had our sorrow too, since we saw you,' said Mr. 
Hale. 
</p>
               <p>'Ay, ay. Sorrows is more plentiful than dinners just now; I reckon, 
my dinner hour stretches all o'er the day; yo're pretty sure of finding 
me.' 
</p>
               <p>'Are you out of work?' asked Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Ay,' he replied shortly. 
Then, after a moment's silence, he added, looking up for the first time: 'I'm 
not wanting brass.  Dunno yo' think it. Bess, poor lass, had a little stock 
under her pillow, ready to slip into my hand, last moment, and Mary is 
fustian-cutting. But I'm out o' work a' the same.' 
</p>
               <p>'We owe Mary some 
money,' said Mr. Hale, before Margaret's sharp pressure on his arm could 
arrest the words. 
</p>
               <p>'If hoo takes it, I'll turn her out o' doors. I'll bide 
inside these four walls, and she'll bide out. That's a'.' 
</p>
               <p>'But we owe her 
many thanks for her kind service,' began Mr. Hale again. 
</p>
               <p>'I ne'er thanked 
yo'r daughter theer for her deeds o' love to my poor wench. I ne'er could 
find th' words. I'se have to begin and try now, if yo' start making an ado 
about what little Mary could sarve yo'.' 
</p>
               <p>'Is it because of the strike 
you're out of work?' asked Margaret gently. 
</p>
               <p>'Strike's ended. It's o'er for 
this time. I'm out o' work because I ne'er asked for it. And I ne'er asked 
for it, because good words is scarce, and bad words is plentiful.' 
</p>
               <p>He was 
in a mood to take a surly pleasure in giving answers that were like riddles. 
But Margaret saw that he would like to be asked for the explanation. 
</p>
               <p>'And 
good words are—?' 
</p>
               <p>'Asking for work. I reckon them's almost the best words 
that men can say. “Gi' me work” means “and I'll do it like a man. Them's good 
words.' 
</p>
               <p>'And bad words are refusing you work when you ask for it.' 
</p>
               <p>'Ay. 
Bad words is saying “Aha, my fine chap! Yo've been true to yo'r order, and 
I'll be true to mine. Yo' did the best yo' could for them as wanted help; 
that's yo'r way of being true to yo'r kind; and I'll be true to mine. Yo've 
been a poor fool, as knowed no better nor be a true faithful fool. So go and 
be d—d to yo'. There's no work for yo' here.” Them's bad words. I'm not a 
fool; and if I was, folk ought to ha' taught me how to be wise after their 
fashion. I could mappen ha' learnt, if any one had tried to teach 
me.' 
</p>
               <p>'Would it not be worth while,' said Mr. Hale, 'to ask your old master 
if he would take you back again? It might be a poor chance, but it would be a 
chance.' 
</p>
               <p>He looked up again, with a sharp glance at the questioner; and 
then tittered a low and bitter laugh. 
</p>
               <p>'Measter! if it's no offence, I'll 
ask yo' a question or two in my turn.' 
</p>
               <p>'You're quite welcome,' said Mr. 
Hale. 
</p>
               <p>'I reckon yo'n some way of earning your bread. Folk seldom lives i' 
Milton lust for pleasure, if they can live anywhere else.' 
</p>
               <p>'You are quite 
right. I have some independent property, but my intention in settling in 
Milton was to become a private tutor.' 
</p>
               <p>'To teach folk. Well! I reckon they 
pay yo' for teaching them, dunnot they?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes,' replied Mr. Hale, smiling. 
'I teach in order to get paid.' 
</p>
               <p>'And them that pays yo', dun they tell yo' 
whatten to do, or whatten not to do wi' the money they gives you in just 
payment for your pains—in fair exchange like?' 
</p>
               <p>'No; to be sure 
not!' 
</p>
               <p>'They dunnot say, “Yo' may have a brother, or a friend as dear as a 
brother, who wants this here brass for a purpose both yo' and he think right; 
but yo' mun promise not give it to him. Yo' may see a good use, as yo' think, 
to put yo'r money to; but we don't think it good, and so if yo' spend it 
a-thatens we'll just leave off dealing with yo'.” They dunnot say that, dun 
they?' 
</p>
               <p>'No: to be sure not!' 
</p>
               <p>'Would yo' stand it if they did?' 
</p>
               <p>'It 
would be some very hard pressure that would make me even think of submitting 
to such dictation.' 
</p>
               <p>'There's not the pressure on all the broad earth that 
would make me, said Nicholas Higgins. 'Now yo've got it. Yo've hit the bull's 
eye. Hamper's—that's where I worked—makes their men pledge 'emselves 
they'll not give a penny to help th' Union or keep turnouts fro' clemming. 
They may pledge and make pledge,' continued he, scornfully; 'they nobbut make 
liars and hypocrites. And that's a less sin, to my mind, to making men's 
hearts so hard that they'll not do a kindness to them as needs it, or help on 
the right and just cause, though it goes again the strong hand. But I'll 
ne'er forswear mysel' for a' the work the king could gi'e me. I'm a member o' 
the Union; and I think it's the only thing to do the workman any good. And 
I've been a turn-out, and known what it were to clem; so if I get a shilling, 
sixpence shall go to them if they axe it from me. Consequence is, I dunnot 
see where I'm to get a shilling.' 
</p>
               <p>'Is that rule about not contributing to 
the Union in force at all the mills?' asked Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'I cannot say. It's a 
new regulation at ourn; and I reckon they'll find that they cannot stick to 
it. But it's in force now. By-and-by they'll find out, tyrants makes 
liars.' 
</p>
               <p>There was a little pause. Margaret was hesitating whether she 
should say what was in her mind; she was unwilling to irritate one who was 
already gloomy and despondent enough. At last out it came. But in her soft 
tones, and with her reluctant manner, showing that she was unwilling to say 
anything unpleasant, it did not seem to annoy Higgins, only to perplex 
him. 
</p>
               <p>'Do you remember poor Boucher saying that the Union was a tyrant? I 
think he said it was the worst tyrant of all. And I remember at the time I 
agreed with him.' 
</p>
               <p>It was a long while before he spoke. He was resting his 
head on his two hands, and looking down into the fire, so she could not read 
the expression on his face. 
</p>
               <p>'I'll not deny but what th' Union finds it 
necessary to force a man into his own good. I'll speak truth. A man leads a 
dree life who's not i' th' Union. But once i' the' Union, his interests are 
taken care on better nor he could do it for himsel', or by himsel', for that 
matter. It's the only way working men can get their rights, by all joining 
together. More the members, more chance for each one separate man having 
justice done him. Government takes care o' fools and madmen; and if any man 
is inclined to do himsel' or his neighbour a hurt, it puts a bit of a check 
on him, whether he likes it or no. That's all we do i' th' Union. We can't 
clap folk into prison; but we can make a man's life so heavy to be borne, 
that he's obliged to come in, and be wise and helpful in spite of himself. 
Boucher were a fool all along, and ne'er a worse fool than at th' 
last.' 
</p>
               <p>'He did you harm?' asked Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Ay, that did he. We had public 
opinion on our side, till he and his sort began rioting and breaking laws. It 
were all o'er wi' the strike then.' 
</p>
               <p>'Then would it not have been far better 
to have left him alone, and not forced him to join the Union? He did you no 
good; and you drove him mad.' 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret,' said her father, in a low and 
warning tone, for he saw the cloud gathering on Higgins's face. 
</p>
               <p>'I like 
her,' said Higgins, suddenly. 'Hoo speaks plain out what's in her mind. Hoo 
doesn't comprehend th' Union for all that. It's a great power: it's our only 
power. I ha' read a bit o' poetry about a plough going o'er a daisy, as made 
tears come into my eyes, afore I'd other cause for crying. But the chap ne'er 
stopped driving the plough, I'se warrant, for all he were pitiful about the 
daisy. He'd too much mother-wit for that. Th' Union's the plough, making 
ready the land for harvest-time. Such as Boucher—'twould be settin' him up 
too much to liken him to a daisy; he's liker a weed lounging over the 
ground—mun just make up their mind to be put out o' the way. I'm sore vexed 
wi' him just now. So, mappen, I dunnot speak him fair. I could go o'er him 
wi' a plough mysel', wi' a' the pleasure in life.' 
</p>
               <p>'Why? What has he been 
doing? Anything fresh?' 
</p>
               <p>'Ay, to be sure. He's ne'er out o' mischief, that 
man. First of a' he must go raging like a mad fool, and kick up yon riot. 
Then he'd to go into hiding, where he'd a been yet, if Thornton had followed 
him out as I'd hoped he would ha' done. But Thornton, having got his own 
purpose, didn't care to go on wi' the prosecution for the riot. So Boucher 
slunk back again to his house. He ne'er showed himsel' abroad for a day or 
two. He had that grace. And then, where think ye that he went? Why, to 
Hamper's. Damn him! He went wi' his mealy-mouthed face, that turns me sick to 
look at, a-asking for work, though he knowed well enough the new rule, o' 
pledging themselves to give nought to th' Unions; nought to help the starving 
turn-out! Why he'd a clemmed to death, if th' Union had na helped him in his 
pinch. There he went, ossing to promise aught, and pledge himsel' to 
aught—to tell a' he know'd on our proceedings, the good-for-nothing Judas! 
But I'll say this for Hamper, and thank him for it at my dying day, he drove 
Boucher away, and would na listen to him—ne'er a word—though folk standing 
by, says the traitor cried like a babby!' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! how shocking! how pitiful!' 
exclaimed Margaret. 'Higgins, I don't know you to-day. Don't you see how 
you've made Boucher what he is, by driving him into the Union against his 
will—without his heart going with it. You have made him what he is!' 
</p>
               <p>Made 
him what he is! What was he? 
</p>
               <p>Gathering, gathering along the narrow street, 
came a hollow, measured sound; now forcing itself on their attention. Many 
voices were hushed and low: many steps were heard not moving onwards, at 
least not with any rapidity or steadiness of motion, but as if circling round 
one spot. Yes, there was one distinct, slow tramp of feet, which made itself 
a clear path through the air, and reached their ears; the measured laboured 
walk of men carrying a heavy burden. They were all drawn towards the 
house-door by some irresistible impulse; impelled thither—not by a poor 
curiosity, but as if by some solemn blast. 
</p>
               <p>Six men walked in the middle of 
the road, three of them being policemen. They carried a door, taken off its 
hinges, upon their shoulders, on which lay some dead human creature; and from 
each side of the door there were constant droppings. All the street turned 
out to see, and, seeing, to accompany the procession, each one questioning 
the bearers, who answered almost reluctantly at last, so often had they told 
the tale. 
</p>
               <p>'We found him i' th' brook in the field beyond there.' 
</p>
               <p>'Th' 
brook!—why there's not water enough to drown him!' 
</p>
               <p>'He was a determined 
chap. He lay with his face downwards. He was sick enough o' living, choose 
what cause he had for it.' 
</p>
               <p>Higgins crept up to Margaret's side, and said in 
a weak piping kind of voice: 'It's not John Boucher? He had na spunk enough. 
Sure! It's not John Boucher! Why, they are a' looking this way! Listen! I've 
a singing in my head, and I cannot hear.' 
</p>
               <p>They put the door down carefully 
upon the stones, and all might see the poor drowned wretch—his glassy eyes, 
one half-open, staring right upwards to the sky. Owing to the position in 
which he had been found lying, his face was swollen and discoloured besides, 
his skin was stained by the water in the brook, which had been used for 
dyeing purposes. The fore part of his head was bald; but the hair grew thin 
and long behind, and every separate lock was a conduit for water. Through all 
these disfigurements, Margaret recognised John Boucher. It seemed to her so 
sacrilegious to be peering into that poor distorted, agonised face, that, by 
a flash of instinct, she went forwards and softly covered the dead man's 
countenance with her handkerchief. The eyes that saw her do this followed 
her, as she turned away from her pious office, and were thus led to the place 
where Nicholas Higgins stood, like one rooted to the spot. The men spoke 
together, and then one of them came up to Higgins, who would have fain shrunk 
back into his house. 
</p>
               <p>'Higgins, thou knowed him! Thou mun go tell the wife. 
Do it gently, man, but do it quick, for we canna leave him here long.' 
</p>
               <p>'I 
canna go,' said Higgins. 'Dunnot ask me. I canna face her.' 
</p>
               <p>'Thou knows her 
best,' said the man. 'We'n done a deal in bringing him here—thou take thy 
share.' 
</p>
               <p>'I canna do it,' said Higgins. 'I'm welly felled wi' seeing him. We 
wasn't friends; and now he's dead.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, if thou wunnot thou wunnot. Some 
one mun, though. It's a dree task; but it's a chance, every minute, as she 
doesn't hear on it in some rougher way nor a person going to make her let on 
by degrees, as it were.' 
</p>
               <p>'Papa, do you go,' said Margaret, in a low 
voice. 
</p>
               <p>'If I could—if I had time to think of what I had better say; but 
all at once——' Margaret saw that her father was indeed unable. He was 
trembling from head to foot. 
</p>
               <p>'I will go,' said she. 
</p>
               <p>'Bless yo', miss, it 
will be a kind act; for she's been but a sickly sort of body, I hear, and few 
hereabouts know much on her.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret knocked at the closed door; but 
there was such a noise, as of many little ill-ordered children, that she 
could hear no reply; indeed, she doubted if she was heard, and as every 
moment of delay made her recoil from her task more and more, she opened the 
door and went in, shutting it after her, and even, unseen to the woman, 
fastening the bolt. 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Boucher was sitting in a rocking-chair, on the 
other side of the ill-redd-up fireplace; it looked as if the house had been 
untouched for days by any effort at cleanliness. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret said something, 
she hardly knew what, her throat and mouth were so dry, and the children's 
noise completely prevented her from being heard. She tried again. 
</p>
               <p>'How are 
you, Mrs. Boucher? But very poorly, I'm afraid.' 
</p>
               <p>'I've no chance o' being 
well,' said she querulously. 'I'm left alone to manage these childer, and 
nought for to give 'em for to keep 'em quiet. John should na ha' left me, and 
me so poorly.' 
</p>
               <p>'How long is it since he went away?' 
</p>
               <p>'Four days sin'. No 
one would give him work here, and he'd to go on tramp toward Greenfield. But 
he might ha' been back afore this, or sent me some word if he'd getten work. 
He might——' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, don't blame him,' said Margaret. 'He felt it deeply, I'm 
sure——' 
</p>
               <p>'Willto' hold thy din, and let me hear the lady speak!' 
addressing herself, in no very gentle voice, to a little urchin of about a 
year old. She apologetically continued to Margaret, 'He's always mithering me 
for “daddy” and “butty;” and I ha' no butties to give him, and daddy's away, 
and forgotten us a', I think. He's his father's darling, he is,' said she, 
with a sudden turn of mood, and, dragging the child up to her knee, she began 
kissing it fondly. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret laid her hand on the woman's arm to arrest her 
attention. Their eyes met. 
</p>
               <p>'Poor little fellow!' said Margaret, slowly; 'he 
<hi>was</hi> his father's darling.' 
</p>
               <p>'He <hi>is</hi> his father's darling,' said 
the woman, rising hastily, and standing face to face with Margaret. Neither 
of them spoke for a moment or two. Then Mrs. Boucher began in a low, growling 
tone, gathering in wildness as she went on: He <hi>is</hi> his father's 
darling, I say. Poor folk can love their childer as well as rich. Why dunno 
yo' speak? Why dun yo' stare at me wi' your great pitiful eyes? Where's 
John?' Weak as she was, she shook Margaret to force out an answer. 'Oh, my 
God!' said she, understanding the meaning of that tearful look. She sank hack 
into the chair. Margaret took up the child and put him into her arms. 
</p>
               <p>'He 
loved him,' said she. 
</p>
               <p>'Ay,' said the woman, shaking her head, 'he loved us 
a'. We had some one to love us once. It's a long time ago; but when he were 
in life and with us, he did love us, he did. He loved this babby mappen the 
best on us; but he loved me and I loved him, though I was calling him five 
minutes agone. Are yo' sure he's dead?' said she, trying to get up. 'If it's 
only that he's ill and like to die, they may bring him round yet. I'm but an 
ailing creature mysel'—I've been ailing this long time.' 
</p>
               <p>'But he is 
dead—he is drowned!' 
</p>
               <p>'Folk are brought round after they're dead-drowned. 
Whatten was I thinking of, to sit still when I should be stirring mysel'? 
Here, whisth thee, child—whisth thee! tak' this, tak' aught to play wi', but 
dunnot cry while my heart's breaking! Oh, where is my strength gone to? Oh, 
John—husband!' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret saved her from falling by catching her in her 
arms. She sate down in the rocking chair, and held the woman upon her knees, 
her head lying on Margaret's shoulder. The other children, clustered together 
in affright, began to understand the mystery of the scene; but the ideas came 
slowly, for their brains were dull and languid of perception. They set up 
such a cry of despair as they guessed the truth, that Margaret knew not how 
to bear it. Johnny's cry was loudest of them all, though he knew not why he 
cried, poor little fellow. 
</p>
               <p>The mother quivered as she lay in Margaret's 
arms. Margaret heard a noise at the door. 
</p>
               <p>'Open it. Open it quick,' said 
she to the eldest child. 'It's bolted; make no noise—be very still. Oh, 
papa, let them go upstairs very softly and carefully, and perhaps she will 
not hear them. She has fainted—that's all.' 
</p>
               <p>'It's as well for her, poor 
creature,' said a woman following in the wake of the bearers of the dead. 
'But yo're not fit to hold her. Stay, I'll run fetch a pillow and we'll let 
her down easy on the floor.' 
</p>
               <p>This helpful neighbour was a great relief to 
Margaret; she was evidently a stranger to the house, a new-comer in the 
district, indeed; but she was so kind and thoughtful that Margaret felt she 
was no longer needed; and that it would be better, perhaps, to set an example 
of clearing the house, which was filled with idle, if sympathising 
gazers. 
</p>
               <p>She looked round for Nicholas Higgins. He was not there. So she 
spoke to the woman who had taken the lead in placing Mrs. Boucher on the 
floor. 
</p>
               <p>'Can you give all these people a hint that they had better leave in 
quietness? So that when she comes round, she should only find one or two that 
she knows about her. Papa, will you speak to the men, and get them to go 
away? She cannot breathe, poor thing, with this crowd about her.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret 
was kneeling down by Mrs. Boucher and bathing he face with vinegar; but in a 
few minutes she was surprised at the gush of fresh air. She looked round, and 
saw a smile pass between her father and the woman. 
</p>
               <p>'What is it?' asked 
she. 
</p>
               <p>'Only our good friend here,' replied her father, 'hit on a capital 
expedient for clearing the place.' 
</p>
               <p>'I bid 'em begone, and each take a child 
with 'em, and to mind that they were orphans, and their mother a widow. It 
was who could do most, and the childer are sure of a bellyful to-day, and of 
kindness too. Does hoo know how he died?' 
</p>
               <p>'No,' said Margaret; 'I could not 
tell her all at once.' 
</p>
               <p>'Hoo mun be told because of th' Inquest. See! Hoo's 
coming round; shall you or I do it? or mappen your father would be 
best?' 
</p>
               <p>'No; you, you,' said Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>They awaited her perfect recovery 
in silence. Then the neighbour woman sat down on the floor, and took Mrs. 
Boucher's head and shoulders on her lap. 
</p>
               <p>'Neighbour,' said she, 'your man 
is dead. Guess yo' how he died?' 
</p>
               <p>'He were drowned,' said Mrs. Boucher, 
feebly, beginning to cry for the first time, at this rough probing of her 
sorrows. 
</p>
               <p>'He were found drowned. He were coming home very hopeless o' aught 
on earth. He thought God could na be harder than men; mappen not so hard; 
mappen as tender as a mother; mappen tenderer. I'm not saying he did right, 
and I'm not saying he did wrong. All I say is, may neither me nor mine ever 
have his sore heart, or we may do like things.' 
</p>
               <p>'He has left me alone wi' 
a' these children!' moaned the widow, less distressed at the manner of the 
death than Margaret expected; but it was of a piece with her helpless 
character to feel his loss as principally affecting herself and her 
children. 
</p>
               <p>'Not alone,' said Mr. Hale, solemnly. 'Who is with you? Who will 
take up your cause?' The widow opened her eyes wide, and looked at the new 
speaker, of whose presence she had not been aware till then. 
</p>
               <p>'Who has 
promised to be a father to the fatherless?' continued he. 
</p>
               <p>'But I've getten 
six children, sir, and the eldest not eight years of age. I'm not meaning for 
to doubt His power, sir,—only it needs a deal o' trust;' and she began to 
cry afresh. 
</p>
               <p>'Hoo'll be better able to talk to-morrow, sir,' said the 
neighbour. 'Best comfort now would be the feel of a child at her heart. I'm 
sorry they took the babby.' 
</p>
               <p>'I'll go for it,' said Margaret. And in a few 
minutes she returned, carrying Johnnie, his face all smeared with eating, and 
his hands loaded with treasures in the shape of shells, and bits of crystal, 
and the head of a plaster figure. She placed him in his mother's 
arms. 
</p>
               <p>'There!' said the woman, 'now you go. They'll cry together, and 
comfort together, better nor any one but a child can do. I'll stop with her 
as long as I'm needed, and if yo' come to-morrow, yo' can have a deal o' wise 
talk with her, that she's not up to to-day.' 
</p>
               <p>As Margaret and her father 
went slowly up the street, she paused at Higgins's closed door. 
</p>
               <p>'Shall we 
go in?' asked her father. 'I was thinking of him too.' 
</p>
               <p>They knocked. There 
was no answer, so they tried the door. It was bolted, but they thought they 
heard him moving within. 
</p>
               <p>'Nicholas!' said Margaret. There was no answer, 
and they might have gone away, believing the house to be empty, if there had 
not been some accidental fall, as of a book, within. 
</p>
               <p>'Nicholas!' said 
Margaret again. 'It is only us. Won't you let us come in?' 
</p>
               <p>'No,' said he. 
'I spoke as plain as I could, 'bout using words, when I bolted th' door. Let 
me be, this day.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale would have urged their desire, but Margaret 
placed her finger on his lips. 
</p>
               <p>'I don't wonder at it,' said she. 'I myself 
long to be alone. It seems the only thing to do one good after a day like 
this.' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.12" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XII</head>
               <head>LOOKING SOUTH</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'A spade! a rake! a hoe! </l>
                  <l>A pickaxe or a bill! </l>
                  <l>A hook to reap, or a scythe to mow, </l>
                  <l>A flail, or what ye will— </l>
                  <l>And here's a ready hand </l>
                  <l>To ply the needful tool, </l>
                  <l>And skill'd enough, by lessons rough, </l>
                  <l>In Labour's rugged school.' </l>
                  <l>HOOD. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Higgins's door was locked the next day, when they went to pay their call 
on the widow Boucher: but they learnt this time from an officious neighbour, 
that he was really from home. He had, however, been in to see Mrs. Boucher, 
before starting on his day's business, whatever that was. It was but an 
unsatisfactory visit to Mrs. Boucher; she considered herself as an ill-used 
woman by her poor husband's suicide; and there was quite germ of truth enough 
in this idea to make it a very difficult one to refute. Still, it was 
unsatisfactory to see how completely her thoughts were turned upon herself 
and her own position, and this selfishness extended even to her relations 
with her children, whom she considered as incumbrances, even in the very 
midst of her somewhat animal affection for them. Margaret tried to make 
acquaintances with one or two of them, while her father strove to raise the 
widow's thoughts into some higher channel than that of mere helpless 
querulousness. She found that the children were truer and simpler mourners 
than the widow. Daddy had been a kind daddy to them; each could tell, in 
their eager stammering way, of some tenderness shown some indulgence granted 
by the lost father. 
</p>
               <p>'Is yon thing upstairs really him? it doesna look like 
him. I'm feared on it, and I never was feared o' daddy.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret's heart 
bled to hear that the mother, in her selfish requirement of sympathy, had 
taken her children upstairs to see their disfigured father. It was 
intermingling the coarseness of horror with the profoundness of natural grief 
She tried to turn their thoughts in some other direction; on what they could 
do for mother; on what—for this was a more efficacious way of putting 
it—what father would have wished them to do. Margaret was more successful 
than Mr. Hale in her efforts. The children seeing their little duties lie in 
action close around them, began to try each one to do something that she 
suggested towards redding up the slatternly room. But her father set too high 
a standard, and too abstract a view, before the indolent invalid. She could 
not rouse her torpid mind into any vivid imagination of what her husband's 
misery might have been before he had resorted to the last terrible step; she 
could only look upon it as it affected herself; she could not enter into the 
enduring mercy of the God who had not specially interposed to prevent the 
water from drowning her prostrate husband; and although she was secretly 
blaming her husband for having fallen into such drear despair, and denying 
that he had any excuse for his last rash act, she was inveterate in her abuse 
of all who could by any possibility be supposed to have driven him to such 
desperation. The masters—Mr. Thornton in particular, whose mill had been 
attacked by Boucher, and who, after the warrant had been issued for his 
apprehension on the charge of rioting, had caused it to be withdrawn,—the 
Union, of which Higgins was the representative to the poor woman,—the 
children so numerous, so hungry, and so noisy—all made up one great army of 
personal enemies, whose fault it was that she was now a helpless 
widow. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret heard enough of this unreasonableness to dishearten her; 
and when they came away she found it impossible to cheer her father. 
</p>
               <p>'It is 
the town life,' said she. 'Their nerves are quickened by the haste and bustle 
and speed of everything around them, to say nothing of the confinement in 
these pent-up houses, which of itself is enough to induce depression and 
worry of spirits. Now in the country, people live so much more out of doors, 
even children, and even in the winter.' 
</p>
               <p>'But people must live in towns. And 
in the country some get such stagnant habits of mind that they are almost 
fatalists.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes; I acknowledge that. I suppose each mode of life produces 
its own trials and its own temptations. The dweller in towns must find it as 
difficult to be patient and calm, as the country-bred man must find it to be 
active, and equal to unwonted emergencies. Both must find it hard to realise 
a future of any kind; the one because the present is so living and hurrying 
and close around him; the other because his life tempts him to revel in the 
mere sense of animal existence, not knowing of, and consequently not caring 
for any pungency of pleasure for the attainment of which he can plan, and 
deny himself and look forward.' 
</p>
               <p>'And thus both the necessity for 
engrossment, and the stupid content in the present, produce the same effects. 
But this poor Mrs. Boucher! how little we can do for her.' 
</p>
               <p>'And yet we dare 
not leave her without our efforts, although they may seem so useless. Oh 
papa! it's a hard world to live in!' 
</p>
               <p>'So it is, my child. We feel it so 
just now, at any rate; but we have been very happy, even in the midst of our 
sorrow. What a pleasure Frederick's visit was!' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, that it was,' said 
Margaret; brightly. 'It was such a charming, snatched, forbidden thing.' But 
she suddenly stopped speaking. She had spoiled the remembrance of Frederick's 
visit to herself by her own cowardice. Of all faults the one she most 
despised in others was the want of bravery; the meanness of heart which leads 
to untruth. And here had she been guilty of it!  Then came the thought of Mr. 
Thornton's cognisance of her falsehood. She wondered if she should have 
minded detection half so much from any one else. She tried herself in 
imagination with her Aunt Shaw and Edith; with her father; with Captain and 
Mr. Lennox; with Frederick. The thought of the last knowing what she had 
done, even in his own behalf, was the most painful, for the brother and 
sister were in the first flush of their mutual regard and love; but even any 
fall in Frederick's opinion was as nothing to the shame, the shrinking shame 
she felt at the thought of meeting Mr. Thornton again. And yet she longed to 
see him, to get it over; to understand where she stood in his opinion. Her 
cheeks burnt as she recollected how proudly she had implied an objection to 
trade (in the early days of their acquaintance), because it too often led to 
the deceit of passing off inferior for superior goods, in the one branch; of 
assuming credit for wealth and resources not possessed, in the other. She 
remembered Mr. Thornton's look of calm disdain, as in few words he gave her 
to understand that, in the great scheme of commerce, all dishonourable ways 
of acting were sure to prove injurious in the long run, and that, testing 
such actions simply according to the poor standard of success, there was 
folly and not wisdom in all such, and every kind of deceit in trade, as well 
as in other things. She remembered—she, then strong in her own untempted 
truth—asking him, if he did not think that buying in the cheapest and 
selling in the dearest market proved some want of the transparent justice 
which is so intimately connected with the idea of truth: and she had used the 
word chivalric—and her father had corrected her with the higher word, 
Christian; and so drawn the argument upon himself, while she sate silent by 
with a slight feeling of contempt. 
</p>
               <p>No more contempt for her!—no more talk 
about the chivalric! Henceforward she must feel humiliated and disgraced in 
his sight. But when should she see him? Her heart leaped up in apprehension 
at every ring of the door-bell; and yet when it fell down to calmness, she 
felt strangely saddened and sick at heart at each disappointment. It was very 
evident that her father expected to see him, and was surprised that he did 
not come. The truth was, that there were points in their conversation the 
other night on which they had no time then to enlarge; but it had been 
understood that if possible on the succeeding evening—if not then, at least 
the very first evening that Mr. Thornton could command,—they should meet for 
further discussion. Mr. Hale had looked forward to this meeting ever since 
they had parted. He had not yet resumed the instruction to his pupils, which 
he had relinquished at the commencement of his wife's more serious illness, 
so he had fewer occupations than usual; and the great interest of the last 
day or so (Boucher's suicide) had driven him back with more eagerness than 
ever upon his speculations. He was restless all evening. He kept saying, 'I 
quite expected to have seen Mr. Thornton. I think the messenger who brought 
the book last night must have had some note, and forgot to deliver it. Do you 
think there has been any message left to-day?' 
</p>
               <p>'I will go and inquire, 
papa,' said Margaret, after the changes on these sentences had been rung once 
or twice. 'Stay, there's a ring!' She sate down instantly, and bent her head 
attentively over her work. She heard a step on the stairs, but it was only 
one, and she knew it was Dixon's. She lifted up her head and sighed, and 
believed she felt glad. 
</p>
               <p>'It's that Higgins, sir. He wants to see you, or 
else Miss Hale. Or it might be Miss Hale first, and then you, sir; for he's 
in a strange kind of way. 
</p>
               <p>'He had better come up here, Dixon; and then he 
can see us both, and choose which he likes for his listener.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! very 
well, sir. I've no wish to hear what he's got to say, I'm sure; only, if you 
could see his shoes, I'm sure you'd say the kitchen was the fitter 
place. 
</p>
               <p>'He can wipe them, I suppose, said Mr. Hale. So Dixon flung off, to 
bid him walk up-stairs. She was a little mollified, however, when he looked 
at his feet with a hesitating air; and then, sitting down on the;bottom 
stair, he took off the offending shoes, and without a word walked 
up-stairs. 
</p>
               <p>'Sarvant, sir!' said he, slicking his hair down when he came 
into the room. 'If hoo'l excuse me (looking at Margaret) for being i' my 
stockings; I'se been tramping a' day, and streets is none o' th' 
cleanest.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret thought that fatigue might account for the change in 
his manner, for he was unusually quiet and subdued; and he had evidently some 
difficulty in saying what he came to say. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale's ever-ready sympathy 
with anything of shyness or hesitation, or want of self-possession, made him 
come to his aid. 
</p>
               <p>'We shall have tea up directly, and then you'll take a cup 
with us, Mr. Higgins. I am sure you are tired, if you've been out much this 
wet relaxing day. Margaret, my dear, can't you hasten tea?' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret could 
only hasten tea by taking the preparation of it into her own hands, and so 
offending Dixon, who was emerging out of her sorrow for her late mistress 
into a very touchy, irritable state. But Martha, like all who came in contact 
with Margaret—even Dixon herself, in the long run—felt it a pleasure and an 
honour to forward any of her wishes; and her readiness, and Margaret's sweet 
forbearance, soon made Dixon ashamed of herself. 
</p>
               <p>'Why master and you must 
always be asking the lower classes up-stairs, since we came to Milton, I 
cannot understand. Folk at Helstone were never brought higher than the 
kitchen; and I've let one or two of them know before now that they might 
think it an honour to be even there.' 
</p>
               <p>Higgins found it easier to unburden 
himself to one than to two. After Margaret left the room, he went to the door 
and assured himself that it was shut. Then he came and stood close to Mr. 
Hale. 
</p>
               <p>'Master,' said he, 'yo'd not guess easy what I've been tramping after 
to-day. Special if yo' remember my manner o' talk yesterday. I've been a 
seeking work. I have' said he. 'I said to mysel', I'd keep a civil tongue in 
my head, let who would say what 'em would. I'd set my teeth into my tongue 
sooner nor speak i' haste. For that man's sake—yo' understand,' jerking his 
thumb back in some unknown direction. 
</p>
               <p>'No, I don't,' said Mr. Hale, seeing 
he waited for some kind of assent, and completely bewildered as to who 'that 
man' could be. 
</p>
               <p>'That chap as lies theer,' said he, with another jerk. 'Him 
as went and drownded himself, poor chap! I did na' think he'd got it in him 
to lie still and let th' water creep o'er him till he died. Boucher, yo' 
know.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, I know now,' said Mr. Hale. 'Go back to what you were saying: 
you'd not speak in haste——' 
</p>
               <p>'For his sake. Yet not for his sake; for 
where'er he is, and whate'er, he'll ne'er know other clemming or cold again; 
but for the wife's sake, and the bits o' childer.' 
</p>
               <p>'God bless you!' said 
Mr. Hale, starting up; then, calming down, he said breathlessly, 'What do you 
mean? Tell me out.' 
</p>
               <p>'I have telled yo',' said Higgins, a little surprised 
at Mr. Hale's agitation. 'I would na ask for work for mysel'; but them's left 
as a charge on me. I reckon, I would ha guided Boucher to a better end; but I 
set him off o' th' road, and so I mun answer for him.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale got hold of 
Higgins's hand and shook it heartily, without speaking. Higgins looked 
awkward and ashamed. 
</p>
               <p>'Theer, theer, master! Theer's ne'er a man, to call a 
man, amongst us, but what would do th' same; ay, and better too; for, belie' 
me, I'se ne'er got a stroke o' work, nor yet a sight of any. For all I telled 
Hamper that, let alone his pledge—which I would not sign—no, I could na, 
not e'en for this—he'd ne'er ha' such a worker on his mill as I would 
be—he'd ha' none o' me—no more would none o' th' others. I'm a poor black 
feckless sheep—childer may clem for aught I can do, unless, parson, yo'd 
help me?' 
</p>
               <p>'Help you!  How? I would do anything,—but what can I 
do?' 
</p>
               <p>'Miss there'—for Margaret had re-entered the room, and stood silent, 
listening—'has often talked grand o' the South, and the ways down there. Now 
I dunnot know how far off it is, but I've been thinking if I could get 'em 
down theer, where food is cheap and wages good, and all the folk, rich and 
poor, master and man, friendly like; yo' could, may be, help me to work. I'm 
not forty-five, and I've a deal o' strength in me, measter.' 
</p>
               <p>'But what kind 
of work could you do, my man?' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, I reckon I could spade a 
bit——' 
</p>
               <p>'And for that,' said Margaret, stepping forwards, 'for anything 
you could do, Higgins, with the best will in the world, you would, may be, 
get nine shillings a week; may be ten, at the outside. Food is much the same 
as here, except that you might have a little garden——' 
</p>
               <p>'The childer could 
work at that,' said he. 'I'm sick o' Milton anyways, and Milton is sick o' 
me.' 
</p>
               <p>'You must not go to the South,' said Margaret, 'for all that. You 
could not stand it. You would have to be out all weathers. It would kill you 
with rheumatism. The mere bodily work at your time of life would break you 
down. The fare is far different to what you have been accustomed to.' 
</p>
               <p>'I'se 
nought particular about my meat,' said he, as if offended. 
</p>
               <p>'But you've 
reckoned on having butcher's meat once a day, if you're in work; pay for that 
out of your ten shillings, and keep those poor children if you can. I owe it 
to you—since it's my way of talking that has set you off on this idea—to 
put it all clear before you. You would not bear the dulness of the life; you 
don't know what it is; it would eat you away like rust. Those that have lived 
there all their lives, are used to soaking in the stagnant waters. They 
labour on, from day to day, in the great solitude of steaming fields—never 
speaking or lifting up their poor, bent, downcast heads. The hard spade-work 
robs their brain of life; the sameness of their toil deadens their 
imagination; they don't care to meet to talk over thoughts and speculations, 
even of the weakest, wildest kind, after their work is done; they go home 
brutishly tired, poor creatures!  caring for nothing but food and rest. You 
could not stir them up into any companionship, which you get in a town as 
plentiful as the air you breathe, whether it be good or bad—and that I don't 
know; but I do know, that you of all men are not one to bear a life among 
such labourers. What would be peace to them would be eternal fretting to you. 
Think no more of it, Nicholas, I beg. Besides, you could never pay to get 
mother and children all there—that's one good thing.' 
</p>
               <p>'I've reckoned for 
that. One house mun do for us a', and the furniture o' t'other would go a 
good way. And men theer mun have their families to keep—mappen six or seven 
childer. God help 'em!' said he, more convinced by his own presentation of 
the facts than by all Margaret had said, and suddenly renouncing the idea, 
which had but recently formed itself in a brain worn out by the day's fatigue 
and anxiety. 'God help 'em! North an' South have each getten their own 
troubles. If work's sure and steady theer, labour's paid at starvation 
prices; while here we'n rucks o' money coming in one quarter, and ne'er a 
farthing th' next. For sure, th' world is in a confusion that passes me or 
any other man to understand; it needs fettling, and who's to fettle it, if 
it's as yon folks say, and there's nought but what we see?' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale was 
busy cutting bread and butter; Margaret was glad of this, for she saw that 
Higgins was better left to himself: that if her father began to speak ever so 
mildly on the subject of Higgins's thoughts, the latter would consider 
himself challenged to an argument, and would feel himself bound to maintain 
his own ground. She and her father kept up an indifferent conversation until 
Higgins, scarcely aware whether he ate or not, had made a very substantial 
meal. Then he pushed his chair away from the table, and tried to take an 
interest in what they were saying; but it was of no use; and he fell back 
into dreamy gloom. Suddenly, Margaret said (she had been thinking of it for 
some time, but the words had stuck in her throat), 'Higgins, have you been to 
Marlborough Mills to seek for work?' 
</p>
               <p>'Thornton's?' asked he. 'Ay, I've been 
at Thornton's.' 
</p>
               <p>'And what did he say?' 
</p>
               <p>'Such a chap as me is not like to 
see the measter. Th' o'erlooker bid me go and be d——d.' 
</p>
               <p>'I wish you had 
seen Mr. Thornton,' said Mr. Hale. 'He might not have given you work, but he 
would not have used such language.' 
</p>
               <p>'As to th' language, I'm welly used to 
it; it dunnot matter to me. I'm not nesh mysel' when I'm put out. It were th' 
fact that I were na wanted theer, no more nor ony other place, as I 
minded.' 
</p>
               <p>'But I wish you had seen Mr. Thornton,' repeated Margaret. 'Would 
you go again—it's a good deal to ask, I know—but would you go to-morrow and 
try him? I should be so glad if you would.' 
</p>
               <p>'I'm afraid it would be of no 
use,' said Mr. Hale, in a low voice. 'It would be better to let me speak to 
him.' Margaret still looked at Higgins for his answer. Those grave soft eyes 
of hers were difficult to resist. He gave a great sigh. 
</p>
               <p>'It would tax my 
pride above a bit; if it were for mysel', I could stand a deal o' clemming 
first; I'd sooner knock him down than ask a favour from him. I'd a deal 
sooner be flogged mysel'; but yo're not a common wench, axing yo'r pardon, 
nor yet have yo' common ways about yo'. I'll e'en make a wry face, and go at 
it to-morrow. Dunna yo' think that he'll do it. That man has it in him to be 
burnt at the stake afore he'll give in. I do it for yo'r sake, Miss Hale, and 
it's first time in my life as e'er I give way to a woman. Neither my wife nor 
Bess could e'er say that much again me.' 
</p>
               <p>'All the more do I thank you,' 
said Margaret, smiling. 'Though I don't believe you: I believe you have just 
given way to wife and daughter as much as most men.' 
</p>
               <p>'And as to Mr. 
Thornton,' said Mr. Hale, 'I'll give you a note to him, which, I think I may 
venture to say, will ensure you a hearing.' 
</p>
               <p>'I thank yo' kindly, sir, but 
I'd as lief stand on my own bottom. I dunnot stomach the notion of having 
favour curried for me, by one as doesn't know the ins and outs of the 
quarrel. Meddling 'twixt master and man is liker meddling 'twixt husband and 
wife than aught else: it takes a deal o' wisdom for to do ony good. I'll 
stand guard at the lodge door. I'll stand there fro' six in the morning till 
I get speech on him. But I'd liefer sweep th' streets, if paupers had na' got 
hold on that work. Dunna yo' hope, miss. There'll be more chance o' getting 
milk out of a flint. I wish yo' a very good night, and many thanks to 
yo'.' 
</p>
               <p>'You'll find your shoe's by the kitchen fire; I took them there to 
dry,' said Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>He turned round and looked at her steadily, and then 
he brushed his lean hand across his eyes and went his way. 
</p>
               <p>'How proud that 
man is!' said her father, who was a little annoyed at the manner in which 
Higgins had declined his intercession with Mr. Thornton. 
</p>
               <p>'He is,' said 
Margaret; 'but what grand makings of a man there are in him, pride and 
all.' 
</p>
               <p>'It's amusing to see how he evidently respects the part in Mr. 
Thornton's character which is like his own.' 
</p>
               <p>'There's granite in all these 
northern people, papa, is there not?' 
</p>
               <p>'There was none in poor Boucher, I am 
afraid; none in his wife either.' 
</p>
               <p>'I should guess from their tones that 
they had Irish blood in them. I wonder what success he'll have to-morrow. If 
he and Mr. Thornton would speak out together as man to man—if Higgins would 
forget that Mr. Thornton was a master, and speak to him as he does to us—and 
if Mr. Thornton would be patient enough to listen to him with his human 
heart, not with his master's ears—' 
</p>
               <p>'You are getting to do Mr. Thornton 
justice at last, Margaret,' said her father, pinching her ear. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret had 
a strange choking at her heart, which made her unable to answer. 'Oh!' 
thought she, 'I wish I were a man, that I could go and force him to express 
his disapprobation, and tell him honestly that I knew I deserved it. It seems 
hard to lose him as a friend just when I had begun to feel his value. How 
tender he was with dear mamma! If it were only for her sake, I wish he would 
come, and then at least I should know how much I was abased in his 
eyes.' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.13" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XIII</head>
               <head>PROMISES FULFILLED</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Then proudly, proudly up she rose, </l>
                  <l>Tho' the tear was in her e'e, </l>
                  <l>“Whate'er ye say, think what ye may, </l>
                  <l>Ye's get na word frae me!”' </l>
                  <l>SCOTCH BALLAD. </l>
               </q>
               <p>It was not merely that Margaret was known to Mr. Thornton to have spoken 
falsely,—though she imagined that for this reason only was she so turned in 
his opinion,—but that this falsehood of hers bore a distinct reference in 
his mind to some other lover. He could not forget the fond and earnest look 
that had passed between her and some other man—the attitude of familiar 
confidence, if not of positive endearment. The thought of this perpetually 
stung him; it was a picture before his eyes, wherever he went and whatever he 
was doing. In addition to this (and he ground his teeth as he remembered it), 
was the hour, dusky twilight; the place, so far away from home, and 
comparatively unfrequented. His nobler self had said at first, that all this 
last might be accidental, innocent, justifiable; but once allow her right to 
love and be beloved (and had he any reason to deny her right?—had not her 
words been severely explicit when she cast his love away from her?), she 
might easily have been beguiled into a longer walk, on to a later hour than 
she had anticipated. But that falsehood! which showed a fatal consciousness 
of something wrong, and to be concealed, which was unlike her. He did her 
that justice, though all the time it would have been a relief to believe her 
utterly unworthy of his esteem. It was this that made the misery—that he 
passionately loved her, and thought her, even with all her faults, more 
lovely and more excellent than any other woman; yet he deemed her so attached 
to some other man, so led away by her affection for him as to violate her 
truthful nature. The very falsehood that stained her, was a proof how blindly 
she loved another—this dark, slight, elegant, handsome man—while he himself 
was rough, and stern, and strongly made. He lashed himself into an agony of 
fierce jealousy. He thought of that look, that attitude!—how he would have 
laid his life at her feet for such tender glances, such fond detention! He 
mocked at himself, for having valued the mechanical way in which she had 
protected him from the fury of the mob; now he had seen how soft and 
bewitching she looked when with a man she really loved. He remembered, point 
by point, the sharpness of her words—'There was not a man in all that crowd 
for whom she would not have done as much, far more readily than for him.' He 
shared with the mob, in her desire of averting bloodshed from them; but this 
man, this hidden lover, shared with nobody; he had looks, words, 
hand-cleavings, lies, concealment, all to himself. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton was 
conscious that he had never been so irritable as he was now, m all his life 
long; he felt inclined to give a short abrupt answer, more like a bark than a 
speech, to every one that asked him a question; and this consciousness hurt 
his pride he had always piqued himself on his self-control, and control 
himself he would. So the manner was subdued to a quiet deliberation, but the 
matter was even harder and sterner than common. He was more than usually 
silent at home; employing his evenings in a continual pace backwards and 
forwards, which would have annoyed his mother exceedingly if it had been 
practised by any one else; and did not tend to promote any forbearance on her 
part even to this beloved son. 
</p>
               <p>'Can you stop—can you sit down for a 
moment? I have something to say to you, if you would give up that everlasting 
walk, walk, walk.' 
</p>
               <p>He sat down instantly, on a chair against the wall. 
</p>
               <p>'I 
want to speak to you about Betsy. She says she must leave us; that her 
lover's death has so affected her spirits she can't give her heart to her 
work.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very well. I suppose other cooks are to be met with.' 
</p>
               <p>'That's so 
like a man. It's not merely the cooking, it is that she knows all the ways of 
the house. Besides, she tells me something about your friend Miss 
Hale.' 
</p>
               <p>'Miss Hale is no friend of mine. Mr. Hale is my friend.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am 
glad to hear you say so, for if she had been your friend, what Betsy says 
would have annoyed you.' 
</p>
               <p>'Let me hear it,' said he, with the extreme 
quietness of manner he had been assuming for the last few days. 
</p>
               <p>'Betsy 
says, that the night on which her lover—I forget his name—for she always 
calls him “he”——' 
</p>
               <p>'Leonards.' 
</p>
               <p>'The night on which Leonards was last 
seen at the station—when he was last seen on duty, in fact—Miss Hale was 
there, walking about with a young man who, Betsy believes, killed Leonards by 
some blow or push.' 
</p>
               <p>'Leonards was not killed by any blow or push.' 
</p>
               <p>'How 
do you know?' 
</p>
               <p>'Because I distinctly put the question to the surgeon of the 
Infirmary. He told me there was an internal disease of long standing, caused 
by Leonards' habit of drinking to excess; that the fact of his becoming 
rapidly worse while in a state of intoxication, settled the question as to 
whether the last fatal attack was caused by excess of drinking, or the 
fall.' 
</p>
               <p>'The fall! What fall?' 
</p>
               <p>'Caused by the blow or push of which Betsy 
speaks.' 
</p>
               <p>'Then there was a blow or push?' 
</p>
               <p>'I believe so.' 
</p>
               <p>'And who did 
it?' 
</p>
               <p>'As there was no inquest, in consequence of the doctor's opinion, I 
cannot tell you.' 
</p>
               <p>'But Miss Hale was there?' 
</p>
               <p>No answer. 
</p>
               <p>'And with a 
young man?' 
</p>
               <p>Still no answer. At last he said: 'I tell you, mother, that 
there was no inquest—no inquiry. No judicial inquiry, I mean.' 
</p>
               <p>'Betsy says 
that Woolmer (some man she knows, who is in a grocer's shop out at Crampton) 
can swear that Miss Hale was at the station at that hour, walking backwards 
and forwards with a young man.' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't see what we have to do with that. 
Miss Hale is at liberty to please herself.' 
</p>
               <p>'I'm glad to hear you say so,' 
said Mrs. Thornton, eagerly. 'It certainly signifies very little to us—not 
at all to you, after what has passed! but I—I made a promise to Mrs. Hale, 
that I would not allow her daughter to go wrong without advising and 
remonstrating with her. I shall certainly let her know my opinion of such 
conduct.' 
</p>
               <p>'I do not see any harm in what she did that evening,' said Mr. 
Thornton, getting up, and coming near to his mother; he stood by the 
chimney-piece with his face turned away from the room. 
</p>
               <p>'You would not have 
approved of Fanny's being seen out, after dark, in rather a lonely place, 
walking about with a young man. I say nothing of the taste which could choose 
the time, when her mother lay unburied, for such a promenade. Should you have 
liked your sister to have been noticed by a grocer's assistant for doing 
so?' 
</p>
               <p>'In the first place, as it is not many years since I myself was a 
draper's assistant, the mere circumstance of a grocer's assistant noticing 
any act does not alter the character of the act to me. And in the next place, 
I see a great deal of difference between Miss Hale and Fanny. I can imagine 
that the one may have weighty reasons, which may and ought to make her 
overlook any seeming Impropriety in her conduct. I never knew Fanny have 
weighty reasons for anything. Other people must guard her. I believe Miss 
Hale is a guardian to herself' 
</p>
               <p>'A pretty character of your sister, indeed! 
Really, John, one would have thought Miss Hale had done enough to make you 
clear-sighted. She drew you on to an offer, by a bold display of pretended 
regard for you,—to play you off against this very young man, I've no doubt. 
Her whole conduct is clear to me now. You believe he is her lover, I 
suppose—you agree to that.' 
</p>
               <p>He turned round to his mother; his face was 
very gray and grim. 'Yes, mother. I do believe he is her lover.' When he had 
spoken, he turned round again; he writhed himself about, like one in bodily 
pain. He leant his face against his hand. Then before she could speak, he 
turned sharp again: 
</p>
               <p>'Mother. He is her lover, whoever he is; but she may 
need help and womanly counsel;—there may be difficulties or temptations 
which I don't know. I fear there are. I don't want to know what they are; but 
as you have ever been a good—ay! and a tender mother to me, go to her, and 
gain her confidence, and tell her what is best to be done. I know that 
something is wrong; some dread, must be a terrible torture to her.' 
</p>
               <p>'For 
God's sake, John!' said his mother, now really shocked, 'what do you mean? 
What do you mean? What do you know?' 
</p>
               <p>He did not reply to her. 
</p>
               <p>'John! I 
don't know what I shan't think unless you speak. You have no right to say 
what you have done against her.' 
</p>
               <p>'Not against her, mother! I <hi>could</hi>
not speak against her.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well! you have no right to say what you have done, 
unless you say more. These half-expressions are what ruin a woman's 
character.' 
</p>
               <p>'Her character! Mother, you do not dare—' he faced about, and 
looked into her face with his flaming eyes. Then, drawing himself up into 
determined composure and dignity, he said, 'I will not say any more than 
this, which is neither more nor less than the simple truth, and I am sure you 
believe me,—I have good reason to believe, that Miss Hale is in some strait 
and difficulty connected with an attachment which, of itself, from my 
knowledge of Miss Hale's character, is perfectly innocent and right. What my 
reason is, I refuse to tell. But never let me hear any one say a word against 
her, implying any more serious imputation than that she now needs the counsel 
of some kind and gentle woman. You promised Mrs. Hale to be that 
woman!' 
</p>
               <p>No!' said Mrs. Thornton. 'I am happy to say, I did not promise 
kindness and gentleness, for I felt at the time that it might be out of my 
power to render these to one of Miss Hale's character and disposition. I 
promised counsel and advice, such as I would give to my own daughter; I shall 
speak to her as I would do to Fanny, if she had gone gallivanting with a 
young man in the dusk. I shall speak with relation to the circumstances I 
know, without being influenced either one way or another by the “strong 
reasons” which you will not confide to me. Then I shall have fulfilled my 
promise, and done my duty.' 
</p>
               <p>'She will never bear it,' said he 
passionately. 
</p>
               <p>'She will have to bear it, if I speak in her dead mother's 
name.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well!' said he, breaking away, 'don't tell me any more about it. I 
cannot endure to think of it. It will be better that you should speak to her 
any way, than that she should not be spoken to at all.—Oh! that look of 
love!' continued he, between his teeth, as he bolted himself into his own 
private room. 'And that cursed lie; which showed some terrible shame in the 
background, to be kept from the light in which I thought she lived 
perpetually! Oh, Margaret, Margaret! Mother, how you have tortured me! Oh! 
Margaret, could you not have loved me? I am but uncouth and hard, but I would 
never have led you into any falsehood for me.' 
</p>
               <p>The more Mrs. Thornton 
thought over what her son had said, in pleading for a merciful judgment for 
Margaret's indiscretion, the more bitterly she felt inclined towards her. She 
took a savage pleasure in the idea of 'speaking her mind' to her, in the 
guise of fulfilment of a duty. She enjoyed the thought of showing herself 
untouched by the 'glamour,' which she was well aware Margaret had the power 
of throwing over many people. She snorted scornfully over the picture of the 
beauty of her victim; her jet black hair, her clear smooth skin, her lucid 
eyes would not help to save her one word of the just and stern reproach which 
Mrs. Thornton spent half the night in preparing to her mind. 
</p>
               <p>'Is Miss Hale 
within?' She knew she was, for she had seen her at the window, and she had 
her feet inside the little hall before Martha had half answered her 
question. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was sitting alone, writing to Edith, and giving her many 
particulars of her mother's last days. It was a softening employment, and she 
had to brush away the unbidden tears as Mrs. Thornton was announced. 
</p>
               <p>She 
was so gentle and ladylike in her mode of reception that her visitor was 
somewhat daunted; and it became impossible to utter the speech, so easy of 
arrangement with no one to address it to. Margaret's low rich voice was 
softer than usual; her manner more gracious, because in her heart she was 
feeling very grateful to Mrs. Thornton for the courteous attention of her 
call. She exerted herself to find subjects of interest for conversation; 
praised Martha, the servant whom Mrs. Thornton had found for them; had asked 
Edith for a little Greek air, about which she had spoken to Miss Thornton. 
Mrs. Thornton was fairly discomfited. Her sharp Damascus blade seemed out of 
place, and useless among rose-leaves. She was silent, because she was trying 
to task herself up to her duty At last, she stung herself into its 
performance by a suspicion which, in spite of all probability, she allowed to 
cross her mind, that all this sweetness was put on with a view of 
propitiating Mr. Thornton; that, somehow, the other attachment had fallen 
through, and that it suited Miss Hale's purpose to recall her rejected lover. 
Poor Margaret! there was perhaps so much truth in the suspicion as this: that 
Mrs. Thornton was the mother of one whose regard she valued, and feared to 
have lost; and this thought unconsciously added to her natural desire of 
pleasing one who was showing her kindness by her visit. Mrs. Thornton stood 
up to go, but yet she seemed to have something more to say. She cleared her 
throat and began: 
</p>
               <p>'Miss Hale, I have a duty to perform. I promised your 
poor mother that, as far as my poor judgment went, I would not allow you to 
act in any way wrongly, or (she softened her speech down a little here) 
inadvertently, without remonstrating; at least, without offering advice, 
whether you took it or not.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret stood before her, blushing like any 
culprit, with her eyes dilating as she gazed at Mrs. Thornton. She thought 
she had come to speak to her about the falsehood she had told—that Mr. 
Thornton had employed her to explain the danger she had exposed herself to, 
of being confuted in full court! and although her heart sank to think he had 
not rather chosen to come himself, and upbraid her, and receive her 
penitence, and restore her again to his good opinion, yet she was too much 
humbled not to bear any blame on this subject patiently and meekly. 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. 
Thornton went on: 
</p>
               <p>'At first, when I heard from one of my servants, that you 
had been seen walking about with a gentleman, so far from home as the Outwood 
station, at such a time of the evening, I could hardly believe it. But my 
son, I am sorry to say, confirmed her story. It was indiscreet, to say the 
least; many a young woman has lost her character before now——' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret's 
eyes flashed fire. This was a new idea—this was too insulting. If Mrs. 
Thornton had spoken to her about the lie she had told, well and good—she 
would have owned it, and humiliated herself But to interfere with her 
conduct—to speak of her character! she—Mrs. Thornton, a mere stranger—it 
was too impertinent! She would not answer her—not one word. Mrs. Thornton 
saw the battle-spirit in Margaret's eyes, and it called. up her combativeness 
also. 
</p>
               <p>'For your mother's sake, I have thought it right to warn you against 
such improprieties; they must degrade you in the long run in the estimation 
of the world, even if in fact they do not lead you to positive harm.' 
</p>
               <p>'For 
my mother's sake,' said Margaret, in a tearful voice, 'I will bear much; but 
I cannot bear everything. She never meant me to be exposed to insult, I am 
sure.' 
</p>
               <p>'Insult, Miss Hale!' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, madam,' said Margaret more steadily, 
'it is insult. What do you know of me that should lead you to suspect—Oh!' 
said she, breaking down, and covering her face with her hands—'I know now, 
Mr. Thornton has told you——' 
</p>
               <p>'No, Miss Hale,' said Mrs. Thornton, her 
truthfulness causing her to arrest the confession Margaret was on the point 
of making, though her curiosity was itching to hear it. 'Stop. Mr. Thornton 
has told me nothing. You do not know my son. You are not worthy to know him. 
He said this. Listen, young lady, that you may understand, if you can, what 
sort of a man you rejected. This Milton manufacturer, his great tender heart 
scorned as it was scorned, said to me only last night, “Go to her. I have 
good reason to know that she is in some strait, arising out of some 
attachment; and she needs womanly counsel.” I believe those were his very 
words. Farther than that—beyond admitting the fact of your being at the 
Outwood station with a gentleman, on the evening of the twenty-sixth—he has 
said nothing—not one word against you. If he has knowledge of anything which 
should make you sob so, he keeps it to himself.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret's face was still 
hidden in her hands, the fingers of which were wet with tears. Mrs. Thornton 
was a little mollified. 
</p>
               <p>'Come, Miss Hale. There may be circumstances, I'll 
allow, that, if explained, may take off from the seeming 
impropriety.' 
</p>
               <p>Still no answer. Margaret was considering what to say; she 
wished to stand well with Mrs. Thornton; and yet she could not, might not, 
give any explanation. Mrs. Thornton grew impatient. 
</p>
               <p>'I shall be sorry to 
break off an acquaintance; but for Fanny's sake—as I told my son, if Fanny 
had done so we should consider it a great disgrace—and Fanny might be led 
away——' 
</p>
               <p>'I can give you no explanation,' said Margaret, in a low voice. 
'I have done wrong, but not in the way you think or know about. I think Mr. 
Thornton judges me more mercifully than you;'—she had hard work to keep 
herself from choking with her tears—'but, I believe, madam, you mean to do 
rightly.' 
</p>
               <p>'Thank you,' said Mrs. Thornton, drawing herself up; 'I was not 
aware that my meaning was doubted. It is the last time I shall interfere. I 
was unwilling to consent to do it, when your mother asked me. I had not 
approved of my son's attachment to you, while I only suspected it. You did 
not appear to me worthy of him. But when you compromised yourself as you did 
at the time of the riot, and exposed yourself to the comments of servants and 
workpeople, I felt it was no longer right to set myself against my son's wish 
of proposing to you—a wish, by the way, which he had always denied 
entertaining until the day of the riot.' Margaret winced, and drew in her 
breath with a long, hissing sound; of which, however, Mrs. Thornton took no 
notice. 'He came; you had apparently changed your mind. I told my son 
yesterday, that I thought it possible, short as was the interval, you might 
have heard or learnt something of this other lover——' 
</p>
               <p>'What must you 
think of me, madam?' asked Margaret, throwing her head back with proud 
disdain, till her throat curved outwards like a swan's. 'You can say nothing 
more, Mrs. Thornton. I decline every attempt to justify myself for anything. 
You must allow me to leave the room.' 
</p>
               <p>And she swept out of it with the 
noiseless grace of an offended princess. Mrs. Thornton had quite enough of 
natural humour to make her feel the ludicrousness of the position in which 
she was left. There was nothing for it but to show herself out. She was not 
particularly annoyed at Margaret's way of behaving. She did not care enough 
for her for that. She had taken Mrs. Thornton's remonstrance to the full as 
keenly to heart as that lady expected; and Margaret's passion at once 
mollified her visitor, far more than any silence or reserve could have done. 
It showed the effect of her words. 'My young lady,' thought Mrs. Thornton to 
herself; 'you've a pretty good temper of your own. If John and you had come 
together, he would have had to keep a tight hand over you, to make you know 
your place. But I don't think you will go a-walking again with your beau, at 
such an hour of the day, in a hurry. You've too much pride and spirit in you 
for that. I like to see a girl fly out at the notion of being talked about. 
It shows they're neither giddy, nor hold by nature. As for that girl, she 
might be hold, but she'd never be giddy. I'll do her that justice. Now as to 
Fanny, she'd be giddy, and not bold. She's no courage in her, poor 
thing!' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton was not spending the morning so satisfactorily as his 
mother. She, at any rate, was fulfilling her determined purpose. He was 
trying to understand where he stood; what damage the strike had done him. A 
good deal of his capital was locked up in new and expensive machinery; and he 
had also bought cotton largely, with a view to some great orders which he had 
in hand. The strike had thrown him terribly behindhand, as to the completion 
of these orders. Even with his own accustomed and skilled workpeople, he 
would have had some difficulty in fulfilling his engagements; as it was, the 
incompetence of the Irish hands, who had to be trained to their work, at a 
time requiring unusual activity, was a daily annoyance. 
</p>
               <p>It was not a 
favourable hour for Higgins to make his request. But he had promised Margaret 
to do it at any cost. So, though every moment added to his repugnance, his 
pride, and his sullenness of temper, he stood leaning against the dead wall, 
hour after hour, first on one leg, then on the other. At last the latch was 
sharply lifted, and out came Mr. Thornton. 
</p>
               <p>'I want for to speak to yo', 
sir.' 
</p>
               <p>'Can't stay now, my man. I'm too late as it is.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, sir, I 
reckon I can wait till yo' come back.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton was half way down the 
street. Higgins sighed. But it was no use. To catch him in the street was his 
only chance of seeing 'the measter;' if he had rung the lodge bell, or even 
gone up to the house to ask for him, he would have been referred to the 
overlooker. So he stood still again, vouchsafing no answer, but a short nod 
of recognition to the few men who knew and spoke to him, as the crowd drove 
out of the millyard at dinner-time, and scowling with all his might at the 
Irish 'knobsticks' who had just been imported. At last Mr. Thornton 
returned. 
</p>
               <p>'What! you there still!' 
</p>
               <p>'Ay, sir. I mun speak to yo'.' 
</p>
               <p>'Come 
in here, then. Stay, we'll go across the yard; the men are not come back, and 
we shall have it to ourselves. These good people, I see, are at dinner;' said 
he, closing the door of the porter's lodge. 
</p>
               <p>He stopped to speak to the 
overlooker. The latter said in a low tone: 
</p>
               <p>'I suppose you know, sir, that 
that man is Higgins, one of the leaders of the Union; he that made that 
speech in Hurstfield.' 
</p>
               <p>'No, I didn't,' said Mr. Thornton, looking round 
sharply at his follower. Higgins was known to him by name as a turbulent 
spirit. 
</p>
               <p>'Come along,' said he, and his tone was rougher than before. 'It is 
men such as this,' thought he, 'who interrupt commerce and injure the very 
town they live in: mere demagogues, lovers of power, at whatever cost to 
others.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, sir! what do you want with me?' said Mr. Thornton, facing 
round at him, as soon as they were in the counting-house of the mill. 
</p>
               <p>'My 
name is Higgins'— 
</p>
               <p>'I know that,' broke in Mr. Thornton. 'What do you want, 
Mr. Higgins? That's the question.' 
</p>
               <p>'I want work.' 
</p>
               <p>'Work! You're a pretty 
chap to come asking me for work. You don't want impudence, that's very 
clear.' 
</p>
               <p>'I've getten enemies and backbiters, like my betters; but I ne'er 
heerd o' ony of them calling me o'er-modest,' said Higgins. His blood was a 
little roused by Mr. Thornton's manner, more than by his words. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. 
Thornton saw a letter addressed to himself on the table. He took it up and 
read it through. At the end, he looked up and said, 'What are you waiting 
for?' 
</p>
               <p>'An answer to the question I axed.' 
</p>
               <p>'I gave it you before. Don't 
waste any more of your time.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yo' made a remark, sir, on my impudence: but 
I were taught that it was manners to say either “yes” or “no,” when I were 
axed a civil question. I should be thankfu' to yo' if yo'd give me work. 
Hamper will speak to my being a good hand.' 
</p>
               <p>'I've a notion you'd better not 
send me to Hamper to ask for a character, my man. I might hear more than 
you'd like.' 
</p>
               <p>'I'd take th' risk. Worst they could say of me is, that I did 
what I thought best, even to my own wrong.' 
</p>
               <p>'You'd better go and try them, 
then, and see whether they'll give you work. I've turned off upwards of a 
hundred of my best hands, for no other fault than following you and such as 
you; and d'ye think I'll take you on? I might as well put a firebrand into 
the midst of the cotton-waste.' 
</p>
               <p>Higgins turned away; then the recollection 
of Boucher came over him, and he faced round with the greatest concession he 
could persuade himself to make. 
</p>
               <p>'I'd promise yo', measter, I'd not speak a 
word as could do harm, if so be yo' did right by us; and I'd promise more: 
I'd promise that when I seed yo' going wrong, and acting unfair, I'd speak to 
yo' in private first; and that would be a fair warning. If yo' and I did na 
agree in our opinion o' your conduct, yo' might turn me off at an hour's 
notice.' 
</p>
               <p>'Upon my word, you don't think small beer of yourself! Hamper has 
had a loss of you. How came he to let you and your wisdom go?' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, we 
parted wi' mutual dissatisfaction. I wouldn't gi'e the pledge they were 
asking; and they wouldn't have me at no rate. So I'm free to make another 
engagement; and as I said before, though I should na' say it, I'm a good 
hand, measter, and a steady man—specially when I can keep fro' drink; and 
that I shall do now, if I ne'er did afore.' 
</p>
               <p>'That you may have more money 
laid up for another strike, I suppose?' 
</p>
               <p>'No! I'd be thankful if I was free 
to do that; it's for to keep th' widow and childer of a man who was drove mad 
by them knobsticks o' yourn; put out of his place by a Paddy that did na know 
weft fro' warp.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well!  you'd better turn to something else, if you've any 
such good intention in your head. I shouldn't advise you to stay in Milton: 
you're too well known here.' 
</p>
               <p>'If it were summer,' said Higgins, 'I'd take 
to Paddy's work, and go as a navvy, or haymaking, or summut, and ne'er see 
Milton again. But it's winter, and th' childer will clem.' 
</p>
               <p>'A pretty navvy 
you'd make! why, you couldn't do half a day's work at digging against an 
Irishman.' 
</p>
               <p>'I'd only charge half-a-day for th' twelve hours, if I could 
only do half-a-day's work in th' time. Yo're not knowing of any place, where 
they could gi' me a trial, away fro' the mills, if I'm such a firebrand? I'd 
take any wage they thought I was worth, for the sake of those 
childer.' 
</p>
               <p>'Don't you see what you would be? You'd be a knobstick. You'd be 
taking less wages than the other labourers—all for the sake of another man's 
children. Think how you'd abuse any poor fellow who was willing to take what 
he could get to keep his own children. You and your Union would soon be down 
upon him. No!  no!  if it's only for the recollection of the way in which 
you've used the poor knobsticks before now, I say No!  to your question. I'll 
not give you work. I won't say, I don't believe your pretext for coming and 
asking for work; I know nothing about it. It may be true, or it may not. It's 
a very unlikely story, at any rate. Let me pass. I'll not give you work. 
There's your answer.' 
</p>
               <p>'I hear, sir. I would na ha' troubled yo', but that I 
were bid to come, by one as seemed to think yo'd getten some soft place in, 
yo'r heart. Hoo were mistook, and I were misled. But I'm not the first man as 
is misled by a woman.' 
</p>
               <p>'Tell her to mind her own business the next time, 
instead of taking up your time and mine too. I believe women are at the 
bottom of every plague in this world. Be off with you.' 
</p>
               <p>'I'm obleeged to 
yo' for a' yo'r kindness, measter, and most of a' for yo'r civil way o' 
saying good-bye.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton did not deign a reply. But, looking out of 
the window a minute after, he was struck with the lean, bent figure going out 
of the yard: the heavy walk was in strange contrast with the resolute, clear 
determination of the man to speak to him. He crossed to the porter's 
lodge: 
</p>
               <p>'How long has that man Higgins been waiting to speak to me?' 
</p>
               <p>'He 
was outside the gate before eight o'clock, sir. I think he's been there ever 
since.' 
</p>
               <p>'And it is now—?' 
</p>
               <p>'Just one, sir.' 
</p>
               <p>'Five hours,' thought Mr. 
Thornton; 'it's a long time for a man to wait, doing nothing but first hoping 
and then fearing.' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.14" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XIV</head>
               <head>MAKING FRIENDS</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Nay, I have done; you get no more of me: </l>
                  <l>And I am glad, yea glad with all my heart, </l>
                  <l>That thus so clearly I myself am free.' </l>
                  <l>DRAYTON. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Margaret shut herself up in her own room, after she had quitted Mrs. 
Thornton. She began to walk backwards and forwards, in her old habitual way 
of showing agitation; but, then, remembering that in that slightly-built 
house every step was heard from one room to another, she sate down until she 
heard Mrs. Thornton go safely out of the house. She forced herself to 
recollect all the conversation that had passed between them; speech by 
speech, she compelled her memory to go through with it. At the end, she rose 
up, and said to herself, in a melancholy tone: 
</p>
               <p>'At any rate, her words do 
not touch me; they fall off from me; for I am innocent of all the motives she 
attributes to me. But still, it is hard to think that any one—any woman—can 
believe all this of another so easily. It is hard and sad. Where I have done 
wrong, she does not accuse me—she does not know. He never told her: I might 
have known he would not!' 
</p>
               <p>She lifted up her head, as if she took pride in 
any delicacy of feeling which Mr. Thornton had shown. Then, as a new thought 
came across her, she pressed her hands tightly together. 
</p>
               <p>'He, too, must 
take poor Frederick for some lover.' (She blushed as the word passed through 
her mind.) 'I see it now. It is not merely that he knows of my falsehood, but 
he believes that some one else cares for me; and that I——Oh dear!—oh dear! 
What shall I do? What do I mean? Why do I care what he thinks, beyond the 
mere loss of his good opinion as regards my telling the truth or not? I 
cannot tell. But I am very miserable!  Oh, how unhappy this last year has 
been!  I have passed out of childhood into old age. I have had no youth—no 
womanhood; the hopes of womanhood have closed for me—for I shall never 
marry; and I anticipate cares and sorrows just as if I were an old woman, and 
with the same fearful spirit. I am weary of this continual call upon me for 
strength. I could bear up for papa; because that is a natural, pious duty. 
And I think I could bear up against—at any rate, I could have the energy to 
resent, Mrs. Thornton's unjust, impertinent suspicions. But it is hard to 
feel how completely he must misunderstand me. What has happened to make me so 
morbid to-day? I do not know. I only know I cannot help it. I must give way 
sometimes. No, I will not, though,' said she, springing to her feet. 'I will 
not—I <hi>will</hi> not think of myself and my own position. I won't examine 
into my own feelings. It would be of no use now. Some time, if I live to be 
an old woman, I may sit over the fire, and, looking into the embers, see the 
life that might have been.' 
</p>
               <p>All this time, she was hastily putting on her 
things to go out, only stopping from time to time to wipe her eyes, with an 
impatience of gesture at the tears that would come, in spite of all her 
bravery. 
</p>
               <p>'I dare say, there's many a woman makes as sad a mistake as I have 
done, and only finds it out too late. And how proudly and impertinently I 
spoke to him that day! But I did not know then. It has come upon me little by 
little, and I don't know where it began. Now I won't give way. I shall find 
it difficult to behave in the same way to him, with this miserable 
consciousness upon me; but I will be very calm and very quiet, and say very 
little. But, to be sure, I may not see him; he keeps out of our way 
evidently. That would be worse than all. And yet no wonder that he avoids me, 
believing what he must about me.' 
</p>
               <p>She went out, going rapidly towards the 
country, and trying to drown reflection by swiftness of motion. 
</p>
               <p>As she 
stood on the door-step, at her return, her father came up: 
</p>
               <p>'Good girl!' 
said he. 'You've been to Mrs. Boucher's. I was just meaning to go there, if I 
had time, before dinner.' 
</p>
               <p>'No, papa; I have not,' said Margaret, reddening. 
'I never thought about her. But I will go directly after dinner; I will go 
while you are taking your nap. 
</p>
               <p>Accordingly Margaret went. Mrs. Boucher was 
very ill; really ill—not merely ailing. The kind and sensible neighbour, who 
had come in the other day, seemed to have taken charge of everything. Some of 
the children were gone to the neighbours. Mary Higgins had come for the three 
youngest at dinner-time; and since then Nicholas had gone for the doctor. He 
had not come as yet; Mrs. Boucher was dying; and there was nothing to do but 
to wait. Margaret thought that she should like to know his opinion, and that 
she could not do better than go and see the Higginses in the meantime. She 
might then possibly hear whether Nicholas had been able to make his 
application to Mr. Thornton. 
</p>
               <p>She found Nicholas busily engaged in making a 
penny spin on the dresser, for the amusement of three little children, who 
were clinging to him in a fearless manner. He, as well as they, was smiling 
at a good long spin; and Margaret thought, that the happy look of interest in 
his occupation was a good sign. When the penny stopped spinning, 'lile 
Johnnie' began to cry. 
</p>
               <p>'Come to me,' said Margaret, taking him off the 
dresser, and holding him in her arms; she held her watch to his ear, while 
she asked Nicholas if he had seen Mr. Thornton. 
</p>
               <p>The look on his face 
changed instantly. 
</p>
               <p>'Ay!' said he. 'I've seen and heerd too much on 
him.' 
</p>
               <p>'He refused you, then?' said Margaret, sorrowfully. 
</p>
               <p>'To be sure. I 
knew he'd do it all long. It's no good expecting marcy at the hands o' them 
measters. Yo're a stranger and a foreigner, and aren't likely to know their 
ways; but I knowed it.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am sorry I asked you. Was he angry? He did not 
speak to you as Hamper did, did he?' 
</p>
               <p>'He weren't o'er-civil!' said 
Nicholas, spinning the penny again, as much for his own amusement as for that 
of the children. 'Never yo' fret, I'm only where I was. I'll go on tramp 
to-morrow. I gave him as good as I got. I telled him, I'd not that good 
opinion on him that I'd ha' come a second time of mysel'; but yo'd advised me 
for to come, and I were beholden to yo'.' 
</p>
               <p>'You told him I sent you?' 
</p>
               <p>'I 
dunno' if I ca'd yo' by your name. I dunnot think I did. I said, a woman who 
knew no better had advised me for to come and see if there was a soft place 
in his heart.' 
</p>
               <p>'And he—?' asked Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Said I were to tell yo' to 
mind yo'r own business.—That's the longest spin yet, my lads.—And them's 
civil words to what he used to me. But ne'er mind. We're but where we was; 
and I'll break stones on th' road afore I let these little uns 
clem.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret put the struggling Johnnie out of her arms, back into his 
former place on the dresser. 
</p>
               <p>'I am sorry I asked you to go to Mr. 
Thornton's. I am disappointed in him.' 
</p>
               <p>There was a slight noise behind her. 
Both she and Nicholas turned round at the same moment, and there stood Mr. 
Thornton, with a look of displeased surprise upon his face. Obeying her swift 
impulse, Margaret passed out before him, saying not a word, only bowing low 
to hide the sudden paleness that she felt had come over her face. He bent 
equally low in return, and then closed the door after her. As she hurried to 
Mrs. Boucher's, she heard the clang, and it seemed to fill up the measure of 
her mortification. He too was annoyed to find her there. He had tenderness in 
his heart—'a soft place,' as Nicholas Higgins called it; but he had some 
pride in concealing it; he kept it very sacred and safe, and was jealous of 
every circumstance that tried to gain admission. But if he dreaded exposure 
of his tenderness, he was equally desirous that all men should recognise his 
justice; and he felt that he had been unjust, in giving so scornful a hearing 
to any one who had waited, with humble patience, for five hours, to speak to 
him. That the man had spoken saucily to him when he had the opportunity, was 
nothing to Mr. Thornton. He rather liked him for it; and he was conscious of 
his own irritability of temper at the time, which probably made them both 
quits. It was the five hours of waiting that struck Mr. Thornton. He had not 
five hours to spare himself; but one hour—two hours, of his hard penetrating 
intellectual, as well as bodily labour, did he give up to going about 
collecting evidence as to the truth of Higgins's story, the nature of his 
character, the tenor of his life. He tried not to be, but was convinced that 
all that Higgins had said. was true. And then the conviction went in, as if 
by some spell, and touched the latent tenderness of his heart; the patience 
of the man, the simple generosity of the motive (for he had learnt about the 
quarrel between Boucher and Higgins), made him forget entirely the mere 
reasonings of justice, and overleap them by a diviner instinct. He came to 
tell Higgins he would give him work; and he was more annoyed to find Margaret 
there than by hearing her last words, for then he understood that she was the 
woman who had urged Higgins to come to him; and he dreaded the admission of 
any thought of her, as a motive to what he was doing solely because it was 
right. 
</p>
               <p>'So that was the lady you spoke of as a woman?' said he indignantly 
to Higgins. 'You might have told me who she was. 
</p>
               <p>'And then, maybe, yo'd ha' 
spoken of her more civil than yo' did; yo'd getten a mother who might ha' 
kept yo'r tongue in check when yo' were talking o' women being at the root o' 
all the plagues.' 
</p>
               <p>'Of course you told that to Miss Hale?' 
</p>
               <p>'In coorse I 
did. Leastways, I reckon I did. I telled her she weren't to meddle again in 
aught that concerned yo'.' 
</p>
               <p>'Whose children are those—yours?' Mr. Thornton 
had a pretty good notion whose they were, from what he had heard; but he felt 
awkward in turning the conversation round from this unpromising 
beginning. 
</p>
               <p>'They're not mine, and they are mine.' 
</p>
               <p>'They are the children 
you spoke of to me this morning?' 
</p>
               <p>'When yo' said,' replied Higgins, turning 
round, with ill-smothered fierceness, 'that my story might be true or might 
not, bur it were a very unlikely one. Measter, I've not forgetten.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. 
Thornton was silent for a moment; then he said: 'No more have I. I remember 
what I said. I spoke to you about those children in a way I had no business 
to do. I did not believe you. I could not have taken care of another man's 
children myself, if he had acted towards me as I hear Boucher did towards 
you. But I know now that you spoke truth. I beg your pardon.' 
</p>
               <p>Higgins did 
not turn round, or immediately respond to this. But when he did speak, it was 
in a softened tone, although the words were gruff enough. 
</p>
               <p>'Yo've no 
business to go prying into what happened between Boucher and me. He's dead, 
and I'm sorry. That's enough.' 
</p>
               <p>'So it is. Will you take work with me? 
That's what I came to ask.' 
</p>
               <p>Higgins's obstinacy wavered, recovered 
strength, and stood firm. He would not speak. Mr. Thornton would not ask 
again. Higgins's eye fell on the children. 
</p>
               <p>'Yo've called me impudent, and a 
liar, and a mischief-maker, and yo' might ha' said wi' some truth, as I were 
now and then given to drink. An' I ha' called you a tyrant, an' an oud 
bull-dog, and a hard, cruel master; that's where it stands. But for th' 
childer. Measter, do yo' think we can e'er get on together?' 
</p>
               <p>'Well!' said 
Mr. Thornton, half-laughing, 'it was not my proposal that we should go 
together. But there's one comfort, on your own showing. We neither of us can 
think much worse of the other than we do now.' 
</p>
               <p>'That's true,' said Higgins, 
reflectively. 'I've been thinking, ever sin' I saw you, what a marcy it were 
yo' did na take me on, for that I ne'er saw a man whom I could less abide. 
But that's maybe been a hasty judgment; and work's work to such as me. So, 
measter, I'll come; and what's more, I thank yo'; and that's a deal fro' me,' 
said he, more frankly, suddenly turning round and facing Mr. Thornton fully 
for the first time. 
</p>
               <p>'And this is a deal from me,' said Mr. Thornton, giving 
Higgins's hand a good grip. 'Now mind you come sharp to your time,' continued 
he, resuming the master. 'I'll have no laggards at my mill. What fines we 
have, we keep pretty sharply. And the first time I catch you making mischief, 
off you go. So now you know where you are.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yo' spoke of my wisdom this 
morning. I reckon I may bring it wi' me; or would yo' rayther have me 'bout 
my brains?' 
</p>
               <p>''Bout your brains if you use them for meddling with my 
business; with your brains if you can keep them to your own.' 
</p>
               <p>'I shall need 
a deal o' brains to settle where my business ends and yo'rs begins.' 
</p>
               <p>'Your 
business has not begun yet, and mine stands still for me. So good 
afternoon.' 
</p>
               <p>Just before Mr. Thornton came up to Mrs. Boucher's door, 
Margaret came out of it. She did not see him; and he followed her for several 
yards, admiring her light and easy walk, and her tall and graceful figure. 
But, suddenly, this simple emotion of pleasure was tainted, poisoned by 
jealousy. He wished to overtake her, and speak to her, to see how she would 
receive him, now she must know he was aware of some other attachment. He 
wished too, but of this wish he was rather ashamed, that she should know that 
he had justified her wisdom in sending Higgins to him to ask for work; and 
had repented him of his morning's decision. He came up to her. She 
started. 
</p>
               <p>'Allow me to say, Miss Hale, that you were rather premature in 
expressing your disappointment. I have taken Higgins on.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am glad of 
it,' said she, coldly. 
</p>
               <p>'He tells me, he repeated to you, what I said this 
morning about—' Mr. Thornton hesitated. Margaret took it up: 
</p>
               <p>'About women 
not meddling. You had a perfect right to express your opinion, which was a 
very correct one, I have no doubt. But,' she went on a little more eagerly, 
'Higgins did not quite tell you the exact truth.' The word 'truth,' reminded 
her of her own untruth, and she stopped short, feeling exceedingly 
uncomfortable. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton at first was puzzled to account for her 
silence; and then he remembered the lie she had told, and all that was 
foregone. 'The exact truth!' said he. 'Very few people do speak the exact 
truth. I have given up hoping for it. Miss Hale, have you no explanation to 
give me? You must perceive what I cannot but think.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was silent. 
She was wondering whether an explanation of any kind would be consistent with 
her loyalty to Frederick. 
</p>
               <p>'Nay,' said he, 'I will ask no farther. I may be 
putting temptation in your way. At present, believe me, your secret is safe 
with me. But you run great risks, allow me to say, in being so indiscreet. I 
am now only speaking as a friend of your father's: if I had any other thought 
or hope, of course that is at an end. I am quite disinterested.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am 
aware of that,' said Margaret, forcing herself to speak in an indifferent, 
careless way. 'I am aware of what I must appear to you, but the secret is 
another person's, and I cannot explain it without doing him harm.' 
</p>
               <p>'I have 
not the slightest wish to pry into the gentleman's secrets,' he said, with 
growing anger. 'My own interest in you is—simply that of a friend. You may 
not believe me, Miss Hale, but it is—in spite of the persecution I'm afraid 
I threatened you with at one time—but that is all given up; all passed away. 
You believe me, Miss Hale?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes,' said Margaret, quietly and 
sadly. 
</p>
               <p>'Then, really, I don't see any occasion for us to go on walking 
together. I thought, perhaps you might have had something to say, but I see 
we are nothing to each other. If you're quite convinced, that any foolish 
passion on my part is entirely over, I will wish you good afternoon.' He 
walked off very hastily. 
</p>
               <p>'What can he mean?' thought Margaret,—'what could 
he mean by speaking so, as if I were always thinking that he cared for me, 
when I know he does not; he cannot. His mother will have said all those cruel 
things about me to him. But I won't care for him. I surely am mistress enough 
of myself to control this wild, strange, miserable feeling, which tempted me 
even to betray my own dear Frederick, so that I might but regain his good 
opinion—the good opinion of a man who takes such pains to tell me that I am 
nothing to him. Come poor little heart!  be cheery and brave. We'll be a 
great deal to one another, if we are thrown off and left desolate.' 
</p>
               <p>Her 
father was almost startled by her merriment this afternoon. She talked 
incessantly, and forced her natural humour to an unusual pitch; and if there 
was a tinge of bitterness in much of what she said; if her accounts of the 
old Harley Street set were a little sarcastic, her father could not bear to 
check her, as he would have done at another time—for he was glad to see her 
shake off her cares. In the middle of the evening, she was called down to 
speak to Mary Higgins; and when she came back, Mr. Hale imagined that he saw 
traces of tears on her cheeks. But that could not be, for she brought good 
news—that Higgins had got work at Mr. Thornton's mill. Her spirits were 
damped, at any rate, and she found it very difficult to go on talking at all, 
much more in the wild way that she had done. For some days her spirits varied 
strangely; and her father was beginning to be anxious about her, when news 
arrived from one or two quarters that promised some change and variety for 
her. Mr. Hale received a letter from Mr. Bell, in which that gentleman 
volunteered a visit to them; and Mr. Hale imagined that the promised society 
of his old Oxford friend would give as agreeable a turn to Margaret's ideas 
as it did to his own. Margaret tried to take an interest in what pleased her 
father; but she was too languid to care about any Mr. Bell, even though he 
were twenty times her godfather. She was more roused by a letter from Edith, 
full of sympathy about her aunt's death; full of details about herself, her 
husband, and child; and at the end saying, that as the climate did not suit, 
the baby, and as Mrs. Shaw was talking of returning to England, she thought 
it probable that Captain Lennox might sell out, and that they might all go 
and live again in the old Harley Street house; which, however, would seem 
very incomplete with-out Margaret. Margaret yearned after that old house, and 
the placid tranquillity of that old well-ordered, monotonous life. She had 
found it occasionally tiresome while it lasted; but since then she had been 
buffeted about, and felt so exhausted by this recent struggle with herself, 
that she thought that even stagnation would be a rest and a refreshment. So 
she began to look towards a long visit to the Lennoxes, on their return to 
England, as to a point—no, not of hope—but of leisure, in which she could 
regain her power and command over herself. At present it seemed to her as if 
all subjects tended towards Mr. Thornton; as if she could not for-get him 
with all her endeavours. If she went to see the Higginses, she heard of him 
there; her father had resumed their readings together, and quoted his 
opinions perpetually; even Mr. Bell's visit brought his tenant's name upon 
the tapis; for he wrote word that he believed he must be occupied some great 
part of his time with Mr. Thornton, as a new lease was in preparation, and 
the terms of it must be agreed upon. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.15" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XV</head>
               <head>OUT OF TUNE</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'I have no wrong, where I can claim no right, </l>
                  <l>Naught ta'en me fro, where I have nothing had, </l>
                  <l>Yet of my woe I cannot so be quite; </l>
                  <l>Namely, since that another may he glad </l>
                  <l>With that, that thus in sorrow makes me sad.' </l>
                  <l>WYATT. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Margaret had not expected much pleasure to herself from Mr. Bell's 
visit—she had only looked forward to it on her father's account, but when 
her godfather came, she at once fell into the most natural position of 
friendship in the world. He said she had no merit in being what she was, a 
girl so entirely after his own heart; it was an hereditary power which she 
had, to walk in and take possession of his regard; while she, in reply, gave 
him much credit for being so fresh and young under his Fellow's cap and 
gown. 
</p>
               <p>'Fresh and young in warmth and kindness, I mean. I'm afraid I must 
own, that I think your opinions are the oldest and mustiest I have met with 
this long time.' 
</p>
               <p>'Hear this daughter of yours, Hale Her residence in Milton 
has quite corrupted her. She's a democrat, a red republican, a member of the 
Peace Society, a socialist—' 
</p>
               <p>'Papa, it's all because I'm standing up for 
the progress of commerce. Mr. Bell would have had it keep still at exchanging 
wild-beast skins for acorns.' 
</p>
               <p>'No, no. I'd dig the ground and grow 
potatoes. And I'd shave the wild-beast skins and make the wool into broad 
cloth. Don't exaggerate, missy. But I'm tired of this bustle. Everybody 
rushing over everybody, in their hurry to get rich.' 
</p>
               <p>'It is not every one 
who can sit comfortably in a set of college rooms, and let his riches grow 
without any exertion of his own. No doubt there is many a man here who would 
be thankful if his property would increase as yours has done, without his 
taking any trouble about it,' said Mr. Hale. 
</p>
               <p>'I don't believe they would. 
It's the bustle and the struggle they like. As for sitting still, and 
learning from the past, or shaping out the future by faithful work done in a 
prophetic spirit—Why! Pooh! I don't believe there's a man in Milton who 
knows how to sit still; and it is a great art.' 
</p>
               <p>'Milton people, I suspect, 
think Oxford men don't know how to move. It would be a very good thing if 
they mixed a little more.' 
</p>
               <p>'It might be good for the Miltoners. Many things 
might be good for them which would be very disagreeable for other 
people.' 
</p>
               <p>'Are you not a Milton man yourself?' asked Margaret. 'I should 
have thought you would have been proud of your town.' 
</p>
               <p>'I confess, I don't 
see what there is to be proud of If you'll only come to Oxford, Margaret, I 
will show you a place to glory in.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well!' said Mr. Hale, 'Mr. Thornton is 
coming to drink tea with us to-night, and he is as proud of Milton as you of 
Oxford. You two must try and make each other a little more 
liberal-minded.' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't want to be more liberal-minded, thank you,' said 
Mr. Bell. 
</p>
               <p>'Is Mr. Thornton coming to tea, papa?' asked Margaret in a low 
voice. 
</p>
               <p>'Either to tea or soon after. He could not tell. He told us not to 
wait.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton had determined that he would make no inquiry of his 
mother as to how far she had put her project into execution of speaking to 
Margaret about the impropriety of her conduct. He felt pretty sure that, if 
this interview took place, his mother's account of what passed at it would 
only annoy and chagrin him, though he would all the time be aware of the 
colouring which it received by passing through her mind. He shrank from 
hearing Margaret's very name mentioned; he, while he blamed her—while he was 
jealous of her—while he renounced her—he loved her sorely, in spite of 
himself. He dreamt of her; he dreamt she came dancing towards him with 
outspread arms, and with a lightness and gaiety which made him loathe her, 
even while it allured him. But the impression of this figure of 
Margaret—with all Margaret's character taken out of it, as completely as if 
some evil spirit had got possession of her form—was so deeply stamped upon 
his imagination, that when he wakened he felt hardly able to separate the Una 
from the Duessa; and the dislike he had to the latter seemed to envelope and 
disfigure the former Yet he was too proud to acknowledge his weakness by 
avoiding the sight of her. He would neither seek an opportunity of being in 
her company nor avoid it. To convince himself of his power of self-control, 
he lingered over every piece of business this afternoon; he forced every 
movement into unnatural slowness and deliberation; and it was consequently 
past eight o'clock before he reached Mr. Hale's. Then there were business 
arrangements to be transacted in the study with Mr. Bell; and the latter kept 
on, sitting over the fire, and talking wearily, long after all business was 
transacted, and when they might just as well have gone upstairs. But Mr. 
Thornton would not say a word about moving their quarters; he chafed and 
chafed, and thought Mr. Bell a most prosy companion; while Mr. Bell returned 
the compliment in secret, by considering Mr. Thornton about as brusque and 
curt a fellow as he had ever met with, and terribly gone off both in 
intelligence and manner. At last, some slight noise in the room above 
suggested the desirableness of moving there. They found Margaret with a 
letter open before her, eagerly discussing its contents with her father. On 
the entrance of the gentlemen, it was immediately put aside; but Mr. 
Thornton's eager senses caught some few words of Mr. Hale's to Mr. Bell. 
</p>
               <p>'A 
letter from Henry Lennox. It makes Margaret very hopeful.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Bell 
nodded. Margaret was red as a rose when Mr. Thornton looked at her. He had 
the greatest mind in the world to get up and go out of the room that very 
instant, and never set foot in the house again. 
</p>
               <p>'We were thinking,' said 
Mr. Hale, 'that you and Mr. Thornton had taken Margaret's advice, and were 
each trying to convert the other, you were so long in the study.' 
</p>
               <p>'And you 
thought there would be nothing left of us but an opinion, like the Kilkenny 
cat's tail. Pray whose opinion did you think would have the most obstinate 
vitality?' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton had not a notion what they were talking about, and 
disdained to inquire. Mr. Hale politely enlightened him. 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Thornton, we 
were accusing Mr. Bell this morning of a kind of Oxonian mediaeval bigotry 
against his native town; and we—Margaret, I believe—suggested that it would 
do him good to associate a little with Milton manufacturers.' 
</p>
               <p>'I beg your 
pardon. Margaret thought it would do the Milton manufacturers good to 
associate a little more with Oxford men. Now wasn't it so, Margaret?' 
</p>
               <p>'I 
believe I thought it would do both good to see a little more of the other,—I 
did not know it was my idea any more than papa's.' 
</p>
               <p>'And so you see, Mr. 
Thornton, we ought to have been improving each other down-stairs, instead of 
talking over vanished families of Smiths and Harrisons. However, I am willing 
to do my part now. I wonder when you Milton men intend to live. All your 
lives seem to be spent in gathering together the materials for life.' 
</p>
               <p>'By 
living, I suppose you mean enjoyment.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, enjoyment,—I don't specify of 
what, because I trust. we should both consider mere pleasure as very poor 
enjoyment.' 
</p>
               <p>'I would rather have the nature of the enjoyment 
defined.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well! enjoyment of leisure—enjoyment of the power and influence 
which money gives. You are all striving for money. What do you want it 
for?' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton was silent. Then he said, 'I really don't know.  But 
money is not what <hi>I</hi> strive for.' 
</p>
               <p>'What then?' 
</p>
               <p>'It is a home 
question. I shall have to lay myself open to such a catechist, and I am not 
sure that I am prepared to do it.' 
</p>
               <p>'No!' said Mr. Hale; 'don't let us be 
personal in our catechism. You are neither of you representative men; you are 
each of you too individual for that.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am not sure whether to consider 
that as a compliment or not. I should like to be the representative of 
Oxford, with its beauty and its learning, and its proud old history. What do 
you say, Margaret; ought I to be flattered?' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't know Oxford. But 
there is a difference between being the representative of a city and the 
representative man of its inhabitants.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very true, Miss Margaret. Now I 
remember, you were against me this morning, and were quite Miltonian and 
manufacturing in your preferences.' Margaret saw the quick glance of surprise 
that Mr. Thornton gave her, and she was annoyed at the construction which he 
might put on this speech of Mr. Bell's. Mr. Bell went on— 
</p>
               <p>'Ah! I wish I 
could show you our High Street—our Radcliffe Square. I am leaving out our 
colleges, just as I give Mr. Thornton leave to omit his factories in speaking 
of the charms of Milton. I have a right to abuse my birth-place. Remember I 
am a Milton man. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton was annoyed more than he ought to have been 
at all that Mr. Bell was saying. He was not in a mood for joking. At another 
time, he could have enjoyed Mr. Bell's half testy condemnation of a town 
where the life was so at variance with every habit he had formed; but now, he 
was galled enough to attempt to defend what was never meant to be seriously 
attacked. 
</p>
               <p>'I don't set up Milton as a model of a town.' 
</p>
               <p>'Not in 
architecture?' slyly asked Mr. Bell. 
</p>
               <p>'No! We've been too busy to attend to 
mere outward appearances.' 
</p>
               <p>'Don't say <hi>mere</hi> outward appearances,' 
said Mr. Hale, gently. 'They impress us all, from childhood upward—every day 
of our life.' 
</p>
               <p>'Wait a little while,' said Mr. Thornton. 'Remember, we are 
of a different race from the Greeks, to whom beauty was everything, and to 
whom Mr. Bell might speak of a life of leisure and serene enjoyment, much of 
which entered in through their outward senses. I don't mean to despise them, 
any more than I would ape them. But I belong to Teutonic blood; it is little 
mingled in this part of England to what it is in others; we retain much of 
their language; we retain more of their spirit; we do not look upon life as a 
time for enjoyment, but as a time for action and exertion. Our glory and our 
beauty arise out of our inward strength, which makes us victorious over 
material resistance, and over greater difficulties still. We are Teutonic up 
here in Darkshire in another way. We hate to have laws made for us at a 
distance. We wish people would allow us to right ourselves, instead of 
continually meddling, with their imperfect legislation. We stand up for 
self-government, and oppose centralisation.' 
</p>
               <p>'In short, you would like the 
Heptarchy back again. Well, at any rate, I revoke what I said this 
morning—that you Milton people did not reverence the past. You are regular 
worshippers of Thor.' 
</p>
               <p>'If we do not reverence the past as you do in Oxford, 
it is because we want something which can apply to the present more directly. 
It is fine when the study of the past leads to a prophecy of the future. But 
to men groping in new circumstances, it would be finer if the words of 
experience could direct us how to act in what concerns us most intimately and 
immediately; which is full of difficulties that must be encountered; and upon 
the mode in which they are met and conquered—not merely pushed aside for the 
time—depends our future. Out of the wisdom of the past, help us over the 
present. But no! People can speak of Utopia much more easily than of the next 
day's duty; and yet when that duty is all done by others, who so ready to 
cry, “Fie, for shame!”' 
</p>
               <p>'And all this time I don't see what you are talking 
about. Would you Milton men condescend to send up your to-day's difficulty to 
Oxford? You have not tried us yet.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton laughed outright at this. 
'I believe I was talking with reference to a good deal that has been 
troubling us of late; I was thinking of the strikes we have gone through, 
which are troublesome and injurious things enough, as I am finding to my 
cost. And yet this last strike, under which I am smarting, has been 
respectable.' 
</p>
               <p>'A respectable strike!' said Mr. Bell. 'That sounds as if you 
were far gone in the worship of Thor.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret felt, rather than saw, that 
Mr. Thornton was chagrined by the repeated turning into jest of what he was 
feeling as very serious. She tried to change the conversation from a subject 
about which one party cared little, while, to the other, it was deeply, 
because personally, interesting. She forced herself to say 
something. 
</p>
               <p>'Edith says she finds the printed calicoes in Corfu better and 
cheaper than in London.' 
</p>
               <p>'Does she?' said her father. 'I think that must be 
one of Edith's exaggerations. Are you sure of it, Margaret?' 
</p>
               <p>'I am sure she 
says so, papa.' 
</p>
               <p>'Then I am sure of the fact,' said Mr. Bell. 'Margaret, I 
go so far in my idea of your truthfulness, that it shall cover your cousin's 
character. I don't believe a cousin of yours could exaggerate.' 
</p>
               <p>'Is Miss 
Hale so remarkable for truth?' said Mr. Thornton, bitterly. The moment he had 
done so, he could have bitten his tongue out. What was he? And why should he 
stab her with her shame in this way? How evil he was to-night; possessed by 
ill-humour at being detained so long from her; irritated by the mention of 
some name, because he thought it belonged to a more successful lover; now 
ill-tempered because he had been unable to cope, with a light heart, against 
one who was trying, by gay and careless speeches, to make the evening pass 
pleasantly away,—the kind old friend to all parties, whose manner by this 
time might be well known to Mr. Thornton, who had been acquainted with him 
for many years. And then to speak to Margaret as he had done! She did not get 
up and leave the room, as she had done in former days, when his abruptness or 
his temper had annoyed her. She sat quite still, after the first momentary 
glance of grieved surprise, that made her eyes look like some child's who has 
met with an unexpected rebuff; they slowly dilated into mournful, reproachful 
sadness; and then they fell, and she bent over her work, and did not speak 
again. But he could not help looking at her, and he saw a sigh tremble over 
her body, as if she quivered in some unwonted chill. He felt as the mother 
would have done, in the midst of 'her rocking it, and rating it,' had she 
been called away before her slow confiding smile, implying perfect trust in 
mother's love, had proved the renewing of its love. He gave short sharp 
answers; he was uneasy and cross, unable to discern between jest and earnest; 
anxious only for a look, a word of hers, before which to prostrate himself in 
penitent humility. But she neither looked nor spoke. Her round taper fingers 
flew in and out of her sewing, as steadily and swiftly as if that were the 
business of her life. She could not care for him, he thought, or else the 
passionate fervour of his wish would have forced her to raise those eyes, if 
but for an instant, to read the late repentance in his. He could have struck 
her before he left, in order that by some strange overt act of rudeness, he 
might earn the privilege of telling her the remorse that gnawed at his heart. 
It was well that the long walk in the open air wound up this evening for him. 
It sobered him back into grave resolution, that henceforth he would see as 
little of her as possible,—since the very sight of that face arid form, the 
very sounds of that voice (like the soft winds of pure melody) had such power 
to move him from his balance. Well! He had known what love was—a sharp pang, 
a fierce experience, in the midst of whose flames he was struggling! but, 
through that furnace he would fight his way out into the serenity of middle 
age,—all the richer and more human for having known this great 
passion. 
</p>
               <p>When he had somewhat abruptly left the room, Margaret rose from 
her seat, and began silently to fold up her work; The long seams were heavy, 
and had an unusual weight for her languid arms. The round lines in her face 
took a lengthened, straighter form, and her whole appearance was that of one 
who had gone through a day of great fatigue. As the three prepared for bed, 
Mr. Bell muttered forth a little condemnation of Mr. Thornton. 
</p>
               <p>'I never saw 
a fellow so spoiled by success. He can't bear a word; a jest of any kind. 
Everything seems to touch on the soreness of his high dignity. Formerly, he 
was as simple and noble as the open day; you could not offend him, because he 
had no vanity.' 
</p>
               <p>'He is not vain now,' said Margaret, turning round from the 
table, and speaking with quiet distinctness. 'To-night he has not been like 
himself Something must have annoyed him before he came here.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Bell gave 
her one of his sharp glances from above his spectacles. She stood it quite 
calmly; but, after she had left the room, he suddenly asked,— 
</p>
               <p>'Hale! did 
it ever strike you that Thornton and your daughter have what the French call 
a tendresse for each other?' 
</p>
               <p>'Never!' said Mr. Hale, first startled and 
then flurried by the new idea. 'No, I am sure you are wrong. I am almost 
certain you are mistaken. If there is anything, it is all on Mr. Thornton's 
side. Poor fellow! I hope and trust he is not thinking of her, for I am sure 
she would not have him.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well! I'm a bachelor, and have steered clear of 
love affairs all my life; so perhaps my opinion is not worth having. Or else 
I should say there were very pretty symptoms about her!' 
</p>
               <p>'Then I am sure 
you are wrong,' said Mr. Hale. 'He may care for her, though she really has 
been almost rude to him at times. But she!—why, Margaret would never think 
of him, I'm sure! Such a thing has never entered her head.' 
</p>
               <p>'Entering her 
heart would do. But I merely threw out a suggestion of what might be. I dare 
say I was wrong. And whether I was wrong or right, I'm very sleepy; so, 
having disturbed your night's rest (as I can see) with my untimely fancies, 
I'll betake myself with an easy mind to my own.' 
</p>
               <p>But Mr. Hale resolved that 
he would not be disturbed by any such nonsensical idea; so he lay awake, 
determining not to think about it. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Bell took his leave the next day, 
bidding Margaret look to him as one who had a right to help and protect her 
in all her troubles, of whatever nature they might be. To Mr. Hale he 
said,— 
</p>
               <p>'That Margaret of yours has gone deep into my heart. Take care of 
her, for she is a very precious creature,—a great deal too good for 
Milton,—only fit for Oxford, in fact. The town, I mean; not the men. I can't 
match her yet. When I can, I shall bring my young man to stand side by side 
with your young woman, just as the genie in the Arabian Nights brought Prince 
Caralmazan to match with the fairy's Princess Badoura.' 
</p>
               <p>'I beg you'll do no 
such thing. Remember the misfortunes that ensued; and besides, I can't spare 
Margaret.' 
</p>
               <p>'No; on second thoughts, we'll have her to nurse us ten years 
hence, when we shall be two cross old invalids. Seriously, Hale! I wish you'd 
leave Milton; which is a most unsuitable place for you, though it was my 
recommendation in the first instance. If you would; I'd swallow my shadows of 
doubts, and take a college living; and you and Margaret should come and live 
at the parsonage—you to be a sort of lay curate, and take the unwashed off 
my hands; and she to be our housekeeper—the village Lady Bountiful—by day; 
and read us to sleep in the evenings. I could be very happy in such a life. 
What do you think of it?' 
</p>
               <p>'Never!' said Mr. Hale, decidedly. 'My one great 
change has been made and my price of suffering paid. Here I stay out my life; 
and here will I be buried, and lost in the crowd.' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't give up my plan 
yet. Only I won't bait you with it any more just now. Where's the Pearl? 
Come, Margaret, give me a farewell kiss; and remember, my dear, where you may 
find a true friend, as far as his capability goes. You are my child, 
Margaret. Remember that, and 'God bless you!' 
</p>
               <p>So they fell back into the 
monotony of the quiet life they would henceforth lead. There was no invalid 
to hope and fear about; even the Higginses—so long a vivid interest—seemed 
to have receded from any need of immediate thought. The Boucher children, 
left motherless orphans, claimed what of Margaret's care she could bestow; 
and she went pretty often to see Mary Higgins, who had charge of them. The 
two families were living in one house: the elder children were at humble 
schools, the younger ones were tended, in Mary's absence at her work, by the 
kind neighbour whose good sense had struck Margaret at the time of Boucher's 
death. Of course she was paid for her trouble; and indeed, in all his little 
plans and arrangements for these orphan children, Nicholas showed a sober 
judgment, and regulated method of thinking, which were at variance with his 
former more eccentric jerks of action. He was so steady at his work, that 
Margaret did not often see him during these winter months; but when she did, 
she saw that he winced away from any reference to the father of those 
children, whom he had so fully and heartily taken under his care. He did not 
speak easily of Mr. Thornton. 
</p>
               <p>'To tell the truth,' said he, 'he fairly 
bamboozles me. He's two chaps. One chap I knowed of old as were measter all 
o'er. T'other chap hasn't an ounce of measter's flesh about him. How them two 
chaps is bound up in one body, is a craddy for me to find out. I'll not be 
beat by it, though. Meanwhile he comes here pretty often; that's how I know 
the chap that's a man, not a measter. And I reckon he's taken aback by me 
pretty much as I am by him; for he sits and listens and stares, as if I were 
some strange beast newly caught in some of the zones. But I'm none daunted. 
It would take a deal to daunt me in my own house, as he sees. And I tell him 
some of my mind that I reckon he'd ha' been the better of hearing when he 
were a younger man.' 
</p>
               <p>'And does he not answer you?' asked Mr. Hale. 
</p>
               <p>'Well! 
I'll not say th' advantage is all on his side, for all I take credit for 
improving him above a bit. Sometimes he says a rough thing or two, which is 
not agreeable to look at at first, but has a queer smack o' truth in it when 
yo' come to chew it. He'll be coming to-night, I reckon, about them childer's 
schooling. He's not satisfied wi' the make of it, and wants for t' examine 
'em.' 
</p>
               <p>'What are they'—began Mr. Hale; but Margaret, touching his arm, 
showed him her watch. 
</p>
               <p>'It is nearly seven,' she said. 'The evenings are 
getting longer now. Come, papa.' She did not breathe freely till they were 
some distance from the house. Then, as she became more calm, she wished that 
she had not been in so great a hurry; for, somehow, they saw Mr. Thornton but 
very seldom now; and he might have come to see Higgins, and for the old 
friendship's sake she should like to have seen him to-night. 
</p>
               <p>Yes! he came 
very seldom, even for the dull cold purpose of lessons. Mr. Hale was 
disappointed in his pupil's lukewarmness about Greek literature, which had 
but a short time ago so great an interest for him. And now it often happened 
that a hurried note from Mr. Thornton would arrive, just at the last moment, 
saying that he was so much engaged that he could not come to read with Mr. 
Hale that evening. And though other pupils had taken more than his place as 
to time, no one was like his first scholar in Mr. Hale's heart. He was 
depressed and sad at this partial cessation of an intercourse which had 
become dear to him; and he used to sit pondering over the reason that could 
have occasioned this change. 
</p>
               <p>He startled Margaret, one evening as she sate 
at her work, by suddenly asking: 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret! had you ever any reason for 
thinking that Mr. Thornton cared for you?' 
</p>
               <p>He almost blushed as he put this 
question; but Mr. Bell's scouted idea recurred to him, and the words were out 
of his mouth before he well knew what he was about. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret did not answer 
immediately; but by the bent drooping of her head, he guessed what her reply 
would be. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes; I believe—oh papa, I should have told you.' And she 
dropped her work, and hid her face in her hands. 
</p>
               <p>'No, dear; don't think 
that I am impertinently curious. I am sure you would have told me if you had 
felt that you could return his regard. Did he speak to you about it?' 
</p>
               <p>No 
answer at first; but by-and-by a little gentle reluctant 'Yes.' 
</p>
               <p>'And you 
refused him?' 
</p>
               <p>A long sigh; a more helpless, nerveless attitude, and another 
'Yes.' But before her father could speak, Margaret lifted up her face, rosy 
with some beautiful shame, and, fixing her eyes upon him, said: 
</p>
               <p>'Now, papa, 
I have told you this, and I cannot tell you more; and then the whole thing is 
so painful to me; every word and action connected with it is so unspeakably 
bitter, that I cannot bear to think of it. Oh, papa, I am sorry to have lost 
you this friend, but I could not help it—but oh! I am very sorry.' She sate 
down on the ground, and laid her head on his knees. 
</p>
               <p>'I too, am sorry, my 
dear. Mr. Bell quite startled me when he said, some idea of the 
kind—' 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Bell! Oh, did Mr. Bell see it?' 
</p>
               <p>'A little; but he took it 
into his head that you—how shall I say it?—that you were not ungraciously 
disposed towards Mr. Thornton. I knew that could never be. I hoped the whole 
thing was but an imagination; but I knew too well what your real feelings 
were to suppose that you could ever like Mr. Thornton in that way. But I am 
very sorry.' 
</p>
               <p>They were very quiet and still for some minutes. But, on 
stroking her cheek in a caressing way soon after, he was almost shocked to 
find her face wet with tears. As he touched her, she sprang up, and smiling 
with forced brightness, began to talk of the Lennoxes with such a vehement 
desire to turn the conversation, that Mr. Hale was too tender-hearted to try 
to force it back into the old channel. 
</p>
               <p>'To-morrow—yes, to-morrow they will 
be back in Harley Street. Oh, how strange it will be! I wonder what room they 
will make into the nursery? Aunt Shaw will be happy with the baby. Fancy 
Edith a mamma! And Captain Lennox—I wonder what he will do with himself now 
he has sold out!' 
</p>
               <p>'I'll tell you what,' said her father, anxious to indulge 
her in this fresh subject of interest, 'I think I must spare you for a 
fortnight just to run up to town and see the travellers. You could learn 
more, by half an hour's conversation with Mr. Henry Lennox, about Frederick's 
chances, than in a dozen of these letters of his; so it would, in fact, be 
uniting business with pleasure.' 
</p>
               <p>'No, papa, you cannot spare me, and what's 
more, I won't be spared.' Then after a pause, she added: 'I am losing hope 
sadly about Frederick; he is letting us down gently, but I can see that Mr. 
Lennox himself has no hope of hunting up the witnesses under years and years 
of time. No,' said she, 'that bubble was very pretty, and very dear to our 
hearts; but it has burst like many another; and we must console ourselves 
with being glad that Frederick is so happy, and with being a great deal to 
each other. So don't offend me by talking of being able to spare me, papa, 
for I assure you you can't.' 
</p>
               <p>But the idea of a change took root and 
germinated in Margaret's heart, although not in the way in which her father 
proposed it at first. She began to consider how desirable something of the 
kind would be to her father, whose spirits, always feeble, now became too 
frequently depressed, and whose health, though he never complained, had been 
seriously affected by his wife's illness and death. There were the regular 
hours of reading with his pupils, but that all giving and no receiving could 
no longer be called companion-ship, as in the old days when Mr. Thornton came 
to study under him. Margaret was conscious of the want under which he was 
suffering, unknown to himself; the want of a man's intercourse with men. At 
Helstone there had been perpetual occasions for an interchange of visits with 
neighbouring clergymen; and the poor labourers in the fields, or leisurely 
tramping home at eve, or tending their cattle in the forest, were always at 
liberty to speak or be spoken to. But in Milton every one was too busy for 
quiet speech, or any ripened intercourse of thought; what they said was about 
business, very present and actual; and when the tension of mind relating to 
their daily affairs was over, they sunk into fallow rest until next morning. 
The workman was not to be found after the day's work was done; he had gone 
away to some lecture, or some club, or some beer-shop, according to his 
degree of character. Mr. Hale thought of trying to deliver a course of 
lectures at some of the institutions, but he contemplated doing this so much 
as an effort of duty, and with so little of the genial impulse of love 
towards his work and its end, that Margaret was sure that it would not be 
well done until he could look upon it with some kind of zest. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.16" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XVI</head>
               <head>THE JOURNEY'S END</head>
               <q>
                  <l>I see my way as birds their trackless way— </l>
                  <l>I shall arrive! what time, what circuit first, </l>
                  <l>I ask not: but unless God send his hail </l>
                  <l>Or blinding fire-balls, sleet, or stifling snow, </l>
                  <l>In some time—his good time—I shall arrive; </l>
                  <l>He guides me and the bird. In His good time! </l>
                  <l>BROWNING'S PARACELSUS. </l>
               </q>
               <p>So the winter was getting on, and the days were beginning to lengthen, 
without bringing with them any of the brightness of hope which usually 
accompanies the rays of a February sun. Mrs. Thornton had of course entirely 
ceased to come to the house. Mr. Thornton came occasionally, but his visits 
were addressed to her father, and were confined to the study. Mr. Hale spoke 
of him as always the same; indeed, the very rarity of their intercourse 
seemed to make Mr. Hale set only the higher value on it. And from what 
Margaret could gather of what Mr. Thornton had said, there was nothing in the 
cessation of his visits which could arise from any umbrage or vexation. His 
business affairs had become complicated during the strike, and required 
closer attention than he had given to them last winter. Nay, Margaret could 
even discover that he spoke from time to time of her, and always, as far as 
she could learn, in the same calm friendly way, never avoiding and never 
seeking any mention of her name. 
</p>
               <p>She was not in spirits to raise her 
father's tone of mind. The dreary peacefulness of the present time had been 
preceded by so long a period of anxiety and care—even intermixed with 
storms—that her mind had lost its elasticity. She tried to find herself 
occupation in teaching the two younger Boucher children, and worked hard at 
goodness; hard, I say most truly, for her heart seemed dead to the end of all 
her efforts; and though she made them punctually and painfully, yet she stood 
as far off as ever from any cheerfulness; her life seemed still bleak and 
dreary. The only thing she did well, was what she did out of unconscious 
piety, the silent comforting and consoling of her father. Not a mood of his 
but what found a ready sympathiser in Margaret; not a wish of his that she 
did not strive to forecast, and to fulfil. They were quiet wishes to be sure, 
and hardly named without hesitation and apology. All the more complete and 
beautiful was her meek spirit of obedience. March brought the news of 
Frederick's marriage. He and Dolores wrote; she in Spanish-English, as was 
but natural, and he with little turns and inversions of words which proved 
how far the idioms of his bride's country were infecting him. 
</p>
               <p>On the 
receipt of Henry Lennox's letter, announcing how little hope there was of his 
ever clearing himself at a court-martial, in the absence of the missing 
witnesses, Frederick had written to Margaret a pretty vehement letter, 
containing his renunciation of England as his country; he wished he could 
unnative himself, and declared that he would not take his pardon if it were 
offered him, nor live in the country if he had permission to do so. All of 
which made Margaret cry sorely, so unnatural did it seem to her at the first 
opening; but on consideration, she saw rather in such expression the 
poignancy of the disappointment which had thus crushed his hopes; and she 
felt that there was nothing for it but patience. In the next letter, 
Frederick spoke so joyfully of the future that he had no thought for the 
past; and Margaret found a use in herself for the patience she had been 
craving for him. She would have to be patient. But the pretty, timid, girlish 
letters of Dolores were beginning to have a charm for both Margaret and her 
father. The young Spaniard was so evidently anxious to make a favourable 
impression upon her lover's English relations, that her feminine care peeped 
out at every erasure; and the letters announcing the marriage, were 
accompanied by a splendid black lace mantilla, chosen by Dolores herself for 
her unseen sister-in-law, whom Frederick had represented as a paragon of 
beauty, wisdom and virtue. Frederick's worldly position was raised by this 
marriage on to as high a level as they could desire. Barbour and Co. was one 
of the most extensive Spanish houses, and into it he was received as a junior 
partner. Margaret smiled a little, and then sighed as she remembered afresh 
her old tirades against trade. Here was her preux chevalier of a brother 
turned merchant, trader! But then she rebelled against herself, and protested 
silently against the confusion implied between a Spanish merchant and a 
Milton mill-owner. Well! trade or no trade, Frederick was very, very happy. 
Dolores must be charming, and the mantilla was exquisite! And then she 
returned to the present life. 
</p>
               <p>Her father had occasionally experienced a 
difficulty in breathing this spring, which had for the time distressed him 
exceedingly. Margaret was less alarmed, as this difficulty went off 
completely in the intervals; but she still was so desirous of his shaking off 
the liability altogether, as to make her very urgent that he should accept 
Mr. Bell's invitation to visit him at Oxford this April. Mr. Bell's 
invitation included Margaret. Nay more, he wrote a special letter commanding 
her to come; but she felt as if it would be a greater relief to her to remain 
quietly at home, entirely free from any responsibility whatever, and so to 
rest her mind and heart in a manner which she had not been able to do for 
more than two years past. 
</p>
               <p>When her father had driven off on his way to the 
railroad, Margaret felt how great and long had been the pressure on her time 
and her spirits. It was astonishing, almost stunning, to feel herself so much 
at liberty; no one depending on her for cheering care, if not for positive 
happiness; no invalid to plan and think for; she might be idle, and silent, 
and forgetful,—and what seemed worth more than all the other privileges—she 
might be unhappy if she liked. For months past, all her own personal cares 
and troubles had had to be stuffed away into a dark cupboard; but now she had 
leisure to take them out, and mourn over them, and study their nature, and 
seek the true method of subduing them into the elements of peace. All these 
weeks she had been conscious of their existence in a dull kind of way, though 
they were hidden out of sight. Now, once for all she would consider them, and 
appoint to each of them its right work in her life. So she sat almost 
motionless for hours in the drawing-room, going over the bitterness of every 
remembrance with an unwincing resolution. Only once she cried aloud, at the 
stinging thought of the faithlessness which gave birth to that abasing 
falsehood. 
</p>
               <p>She now would not even acknowledge the force of the temptation; 
her plans for Frederick had all failed, and the temptation lay there a dead 
mockery,—a mockery which had never had life in it; the lie had been so 
despicably foolish, seen by the light of the ensuing events, and faith in the 
power of truth so infinitely the greater wisdom! 
</p>
               <p>In her nervous agitation, 
she unconsciously opened a book of her father's that lay upon the table,—the 
words that caught her eye in it, seemed almost made for her present state of 
acute self-abasement:— 
</p>
               <p>'Je ne voudrois pas reprendre mon coeur en ceste 
sorte: meurs de honte, aveugle, impudent, traistre et desloyal a ton Dieu, et 
sembables choses; mais je voudrois le corriger par voye de compassion. Or 
sus, mon pauvre coeur, nous voila tombez dans la fosse, laquelle nous avions 
tant resolu d' eschapper. Ah! relevons-nous, et quittons-la pour jamais, 
reclamons la misericorde de Dieu, et esperons en elle qu'elle nous assistera 
pour desormais estre plus fermes; et remettons-nous au chemin de l'humilite. 
Courage, soyons meshuy sur nos gardes, Dieu nous aydera.' 
</p>
               <p>
</p>
               <p>'The way of 
humility. Ah,' thought Margaret, 'that is what I have missed! But courage, 
little heart. We will turn back, and by God's help we may find the lost 
path.' 
</p>
               <p>So she rose up, and determined at once to set to on some work which 
should take her out of herself. To begin with, she called in Martha, as she 
passed the drawing-room door in going up-stairs, and tried to find out what 
was below the grave, respectful, servant-like manner, which crusted over her 
individual character with an obedience that was almost mechanical. She found 
it difficult to induce Martha to speak of any of her personal interests; but 
at last she touched the right chord, in naming Mrs. Thornton. Martha's whole 
face brightened, and, on a little encouragement, out came a long story, of 
how her father had been in early life connected with Mrs. Thornton's 
husband—nay, had even been in a position to show him some kindness; what, 
Martha hardly knew, for it had happened when she was quite a little child; 
and circumstances had intervened to separate the two families until Martha 
was nearly grown up, when, her father having sunk lower and lower from his 
original occupation as clerk in a warehouse, and her mother being dead, she 
and her sister, to use Martha's own expression, would have been 'lost' but 
for Mrs. Thornton; who sought them out, and thought for them, and cared for 
them. 
</p>
               <p>'I had had the fever, and was but delicate; and Mrs. Thornton, and 
Mr. Thornton too, they never rested till they had nursed me up in their own 
house, and sent me to the sea and all. The doctors said the fever was 
catching, but they cared none for that—only Miss Fanny, and she went 
a-visiting these folk that she is going to marry into. So, though she was 
afraid at the time, it has all ended well.' 
</p>
               <p>'Miss Fanny going to be 
married!' exclaimed Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes; and to a rich gentleman, too, only he's 
a deal older than she is. His name is Watson; and his milk are somewhere out 
beyond Hayleigh; it's a very good marriage, for all he's got such gray 
hair.' 
</p>
               <p>At this piece of information, Margaret was silent long enough for 
Martha to recover her propriety, and, with it, her habitual shortness of 
answer. She swept up the hearth, asked at what time she should prepare tea, 
and quitted the room with the same wooden face with which she had entered it. 
Margaret had to pull herself up from indulging a bad trick, which she had 
lately fallen into, of trying to imagine how every event that she heard of in 
relation to Mr. Thornton would affect him: whether he would like it or 
dislike it. 
</p>
               <p>The next day she had the little Boucher children for their 
lessons, and took a long walk, and ended by a visit to Mary Higgins. Somewhat 
to Margaret's surprise, she found Nicholas already come home from his work; 
the lengthening light had deceived her as to the lateness of the evening. He 
too seemed, by his manners, to have entered a little more on the way of 
humility; he was quieter, and less self-asserting. 
</p>
               <p>'So th' oud gentleman's 
away on his travels, is he?' said he. 'Little 'uns telled me so. Eh! but 
they're sharp 'uns, they are; I a'most think they beat my own wenches for 
sharpness, though mappen it's wrong to say so, and one on 'em in her grave. 
There's summut in th' weather, I reckon, as sets folk a-wandering. My 
measter, him at th' shop yonder, is spinning about th' world 
somewhere.' 
</p>
               <p>'Is that the reason you're so soon at home to-night?' asked 
Margaret innocently. 
</p>
               <p>'Thou know'st nought about it, that's all,' said he, 
contemptuously. 'I'm not one wi' two faces—one for my measter, and t'other 
for his back. I counted a' th' clocks in the town striking afore I'd leave my 
work. No! yon Thornton's good enough for to fight wi', but too good for to be 
cheated. It were you as getten me the place, and I thank yo' for it. 
Thornton's is not a bad mill, as times go. Stand down, lad, and say yo'r 
pretty hymn to Miss Margaret. That's right; steady on thy legs, and right arm 
out as straight as a shewer. One to stop, two to stay, three mak' ready, and 
four away!' 
</p>
               <p>The little fellow repeated a Methodist hymn, far above his 
comprehension in point of language, but of which the swinging rhythm had 
caught his ear, and which he repeated with all the developed cadence of a 
member of parliament. When Margaret had duly applauded, Nicholas called for 
another, and yet another, much to her surprise, as she found him thus oddly 
and unconsciously led to take an interest in the sacred things which he had 
formerly scouted. 
</p>
               <p>It was past the usual tea-time when she reached home; but 
she had the comfort of feeling that no one had been kept waiting for her; and 
of thinking her own thoughts while she rested, instead of anxiously watching 
another person to learn whether to be grave or gay. After tea she resolved to 
examine a large packet of letters, and pick out those that were to be 
destroyed. 
</p>
               <p>Among them she came to four or five of Mr. Henry Lennox's, 
relating to Frederick's affairs; and she carefully read them over again, with 
the sole intention, when she began, to ascertain exactly on how fine a chance 
the justification of her brother hung. But when she had finished the last, 
and weighed the pros and cons, the little personal revelation of character 
contained in them forced itself on her notice. It was evident enough, from 
the stiffness of the wording, that Mr. Lennox had never forgotten his 
relation to her in any interest he might feel in the subject of the 
correspondence. They were clever letters; Margaret saw that in a twinkling; 
but she missed out of them all hearty and genial atmosphere. They were to be 
preserved, however, as valuable; so she laid them carefully on one side. When 
this little piece of business was ended, she fell into a reverie; and the 
thought of her absent father ran strangely in Margaret's head this night. She 
almost blamed herself for having felt her solitude (and consequently his 
absence) as a relief; but these two days had set her up afresh, with new 
strength and brighter hope. Plans which had lately appeared to her in the 
guise of tasks, now appeared like pleasures. The morbid scales had fallen 
from her eyes, and she saw her position and her work more truly. If only Mr. 
Thornton would restore her the lost friendship,—nay, if he would only come 
from time to time to cheer her father as in former days,—though she should 
never see him, she felt as if the course of her future life, though not 
brilliant in prospect, might lie clear and even before her. She sighed as she 
rose up to go to bed. In spite of the 'One step's enough for me,'—in spite 
of the one plain duty of devotion to her father,—there lay at her heart an 
anxiety and a pang of sorrow. 
</p>
               <p>And Mr. Hale thought of Margaret, that April 
evening, just as strangely and as persistently as she was thinking of him. He 
had been fatigued by going about among his old friends and old familiar 
places. He had had exaggerated ideas of the change which his altered opinions 
might make in his friends' reception of him; but although some of them might 
have felt shocked or grieved or indignant at his falling off in the abstract, 
as soon as they saw the face of the man whom they had once loved, they forgot 
his opinions in himself; or only remembered them enough to give an additional 
tender gravity to their manner. For Mr. Hale had not been known to many; he 
had belonged to one of the smaller colleges, and had always been shy and 
reserved; but those who in youth had cared to penetrate to the delicacy of 
thought and feeling that lay below his silence and indecision, took him to 
their hearts, with something of the protecting kindness which they would have 
shown to a woman. And the renewal of this kindliness, after the lapse of 
years, and an interval of so much change, overpowered him more than any 
roughness or expression of disapproval could have done. 
</p>
               <p>'I'm afraid we've 
done too much,' said Mr. Bell. 'You're suffering now from having lived so 
long in that Milton air. 
</p>
               <p>'I am tired,' said Mr. Hale. 'But it is not Milton 
air. I'm fifty-five years of age, and that little fact of itself accounts for 
any loss of strength.' 
</p>
               <p>'Nonsense! I'm upwards of sixty, and feel no loss of 
strength, either bodily or mental. Don't let me hear you talking so. 
Fifty-five! why, you're quite a young man.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Hale shook his head. 'These 
last few years!' said he. But after a minute's pause, he raised himself from 
his half recumbent position, in one of Mr. Bell's luxurious easy-chairs, and 
said with a kind of trembling earnestness: 
</p>
               <p>'Bell! you're not to think, that 
if I could have foreseen all that would come of my change of opinion, and my 
resignation of my living—no! not even if I could have known how <hi>she</hi>
would have suffered,—that I would undo it—the act of open acknowledgment 
that I no longer held the same faith as the church in which I was a priest. 
As I think now, even if I could have foreseen that cruellest martyrdom of 
suffering, through the sufferings of one whom I loved, I would have done just 
the same as far as that step of openly leaving the church went. I might have 
done differently, and acted more wisely, in all that I subsequently did for 
my family. But I don't think God endued me with over-much wisdom or 
strength,' he added, falling hack into his old position. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Bell blew his 
nose ostentatiously before answering. Then he said: 
</p>
               <p>'He gave you strength 
to do what your conscience told you was right; and I don't see that we need 
any higher or holier strength than that; or wisdom either. I know I have not 
that much; and yet men set me down in their fool's books as a wise man; an 
independent character; strong-minded, and all that cant. The veriest idiot 
who obeys his own simple law of right, if it be but in wiping his shoes on a 
door-mat, is wiser and stronger than I. But what gulls men are!' 
</p>
               <p>There was 
a pause. Mr. Hale spoke first, in continuation of his thought: 
</p>
               <p>'About 
Margaret.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well! about Margaret. What then?' 
</p>
               <p>'If I 
die——' 
</p>
               <p>'Nonsense!' 
</p>
               <p>'What will become of her—I often think? I suppose 
the Lennoxes will ask her to live with them. I try to think they will. Her 
aunt Shaw loved her well in her own quiet way; but she forgets to love the 
absent.' 
</p>
               <p>'A very common fault. What sort of people are the 
Lennoxes?' 
</p>
               <p>'He, handsome, fluent, and agreeable. Edith, a sweet little 
spoiled beauty. Margaret loves her with all her heart, and Edith with as much 
of her heart as she can spare.' 
</p>
               <p>'Now, Hale; you know that girl of yours has 
got pretty nearly all my heart. I told you that before. Of course, as your 
daughter, as my god-daughter, I took great interest in her before I saw her 
the last time. But this visit that I paid to you at Milton made me her slave. 
I went, a willing old victim, following the car of the conqueror. For, 
indeed, she looks as grand and serene as one who has struggled, and may be 
struggling, and yet has the victory secure in sight. Yes, in spite of all her 
present anxieties, that was the look on her face. And so, all I have is at 
her service, if she needs it; and will be hers, whether she will or no, when 
I die. Moreover, I myself, will be her preux chevalier, sixty and gouty 
though I be. Seriously, old friend, your daughter shall be my principal 
charge in life, and all the help that either my wit or my wisdom or my 
willing heart can give, shall be hers. I don't choose her out as a subject 
for fretting. Something, I know of old, you must have to worry yourself 
about, or you wouldn't be happy. But you're going to outlive me by many a 
long year. You spare, thin men are always tempting and always cheating Death! 
It's the stout, florid fellows like me, that always go off first.' 
</p>
               <p>If Mr. 
Bell had had a prophetic eye he might have seen the torch all but inverted, 
and the angel with the grave and composed face standing very nigh, beckoning 
to his friend. That night Mr. Hale laid his head down on the pillow on which 
it never more should stir with life. The servant who entered his room in the 
morning, received no answer to his speech; drew near the bed, and saw the 
calm, beautiful face lying white and cold under the ineffaceable seal of 
death. The attitude was exquisitely easy; there had been no pain—no 
struggle. The action of the heart must have ceased as he lay down. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Bell 
was stunned by the shock; and only recovered when the time came for being 
angry at every suggestion of his man's. 
</p>
               <p>'A coroner's inquest? Pooh. You 
don't think I poisoned him! Dr. Forbes says it is just the natural end of a 
heart complaint. Poor old Hale! You wore out that tender heart of yours 
before its time. Poor old friend! how he talked of his——    Wallis, pack up 
a carpet-bag for me in five minutes. Here have I been talking. Pack it up, I 
say. I must go to Milton by the next train.' 
</p>
               <p>The bag was packed, the cab 
ordered, the railway reached, in twenty minutes from the moment of this 
decision. The London train whizzed by, drew back some yards, and in Mr. Bell 
was hurried by the impatient guard. He threw himself back in his seat, to 
try, with closed eyes, to understand how one in life yesterday could be dead 
to-day; and shortly tears stole out between his grizzled eye-lashes, at the 
feeling of which he opened his keen eyes, and looked as severely cheerful as 
his set determination could make him. He was not going to blubber before a 
set of strangers. Not he! 
</p>
               <p>There was no set of strangers, only one sitting 
far from him on the same side. By and bye Mr. Bell peered at him, to discover 
what manner of man it was that might have been observing his emotion; and 
behind the great sheet of the outspread 'Times,' he recognised Mr. 
Thornton. 
</p>
               <p>'Why, Thornton! is that you?' said he, removing hastily to a 
closer proximity. He shook Mr. Thornton vehemently by the hand, until the 
gripe ended in a sudden relaxation, for the hand was wanted to wipe away 
tears. He had last seen Mr. Thornton in his friend Hale's company. 
</p>
               <p>'I'm 
going to Milton, bound on a melancholy errand. Going to break to Hale's 
daughter the news of his sudden death!' 
</p>
               <p>'Death! Mr. Hale dead!' 
</p>
               <p>'Ay; I 
keep saying it to myself, “Hale is dead!” but it doesn't make it any the more 
real. Hale is dead for all that. He went to bed well, to all appearance, last 
night, and was quite cold this morning when my servant went to call 
him.' 
</p>
               <p>'Where? I don't understand!' 
</p>
               <p>'At Oxford. He came to stay with me; 
hadn't been in Oxford this seventeen years—and this is the end of it.' 
</p>
               <p>Not 
one word was spoken for above a quarter of an hour. Then Mr. Thornton 
said: 
</p>
               <p>'And she!' and stopped full short. 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret you mean. Yes! I am 
going to tell her. Poor fellow! how full his thoughts were of her all last 
night! Good God! Last night only. And how immeasurably distant he is now! But 
I take Margaret as my child for his sake. I said last night I would take her 
for her own sake. Well, I take her for both.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton made one or two 
fruitless attempts to speak, before he could get out the words: 
</p>
               <p>'What will 
become of her!' 
</p>
               <p>'I rather fancy there will be two people waiting for her: 
myself for one. I would take a live dragon into my house to live, if, by 
hiring such a chaperon, and setting up an establishment of my own, I could 
make my old age happy with having Margaret for a daughter. But there are 
those Lennoxes!' 
</p>
               <p>'Who are they?' asked Mr. Thornton with trembling 
interest. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, smart London people, who very likely will think they've the 
best right to her. Captain Lennox married her cousin—the girl she was 
brought up with. Good enough people, I dare say. And there's her aunt, Mrs. 
Shaw. There might be a way open, perhaps, by my offering to marry that worthy 
lady! but that would be quite a pis aller. And then there's that 
brother!' 
</p>
               <p>'What brother? A brother of her aunt's?' 
</p>
               <p>'No, no; a clever 
Lennox, (the captain's a fool, you must understand) a young barrister, who 
will be setting his cap at Margaret. I know he has had her in his mind this 
five years or more: one of his chums told me as much; and he was only kept 
back by her want of fortune. Now that will be done away with.' 
</p>
               <p>'How?' asked 
Mr. Thornton, too earnestly curious to be aware of the impertinence of his 
question. 
</p>
               <p>'Why, she'll have my money at my death. And if this Henry Lennox 
is half good enough for her, and she likes him—well! I might find another 
way of getting a home through a marriage. I'm dreadfully afraid of being 
tempted, at an unguarded moment, by the aunt.' 
</p>
               <p>Neither Mr. Bell nor Mr. 
Thornton was in a laughing humour; so the oddity of any of the speeches which 
the former made was unnoticed by them. Mr. Bell whistled, without emitting 
any sound beyond a long hissing breath; changed his seat, without finding 
comfort or rest while Mr. Thornton sat immoveably still, his eyes fixed on 
one spot in the newspaper, which he had taken up in order to give himself 
leisure to think. 
</p>
               <p>'Where have you been?' asked Mr. Bell, at length. 
</p>
               <p>'To 
Havre. Trying to detect the secret of the great rise in the price of 
cotton.' 
</p>
               <p>'Ugh! Cotton, and speculations, and smoke, well-cleansed and 
well-cared-for machinery, and unwashed and neglected hands. Poor old Hale! 
Poor old Hale! If you could have known the change which it was to him from 
Helstone. Do you know the New Forest at all?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes.' (Very 
shortly). 
</p>
               <p>'Then you can fancy the difference between it and Milton. What 
part were you in? Were you ever at Helstone? a little picturesque village, 
like some in the Odenwald? You know Helstone?' 
</p>
               <p>'I have seen it. It was a 
great change to leave it and come to Milton.' 
</p>
               <p>He took up his newspaper with 
a determined air, as if resolved to avoid further conversation; and Mr. Bell 
was fain to resort to his former occupation of trying to find out how he 
could best break the news to Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>She was at an up-stairs window; she 
saw him alight; she guessed the truth with an instinctive flash. She stood in 
the middle of the drawing-room, as if arrested in her first impulse to rush 
downstairs, and as if by the same restraining thought she had been turned to 
stone; so white and immoveable was she. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! don't tell me! I know it from 
your face! You would have sent—you would not have left him—if he were 
alive! Oh papa, papa!' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.17" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XVII</head>
               <head>ALONE! ALONE!</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'When some beloved voice that was to you </l>
                  <l>Both sound and sweetness, faileth suddenly, </l>
                  <l>And silence, against which you dare not cry, </l>
                  <l>Aches round you like a strong disease and new— </l>
                  <l>What hope? what help? what music will undo </l>
                  <l>That silence to your sense?' </l>
                  <l>MRS. BROWNING. </l>
               </q>
               <p>The shock had been great. Margaret fell into a state of prostration, which 
did not show itself in sobs and tears, or even find the relief of words. She 
lay on the sofa, with her eyes shut, never speaking but when spoken to, and 
then replying in whispers. Mr. Bell was perplexed. He dared not leave her; he 
dared not ask her to accompany him back to Oxford, which had been one of the 
plans he had formed on the journey to Milton, her physical exhaustion was 
evidently too complete for her to undertake any such fatigue—putting the 
sight that she would have to encounter out of the question. Mr. Bell sate 
over the fire, considering what he had better do. Margaret lay motionless, 
and almost breathless by him. He would not leave her, even for the dinner 
which Dixon had prepared for him down-stairs, and, with sobbing hospitality, 
would fain have tempted him to eat. He had a plateful of something brought up 
to him. In general, he was particular and dainty enough, and knew well each 
shade of flavour in his food, but now the devilled chicken tasted like 
sawdust. He minced up some of the fowl for Margaret, and peppered and salted 
it well; but when Dixon, following his directions, tried to feed her, the 
languid shake of head proved that in such a state as Margaret was in, food 
would only choke, not nourish her. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Bell gave a great sigh; lifted up 
his stout old limbs (stiff with travelling) from their easy position, and 
followed Dixon out of the room. 
</p>
               <p>'I can't leave her. I must write to them at 
Oxford, to see that the preparations are made: they can he getting on with 
these till I arrive. Can't Mrs. Lennox come to her? I'll write and tell her 
she must. The girl must have some woman-friend about her, if only to talk her 
into a good fit of crying.' 
</p>
               <p>Dixon was crying—enough for two; but, after 
wiping her eyes and steadying her voice, she managed to tell Mr. Bell, that 
Mrs. Lennox was too near her confinement to be able to undertake any journey 
at present. 
</p>
               <p>'Well! I suppose we must have Mrs. Shaw; she's come back to 
England, isn't she?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, sir, she's come back; but I don't think she will 
like to leave Mrs. Lennox at such an interesting time,' said Dixon, who did 
not much approve of a stranger entering the household, to share with her in 
her ruling care of Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Interesting time be—' Mr. Bell restricted 
himself to coughing over the end of his sentence. 'She could be content to he 
at Venice or Naples, or some of those Popish places, at the last “interesting 
time,” which took place in Corfu, I think. And what does that little 
prosperous woman's “interesting time” signify, in comparison with that poor 
creature there,—that helpless, homeless, friendless Margaret—lying as still 
on that sofa as if it were an altar-tomb, and she the stone statue on it. I 
tell you, Mrs. Shaw shall come. See that a room, or whatever she wants, is 
got ready for her by to-morrow night. I'll take care she 
comes.' 
</p>
               <p>Accordingly Mr. Bell wrote a letter, which Mrs. Shaw declared, with 
many tears, to he so like one of the dear general's when he was going to have 
a fit of the gout, that she should always value and preserve it. If he had 
given her the option, by requesting or urging her, as if a refusal were 
possible, she might not have come—true and sincere as was her sympathy with 
Margaret. It needed the sharp uncourteous command to make her conquer her vis 
inertiae, and allow herself to be packed by her maid, after the latter had 
completed the boxes. Edith, all cap, shawls, and tears, came out to the top 
of the stairs, as Captain Lennox was taking her mother down to the 
carriage: 
</p>
               <p>'Don't forget, mamma; Margaret must come and live with us. Sholto 
will go to Oxford on Wednesday, and you must send word by Mr. Bell to him 
when we're to expect you. And if you want Sholto, he can go on from Oxford to 
Milton. Don't forget, mamma; you are to bring back Margaret.' 
</p>
               <p>Edith 
re-entered the drawing-room. Mr. Henry Lennox was there, cutting open the 
pages of a new Review. Without lifting his head, he said, 'If you don't like 
Sholto to be so long absent from you, Edith, I hope you will let me go down 
to Milton, and give what assistance I can.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, thank you,' said Edith, 'I 
dare say old Mr. Bell will do everything he can, and more help may not be 
needed. Only one does not look for much savoir-faire from a resident Fellow. 
Dear, darling Margaret! won't it be nice to have her here, again? You were 
both great allies, years ago.' 
</p>
               <p>'Were we?' asked he indifferently, with an 
appearance of being interested in a passage in the Review. 
</p>
               <p>'Well, perhaps 
not—I forget. I was so full of Sholto. But doesn't it fall out well, that if 
my uncle was to die, it should be just now, when we are come home, and 
settled in the old house, and quite ready to receive Margaret? Poor thing! 
what a change it will be to her from Milton! I'll have new chintz for her 
bedroom, and make it look new and bright, and cheer her up a little.' 
</p>
               <p>In 
the same spirit of kindness, Mrs. Shaw journeyed to Milton, occasionally 
dreading the first meeting, and wondering how it would be got over; but more 
frequently planning how soon she could get Margaret away from 'that horrid 
place,' and back into the pleasant comforts of Harley Street. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh dear!' 
she said to her maid; 'look at those chimneys! My poor sister Hale! I don't 
think I could have rested at Naples, if I had known what it was! I must have 
come and fetched her and Margaret away.' And to herself she acknowledged, 
that she had always thought her brother-in-law rather a weak man, but never 
so weak as now, when she saw for what a place he had exchanged the lovely 
Helstone home. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret had remained in the same state; white, motionless, 
speechless, tearless. They had told her that her aunt Shaw was coming; but 
she had not expressed either surprise or pleasure, or dislike to the idea. 
Mr. Bell, whose appetite had returned, and who appreciated Dixon's endeavours 
to gratify it, in vain urged upon her to taste some sweetbreads stewed with 
oysters; she shook her head with the same quiet obstinacy as on the previous 
day; and he was obliged to console himself for her rejection, by eating them 
all himself But Margaret was the first to hear the stopping of the cab that 
brought her aunt from the railway station.  Her eyelids quivered, her lips 
coloured and trembled. Mr. Bell went down to meet Mrs. Shaw; and when they 
came up, Margaret was standing, trying to steady her dizzy self; and when she 
saw her aunt, she went forward to the arms open to receive her, and first 
found the passionate relief of tears on her aunt's shoulder. All thoughts of 
quiet habitual love, of tenderness for years, of relationship to the 
dead,—all that inexplicable likeness in look, tone, and gesture, that seem 
to belong to one family, and which reminded Margaret so forcibly at this 
moment of her mother,—came in to melt and soften her numbed heart into the 
overflow of warm tears. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Bell stole out of the room, and went down into 
the study, where he ordered a fire, and tried to divert his thoughts by 
taking down and examining the different books. Each volume brought a 
remembrance or a suggestion of his dead friend. It might be a change of 
employment from his two days' work of watching Margaret, but it was no change 
of thought. He was glad to catch the sound of Mr. Thornton's voice, making 
enquiry at the door. Dixon was rather cavalierly dismissing him; for with the 
appearance of Mrs. Shaw's maid, came visions of former grandeur, of the 
Beresford blood, of the 'station' (so she was pleased to term it) from which 
her young lady had been ousted, and to which she was now, please God, to be 
restored. These visions, which she had been dwelling on with complacency in 
her conversation with Mrs. Shaw's maid (skilfully eliciting meanwhile all the 
circumstances of state and consequence connected with the Harley Street 
establishment, for the edification of the listening Martha), made Dixon 
rather inclined to be supercilious in her treatment of any inhabitant of 
Milton; so, though she always stood rather in awe of Mr. Thornton, she was as 
curt as she durst be in telling him that he could see none of the inmates of 
the house that night. It was rather uncomfortable to he contradicted in her 
statement by Mr. Bell's opening the study-door, and calling out: 
</p>
               <p>'Thornton! 
is that you? Come in for a minute or two; I want to speak to you.' So Mr. 
Thornton went into the study, and Dixon had to retreat into the kitchen, and 
reinstate herself in her own esteem by a prodigious story of Sir John 
Beresford's coach and six, when he was high sheriff. 
</p>
               <p>'I don't know what I 
wanted to say to you after all. Only it's dull enough to sit in a room where 
everything speaks to you of a dead friend. Yet Margaret and her aunt must 
have the drawing-room to themselves!' 
</p>
               <p>'Is Mrs.—is her aunt come?' asked 
Mr. Thornton. 
</p>
               <p>'Come? Yes! maid and all. One would have thought she might 
have come by herself at such a time! And now I shall have to turn out and 
find my way to the Clarendon.' 
</p>
               <p>'You must not go to the Clarendon. We have 
five or six empty bed-rooms at home.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well aired?' 
</p>
               <p>'I think you may 
trust my mother for that.' 
</p>
               <p>'Then I'll only run up-stairs and wish that wan 
girl good-night, and make my bow to her aunt, and go off with you 
straight.' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Bell was some time up-stairs. Mr. Thornton began to think it 
long, for he was full of business, and had hardly been able to spare the time 
for running up to Crampton, and enquiring how Miss Hale was. 
</p>
               <p>When they had 
set out upon their walk, Mr. Bell said: 
</p>
               <p>'I was kept by those women in the 
drawing-room. Mrs. Shaw is anxious to get home—on account of her daughter, 
she says—and wants Margaret to go off with her at once. Now she is no more 
fit for travelling than I am for flying. Besides, she says, and very justly, 
that she has friends she must see—that she must wish good-bye to several 
people; and then her aunt worried her about old claims, and was she forgetful 
of old friends? And she said, with a great burst of crying, she should be 
glad enough to go from a place where she had suffered so much. Now I must 
return to Oxford to-morrow, and I don't know on which side of the scale to 
throw in my voice.' 
</p>
               <p>He paused, as if asking a question; but he received no 
answer from his companion, the echo of whose thoughts kept 
repeating— 
</p>
               <p>'Where she had suffered so much.' Alas! and that was the way in 
which this eighteen months in Milton—to him so unspeakably precious, down to 
its very bitterness, which was worth all the rest of life's sweetness—would 
be remembered. Neither loss of father, nor loss of mother, dear as she was to 
Mr. Thornton, could have poisoned the remembrance of the weeks, the days, the 
hours, when a walk of two miles, every step of which was pleasant, as it 
brought him nearer and nearer to her, took him to her sweet presence—every 
step of which was rich, as each recurring moment that bore him away from her 
made him recall some fresh grace in her demeanour, or pleasant pungency in 
her character. Yes! whatever had happened to him, external to his relation to 
her, he could never have spoken of that time, when he could have seen her 
every day—when he had her within his grasp, as it were—as a time of 
suffering. It had been a royal time of luxury to him, with all its stings and 
contumelies, compared to the poverty that crept round and clipped the 
anticipation of the future down to sordid fact, and life without an 
atmosphere of either hope or fear. 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Thornton and Fanny were in the 
dining-room; the latter in a flutter of small exultation, as the maid held up 
one glossy material after another, to try the effect of the wedding-dresses 
by candlelight. Her mother really tried to sympathise with her, but could 
not. Neither taste nor dress were in her line of subjects, and she heartily 
wished that Fanny had accepted her brother's offer of having the wedding 
clothes provided by some first-rate London dressmaker, without the endless 
troublesome discussions, and unsettled wavering, that arose out of Fanny's 
desire to choose and superintend everything herself. Mr. Thornton was only 
too glad to mark his grateful approbation of any sensible man, who could be 
captivated by Fanny's second-rate airs and graces, by giving her ample means 
for providing herself with the finery, which certainly rivalled, if it did 
not exceed, the lover in her estimation. When her brother and Mr. Bell came 
in, Fanny blushed and simpered, and fluttered over the signs of her 
employment, in a way which could not have failed to draw attention from any 
one else but Mr. Bell. If he thought about her and her silks and satins at 
all, it was to compare her and them with the pale sorrow he had left behind 
him, sitting motionless, with bent head and folded hands, in a room where the 
stillness was so great that you might almost fancy the rush in your straining 
ears was occasioned by the spirits of the dead, yet hovering round their 
beloved. For, when Mr. Bell had first gone up-stairs, Mrs. Shaw lay asleep on 
the sofa; and no sound broke the silence. 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Thornton gave Mr. Bell her 
formal, hospitable welcome. She was never so gracious as when receiving her 
Son's friends in her son's house; and the more unexpected they were, the more 
honour to her admirable housekeeping preparations for comfort. 
</p>
               <p>'How is Miss 
Hale?' she asked. 
</p>
               <p>'About as broken down by this last stroke as she can 
be.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am sure it is very well for her that she has such a friend as 
you.' 
</p>
               <p>'I wish I were her only friend, madam. I daresay it sounds very 
brutal; but here have I been displaced, and turned out of my post of 
comforter and adviser by a fine lady aunt; and there are cousins and what not 
claiming her in London, as if she were a lap-dog belonging to them. And she 
is too weak and miserable to have a will of her own.' 
</p>
               <p>'She must indeed be 
weak,' said Mrs. Thornton, with an implied meaning which her son understood 
well. 'But where,' continued Mrs. Thornton, 'have these relations been all 
this time that Miss Hale has appeared almost friendless, and has certainly 
had a good deal of anxiety to bear?' But she did not feel interest enough in 
the answer to her question to wait for it. She left the room to make her 
household arrangements. 
</p>
               <p>'They have been living abroad. They have some kind 
of claim upon her. I will do them that justice. The aunt brought her up, and 
she and the cousin have been like sisters. The thing vexing me, you see, is 
that I wanted to take her for a child of my own; and I am jealous of these 
people, who don't seem to value the privilege of their right. Now it would be 
different if Frederick claimed her.' 
</p>
               <p>'Frederick!' exclaimed Mr. Thornton. 
'Who is he? What right—?' Me stopped short in his vehement 
question. 
</p>
               <p>'Frederick,' said Mr. Bell in surprise. 'Why don't you know? He's 
her brother. Have you not heard—' 
</p>
               <p>'I never heard his name before. Where is 
he? Who is he?' 
</p>
               <p>'Surely I told you about him, when the family first came to 
Milton—the son who was concerned in that mutiny.' 
</p>
               <p>'I never heard of him 
till this moment. Where does he live?' 
</p>
               <p>'In Spain. He's liable to be 
arrested the moment he sets foot on English ground. Poor fellow! he will 
grieve at not being able to attend his father's funeral. We must be content 
with Captain Lennox; for I don't know of any other relation to summon.' 
</p>
               <p>'I 
hope I may be allowed to go?' 
</p>
               <p>'Certainly; thankfully. You're a good fellow, 
after all, Thornton. Hale liked you. He spoke to me, only the other day, 
about you at Oxford. He regretted he had seen so little of you lately. I am 
obliged to you for wishing to show him respect.' 
</p>
               <p>'But about Frederick. Does 
he never come to England?' 
</p>
               <p>'Never.' 
</p>
               <p>'He was not over here about the time 
of Mrs. Hale's death?' 
</p>
               <p>'No. Why, I was here then. I hadn't seen Hale for 
years and years and, if you remember, I came— No, it was some time after 
that that I came. But poor Frederick Hale was not here then. What made you 
think he was?' 
</p>
               <p>'I saw a young man walking with Miss Hale one day,' replied 
Mr. Thornton, 'and I think it was about that time.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, that would be this 
young Lennox, the Captain's brother. He's a lawyer, and they were in pretty 
constant correspondence with him; and I remember Mr. Hale told me he thought 
he would come down. Do you know,' said Mr. Bell, wheeling round, and shutting 
one eye, the better to bring the forces of the other to bear with keen 
scrutiny on Mr. Thornton's face, 'that I once fancied you had a little 
tenderness for Margaret?' 
</p>
               <p>No answer. No change of countenance. 
</p>
               <p>'And so 
did poor Hale. Not at first, and not till I had put it into his head.' 
</p>
               <p>'I 
admired Miss Hale. Every one must do so. She is a beautiful creature,' said 
Mr. Thornton, driven to bay by Mr. Bell's pertinacious questioning. 
</p>
               <p>'Is 
that all! You can speak of her in that measured way, as simply a beautiful 
creature”—only something to catch the eye. I did hope you had had nobleness 
enough in you to make you pay her the homage of the heart. Though I 
believe—in fact I know, she would have rejected you, still to have loved her 
without return would have lifted you higher than all those, be they who they 
may, that have never known her to love. “Beautiful creature” indeed! Do you 
speak of her as you would of a horse or a dog?' 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton's eyes glowed 
like red embers. 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Bell,' said he, 'before you speak so, you should 
remember that all men are not as free to express what they feel as you are. 
Let us talk of something else.' For though his heart leaped up, as at a 
trumpet-call, to every word that Mr. Bell had said, and though he knew that 
what he had said would henceforward bind the thought of the old Oxford Fellow 
closely up with the most precious things of his heart, yet he would not be 
forced into any expression of what he felt towards Margaret. He was no 
mocking-bird of praise, to try because another extolled what he reverenced 
and passionately loved, to outdo him in laudation. So he turned to some of 
the dry matters of business that lay between Mr. Bell and him, as landlord 
and tenant. 
</p>
               <p>'What is that heap of brick and mortar we came against in the 
yard? Any repairs wanted?' 
</p>
               <p>'No, none, thank you.' 
</p>
               <p>'Are you building on 
your own account? If you are, I'm very much obliged to you.' 
</p>
               <p>'I'm building 
a dining-room—for the men I mean—the hands.' 
</p>
               <p>'I thought you were hard to 
please, if this room wasn't good enough to satisfy you, a bachelor.' 
</p>
               <p>'I've 
got acquainted with a strange kind of chap, and I put one or two children in 
whom he is interested to school. So, as I happened to be passing near his 
house one day, I just went there about some trifling payment to be made; and 
I saw such a miserable black frizzle of a dinner—a greasy cinder of meat, as 
first set me a-thinking. But it was not till provisions grew so high this 
winter that I bethought me how, by buying things wholesale, and cooking a 
good quantity of provisions together, much money might be saved, and much 
comfort gained. So I spoke to my friend—or my enemy—the man I told you 
of—and he found fault with every detail of my plan; and in consequence I 
laid it aside, both as impracticable, and also because if I forced it into 
operation I should be interfering with the independence of my men; when, 
suddenly, this Higgins came to me and graciously signified his approval of a 
scheme so nearly the same as mine, that I might fairly have claimed it; and, 
moreover, the approval of several of his fellow-workmen, to whom he had 
spoken. I was a little “riled,” I confess, by his manner, and thought of 
throwing the whole thing overboard to sink or swim. But it seemed childish to 
relinquish a plan which I had once thought wise and well-laid, just because I 
myself did not receive all the honour and consequence due to the originator. 
So I coolly took the part assigned to me, which is something like that of 
steward to a club. I buy in the provisions wholesale, and provide a fitting 
matron or cook.' 
</p>
               <p>'I hope you give satisfaction in your new capacity. Are 
you a good judge of potatoes and onions? But I suppose Mrs. Thornton assists 
you in your marketing.' 
</p>
               <p>'Not a bit,' replied Mr. Thornton. 'She disapproves 
of the whole plan, and now we never mention it to each other. But I manage 
pretty well, getting in great stocks from Liverpool, and being served in 
butcher's meat by our own family butcher. I can assure you, the hot dinners 
the matron turns out are by no means to be despised.' 
</p>
               <p>'Do you taste each 
dish as it goes in, in virtue of your office? I hope you have a white 
wand.' 
</p>
               <p>'I was very scrupulous, at first, in confining myself to the mere 
purchasing part, and even in that I rather obeyed the men's orders conveyed 
through the housekeeper, than went by my own judgment. At one time, the beef 
was too large, at another the mutton was not fat enough. I think they saw how 
careful I was to leave them free, and not to intrude my own ideas upon them; 
so, one day, two or three of the men—my friend Higgins among them—asked me 
if I would not come in and take a snack. It was a very busy day, but I saw 
that the men would be hurt if, after making the advance, I didn't meet them 
half-way, so I went in, and I never made a better dinner in my life. I told 
them (my next neighbours I mean, for I'm no speech-maker) how much I'd 
enjoyed it; and for some time, whenever that especial dinner recurred in 
their dietary, I was sure to be met by these men, with a “Master, there's 
hot-pot for dinner to-day, win yo' come?” If they had not asked me, I would 
no more have intruded on them than I'd have gone to the mess at the barracks 
without invitation.' 
</p>
               <p>'I should think you were rather a restraint on your 
hosts' conversation. They can't abuse the masters while you're there. I 
suspect they take it out on non-hot-pot days.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well! hitherto we've 
steered clear of all vexed questions. But if any of the old disputes came up 
again, I would certainly speak out my mind next hot-pot day. But you are 
hardly acquainted with our Darkshire fellows, for all you're a Darkshire man 
yourself They have such a sense of humour, and such a racy mode of 
expression! I am getting really to know some of them now, and they talk 
pretty freely before me.' 
</p>
               <p>'Nothing like the act of eating for equalising 
men. Dying is nothing to it. The philosopher dies sententiously—the pharisee 
ostentatiously—the simple-hearted humbly—the poor idiot blindly, as the 
sparrow falls to the ground; the philosopher and idiot, publican and 
pharisee, all eat after the same fashion—given an equally good digestion. 
There's theory for theory for you!' 
</p>
               <p>'Indeed I have no theory; I hate 
theories.' 
</p>
               <p>'I beg your pardon. To show my penitence, will you accept a ten 
pound note towards your marketing, and give the poor fellows a 
feast?' 
</p>
               <p>'Thank you; but I'd rather not. They pay me rent for the oven and 
cooking-places at the back of the mill: and will have to pay more for the new 
dining-room. I don't want it to fall into a charity. I don't want donations. 
Once let in the principle, and I should have people going, and talking, and 
spoiling the simplicity of the whole thing.' 
</p>
               <p>'People will talk about any 
new plan. You can't help that.' 
</p>
               <p>'My enemies, if I have any, may make a 
philanthropic fuss about this dinner-scheme; but you are a friend, and I 
expect you will pay my experiment the respect of silence. It is but a new 
broom at present, and sweeps clean enough. But by-and-by we shall meet with 
plenty of stumbling-blocks, no doubt.' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.18" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XVIII</head>
               <head>MARGARET'S FLITTIN'</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'The meanest thing to which we bid adieu, </l>
                  <l>Loses its meanness in the parting hour.' </l>
                  <l>ELLIOTT. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Mrs. Shaw took as vehement a dislike as it was possible for one of her 
gentle nature to do, against Milton. It was noisy, and smoky, and the poor 
people whom she saw in the streets were dirty, and the rich ladies 
over-dressed, and not a man that she saw, high or low, had his clothes made 
to fit him. She was sure Margaret would never regain her lost strength while 
she stayed in Milton; and she herself was afraid of one of her old attacks of 
the nerves. Margaret must return with her, and that quickly. This, if not the 
exact force of her words, was at any rate the spirit of what she urged on 
Margaret, till the latter, weak, weary, and broken-spirited, yielded a 
reluctant promise that, as soon as Wednesday was over she would prepare to 
accompany her aunt back to town, leaving Dixon in charge of all the 
arrangements for paying bills, disposing of furniture, and shutting up the 
house. Before that Wednesday—that mournful Wednesday, when Mr. Hale was to 
be interred, far away from either of the homes he had known in life, and far 
away from the wife who lay lonely among strangers (and this last was 
Margaret's great trouble, for she thought that if she had not given way to 
that overwhelming stupor during the first sad days, she could have arranged 
things otherwise)—before that Wednesday, Margaret received a letter from Mr. 
Bell. 
</p>
               <p>
</p>
               <p>'MY DEAR MARGARET:—I did mean to have returned to Milton on 
Thursday, but unluckily it turns out to be one of the rare occasions when we, 
Plymouth Fellows, are called upon to perform any kind of duty, and I must not 
be absent from my post. Captain Lennox and Mr. Thornton are here. The former 
seems a smart, well-meaning man; and has proposed to go over to Milton, and 
assist you in any search for the will; of course there is none, or you would 
have found it by this time, if you followed my directions. Then the Captain 
declares he must take you and his mother-in-law home; and, in his wife's 
present state, I don't see how you can expect him to remain away longer than 
Friday. However, that Dixon of yours is trusty; and can hold her, or your 
own, till I come. I will put matters into the hands of my Milton attorney if 
there is no will; for I doubt this smart captain is no great man of business. 
Nevertheless, his moustachios are splendid. There will have to be a sale, so 
select what things you wish reserved. Or you can send a list afterwards. Now 
two things more, and I have done. You know, or if you don't, your poor father 
did, that you are to have my money and goods when I die. Not that I mean to 
die yet; but I name this lust to explain what is coming. These Lennoxes seem 
very fond of you now; and perhaps may continue to be; perhaps not. So it is 
best to start with a formal agreement; namely, that you are to pay them two 
hundred and fifty pounds a year, as long as you and they find it pleasant to 
live together. (This, of course, includes Dixon; mind you don't be cajoled 
into paying any more for her.) Then you won't be thrown adrift, if some day 
the captain wishes to have his house to himself, but you can carry yourself 
and your two hundred and fifty pounds off somewhere else; if, indeed, I have 
not claimed you to come and keep house for me first. Then as to dress, and 
Dixon, and personal expenses, and confectionery (all young ladies eat 
confectionery till wisdom comes by age), I shall consult some lady of my 
acquaintance, and see how much you will have from your father before fixing 
this. Now, Margaret, have you flown out before you have read this far, and 
wondered what right the old man has to settle your affairs for you so 
cavalierly? I make no doubt you have. Yet the old man has a right. He has 
loved your father for five and thirty years; he stood beside him on his 
wedding-day; he closed his eyes in death. Moreover, he is your godfather; and 
as he cannot do you much good spiritually, having a hidden consciousness of 
your superiority in such things, he would fain do you the poor good of 
endowing you materially. And the old man has not a known relation on earth; 
“who is there to mourn for Adam Bell?” and his whole heart is set and bent 
upon this one thing, and Margaret Hale is not the girl to say him nay. Write 
by return, if only two lines, to tell me your answer. But <hi>no 
thanks</hi>.' 
</p>
               <p>
</p>
               <p>Margaret took up a pen and scrawled with trembling hand, 
'Margaret Hale is not the girl to say him nay.' In her weak state she could 
not think of any other words, and yet she was vexed to use these. But she was 
so much fatigued even by this slight exertion, that if she could have thought 
of another form of acceptance, she could not have sate up to write a syllable 
of it. She was obliged to lie down again, and try not to think. 
</p>
               <p>'My dearest 
child! Has that letter vexed or troubled you?' 
</p>
               <p>'No!' said Margaret feebly. 
'I shall be better when to-morrow is over.' 
</p>
               <p>'I feel sure, darling, you 
won't be better till I get you out of this horrid air. How you can have borne 
it this two years I can't imagine.' 
</p>
               <p>'Where could I go to? I could not leave 
papa and mamma.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well! don't distress yourself, my dear. I dare say it was 
all for the best, only I had no conception of how you were living. Our 
butler's wife lives in a better house than this.' 
</p>
               <p>'It is sometimes very 
pretty—in summer; you can't judge by what it is now. I have been very happy 
here,' and Margaret closed her eyes by way of stopping the 
conversation. 
</p>
               <p>The house teemed with comfort now, compared to what it had 
done. The evenings were chilly, and by Mrs. Shaw's directions fires were 
lighted in every bedroom. She petted Margaret in every possible way, and 
bought every delicacy, or soft luxury in which she herself would have 
burrowed and sought comfort. But Margaret was indifferent to all these 
things; or, if they forced themselves upon her attention, it was simply as 
causes for gratitude to her aunt, who was putting herself so much out of her 
way to think of her. She was restless, though so weak. All the day long, she 
kept herself from thinking of the ceremony which was going on at Oxford, by 
wandering from room to room, and languidly setting aside such articles as she 
wished to retain. Dixon followed her by Mrs. Shaw's desire, ostensibly to 
receive instructions, but with a private injunction to soothe her into repose 
as soon as might be. 
</p>
               <p>'These books, Dixon, I will keep. All the rest will 
you send to Mr. Bell? They are of a kind that he will value for themselves, 
as well as for papa's sake. This——I should like you to take this to Mr. 
Thornton, after I am gone. Stay; I will write a note with it.' And she sate 
down hastily, as if afraid of thinking, and wrote: 
</p>
               <p>
</p>
               <p>'DEAR SIR,—The 
accompanying book I am sure will be valued by you for the sake of my father, 
to whom it belonged. 'Yours sincerely, 'MARGARET HALE.' 
</p>
               <p>
</p>
               <p>She set out 
again upon her travels through the house, turning over articles, known to her 
from her childhood, with a sort of caressing reluctance to leave 
them—old-fashioned, worn and shabby, as they might be. But she hardly spoke 
again; and Dixon's report to Mrs. Shaw was, that 'she doubted whether Miss 
Hale heard a word of what she said, though she talked the whole time, in 
order to divert her attention.' The consequence of being on her feet all day 
was excessive bodily weariness in the evening, and a better night's rest than 
she had had since she had heard of Mr. Hale's death. 
</p>
               <p>At breakfast time the 
next day, she expressed her wish to go and bid one or two friends good-bye. 
Mrs. Shaw objected: 
</p>
               <p>'I am sure, my dear, you can have no friends here with 
whom you are sufficiently intimate to justify you in calling upon them so 
soon; before you have been at church.' 
</p>
               <p>'But to-day is my only day; if 
Captain Lennox comes this afternoon, and if we must—if I must really go 
to-morrow——' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, yes; we shall go to-morrow. I am more and more 
convinced that this air is bad for you, and makes you look so pale and ill; 
besides, Edith expects us; and she may be waiting me; and you cannot be left 
alone, my dear, at your age. No; if you must pay these calls, I will go with 
you. Dixon can get us a coach, I suppose?' 
</p>
               <p>So Mrs. Shaw went to take care 
of Margaret, and took her maid with her to, take care of the shawls and 
air-cushions. Margaret's face was too sad to lighten up into a smile at all 
this preparation for paying two visits, that she had often made by herself at 
all hours of the day. She was half afraid of owning that one place to which 
she was going was Nicholas Higgins'; all she could do was to hope her aunt 
would be indisposed to get out of the coach, and walk up the court, and at 
every breath of wind have her face slapped by wet clothes, hanging out to dry 
on ropes stretched from house to house. 
</p>
               <p>There was a little battle in Mrs. 
Shaw's mind between ease and a sense of matronly propriety; but the former 
gained the day; and with many an injunction to Margaret to be careful of 
herself, and not to catch any fever, such as was always lurking in such 
places, her aunt permitted her to go where she had often been before without 
taking any precaution or requiring any permission. 
</p>
               <p>Nicholas was out; only 
Mary and one or two of the Boucher children at home. Margaret was vexed with 
herself for not having timed her visit better. Mary had a very blunt 
intellect, although her feelings were warm and kind; and the instant she 
understood what Margaret's purpose was in coming to see them, she began to 
cry and sob with so little restraint that Margaret found it useless to say 
any of the thousand little things which had suggested themselves to her as 
she was coming along in the coach. She could only try to comfort her a little 
by suggesting the vague chance of their meeting again, at some possible time, 
in some possible place, and bid her tell her father how much she wished, if 
he could manage it, that he should come to see her when he had done his work 
in the evening. 
</p>
               <p>As she was leaving the place, she stopped and looked round; 
then hesitated a little before she said: 
</p>
               <p>'I should like to have some little 
thing to remind me of Bessy.' 
</p>
               <p>Instantly Mary's generosity was keenly alive. 
What could they give? And on Margaret's singling out a little common 
drinking-cup, which she remembered as the one always standing by Bessy's side 
with drink for her feverish lips, Mary said: 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, take summut better; that 
only cost fourpence!' 
</p>
               <p>'That will do, thank you,' said Margaret; and she 
went quickly away, while the light caused by the pleasure of having something 
to give yet lingered on Mary's face. 
</p>
               <p>'Now to Mrs. Thornton's,' thought she 
to herself. 'It must be done.' But she looked rather rigid and pale at the 
thought of it, and had hard work to find the exact words in which to explain 
to her aunt who Mrs. Thornton was, and why she should go to bid her 
farewell. 
</p>
               <p>They (for Mrs. Shaw alighted here) were shown into the 
drawing-room, in which a fire had only just been kindled. Mrs. Shaw huddled 
herself up in her shawl, and shivered. 
</p>
               <p>'What an icy room!' she said. 
</p>
               <p>They 
had to wait for some time before Mrs. Thornton entered. There was some 
softening in her heart towards Margaret, now that she was going away out of 
her sight. She remembered her spirit, as shown at various times and places 
even more than the patience with which she had endured long and wearing 
cares. Her countenance was blander than usual, as she greeted her; there was 
even a shade of tenderness in her manner, as she noticed the white, 
tear-swollen face, and the quiver in the voice which Margaret tried to make 
so steady. 
</p>
               <p>'Allow me to introduce my aunt, Mrs. Shaw. I am going away from 
Milton to-morrow; I do not know if you are aware of it; but I wanted to see 
you once again, Mrs. Thornton, to—to apologise for my manner the last time I 
saw you; and to say that I am sure you meant kindly—however much we may have 
misunderstood each other.' 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Shaw looked extremely perplexed by what 
Margaret had said. Thanks for kindness! and apologies for failure in good 
manners! But Mrs. Thornton replied: 
</p>
               <p>'Miss Hale, I am glad you do me 
justice. I did no more than I believed to be my duty in remonstrating with 
you as I did. I have always desired to act the part of a friend to you. I am 
glad you do me justice.' 
</p>
               <p>'And,' said Margaret, blushing excessively as she 
spoke, 'will you do me justice, and believe that though I cannot—I do not 
choose—to give explanations of my conduct, I have not acted in the 
unbecoming way you apprehended?' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret's voice was so soft, and her eyes 
so pleading, that Mrs. Thornton was for once affected by the charm of manner 
to which she had hitherto proved herself invulnerable. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, I do believe 
you. Let us say no more about it. Where are you going to reside, Miss Hale? I 
understood from Mr. Bell that you were going to leave Milton. You never liked 
Milton, you know,' said Mrs. Thornton, with a sort of grim smile; 'but for 
all that, you must not expect me to congratulate you on quitting it. Where 
shall you live?' 
</p>
               <p>'With my aunt,' replied Margaret, turning towards Mrs. 
Shaw. 
</p>
               <p>'My niece will reside with me in Harley Street. She is almost like a 
daughter to me,' said Mrs. Shaw, looking fondly at Margaret; 'and I am glad 
to acknowledge my own obligation for any kindness that has been shown to her. 
If you and your husband ever come to town, my son and daughter, Captain and 
Mrs. Lennox, will, I am sure, join with me in wishing to do anything in our 
power to show you attention.' 
</p>
               <p>Mrs. Thornton thought in her own mind, that 
Margaret had not taken much care to enlighten her aunt as to the relationship 
between the Mr. and Mrs. Thornton, towards whom the fine-lady aunt was 
extending her soft patronage; so she answered shortly, 
</p>
               <p>'My husband is dead. 
Mr. Thornton is my son. I never go to London; so I am not likely to be able 
to avail myself of your polite offers.' 
</p>
               <p>At this instant Mr. Thornton 
entered the room; he had only just returned from Oxford. His mourning suit 
spoke of the reason that had called him there. 
</p>
               <p>'John,' said his mother, 
'this lady is Mrs. Shaw, Miss Hale's aunt. I am sorry to say, that Miss 
Hale's call is to wish us good-bye.' 
</p>
               <p>'You are going then!' said he, in a 
low voice. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes,' said Margaret. 'We leave to-morrow.' 
</p>
               <p>'My son-in-law 
comes this evening to escort us,' said Mrs. Shaw. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Thornton turned away. 
He had not sat down, and now he seemed to be examining something on the 
table, almost as if he had discovered an unopened letter, which had made him 
forget the present company. He did not even seem to be aware when they got up 
to take leave. He started forwards, however, to hand Mrs. Shaw down to the 
carriage. As it drove up, he and Margaret stood close together on the 
door-step, and it was impossible but that the recollection of the day of the 
riot should force itself into both their minds. Into his it came associated 
with the speeches of the following day; her passionate declaration that there 
was not a man in all that violent and desperate crowd, for whom she did not 
care as much as for him. And at the remembrance of her taunting words, his 
brow grew stern, though his heart beat thick with longing love. 'No!' said 
he, 'I put it to the touch once, and I lost it all. Let her go,—with her 
stony heart, and her beauty;—how set and terrible her look is now, for all 
her loveliness of feature! She is afraid I shall speak what will require some 
stern repression. Let her go. Beauty and heiress as she may be, she will find 
it hard to meet with a truer heart than mine. Let her go!' 
</p>
               <p>And there was no 
tone of regret, or emotion of any kind in the voice with which he said 
good-bye; and the offered hand was taken with a resolute calmness, and 
dropped as carelessly as if it had been a dead and withered flower. But none 
in his household saw Mr. Thornton again that day. He was busily engaged; or 
so he said. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret's strength was so utterly exhausted by these visits, 
that she had to submit to much watching, and petting, and sighing 
'I-told-you-so's,' from her aunt. Dixon said she was quite as bad as she had 
been on the first day she heard of her father's death; and she and Mrs. Shaw 
consulted as to the desirableness of delaying the morrow's journey. But when 
her aunt reluctantly proposed a few days' delay to Margaret, the latter 
writhed her body as if in acute suffering, and said: 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! let us go. I 
cannot be patient here. I shall not get well here. I want to forget.' 
</p>
               <p>So 
the arrangements went on; and Captain Lennox came, and with him news of Edith 
and the little boy; and Margaret found that the indifferent, careless 
conversation of one who, however kind, was not too warm and anxious a 
sympathiser, did her good. She roused up; and by the time that she knew she 
might expect Higgins, she was able to leave the room quietly, and await in 
her own chamber the expected summons. 
</p>
               <p>'Eh!' said he, as she came in, 'to 
think of th' oud gentleman dropping off as he did! Yo' might ha' knocked me 
down wi' a straw when they telled me. “Mr. Hale?” said I; “him as was th' 
parson?” “Ay,” said they. “Then,” said I, “there's as good a man gone as ever 
lived on this earth, let who will be t' other!” And I came to see yo', and 
tell yo' how grieved I were, but them women in th' kitchen wouldn't tell yo' 
I were there. They said yo' were ill,—and butter me, but yo' dunnot look 
like th' same wench. And yo're going to be a grand lady up i' Lunnon, aren't 
yo'?' 
</p>
               <p>'Not a grand lady,' said Margaret, half smiling. 
</p>
               <p>'Well! Thornton 
said—says he, a day or two ago, “Higgins, have yo' seen Miss Hale?” “No,” 
says I; “there's a pack o' women who won't let me at her. But I can bide my 
time, if she's ill. She and I knows each other pretty well; and hoo'l not go 
doubting that I'm main sorry for th' oud gentleman's death, just because I 
can't get at her and tell her so.” And says he, “Yo'll not have much time for 
to try and see her, my fine chap. She's not for staying with us a day longer 
nor she can help. She's got grand relations, and they're carrying her off; 
and we sha'n't see her no more.” “Measter,” said I, “if I dunnot see her 
afore hoo goes, I'll strive to get up to Lunnun next Whissuntide, that I 
will. I'll not be baulked of saying her good-bye by any relations 
whatsomdever.” But, bless yo', I knowed yo'd come. It were only for to humour 
the measter, I let on as if I thought yo'd mappen leave Milton without seeing 
me.' 
</p>
               <p>'You're quite right,' said Margaret. 'You only do me justice. And 
you'll not forget me, I'm sure. If no one else in Milton remembers me, I'm 
certain you will; and papa too. You know how good and how tender he was. 
Look, Higgins! here is his bible. I have kept it for you. I can ill spare it; 
but I know he would have liked you to have it. I'm sure you'll care for it, 
and study what is In it, for his sake.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yo' may say that. If it were the 
deuce's own scribble, and yo' axed me to read in it for yo'r sake, and th' 
oud gentleman's, I'd do it. Whatten's this, wench? I'm not going for to take 
yo'r brass, so dunnot think it. We've been great friends, 'bout the sound o' 
money passing between us,' 
</p>
               <p>'For the children—for Boucher's children,' said 
Margaret, hurriedly. 'They may need it. You've no right to refuse it for 
them. I would not give you a penny,' she said, smiling; 'don't think there's 
any of it for you.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well, wench! I can nobbut say, Bless yo'! and bless 
yo'!—and amen.' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.19" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XIX</head>
               <head>EASE NOT PEACE</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'A dull rotation, never at a stay, </l>
                  <l>Yesterday's face twin image of to-day.' </l>
                  <l>COWPER. </l>
               </q>
               <q>
                  <l>'Of what each one should be, he sees the form and rule, </l>
                  <l>And till he reach to that, his joy can ne'er be full.' </l>
                  <l>RUCKERT. </l>
               </q>
               <p>It was very well for Margaret that the extreme quiet of the Harley Street 
house, during Edith's recovery from her confinement, gave her the natural 
rest which she needed. It gave her time to comprehend the sudden change which 
had taken place in her circumstances within the last two months. She found 
herself at once an inmate of a luxurious house, where the bare knowledge of 
the existence of every trouble or care seemed scarcely to have penetrated. 
The wheels of the machinery of daily life were well oiled, and went along 
with delicious smoothness. Mrs. Shaw and Edith could hardly make enough of 
Margaret, on her return to what they persisted in calling her home. And she 
felt that it was almost ungrateful in her to have a secret feeling that the 
Helstone vicarage—nay, even the poor little house at Milton, with her 
anxious father and her invalid mother, and all the small household cares of 
comparative poverty, composed her idea of home. Edith was impatient to get 
well, in order to fill Margaret's bed-room with all the soft comforts, and 
pretty nick-knacks, with which her own abounded. Mrs. Shaw and her maid found 
plenty of occupation in restoring Margaret's wardrobe to a state of elegant 
variety. Captain Lennox was easy, kind, and gentlemanly; sate with his wife 
in her dressing-room an hour or two every day; played with his little boy for 
another hour, and lounged away the rest of his time at his club, when he was 
not engaged out to dinner. Just before Margaret had recovered from her 
necessity for quiet and repose—before she had begun to feel her life wanting 
and dull—Edith came down-stairs and resumed her usual part in the household; 
and Margaret fell into the old habit of watching, and admiring, and 
ministering to her cousin. She gladly took all charge of the semblances of 
duties off Edith's hands; answered notes, reminded her of engagements, tended 
her when no gaiety was in prospect, and she was consequently rather inclined 
to fancy herself ill. But all the rest of the family were in the full 
business of the London season, and Margaret was often left alone. Then her 
thoughts went back to Milton, with a strange sense of the contrast between 
the life there, and here. She was getting surfeited of the eventless ease in 
which no struggle or endeavour was required. She was afraid lest she should 
even become sleepily deadened into forgetfulness of anything beyond the life 
which was lapping her round with luxury. There might be toilers and moilers 
there in London, but she never saw them; the very servants lived in an 
underground world of their own, of which she knew neither the hopes nor the 
fears; they only seemed to start into existence when some want or whim of 
their master and mistress needed them. There was a strange unsatisfied vacuum 
in Margaret's heart and mode of life; and, once when she had dimly hinted 
this to Edith, the latter, wearied with dancing the night before, languidly 
stroked Margaret's cheek as she sat by her in the old attitude,—she on a 
footstool by the sofa where Edith lay. 
</p>
               <p>'Poor child!' said Edith. 'It is a 
little sad for you to be left, night after night, just at this time when all 
the world is so gay. But we shall be having our dinner-parties soon—as soon 
as Henry comes back from circuit—and then there will be a little pleasant 
variety for you. No wonder it is moped, poor darling!' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret did not 
feel as if the dinner-parties would be a panacea. But Edith piqued herself on 
her dinner-parties; 'so different,' as she said, 'from the old dowager 
dinners under mamma's regime;' and Mrs. Shaw herself seemed to take exactly 
the same kind of pleasure in the very different arrangements and circle of 
acquaintances which were to Captain and Mrs. Lennox's taste, as she did in 
the more formal and ponderous entertainments which she herself used to give. 
Captain Lennox was always extremely kind and brotherly to Margaret. She was 
really very fond of him, excepting when he was anxiously attentive to Edith's 
dress and appearance, with a view to her beauty making a sufficient 
impression on the world. Then all the latent Vashti in Margaret was roused, 
and she could hardly keep herself from expressing her feelings. 
</p>
               <p>The course 
of Margaret's day was this; a quiet hour or two before a late breakfast; an 
unpunctual meal, lazily eaten by weary and half-awake people, but yet at 
which, in all its dragged-out length, she was expected to be present, 
because, directly afterwards, came a discussion of plans, at which, although 
they none of them concerned her, she was expected to give her sympathy, if 
she could not assist with her advice; an endless number of notes to write, 
which Edith invariably left to her, with many caressing compliments as to her 
eloquence du billet; a little play with Sholto as he returned from his 
morning's walk; besides the care of the children during the servants' dinner; 
a drive or callers; and some dinner or morning engagement for her aunt and 
cousins, which left Margaret free, it is true, but rather wearied with the 
inactivity of the day, coming upon depressed spirits and delicate 
health. 
</p>
               <p>She looked forward with longing, though unspoken interest to the 
homely object of Dixon's return from Milton; where, until now, the old 
servant had been busily engaged in winding up all the affairs of the Hale 
family. It had appeared a sudden famine to her heart, this entire cessation 
of any news respecting the people amongst whom she had lived so long. It was 
true, that Dixon, in her business-letters, quoted, every now and then, an 
opinion of Mr. Thornton's as to what she had better do about the furniture, 
or how act in regard to the landlord of the Crampton Terrace house. But it 
was only here and there that the name came in, or any Milton name, indeed; 
and Margaret was sitting one evening, all alone in the Lennoxes's 
drawing-room, not reading Dixon's letters, which yet she held in her hand, 
but thinking over them, and recalling the days which had been, and picturing 
the busy life out of which her own had been taken and never missed; wondering 
if all went on in that whirl just as if she and her father had never been; 
questioning within herself, if no one in all the crowd missed her, (not 
Higgins, she was not thinking of him,) when, suddenly, Mr. Bell was 
announced; and Margaret hurried the letters into her work-basket, and started 
up, blushing as if she had been doing some guilty thing. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, Mr. Bell! I 
never thought of seeing you!' 
</p>
               <p>'But you give me a welcome, I hope, as well 
as that very pretty start of surprise.' 
</p>
               <p>'Have you dined? How did you come? 
Let me order you some dinner.' 
</p>
               <p>'If you're going to have any. Otherwise, you 
know, there is no one who cares less for eating than I do. But where are the 
others? Gone out to dinner? Left you alone?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh yes! and it is such a 
rest. I was just thinking—But will you run the risk of dinner? I don't know 
if there is anything in the house.' 
</p>
               <p>'Why, to tell you the truth, I dined at 
my club. Only they don't cook as well as they did, so I thought, if you were 
going to dine, I might try and make out my dinner. But never mind, never 
mind! There aren't ten cooks in England to be trusted at impromptu dinners. 
If their skill and their fires will stand it, their tempers won't. You shall 
make me some tea, Margaret. And now, what were you thinking of? you were 
going to tell me. Whose letters were those, god-daughter, that you hid away 
so speedily?' 
</p>
               <p>'Only Dixon's,' replied Margaret, growing very red. 
</p>
               <p>'Whew! 
is that all? Who do you think came up in the train with me?' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't 
know,' said Margaret, resolved against making a guess. 
</p>
               <p>'Your what d'ye 
call him? What's the right name for a cousin-in-law's brother?' 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Henry 
Lennox?' asked Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes,' replied Mr. Bell. 'You knew him formerly, 
didn't you? What sort of a person is he, Margaret?' 
</p>
               <p>'I liked him long ago,' 
said Margaret, glancing down for a moment. And then she looked straight up 
and went on in her natural manner. 'You know we have been corresponding about 
Frederick since; but I have not seen him for nearly three years, and he may 
be changed. What did you think of him?' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't know. He was so busy 
trying to find out who I was, in the first instance, and what I was in the 
second, that he never let out what he was; unless indeed that veiled 
curiosity of his as to what manner of man he had to talk to was not a good 
piece, and a fair indication of his character. Do you call him good looking, 
Margaret?' 
</p>
               <p>'No! certainly not. Do you?' 
</p>
               <p>'Not I. But I thought, perhaps, 
you might. Is he a great deal here?' 
</p>
               <p>'I fancy he is when he is in town. He 
has been on circuit now since I came. But—Mr. Bell—have you come from 
Oxford or from Milton?' 
</p>
               <p>'From Milton. Don't you see I'm 
smoke-dried?' 
</p>
               <p>'Certainly. But I thought that it might be the effect of the 
antiquities of Oxford.' 
</p>
               <p>'Come now, be a sensible woman! In Oxford, I could 
have managed all the landlords in the place, and had my own way, with half 
the trouble your Milton landlord has given me, and defeated me after all. He 
won't take the house off our hands till next June twelvemonth. Luckily, Mr. 
Thornton found a tenant for it. Why don't you ask after Mr. Thornton, 
Margaret? He has proved himself a very active friend of yours, I can tell 
you. Taken more than half the trouble off my hands.' 
</p>
               <p>'And how is he? How is 
Mrs. Thornton?' asked Margaret hurriedly and below her breath, though she 
tried to speak out. 
</p>
               <p>'I suppose they're well. I've been staying at their 
house till I was driven out of it by the perpetual clack about that Thornton 
girl's marriage. It was too much for Thornton himself, though she was his 
sister. He used to go and sit in his own room perpetually. He's getting past 
the age for caring for such things, either as principal or accessory. I was 
surprised to find the old lady falling into the current, and carried away by 
her daughter's enthusiasm for orange-blossoms and lace. I thought Mrs. 
Thornton had been made of sterner stuff.' 
</p>
               <p>'She would put on any assumption 
of feeling to veil her daughter's weakness,' said Margaret in a low 
voice. 
</p>
               <p>'Perhaps so. You've studied her, have you? She doesn't seem over 
fond of you, Margaret.' 
</p>
               <p>'I know it,' said Margaret. 'Oh, here is tea at 
last!' exclaimed she, as if relieved. And with tea came Mr. Henry Lennox, who 
had walked up to Harley Street after a late dinner, and had evidently 
expected to find his brother and sister-in-law at home. Margaret suspected 
him of being as thankful as she was at the presence of a third party, on this 
their first meeting since the memorable day of his offer, and her refusal at 
Helstone. She could hardly tell what to say at first, and was thankful for 
all the tea-table occupations, which gave her an excuse for keeping silence, 
and him an opportunity of recovering himself. For, to tell the truth, he had 
rather forced himself up to Harley Street this evening, with a view of 
getting over an awkward meeting, awkward even in the presence of Captain 
Lennox and Edith, and doubly awkward now that he found her the only lady 
there, and the person to whom he must naturally and perforce address a great 
part of his conversation. She was the first to recover her self-possession. 
She began to talk on the subject which came uppermost in her mind, after the 
first flush of awkward shyness. 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Lennox, I have been so much obliged to 
you for all you have done about Frederick.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am only sorry it has been so 
unsuccessful,' replied he, with a quick glance towards Mr. Bell, as if 
reconnoitring how much he might say before him. Margaret, as if she read his 
thought, addressed herself to Mr. Bell, both including him in the 
conversation, and implying that he was perfectly aware of the endeavours that 
had been made to clear Frederick. 
</p>
               <p>'That Horrocks—that very last witness of 
all, has proved as unavailing as all the others. Mr. Lennox has discovered 
that he sailed for Australia only last August; only two months before 
Frederick was in England, and gave us the names of——' 
</p>
               <p>'Frederick in 
England! you never told me that!' exclaimed Mr. Bell in surprise. 
</p>
               <p>'I 
thought you knew. I never doubted you had been told. Of course, it was a 
great secret, and perhaps I should not have named it now,' said Margaret, a 
little dismayed. 
</p>
               <p>'I have never named it to either my brother or your 
cousin,' said Mr. Lennox, with a little professional dryness of implied 
reproach. 
</p>
               <p>'Never mind, Margaret. I am not living in a talking, babbling 
world, nor yet among people who are trying to worm facts out of me; you 
needn't look so frightened because you have let the cat out of the bag to a 
faithful old hermit like me. I shall never name his having been in England; I 
shall be out of temptation, for no one will ask me. Stay!' (interrupting 
himself rather abruptly) 'was it at your mother's funeral?' 
</p>
               <p>'He was with 
mamma when she died,' said Margaret, softly. 
</p>
               <p>'To be sure! To be sure! Why, 
some one asked me if he had not been over then, and I denied it stoutly—not 
many weeks ago—who could it have been? Oh! I recollect!' 
</p>
               <p>But he did not 
say the name; and although Margaret would have given much to know if her 
suspicions were right, and it had been Mr. Thornton who had made the enquiry, 
she could not ask the question of Mr. Bell, much as she longed to do 
so. 
</p>
               <p>There was a pause for a moment or two. Then Mr. Lennox said, addressing 
himself to Margaret, 'I suppose as Mr. Bell is now acquainted with all the 
circumstances attending your brother's unfortunate dilemma, I cannot do 
better than inform him exactly how the research into the evidence we once 
hoped to produce in his favour stands at present. So, if he will do me the 
honour to breakfast with me to-morrow, we will go over the names of these 
missing gentry.' 
</p>
               <p>'I should like to hear all the particulars, if I may. 
Cannot you come here? I dare not ask you both to breakfast, though I am sure 
you would be welcome. But let me know all I can about Frederick, even though 
there may be no hope at present.' 
</p>
               <p>'I have an engagement at half-past 
eleven. But I will certainly come if you wish it,' replied Mr. Lennox, with a 
little afterthought of extreme willingness, which made Margaret shrink into 
herself, and almost wish that she had not proposed her natural request. Mr. 
Bell got up and looked around him for his hat, which had been removed to make 
room for tea. 
</p>
               <p>'Well!' said he, 'I don't know what Mr. Lennox is inclined to 
do, but I'm disposed to be moving off homewards. I've been a journey to-day, 
and journeys begin to tell upon my sixty and odd years.' 
</p>
               <p>'I believe I shall 
stay and see my brother and sister,' said Mr. Lennox, making no movement of 
departure. Margaret was seized with a shy awkward dread of being left alone 
with him. The scene on the little terrace in the Helstone garden was so 
present to her, that she could hardly help believing it was so with 
him. 
</p>
               <p>'Don't go yet, please, Mr. Bell,' said she, hastily. 'I want you to 
see Edith; and I want Edith to know you. Please!' said she, laying a light 
but determined hand on his arm. He looked at her, and saw the confusion 
stirring in her countenance; he sate down again, as if her little touch had 
been possessed of resistless strength. 
</p>
               <p>'You see how she overpowers me, Mr. 
Lennox,' said he. 'And I hope you noticed the happy choice of her 
expressions; she wants me to “see” this cousin Edith, who, I am told, is a 
great beauty; but she has the honesty to change her word when she comes to 
me—Mrs. Lennox is to “know” me. I suppose I am not much to “see,” eh, 
Margaret?' 
</p>
               <p>He joked, to give her time to recover from the slight flutter 
which he had detected in her manner on his proposal to leave; and she caught 
the tone, and threw the ball back. Mr. Lennox wondered how his brother, the 
Captain, could have reported her as having lost all her good looks. To be 
sure, in her quiet black dress, she was a contrast to Edith, dancing in her 
white crape mourning, and long floating golden hair, all softness and 
glitter. She dimpled and blushed most becomingly when introduced to Mr. Bell, 
conscious that she had her reputation as a beauty to keep up, and that it 
would not do to have a Mordecai refusing to worship and admire, even in the 
shape of an old Fellow of a College, which nobody had ever heard of. Mrs. 
Shaw and Captain Lennox, each in their separate way, gave Mr. Bell a kind and 
sincere welcome, winning him over to like them almost in spite of himself, 
especially when he saw how naturally Margaret took her place as sister and 
daughter of the house. 
</p>
               <p>'What a shame that we were not at home to receive 
you,' said Edith. 'You, too, Henry! though I don't know that we should have 
stayed at home for you. And for Mr. Bell! for Margaret's Mr. 
Bell——' 
</p>
               <p>'There is no knowing what sacrifices you would not have made,' 
said her brother-in-law. 'Even a dinner-party! and the delight of wearing 
this very becoming dress.' 
</p>
               <p>Edith did not know whether to frown or to smile. 
But it did not suit Mr. Lennox to drive her to the first of these 
alternatives; so he went on. 
</p>
               <p>'Will you show your readiness to make 
sacrifices to-morrow morning, first by asking me to breakfast, to meet Mr. 
Bell, and secondly, by being so kind as to order it at half-past nine, 
instead of ten o'clock? I have some letters and papers that I want to show to 
Miss Hale and Mr. Bell.' 
</p>
               <p>'I hope Mr. Bell will make our house his own 
during his stay in London,' said Captain Lennox. 'I am only so sorry we 
cannot offer him a bed-room.' 
</p>
               <p>'Thank you. I am much obliged to you. You 
would only think me a churl if you had, for I should decline it, I believe, 
in spite of all the temptations of such agreeable company,' said Mr. Bell, 
bowing all round, and secretly congratulating himself on the neat turn he had 
given to his sentence, which, if put into plain language, would have been 
more to this effect: 'I couldn't stand the restraints of such a 
proper-behaved and civil-spoken set of people as these are: it would be like 
meat without salt. I'm thankful they haven't a bed. And how well I rounded my 
sentence! I am absolutely catching the trick of good manners' 
</p>
               <p>His 
self-satisfaction lasted him till he was fairly out in the streets, walking 
side by side with Henry Lennox. Here he suddenly remembered Margaret's little 
look of entreaty as she urged him to stay longer, and he also recollected a 
few hints given him long ago by an acquaintance of Mr. Lennox's, as to his 
admiration of Margaret. It gave a new direction to his thoughts. 'You have 
known Miss Hale for a long time, I believe. How do you think her looking? She 
strikes me as pale and ill.' 
</p>
               <p>'I thought her looking remarkably well. 
Perhaps not when I first came in—now I think of it. But certainly, when she 
grew animated, she looked as well as ever I saw her do.' 
</p>
               <p>'She has had a 
great deal to go through,' said Mr. Bell. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes! I have been sorry to hear 
of all she has had to bear; not merely the common and universal sorrow 
arising from death, but all the annoyance which her father's conduct must 
have caused her, and then——' 
</p>
               <p>'Her father's conduct!' said Mr. Bell, in an 
accent of surprise. 'You must have heard some wrong statement. He behaved in 
the most conscientious manner. He showed more resolute strength than I should 
ever have given him credit for formerly.' 
</p>
               <p>'Perhaps I have been wrongly 
informed. But I have been told, by his successor in the living—a clever, 
sensible man, and a thoroughly active clergyman—that there was no call upon 
Mr. Hale to do what he did, relinquish the living, and throw himself and his 
family on the tender mercies of private teaching in a manufacturing town; the 
bishop had offered him another living, it is true, but if he had come to 
entertain certain doubts, he could have remained where he was, and so had no 
occasion to resign. But the truth is, these country clergymen live such 
isolated lives—isolated, I mean, from all intercourse with men of equal 
cultivation with themselves, by whose minds they might regulate their own, 
and discover when they were going either too fast or too slow—that they are 
very apt to disturb themselves with imaginary doubts as to the articles of 
faith, and throw up certain opportunities of doing good for very uncertain 
fancies of their own.' 
</p>
               <p>'I differ from you. I do not think they are very apt 
to do as my poor friend Hale did.' Mr. Bell was inwardly chafing. 
</p>
               <p>'Perhaps 
I used too general an expression, in saying “very apt.” But certainly, their 
lives are such as very often to produce either inordinate self-sufficiency, 
or a morbid state of conscience,' replied Mr. Lennox with perfect 
coolness. 
</p>
               <p>'You don't meet with any self-sufficiency among the lawyers, for 
instance?' asked Mr. Bell. 'And seldom, I imagine, any cases of morbid 
conscience.' He was becoming more and more vexed, and forgetting his 
lately-caught trick of good manners. Mr. Lennox saw now that he had annoyed 
his companion; and as he had talked pretty much for the sake of saying 
something, and so passing the time while their road lay together, he was very 
indifferent as to the exact side he took upon the question, and quietly came 
round by saying: 'To be sure, there is something fine in a man of Mr. Hale's 
age leaving his home of twenty years, and giving up all settled habits, for 
an idea which was probably erroneous—but that does not matter—an untangible 
thought. One cannot help admiring him, with a mixture of pity in one's 
admiration, something like what one feels for Don Quixote. Such a gentleman 
as he was too! I shall never forget the refined and simple hospitality he 
showed to me that last day at Helstone.' 
</p>
               <p>Only half mollified, and yet 
anxious, in order to lull certain qualms of his own conscience, to believe 
that Mr. Hale's conduct had a tinge of Quixotism in it, Mr. Bell growled 
out—'Aye! And you don't know Milton. Such a change from Helstone! It is 
years since I have been at Helstone—but I'll answer for it, it is standing 
there yet—every stick and every stone as it has done for the last century, 
while Milton! I go there every four or five years—and I was born there—yet 
I do assure you, I often lose my way—aye, among the very piles of warehouses 
that are built upon my father's orchard. Do we part here? Well, good night, 
sir; I suppose we shall meet in Harley Street to-morrow morning.' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.20" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XX</head>
               <head>NOT ALL A DREAM</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Where are the sounds that swam along </l>
                  <l>The buoyant air when I was young? </l>
                  <l>The last vibration now is o'er, </l>
                  <l>And they who listened are no more; </l>
                  <l>Ah! let me close my eyes and dream.' </l>
                  <l>W. S. LANDOR. </l>
               </q>
               <p>The idea of Helstone had been suggested to Mr. Bell's waking mind by his 
conversation with Mr. Lennox, and all night long it ran riot through his 
dreams. He was again the tutor in the college where he now held the rank of 
Fellow; it was again a long vacation, and he was staying with his newly 
married friend, the proud husband, and happy Vicar of Helstone. Over babbling 
brooks they took impossible leaps, which seemed to keep them whole days 
suspended in the air. Time and space were not, though all other things seemed 
real. Every event was measured by the emotions of the mind, not by its actual 
existence, for existence it had none. But the trees were gorgeous in their 
autumnal leafiness—the warm odours of flower and herb came sweet upon the 
sense—the young wife moved about her house with just that mixture of 
annoyance at her position, as regarded wealth, with pride in her handsome and 
devoted husband, which Mr. Bell had noticed in real life a quarter of a 
century ago. The dream was so like life that, when he awoke, his present life 
seemed like a dream. Where was he? In the close, handsomely furnished room of 
a London hotel! Where were those who spoke to him, moved around him, touched 
him, not an instant ago? Dead! buried! lost for evermore, as far as earth's 
for evermore would extend. He was an old man, so lately exultant in the full 
strength of manhood. The utter loneliness of his life was insupportable to 
think about. He got up hastily, and tried to forget what never more might be, 
in a hurried dressing for the breakfast in Harley Street. 
</p>
               <p>He could not 
attend to all the lawyer's details, which, as he saw, made Margaret's eyes 
dilate, and her lips grow pale, as one by one fate decreed, or so it seemed, 
every morsel of evidence which would exonerate Frederick, should fall from 
beneath her feet and disappear. Even Mr. Lennox's well-regulated professional 
voice took a softer, tenderer tone, as he drew near to the extinction of the 
last hope. It was not that Margaret had not been perfectly aware of the 
result before. It was only that the details of each successive disappointment 
came with such relentless minuteness to quench all hope, that she at last 
fairly gave way to tears. Mr. Lennox stopped reading. 
</p>
               <p>'I had better not go 
on,' said he, in a concerned voice. 'It was a foolish proposal of mine. 
Lieutenant Hale,' and even this giving him the title of the service from 
which he had so harshly been expelled, was soothing to Margaret, 'Lieutenant 
Hale is happy now; more secure in fortune and future prospects than he could 
ever have been in the navy; and has, doubtless, adopted his wife's country as 
his own.' 
</p>
               <p>'That is it,' said Margaret. 'It seems so selfish in me to regret 
it,' trying to smile, 'and yet he is lost to me, and I am so lonely.' Mr. 
Lennox turned over his papers, and wished that he were as rich and prosperous 
as he believed he should be some day. Mr. Bell blew his nose, but, otherwise, 
he also kept silence; and Margaret, in a minute or two, had apparently 
recovered her usual composure. She thanked Mr. Lennox very courteously for 
his trouble; all the more courteously and graciously because she was 
conscious that, by her behaviour, he might have probably been led to imagine 
that he had given her needless pain. Yet it was pain she would not have been 
without. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Bell came up to wish her good-bye. 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret!' said he, as 
he fumbled with his gloves. 'I am going down to Helstone to-morrow, to look 
at the old place. Would you like to come with me? Or would it give you too 
much pain? Speak out, don't be afraid.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, Mr. Bell,' said she—and could 
say no more. But she took his old gouty hand, and kissed it. 
</p>
               <p>'Come, come; 
that's enough,' said he, reddening with awkwardness. 'I suppose your aunt 
Shaw will trust you with me. We'll go to-morrow morning, and we shall get 
there about two o'clock, I fancy. We'll take a snack, and order dinner at the 
little inn—the Lennard Arms, it used to be,—and go and get an appetite in 
the forest. Can you stand it, Margaret? It will be a trial, I know, to both 
of us, but it will be a pleasure to me, at least. And there we'll dine—it 
will be but doe-venison, if we can get it at all—and then I'll take my nap 
while you go out and see old friends. I'll give you back safe and sound, 
barring railway accidents, and I'll insure your life for a thousand pounds 
before starting, which may be some comfort to your relations; but otherwise, 
I'll bring you back to Mrs. Shaw by lunch-time on Friday. So, if you say yes, 
I'll just go up-stairs and propose it.' 
</p>
               <p>'It's no use my trying to say how 
much I shall like it,' said Margaret, through her tears. 
</p>
               <p>'Well, then, prove 
your gratitude by keeping those fountains of yours dry for the next two days. 
If you don't, I shall feel queer myself about the lachrymal ducts, and I 
don't like that.' 
</p>
               <p>'I won't cry a drop,' said Margaret, winking her eyes to 
shake the tears off her eye-lashes, and forcing a smile. 
</p>
               <p>'There's my good 
girl. Then we'll go up-stairs and settle it all.' Margaret was in a state of 
almost trembling eagerness, while Mr. Bell discussed his plan with her aunt 
Shaw, who was first startled, then doubtful and perplexed, and in the end, 
yielding rather to the rough force of Mr. Bell's words than to her own 
conviction; for to the last, whether it was right or wrong, proper or 
improper, she could not settle to her own satisfaction, till Margaret's safe 
return, the happy fulfilment of the project, gave her decision enough to say, 
'she was sure it had been a very kind thought of Mr. Bell's, and just what 
she herself had been wishing for Margaret, as giving her the very change 
which she required, after all the anxious time she had had.' 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.21" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XXI</head>
               <head>ONCE AND NOW</head>
               <q>
                  <lg type="stanza">
                     <l>'So on those happy days of yore </l>
                     <l>Oft as I dare to dwell once more, </l>
                     <l>Still must I miss the friends so tried, </l>
                     <l>Whom Death has severed from my side. </l>
                  </lg>
                  <lg type="stanza">
                     <l>But ever when true friendship binds, </l>
                     <l>Spirit it is that spirit finds; </l>
                     <l>In spirit then our bliss we found, </l>
                     <l>In spirit yet to them I'm bound.' </l>
                  </lg>
                  <l>UHLAND. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Margaret was ready long before the appointed time, and had leisure enough 
to cry a little, quietly, when unobserved, and to smile brightly when any one 
looked at her. Her last alarm was lest they should be too late and miss the 
train; but no! they were all in time; and she breathed freely and happily at 
length, seated in the carriage opposite to Mr. Bell, and whirling away past 
the well-known stations; seeing the old south country-towns and hamlets 
sleeping in the warm light of the pure sun, which gave a yet ruddier colour 
to their tiled roofs, so different to the cold slates of the north. Broods of 
pigeons hovered around these peaked quaint gables, slowly settling here and 
there, and ruffling their soft, shiny feathers, as if exposing every fibre to 
the delicious warmth. There were few people about at the stations, it almost 
seemed as if they were too lazily content to wish to travel; none of the 
bustle and stir that Margaret had noticed in her two journeys on the London 
and North-Western line. Later on in the year, this line of railway should be 
stirring and alive with rich pleasure-seekers; but as to the constant going 
to and fro of busy trades-people it would always be widely different from the 
northern lines. Here a spectator or two stood lounging at nearly every 
station, with his hands in his pockets, so absorbed in the simple act of 
watching, that it made the travellers wonder what he could find to do when 
the train whirled away, and only the blank of a railway, some sheds, and a 
distant field or two were left for him to gaze upon. The hot air danced over 
the golden stillness of the land, farm after farm was left behind, each 
reminding Margaret of German Idyls—of Herman and Dorothea—of Evangeline. 
&gt;From this waking dream she was roused. It was the place to leave the train 
and take the fly to Helstone. And now sharper feelings came shooting through 
her heart, whether pain or pleasure she could hardly tell. Every mile was 
redolent of associations, which she would not have missed for the world, but 
each of which made her cry upon 'the days that are no more,' with ineffable 
longing. The last time she had passed along this road was when she had left 
it with her father and mother—the day, the season, had been gloomy, and she 
herself hopeless, but they were there with her. Now she was alone, an orphan, 
and they, strangely, had gone away from her, and vanished from the face of 
the earth. It hurt her to see the Helstone road so flooded in the sun-light, 
and every turn and every familiar tree so precisely the same in its summer 
glory as it had been in former years. Nature felt no change, and was ever 
young. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Bell knew something of what would be passing through her mind, 
and wisely and kindly held his tongue. They drove up to the Lennard Arms; 
half farm-house, half-inn, standing a little apart from the road, as much as 
to say, that the host did not so depend on the custom of travellers, as to 
have to court it by any obtrusiveness; they, rather, must seek him out. The 
house fronted the village green; and right before it stood an immemorial 
lime-tree benched all round, in some hidden recesses of whose leafy wealth 
hung the grim escutcheon of the Lennards. The door of the inn stood wide 
open, but there was no hospitable hurry to receive the travellers. When the 
landlady did appear—and they might have abstracted many an article 
first—she gave them a kind welcome, almost as if they had been invited 
guests, and apologised for her coming having been so delayed, by saying, that 
it was hay-time, and the provisions for the men had to be sent a-field, and 
she had been too busy packing up the baskets to hear the noise of wheels over 
the road, which, since they had left the highway, ran over soft short 
turf. 
</p>
               <p>'Why, bless me!' exclaimed she, as at the end of her apology, a glint 
of sunlight showed her Margaret's face, hitherto unobserved in that shady 
parlour. 'It's Miss Hale, Jenny,' said she, running to the door, and calling 
to her daughter. 'Come here, come directly, it's Miss Hale!' And then she 
went up to Margaret, and shook her hands with motherly fondness. 
</p>
               <p>'And how 
are you all? How's the Vicar and Miss Dixon? The Vicar above all! God bless 
him! We've never ceased to be sorry that he left.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret tried to speak 
and tell her of her father's death; of her mother's it was evident that Mrs. 
Purkis was aware, from her omission of her name. But she choked in the 
effort, and could only touch her deep mourning, and say the one word, 
'Papa.' 
</p>
               <p>'Surely, sir, it's never so!' said Mrs. Purkis, turning to Mr. Bell 
for confirmation of the sad suspicion that now entered her mind. 'There was a 
gentleman here in the spring—it might have been as long ago as last 
winter—who told us a deal of Mr. Hale and Miss Margaret; and he said Mrs. 
Hale was gone, poor lady. But never a word of the Vicar's being 
ailing!' 
</p>
               <p>'It is so, however,' said Mr. Bell. 'He died quite suddenly, when 
on a visit to me at Oxford. He was a good man, Mrs. Purkis, and there's many 
of us that might be thankful to have as calm an end as his. Come Margaret, my 
dear! Her father was my oldest friend, and she's my god-daughter, so I 
thought we would just come down together and see the old place; and I know of 
old you can give us comfortable rooms and a capital dinner. You don't 
remember me I see, but my name is Bell, and once or twice when the parsonage 
has been full, I've slept here, and tasted your good ale.' 
</p>
               <p>'To be sure; I 
ask your pardon; but you see I was taken up with Miss Hale. Let me show you 
to a room, Miss Margaret, where you can take off your bonnet, and wash your 
face. It's only this very morning I plunged some fresh-gathered roses head 
downward in the water-jug, for, thought I, perhaps some one will be coming, 
and there's nothing so sweet as spring-water scented by a musk rose or two. 
To think of the Vicar being dead! Well, to be sure, we must all die; only 
that gentleman said, he was quite picking up after his trouble about Mrs. 
Hale's death.' 
</p>
               <p>'Come down to me, Mrs. Purkis, after you have attended to 
Miss Hale. I want to have a consultation with you about dinner.' 
</p>
               <p>The little 
casement window in Margaret's bed-chamber was almost filled up with rose and 
vine branches; but pushing them aside, and stretching a little out, she could 
see the tops of the parsonage chimneys above the trees; and distinguish many 
a well-known line through the leaves. 
</p>
               <p>'Aye!' said Mrs. Purkis, smoothing 
down the bed, and despatching Jenny for an armful of lavender-scented towels, 
'times is changed, miss; our new Vicar has seven children, and is building a 
nursery ready for more, just out where the arbour and tool-house used to be 
in old times. And he has had new grates put in, and a plate-glass window in 
the drawing-room. He and his wife are stirring people, and have done a deal 
of good; at least they say it's doing good; if it were not, I should call it 
turning things upside down for very little purpose. The new Vicar is a 
teetotaller, miss, and a magistrate, and his wife has a deal of receipts for 
economical cooking, and is for making bread without yeast; and they both talk 
so much, and both at a time, that they knock one down as it were, and it's 
not till they're gone, and one's a little at peace, that one can think that 
there were things one might have said on one's own side of the question. 
He'll be after the men's cans in the hay-field, and peeping in; and then 
there'll be an ado because it's not ginger beer, but I can't help it. My 
mother and my grandmother before me sent good malt liquor to haymakers; and 
took salts and senna when anything ailed them; and I must e'en go on in their 
ways, though Mrs. Hepworth does want to give me comfits instead of medicine, 
which, as she says, is a deal pleasanter, only I've no faith in it. But I 
must go, miss, though I'm wanting to hear many a thing; I'll come back to you 
before long. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Bell had strawberries and cream, a loaf of brown bread, 
and a jug of milk, (together with a Stilton cheese and a bottle of port for 
his own private refreshment,) ready for Margaret on her coming down stairs; 
and after this rustic luncheon they set out to walk, hardly knowing in what 
direction to turn, so many old familiar inducements were there in 
each. 
</p>
               <p>'Shall we go past the vicarage?' asked Mr. Bell. 
</p>
               <p>'No, not yet. We 
will go this way, and make a round so as to come back by it,' replied 
Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>Here and there old trees had been felled the autumn before; or a 
squatter's roughly-built and decaying cottage had disappeared. Margaret 
missed them each and all, and grieved over them like old friends. They came 
past the spot where she and Mr. Lennox had sketched. The white, 
lightning-scarred trunk of the venerable beech, among whose roots they had 
sate down was there no more; the old man, the inhabitant of the ruinous 
cottage, was dead; the cottage had been pulled down, and a new one, tidy and 
respectable, had been built in its stead. There was a small garden on the 
place where the beech-tree had been. 
</p>
               <p>'I did not think I had been so old,' 
said Margaret after a pause of silence; and she turned away sighing. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes!' 
said Mr. Bell. 'It is the first changes among familiar things that make such 
a mystery of time to the young, afterwards we lose the sense of the 
mysterious. I take changes in all I see as a matter of course. The 
instability of all human things is familiar to me, to you it is new and 
oppressive.' 
</p>
               <p>'Let us go on to see little Susan,' said Margaret, drawing her 
companion up a grassy road-way, leading under the shadow of a forest 
glade. 
</p>
               <p>'With all my heart, though I have not an idea who little Susan may 
be. But I have a kindness for all Susans, for simple Susan's sake.' 
</p>
               <p>'My 
little Susan was disappointed when I left without wishing her goodbye; and it 
has been on my conscience ever since, that I gave her pain which a little 
more exertion on my part might have prevented. But it is a long way. Are you 
sure you will not be tired?' 
</p>
               <p>'Quite sure. That is, if you don't walk so 
fast. You see, here there are no views that can give one an excuse for 
stopping to take breath. You would think it romantic to be walking with a 
person “fat and scant o' breath” if I were Hamlet, Prince of Denmark. Have 
compassion on my infirmities for his sake.' 
</p>
               <p>'I will walk slower for your 
own sake. I like you twenty times better than Hamlet.' 
</p>
               <p>'On the principle 
that a living ass is better than a dead lion?' 
</p>
               <p>'Perhaps so. I don't analyse 
my feelings.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am content to take your liking me, without examining too 
curiously into the materials it is made of. Only we need not walk at a 
snail's' pace.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very well. Walk at your own pace, and I will follow. Or 
stop still and meditate, like the Hamlet you compare yourself to, if I go too 
fast.' 
</p>
               <p>'Thank you. But as my mother has not murdered my father, and 
afterwards married my uncle, I shouldn't know what to think about, unless it 
were balancing the chances of our having a well-cooked dinner or not. What do 
you think?' 
</p>
               <p>'I am in good hopes. She used to be considered a famous cook as 
far as Helstone opinion went.' 
</p>
               <p>'But have you considered the distraction of 
mind produced by all this haymaking?' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret felt all Mr. Bell's kindness 
in trying to make cheerful talk about nothing, to endeavour to prevent her 
from thinking too curiously about the past. But she would rather have gone 
over these dear-loved walks in silence, if indeed she were not ungrateful 
enough to wish that she might have been alone. 
</p>
               <p>They reached the cottage 
where Susan's widowed mother lived. Susan was not there. She was gone to the 
parochial school. Margaret was disappointed, and the poor woman saw it, and 
began to make a kind of apology. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! it is quite right,' said Margaret. 'I 
am very glad to hear it. I might have thought of it. Only she used to stop at 
home with you.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, she did; and I miss her sadly. I used to teach her 
what little I knew at nights. It were not much to be sure. But she were 
getting such a handy girl, that I miss her sore. But she's a deal above me in 
learning now.' And the mother sighed. 
</p>
               <p>'I'm all wrong,' growled Mr. Bell. 
'Don't mind what I say. I'm a hundred years behind the world. But I should 
say, that the child was getting a better and simpler, and more natural 
education stopping at home, and helping her mother, and learning to read a 
chapter in the New Testament every night by her side, than from all the 
schooling under the sun.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret did not want to encourage him to go on 
by replying to him, and so prolonging the discussion before the mother. So 
she turned to her and asked, 
</p>
               <p>'How is old Betty Barnes?' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't know,' 
said the woman rather shortly. 'We'se not friends.' 
</p>
               <p>'Why not?' asked 
Margaret, who had formerly been the peacemaker of the village. 
</p>
               <p>'She stole 
my cat.' 
</p>
               <p>'Did she know it was yours?' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't know. I reckon 
not.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well! could not you get it back again when you told her it was 
yours?' 
</p>
               <p>'No! for she'd burnt it.' 
</p>
               <p>'Burnt it!' exclaimed both Margaret and 
Mr. Bell. 
</p>
               <p>'Roasted it!' explained the woman. 
</p>
               <p>It was no explanation. By 
dint of questioning, Margaret extracted from her the horrible fact that Betty 
Barnes, having been induced by a gypsy fortune-teller to lend the latter her 
husband's Sunday clothes, on promise of having them faithfully returned on 
the Saturday night before Goodman Barnes should have missed them, became 
alarmed by their non-appearance, and her consequent dread of her husband's 
anger, and as, according to one of the savage country superstitions, the 
cries of a cat, in the agonies of being boiled or roasted alive, compelled 
(as it were) the powers of darkness to fulfil the wishes of the executioner, 
resort had been had to the charm. The poor woman evidently believed in its 
efficacy; her only feeling was indignation that her cat had been chosen out 
from all others for a sacrifice. Margaret listened in horror; and endeavoured 
in vain to enlighten the woman's mind; but she was obliged to give it up in 
despair. Step by step she got the woman to admit certain facts, of which the 
logical connexion and sequence was perfectly clear to Margaret; but at the 
end, the bewildered woman simply repeated her first assertion, namely, that 
'it were very cruel for sure, and she should not like to do it; but that 
there were nothing like it for giving a person what they wished for; she had 
heard it all her life; but it were very cruel for all that.' Margaret gave it 
up in despair, and walked away sick at heart. 
</p>
               <p>'You are a good girl not to 
triumph over me,' said Mr. Bell. 
</p>
               <p>'How? What do you mean?' 
</p>
               <p>'I own, I am 
wrong about schooling. Anything rather than have that child brought up in 
such practical paganism.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! I remember. Poor little Susan! I must go and 
see her; would you mind calling at the school?' 
</p>
               <p>'Not a bit. I am curious to 
see something of the teaching she is to receive.' 
</p>
               <p>They did not speak much 
more, but thridded their way through many a bosky dell, whose soft green 
influence could not charm away the shock and the pain in Margaret's heart, 
caused by the recital of such cruelty; a recital too, the manner of which 
betrayed such utter want of imagination, and therefore of any sympathy with 
the suffering animal. 
</p>
               <p>The buzz of voices, like the murmur of a hive of busy 
human bees, made itself heard as soon as they emerged from the forest on the 
more open village-green on which the school was situated. The door was wide 
open, and they entered. A brisk lady in black, here, there, and everywhere, 
perceived them, and bade them welcome with somewhat of the hostess-air which, 
Margaret remembered, her mother was wont to assume, only in a more soft and 
languid manner, when any rare visitors strayed in to inspect the school. She 
knew at once it was the present Vicar's wife, her mother's successor; and she 
would have drawn back from the interview had it been possible; but in an 
instant she had conquered this feeling, and modestly advanced, meeting many a 
bright glance of recognition, and hearing many a half-suppressed murmur of 
'It's Miss Hale.' The Vicar's lady heard the name, and her manner at once 
became more kindly. Margaret wished she could have helped feeling that it 
also became more patronising. The lady held out a hand to Mr. Bell, 
with— 
</p>
               <p>'Your father, I presume, Miss Hale. I see it by the likeness. I am 
sure I am very glad to see you, sir, and so will the Vicar be.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret 
explained that it was not her father, and stammered out the fact of his 
death; wondering all the time how Mr. Hale could have borne coming to revisit 
Helstone, if it had been as the Vicar's lady supposed. She did not hear what 
Mrs. Hepworth was saying, and left it to Mr. Bell to reply, looking round, 
meanwhile, for her old acquaintances. 
</p>
               <p>'Ah! I see you would like to take a 
class, Miss Hale. I know it by myself. First class stand up for a parsing 
lesson with Miss Hale.' 
</p>
               <p>Poor Margaret, whose visit was sentimental, not in 
any degree inspective, felt herself taken in; but as in some way bringing her 
in contact with little eager faces, once well-known, and who had received the 
solemn rite of baptism from her father, she sate down, half losing herself in 
tracing out the changing features of the girls, and holding Susan's hand for 
a minute or two, unobserved by all, while the first class sought for their 
books, and the Vicar's lady went as near as a lady could towards holding Mr. 
Bell by the button, while she explained the Phonetic system to him, and gave 
him a conversation she had had with the Inspector about it. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret bent 
over her book, and seeing nothing but that—hearing the buzz of children's 
voices, old times rose up, and she thought of them, and her eyes filled with 
tears, till all at once there was a pause—one of the girls was stumbling 
over the apparently simple word 'a,' uncertain what to call it. 
</p>
               <p>'A, an 
indefinite article,' said Margaret, mildly. 
</p>
               <p>'I beg your pardon,' said the 
Vicar's wife, all eyes and ears; 'but we are taught by Mr. Milsome to call 
“a” an—who can remember?' 
</p>
               <p>'An adjective absolute,' said half-a-dozen 
voices at once. And Margaret sate abashed. The children knew more than she 
did. Mr. Bell turned away, and smiled. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret spoke no more during the 
lesson. But after it was over, she went quietly round to one or two old 
favourites, and talked to them a little. They were growing out of children 
into great girls; passing out of her recollection in their rapid development, 
as she, by her three years' absence, was vanishing from theirs. Still she was 
glad to have seen them all again, though a tinge of sadness mixed itself with 
her pleasure. When school was over for the day, it was yet early in the 
summer afternoon; and Mrs. Hepworth proposed to Margaret that she and Mr. 
Bell should accompany her to the parsonage, and see the—the word 
'improvements' had half slipped out of her mouth, but she substituted the 
more cautious term 'alterations' which the present Vicar was making. Margaret 
did not care a straw about seeing the alterations, which jarred upon her fond 
recollection of what her home had been; but she longed to see the old place 
once more, even though she shivered away from the pain which she knew she 
should feel. 
</p>
               <p>The parsonage was so altered, both inside and out, that the 
real pain was less than she had anticipated. It was not like the same place. 
The garden, the grass-plat, formerly so daintily trim that even a stray 
rose-leaf seemed like a fleck on its exquisite arrangement and propriety, was 
strewed with children's things; a bag of marbles here, a hoop there; a 
straw-hat forced down upon a rose-tree as on a peg, to the destruction of a 
long beautiful tender branch laden with flowers, which in former days would 
have been trained up tenderly, as if beloved. The little square matted hall 
was equally filled with signs of merry healthy rough childhood. 
</p>
               <p>'Ah!' said 
Mrs. Hepworth, 'you must excuse this untidiness, Miss Hale. When the nursery 
is finished, I shall insist upon a little order. We are building a nursery 
out of your room, I believe. How did you manage, Miss Hale, without a 
nursery?' 
</p>
               <p>'We were but two,' said Margaret. 'You have many children, I 
presume?' 
</p>
               <p>'Seven. Look here! we are throwing out a window to the road on 
this side. Mr. Hepworth is spending an immense deal of money on this house; 
but really it was scarcely habitable when we came—for so large a family as 
ours I mean, of course.' Every room in the house was changed, besides the one 
of which Mrs. Hepworth spoke, which had been Mr. Hale's study formerly; and 
where the green gloom and delicious quiet of the place had conduced, as he 
had said, to a habit of meditation, but, perhaps, in some degree to the 
formation of a character more fitted for thought than action. The new window 
gave a view of the road, and had many advantages, as Mrs. Hepworth pointed 
out. From it the wandering sheep of her husband's flock might be seen, who 
straggled to the tempting beer-house, unobserved as they might hope, but not 
unobserved in reality; for the active Vicar kept his eye on the road, even 
during the composition of his most orthodox sermons, and had a hat and stick 
hanging ready at hand to seize, before sallying out after his parishioners, 
who had need of quick legs if they could take refuge in the 'Jolly Forester' 
before the teetotal Vicar had arrested them. The whole family were quick, 
brisk, loud-talking, kind-hearted, and not troubled with much delicacy of 
perception. Margaret feared that Mrs. Hepworth would find out that Mr. Bell 
was playing upon her, in the admiration he thought fit to express for 
everything that especially grated on his taste. But no! she took it all 
literally, and with such good faith, that Margaret could not help 
remonstrating with him as they walked slowly away from the parsonage back to 
their inn. 
</p>
               <p>'Don't scold, Margaret. It was all because of you. If she had 
not shown you every change with such evident exultation in their superior 
sense, in perceiving what an improvement this and that would be, I could have 
behaved well. But if you must go on preaching, keep it till after dinner, 
when it will send me to sleep, and help my digestion.' 
</p>
               <p>They were both of 
them tired, and Margaret herself so much so, that she was unwilling to go out 
as she had proposed to do, and have another ramble among the woods and fields 
so close to the home of her childhood. And, somehow, this visit to Helstone 
had not been all—had not been exactly what she had expected. There was 
change everywhere; slight, yet pervading all. Households were changed by 
absence, or death, or marriage, or the natural mutations brought by days and 
months and years, which carry us on imperceptibly from childhood to youth, 
and thence through manhood to age, whence we drop like fruit, fully ripe, 
into the quiet mother earth. Places were changed—a tree gone here, a bough 
there, bringing in a long ray of light where no light was before—a road was 
trimmed and narrowed, and the green straggling pathway by its side enclosed 
and cultivated. A great improvement it was called; but Margaret sighed over 
the old picturesqueness, the old gloom, and the grassy wayside of former 
days. She sate by the window on the little settle, sadly gazing out upon the 
gathering shades of night, which harmonised well with her pensive thought. 
Mr. Bell slept soundly, after his unusual exercise through the day. At last 
he was roused by the entrance of the tea-tray, brought in by a 
flushed-looking country-girl, who had evidently been finding some variety 
from her usual occupation of waiter, in assisting this day in the 
hayfield. 
</p>
               <p>'Hallo! Who's there! Where are we? Who's that,—Margaret? Oh, now 
I remember all. I could not imagine what woman was sitting there in such a 
doleful attitude, with her hands clasped straight out upon her knees, and her 
face looking so steadfastly before her. What were you looking at?' asked Mr. 
Bell, coming to the window, and standing behind Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'Nothing,' said 
she, rising up quickly, and speaking as cheerfully as she could at a moment's 
notice. 
</p>
               <p>'Nothing indeed! A bleak back-ground of trees, some white linen 
hung out on the sweet-briar hedge, and a great waft of damp air. Shut the 
window, and come in and make tea.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was silent for some time. She 
played with her teaspoon, and did not attend particularly to what Mr. Bell 
said. He contradicted her, and she took the same sort of smiling notice of 
his opinion as if he had agreed with her. Then she sighed, and putting down 
her spoon, she began, apropos of nothing at all, and in the high-pitched 
voice which usually shows that the speaker has been thinking for some time on 
the subject that they wish to introduce—'Mr. Bell, you remember what we were 
saying about Frederick last night, don't you?' 
</p>
               <p>'Last night. Where was I? 
Oh, I remember! Why it seems a week ago. Yes, to be sure, I recollect we 
talked about him, poor fellow.' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes—and do you not remember that Mr. 
Lennox spoke about his having been in England about the time of dear mamma's 
death?' asked Margaret, her voice now lower than usual. 
</p>
               <p>'I recollect. I 
hadn't heard of it before.' 
</p>
               <p>'And I thought—I always thought that papa had 
told you about it.' 
</p>
               <p>'No! he never did. But what about it, Margaret?' 
</p>
               <p>'I 
want to tell you of something I did that was very wrong, about that time,' 
said Margaret, suddenly looking up at him with her clear honest eyes. 'I told 
a lie;' and her face became scarlet. 
</p>
               <p>'True, that was bad I own; not but 
what I have told a pretty round number in my life, not all in downright 
words, as I suppose you did, but in actions, or in some shabby circumlocutory 
way, leading people either to disbelieve the truth, or believe a falsehood. 
You know who is the father of lies, Margaret? Well! a great number of folk, 
thinking themselves very good, have odd sorts of connexion with lies, 
left-hand marriages, and second cousins-once-removed. The tainting blood of 
falsehood runs through us all. I should have guessed you as far from it as 
most people. What! crying, child? Nay, now we'll not talk of it, if it ends 
in this way. I dare say you have been sorry for it, and that you won't do it 
again, and it's long ago now, and in short I want you to be very cheerful, 
and not very sad, this evening.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret wiped her eyes, and tried to talk 
about something else, but suddenly she burst out afresh. 
</p>
               <p>'Please, Mr. Bell, 
let me tell you about it—you could perhaps help me a little; no, not help 
me, but if you knew the truth, perhaps you could put me to rights—that is 
not it, after all,' said she, in despair at not being able to express herself 
more exactly as she wished. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Bell's whole manner changed. 'Tell me all 
about it, child,' said he. 
</p>
               <p>'It's a long story; but when Fred came, mamma 
was very ill, and I was undone with anxiety, and afraid, too, that I might 
have drawn him into danger; and we had an alarm just after her death, for 
Dixon met some one in Milton—a man called Leonards—who had known Fred, and 
who seemed to owe him a grudge, or at any rate to be tempted by the 
recollection of the reward offered for hisapprehension; and with this new 
fright, I thought I had better hurry off Fred to London, where, as you would 
understand from what we said the other night, he was to go to consult Mr. 
Lennox as to his chances if he stood the trial. So we—that is, he and 
I,—went to the railway station; it was one evening, and it was just getting 
rather dusk, but still light enough to recognise and be recognised, and we 
were too early, and went out to walk in a field just close by; I was always 
in a panic about this Leonards, who was, I knew, somewhere in the 
neighbourhood; and then, when we were in the field, the low red sunlight just 
in my face, some one came by on horseback in the road just below the 
field-style by which we stood. I saw him look at me, but I did not know who 
it was at first, the sun was so in my eyes, but in an instant the dazzle went 
off, and I saw it was Mr. Thornton, and we bowed,'—— 
</p>
               <p>'And he saw 
Frederick of course,' said Mr. Bell, helping her on with her story, as he 
thought. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes; and then at the station a man came up—tipsy and 
reeling—and he tried to collar Fred, and over-balanced himself as Fred 
wrenched himself away, and fell over the edge of the platform; not far, not 
deep; not above three feet; but oh! Mr. Bell, somehow that fall killed 
him!' 
</p>
               <p>'How awkward. It was this Leonards, I suppose. And how did Fred get 
off?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! he went off immediately after the fall, which we never thought 
could have done the poor fellow any harm, it seemed so slight an 
injury.' 
</p>
               <p>'Then he did not die directly?' 
</p>
               <p>'No! not for two or three days. 
And then—oh, Mr. Bell! now comes the bad part,' said she, nervously twining 
her fingers together. 'A police inspector came and taxed me with having been 
the companion of the young man, whose push or blow had occasioned Leonards' 
death; that was a false accusation, you know, but we had not heard that Fred 
had sailed, he might still be in London and liable to be arrested on this 
false charge, and his identity with the Lieutenant Hale, accused of causing 
that mutiny, discovered, he might be shot; all this flashed through my mind, 
and I said it was not me. I was not at the railway station that night. I knew 
nothing about it. I had no conscience or thought but to save Frederick.' 
</p>
               <p>'I 
say it was right. I should have done the same. You forgot yourself in thought 
for another. I hope I should have done the same.' 
</p>
               <p>'No, you would not. It 
was wrong, disobedient, faithless. At that very time Fred was safely out of 
England, and in my blindness I forgot that there was another witness who 
could testify to my being there.' 
</p>
               <p>'Who?' 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Thornton. You know he had 
seen me close to the station; we had bowed to each other.' 
</p>
               <p>'Well! he would 
know nothing of this riot about the drunken fellow's death. I suppose the 
inquiry never came to anything.' 
</p>
               <p>'No! the proceedings they had begun to 
talk about on the inquest were stopped. Mr. Thornton did know all about it. 
He was a magistrate, and he found out that it was not the fall that had 
caused the death. But not before he knew what I had said. Oh, Mr. Bell!' She 
suddenly covered her face with her hands, as if wishing to hide herself from 
the presence of the recollection. 
</p>
               <p>'Did you have any explanation with him? 
Did you ever tell him the strong, instinctive motive?' 
</p>
               <p>'The instinctive 
want of faith, and clutching at a sin to keep myself from sinking,' said she 
bitterly. 'No! How could I? He knew nothing of Frederick. To put myself to 
rights in his good opinion, was I to tell him of the secrets of our family, 
involving, as they seemed to do, the chances of poor Frederick's entire 
exculpation? Fred's last words had been to enjoin me to keep his visit a 
secret from all. You see, papa never told, even you. No! I could bear the 
shame—I thought I could at least. I did bear it. Mr. Thornton has never 
respected me since.' 
</p>
               <p>'He respects you, I am sure,' said Mr. Bell. 'To be 
sure, it accounts a little for——. But he always speaks of you with regard 
and esteem, though now I understand certain reservations in his 
manner.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret did not speak; did not attend to what Mr. Bell went on to 
say; lost all sense of it. By-and-by she said: 
</p>
               <p>'Will you tell me what you 
refer to about “reservations” in his manner of speaking of me?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! simply 
he has annoyed me by not joining in my praises of you. Like an old fool, I 
thought that every one would have the same opinions as I had; and he 
evidently could not agree with me. I was puzzled at the time. But he must be 
perplexed, if the affair has never been in the least explained. There was 
first your walking out with a young man in the dark—' 
</p>
               <p>'But it was my 
brother!' said Margaret, surprised. 
</p>
               <p>'True. But how was he to know 
that?' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't know. I never thought of anything of that kind,' said 
Margaret, reddening, and looking hurt and offended. 
</p>
               <p>'And perhaps he never 
would, but for the lie,—which, under the circumstances, I maintain, was 
necessary.' 
</p>
               <p>'It was not. I know it now. I bitterly repent it.' 
</p>
               <p>There was 
a long pause of silence. Margaret was the first to speak. 
</p>
               <p>'I am not likely 
ever to see Mr. Thornton again,'—and there she stopped. 
</p>
               <p>'There are many 
things more unlikely, I should say,' replied Mr. Bell. 
</p>
               <p>'But I believe I 
never shall. Still, somehow one does not like to have sunk so low in—in a 
friend's opinion as I have done in his.' Her eyes were full of tears, but her 
voice was steady, and Mr. Bell was not looking at her. 'And now that 
Frederick has given up all hope, and almost all wish of ever clearing 
himself, and returning to England, it would be only doing myself justice to 
have all this explained. If you please, and if you can, if there is a good 
opportunity, (don't force an explanation upon him, pray,) but if you can, 
will you tell him the whole circumstances, and tell him also that I gave you 
leave to do so, because I felt that for papa's sake I should not like to lose 
his respect, though we may never be likely to meet again?' 
</p>
               <p>'Certainly. I 
think he ought to know. I do not like you to rest even under the shadow of an 
impropriety; he would not know what to think of seeing you alone with a young 
man.' 
</p>
               <p>'As for that,' said Margaret, rather haughtily, 'I hold it is “Honi 
soit qui mal y pense.” Yet still I should choose to have it explained, if any 
natural opportunity for easy explanation occurs. But it is not to clear 
myself of any suspicion of improper conduct that I wish to have him told—if 
I thought that he had suspected me, I should not care for his good 
opinion—no! it is that he may learn how I was tempted, and how I fell into 
the snare; why I told that falsehood, in short.' 
</p>
               <p>'Which I don't blame you 
for. It is no partiality of mine, I assure you.' 
</p>
               <p>'What other people may 
think of the rightness or wrongness is nothing in comparison to my own deep 
knowledge, my innate conviction that it was wrong. But we will not talk of 
that any more, if you please. It is done—my sin is sinned. I have now to put 
it behind me, and be truthful for evermore, if I can.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very well. If you 
like to be uncomfortable and morbid, be so. I always keep my conscience as 
tight shut up as a jack-in-a-box, for when it jumps into existence it 
surprises me by its size. So I coax it down again, as the fisherman coaxed 
the genie. “Wonderful,” say I, “to think that you have been concealed so 
long, and in so small a compass, that I really did not know of your 
existence. Pray, sir, instead of growing larger and larger every instant, and 
bewildering me with your misty outlines, would you once more compress 
yourself into your former dimensions?” And when I've got him down, don't I 
clap the seal on the vase, and take good care how I open it again, and how I 
go against Solomon, wisest of men, who confined him there.' 
</p>
               <p>But it was no 
smiling matter to Margaret. She hardly attended to what Mr. Bell was saying. 
Her thoughts ran upon the Idea, before entertained, but which now had assumed 
the strength of a conviction, that Mr. Thornton no longer held his former 
good opinion of her—that he was disappointed in her. She did not feel as if 
any explanation could ever reinstate her—not in his love, for that and any 
return on her part she had resolved never to dwell upon, and she kept rigidly 
to her resolution—but in the respect and high regard which she had hoped 
would have ever made him willing, in the spirit of Gerald Griffin's beautiful 
lines, 
<q>
                     <l>'To turn and look back when thou hearest </l>
                     <l>The sound of my name.' </l>
                  </q>
               </p>
               <p>She kept choking and swallowing all the time that she thought 
about it. She tried to comfort herself with the idea, that what he imagined 
her to be, did not alter the fact of what she was. But it was a truism, a 
phantom, and broke down under the weight of her regret. She had twenty 
questions on the tip of her tongue to ask Mr. Bell, but not one of them did 
she utter. Mr. Bell thought thatshe was tired, and sent her early to her 
room, where she sate long hours by the open window, gazing out on the purple 
dome above, where the stars arose, and twinkled and disappeared behind the 
great umbrageous trees before she went to bed. All night long too, there 
burnt a little light on earth; a candle in her old bedroom, which was the 
nursery with the present inhabitants of the parsonage, until the new one was 
built. A sense of change, of individual nothingness, of perplexity and 
disappointment, over-powered Margaret. Nothing had been the same; and this 
slight, all-pervading instability, had given her greater pain than if all had 
been too entirely changed for her to recognise it. 
</p>
               <p>'I begin to understand 
now what heaven must be—and, oh! the grandeur and repose of the words—“The 
same yesterday, to-day, and for ever.” Everlasting! “From everlasting to 
everlasting, Thou art God.” That sky above me looks as though it could not 
change, and yet it will. I am so tired—so tired of being whirled on through 
all these phases of my life, in which nothing abides by me, no creature, no 
place; it is like the circle in which the victims of earthly passion eddy 
continually. I am in the mood in which women of another religion take the 
veil. I seek heavenly steadfastness in earthly monotony. If I were a Roman 
Catholic and could deaden my heart, stun it with some great blow, I might 
become a nun. But I should pine after my kind; no, not my kind, for love for 
my species could never fill my heart to the utter exclusion of love for 
individuals. Perhaps it ought to be so, perhaps not; I cannot decide 
to-night.' 
</p>
               <p>Wearily she went to bed, wearily she arose in four or five 
hours' time. But with the morning came hope, and a brighter view of 
things. 
</p>
               <p>'After all it is right,' said she, hearing the voices of children 
at play while she was dressing. 'If the world stood still, it would 
retrograde and become corrupt, if that is not Irish. Looking out of myself, 
and my own painful sense of change, the progress all around me is right and 
necessary. I must not think so much of how circumstances affect me myself, 
but how they affect others, if I wish to have a right judgment, or a hopeful 
trustful heart.' And with a smile ready in her eyes to quiver down to her 
lips, she went into the parlour and greeted Mr. Bell. 
</p>
               <p>'Ah, Missy! you were 
up late last night, and so you're late this morning. Now I've got a little 
piece of news for you. What do you think of an invitation to dinner? a 
morning call, literally in the dewy morning. Why, I've had the Vicar here 
already, on his way to the school. How much the desire of giving our hostess 
a teetotal lecture for the benefit of the haymakers, had to do with his 
earliness, I don't know; but here he was, when I came down just before nine; 
and we are asked to dine there to-day.' 
</p>
               <p>'But Edith expects me back—I 
cannot go,' said Margaret, thankful to have so good an excuse. 
</p>
               <p>'Yes! I 
know; so I told him. I thought you would not want to go. Still it is open, if 
you would like it.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, no!' said Margaret. 'Let us keep to our plan. Let 
us start at twelve. It is very good and kind of them; but indeed I could not 
go.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very well. Don't fidget yourself, and I'll arrange it all.' 
</p>
               <p>Before 
they left Margaret stole round to the back of the Vicarage garden, and 
gathered a little straggling piece of honeysuckle. She would not take a 
flower the day before, for fear of being observed, and her motives and 
feelings commented upon. But as she returned across the common, the place was 
reinvested with the old enchanting atmosphere. The common sounds of life were 
more musical there than anywhere else in the whole world, the light more 
golden, the life more tranquil and full of dreamy delight. As Margaret 
remembered her feelings yesterday, she said to herself: 
</p>
               <p>'And I too change 
perpetually—now this, now that—now disappointed and peevish because all is 
not exactly as I had pictured it, and now suddenly discovering that the 
reality is far more beautiful than I had imagined it. Oh, Helstone! I shall 
never love any place like you. 
</p>
               <p>A few days afterwards, she had found her 
level, and decided that she was very glad to have been there, and that she 
had seen it again, and that to her it would always be the prettiest spot in 
the world, but that it was so full of associations with former days, and 
especially with her father and mother, that if it were all to come over 
again, she should shrink back from such another visit as that which she had 
paid with Mr. Bell. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.22" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XXII</head>
               <head>SOMETHING WANTING</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Experience, like a pale musician, holds </l>
                  <l>A dulcimer of patience in his hand; </l>
                  <l>Whence harmonies we cannot understand, </l>
                  <l>Of God's will in His worlds, the strain unfolds </l>
                  <l>In sad, perplexed minors.' </l>
                  <l>MRS. BROWNING. </l>
               </q>
               <p>About this time Dixon returned from Milton, and assumed her post as 
Margaret's maid. She brought endless pieces of Milton gossip: How Martha had 
gone to live with Miss Thornton, on the latter's marriage; with an account of 
the bridesmaids, dresses and breakfasts, at that interesting ceremony; how 
people thought that Mr. Thornton had made too grand a wedding of it, 
considering he had lost a deal by the strike, and had had to pay so much for 
the failure of his contracts; how little money articles of furniture—long 
cherished by Dixon—had fetched at the sale, which was a shame considering 
how rich folks were at Milton; how Mrs. Thornton had come one day and got two 
or three good bargains, and Mr. Thornton had come the next, and in his desire 
to obtain one or two things, had bid against himself, much to the enjoyment 
of the bystanders, so as Dixon observed, that made things even; if Mrs. 
Thornton paid too little, Mr. Thornton paid too much. Mr. Bell had sent all 
sorts of orders about the books; there was no understanding him, he was so 
particular; if he had come himself it would have been all right, but letters 
always were and always will be more puzzling than they are worth. Dixon had 
not much to tell about the Higginses. Her memory had an aristocratic bias, 
and was very treacherous whenever she tried to recall any circumstance 
connected with those below her in life. Nicholas was very well she believed. 
He had been several times at the house asking for news of Miss Margaret—the 
only person who ever did ask, except once Mr. Thornton. And Mary? oh! of 
course she was very well, a great, stout, slatternly thing! She did hear, or 
perhaps it was only a dream of hers, though it would be strange if she had 
dreamt of such people as the Higginses, that Mary had gone to work at Mr. 
Thornton's mill, because her father wished her to know how to cook; but what 
nonsense that could mean she didn't know. Margaret rather agreed with her 
that the story was incoherent enough to be like a dream. Still it was 
pleasant to have some one now with whom she could talk of Milton, and Milton 
people. Dixon was not over-fond of the subject, rather wishing to leave that 
part of her life in shadow. She liked much more to dwell upon speeches of Mr. 
Bell's, which had suggested an idea to her of what was really his 
intention—making Margaret his heiress. But her young lady gave her no 
encouragement, nor in any way gratified her insinuating enquiries, however 
disguised in the form of suspicions or assertions. 
</p>
               <p>All this time, Margaret 
had a strange undefined longing to hear that Mr. Bell had gone to pay one of 
his business visits to Milton; for it had been well understood between them, 
at the time of their conversation at Helstone, that the explanation she had 
desired should only be given to Mr. Thornton by word of mouth, and even in 
that manner should be in nowise forced upon him. Mr. Bell was no great 
correspondent, but he wrote from time to time long or short letters, as the 
humour took him, and although Margaret was not conscious of any definite 
hope, on receiving them, yet she always put away his notes with a little 
feeling of disappointment. He was not going to Milton; he said nothing about 
it at any rate. Well! she must be patient. Sooner or later the mists would be 
cleared away. Mr. Bell's letters were hardly like his usual self; they were 
short, and complaining, with every now and then a little touch of bitterness 
that was unusual. He did not look forward to the future; he rather seemed to 
regret the past, and be weary of the present. Margaret fancied that he could 
not be well; but in answer to some enquiry of hers as to his health, he sent 
her a short note, saying there was an old-fashioned complaint called the 
spleen; that he was suffering from that, and it was for her to decide if it 
was more mental or physical; but that he should like to indulge himself in 
grumbling, without being obliged to send a bulletin every time. 
</p>
               <p>In 
consequence of this note, Margaret made no more enquiries about his health. 
One day Edith let out accidentally a fragment of a conversation which she had 
had with Mr. Bell, when he was last in London, which possessed Margaret with 
the idea that he had some notion of taking her to pay a visit to her brother 
and new sister-in-law, at Cadiz, in the autumn. She questioned and 
cross-questioned Edith, till the latter was weary, and declared that there 
was nothing more to remember; all he had said was that he half-thought he 
should go, and hear for himself what Frederick had to say about the mutiny; 
and that it would be a good opportunity for Margaret to become acquainted 
with her new sister-in-law; that he always went somewhere during the long 
vacation, and did not see why he should not go to Spain as well as anywhere 
else. That was all. Edith hoped Margaret did not want to leave them, that she 
was so anxious about all this. And then, having nothing else particular to 
do, she cried, and said that she knew she cared much more for Margaret than 
Margaret did for her. Margaret comforted her as well as she could, but she 
could hardly explain to her how this idea of Spain, mere Chateau en Espagne 
as it might be, charmed and delighted her. Edith was in the mood to think 
that any pleasure enjoyed away from her was a tacit affront, or at best a 
proof of indifference. So Margaret had to keep her pleasure to herself, and 
could only let it escape by the safety-valve of asking Dixon, when she 
dressed for dinner, if she would not like to see Master Frederick and his new 
wife very much indeed? 
</p>
               <p>'She's a Papist, Miss, isn't she?' 
</p>
               <p>'I believe—oh 
yes, certainly!' said Margaret, a little damped for an instant at this 
recollection. 
</p>
               <p>'And they live in a Popish country?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes.' 
</p>
               <p>'Then I'm 
afraid I must say, that my soul is dearer to me than even Master Frederick, 
his own dear self. I should be in a perpetual terror, Miss, lest I should be 
converted.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh' said Margaret, 'I do not know that I am going; and if I 
go, I am not such a fine lady as to be unable to travel without you. No! dear 
old Dixon, you shall have a long holiday, if we go. But I'm afraid it is a 
long “if.”' 
</p>
               <p>Now Dixon did not like this speech. In the first place, she did 
not like Margaret's trick of calling her 'dear old Dixon' whenever she was 
particularly demonstrative. She knew that Miss Hale was apt to call all 
people that she liked 'old,' as a sort of term of endearment; but Dixon 
always winced away from the application of the word to herself, who, being 
not much past fifty, was, she thought, in the very prime of life. Secondly, 
she did not like being so easily taken at her word; she had, with all her 
terror, a lurking curiosity about Spain, the Inquisition, and Popish 
mysteries. So, after clearing her throat, as if to show her willingness to do 
away with difficulties, she asked Miss Hale, whether she thought if she took 
care never to see a priest, or enter into one of their churches, there would 
be so very much danger of her being converted? Master Frederick, to be sure, 
had gone over unaccountable. 
</p>
               <p>'I fancy it was love that first predisposed 
him to conversion,' said Margaret, sighing. 
</p>
               <p>'Indeed, Miss!' said Dixon; 
'well! I can preserve myself from priests, and from churches; but love steals 
in unawares! I think it's as well I should not go.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret was afraid of 
letting her mind run too much upon this Spanish plan. But it took off her 
thoughts from too impatiently dwelling upon her desire to have all explained 
to Mr. Thornton. Mr. Bell appeared for the present to be stationary at 
Oxford, and to have no immediate purpose of going to Milton, and some secret 
restraint seemed to hang over Margaret, and prevent her from even asking, or 
alluding again to any probability of such a visit on his part. Nor did she 
feel at liberty to name what Edith had told her of the idea he had 
entertained,—it might be but for five minutes,—of going to Spain. He had 
never named it at Helstone, during all that sunny day of leisure; it was very 
probably but the fancy of a moment,—but if it were true, what a bright 
outlet it would be from the monotony of her present life, which was beginning 
to fall upon her. 
</p>
               <p>One of the great pleasures of Margaret's life at this 
time, was in Edith's boy. He was the pride and plaything of both father and 
mother, as long as he was good; but he had a strong will of his own, and as 
soon as he burst out into one of his stormy passions, Edith would throw 
herself back in despair and fatigue, and sigh out, 'Oh dear, what shall I do 
with him! Do, Margaret, please ring the bell for Hanley.' 
</p>
               <p>But Margaret 
almost liked him better in these manifestations of character than in his good 
blue-sashed moods. She would carry him off into a room, where they two alone 
battled it out; she with a firm power which subdued him into peace, while 
every sudden charm and wile she possessed, was exerted on the side of right, 
until he would rub his little hot and tear-smeared face all over hers, 
kissing and caressing till he often fell asleep in her arms or on her 
shoulder. Those were Margaret's sweetest moments. They gave her a taste of 
the feeling that she believed would be denied to her for ever. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Henry 
Lennox added a new and not disagreeable element to the course of the 
household life by his frequent presence. Margaret thought him colder, if more 
brilliant than formerly; but there were strong intellectual tastes, and much 
and varied knowledge, which gave flavour to the otherwise rather insipid 
conversation. Margaret saw glimpses in him of a slight contempt for his 
brother and sister-in-law, and for their mode of life, which he seemed to 
consider as frivolous and purposeless. He once or twice spoke to his brother, 
in Margaret's presence, in a pretty sharp tone of enquiry, as to whether he 
meant entirely to relinquish his profession; and on Captain Lennox's reply, 
that he had quite enough to live upon, she had seen Mr. Lennox's curl of the 
lip as he said, 'And is that all you live for?' 
</p>
               <p>But the brothers were much 
attached to each other, in the way that any two persons are, when the one is 
cleverer and always leads the other, and this last is patiently content to be 
led. Mr. Lennox was pushing on in his profession; cultivating, with profound 
calculation, all those connections that might eventually be of service to 
him; keen-sighted, far-seeing, intelligent, sarcastic, and proud. Since the 
one long conversation relating to Frederick's affairs, which she had with him 
the first evening in Mr. Bell's presence, she had had no great intercourse 
with him, further than that which arose out of their close relations with the 
same household. But this was enough to wear off the shyness on her side, and 
any symptoms of mortified pride and vanity on his. They met continually, of 
course, but she thought that he rather avoided being alone with her; she 
fancied that he, as well as she, perceived that they had drifted strangely 
apart from their former anchorage, side by side, in many of their opinions, 
and all their tastes. 
</p>
               <p>And yet, when he had spoken unusually well, or with 
remarkable epigrammatic point, she felt that his eye sought the expression of 
her countenance first of all, if but for an instant; and that, in the family 
intercourse which constantly threw them together, her opinion was the one to 
which he listened with a deference,—the more complete, because it was 
reluctantly paid, and concealed as much as possible. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.23" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XXIII</head>
               <head>'NE'ER TO BE FOUND AGAIN'</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'My own, my father's friend! </l>
                  <l>I cannot part with thee! </l>
                  <l>I ne'er have shown, thou ne'er hast known, </l>
                  <l>How dear thou art to me.' </l>
                  <l>ANON. </l>
               </q>
               <p>The elements of the dinner-parties which Mrs. Lennox gave, were these; her 
friends contributed the beauty, Captain Lennox the easy knowledge of the 
subjects of the day; and Mr. Henry Lennox and the sprinkling of rising men 
who were received as his friends, brought the wit, the cleverness, the keen 
and extensive knowledge of which they knew well enough how to avail 
themselves without seeming pedantic, or burdening the rapid flow of 
conversation. 
</p>
               <p>These dinners were delightful; but even here Margaret's 
dissatisfaction found her out. Every talent, every feeling, every 
acquirement; nay, even every tendency towards virtue was used up as materials 
for fireworks; the hidden, sacred fire, exhausted itself in sparkle and 
crackle. They talked about art in a merely sensuous way, dwelling on outside 
effects, instead of allowing themselves to learn what it has to teach. They 
lashed themselves up into an enthusiasm about high subjects in company, and 
never thought about them when they were alone; they squandered their 
capabilities of appreciation into a mere flow of appropriate words. One day, 
after the gentlemen had come up into the drawing-room, Mr. Lennox drew near 
to Margaret, and addressed her in almost the first voluntary words he had 
spoken to her since she had returned to live in Harley Street. 
</p>
               <p>'You did not 
look pleased at what Shirley was saying at dinner.' 
</p>
               <p>'Didn't I? My face must 
be very expressive,' replied Margaret. 
</p>
               <p>'It always was. It has not lost the 
trick of being eloquent.' 
</p>
               <p>'I did not like,' said Margaret, hastily, 'his 
way of advocating what he knew to be wrong—so glaringly wrong—even in 
jest.' 
</p>
               <p>'But it was very clever. How every word told! Do you remember the 
happy epithets?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes.' 
</p>
               <p>'And despise them, you would like to add. Pray 
don't scruple, though he is my friend.' 
</p>
               <p>'There! that is the exact tone in 
you, that—' she stopped short. 
</p>
               <p>He listened for a moment to see if she 
would finish her sentence; but she only reddened, and turned away; before she 
did so, however, she heard him say, in a very low, clear voice,— 
</p>
               <p>'If my 
tones, or modes of thought, are what you dislike, will you do me the justice 
to tell me so, and so give me the chance of learning to please you?' 
</p>
               <p>All 
these weeks there was no intelligence of Mr. Bell's going to Milton. He had 
spoken of it at Helstone as of a journey which he might have to take in a 
very short time from then; but he must have transacted his business by 
writing, Margaret thought, ere now, and she knew that if he could, he would 
avoid going to a place which he disliked, and moreover would little 
understand the secret importance which she affixed to the explanation that 
could only be given by word of mouth. She knew that he would feel that it was 
necessary that it should be done; but whether in summer, autumn, or winter, 
it would signify very little. It was now August, and there had been no 
mention of the Spanish journey to which he had alluded to Edith, and Margaret 
tried to reconcile herself to the fading away of this illusion. 
</p>
               <p>But one 
morning she received a letter, saying that next week he meant to come up to 
town; he wanted to see her about a plan which he had in his head; and, 
moreover, he intended to treat himself to a little doctoring, as he had begun 
to come round to her opinion, that it would be pleasanter to think that his 
health was more in fault than he, when he found himself irritable and cross. 
There was altogether a tone of forced cheerfulness in the letter, as Margaret 
noticed afterwards; but at the time her attention was taken up by Edith's 
exclamations. 
</p>
               <p>'Coming up to town! Oh dear! and I am so worn out by the heat 
that I don't believe I have strength enough in me for another dinner. 
Besides, everybody has left but our dear stupid selves, who can't settle 
where to go to. There would be nobody to meet him.' 
</p>
               <p>'I'm sure he would much 
rather come and dine with us quite alone than with the most agreeable 
strangers you could pick up. Besides, if he is not well he won't wish for 
invitations. I am glad he has owned it at last. I was sure he was ill from 
the whole tone of his letters, and yet he would not answer me when I asked 
him, and I had no third person to whom I could apply for news.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! he is 
not very ill, or he would not think of Spain.' 
</p>
               <p>'He never mentions 
Spain.' 
</p>
               <p>'No! but his plan that is to be proposed evidently relates to that. 
But would you really go in such weather as this?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! it will get cooler 
every day. Yes! Think of it! I am only afraid I have thought and wished too 
much—in that absorbing wilful way which is sure to be disappointed—or else 
gratified, to the letter, while in the spirit it gives no pleasure.' 
</p>
               <p>'But 
that's superstitious, I'm sure, Margaret.' 
</p>
               <p>'No, I don't think it is. Only 
it ought to warn me, and check me from giving way to such passionate wishes. 
It is a sort of “Give me children, or else I die.” I'm afraid my cry is, “Let 
me go to Cadiz, or else I die.”' 
</p>
               <p>'My dear Margaret! You'll be persuaded to 
stay there; and then what shall I do? Oh! I wish I could find somebody for 
you to marry here, that I could be sure of you!' 
</p>
               <p>'I shall never 
marry.' 
</p>
               <p>'Nonsense, and double nonsense! Why, as Sholto says, you're such an 
attraction to the house, that he knows ever so many men who will be glad to 
Visit here next year for your sake.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret drew herself up haughtily. 
'Do you know, Edith, I sometimes think your Corfu life has taught 
you——' 
</p>
               <p>'Well!' 
</p>
               <p>'Just a shade or two of coarseness.' 
</p>
               <p>Edith began to 
sob so bitterly, and to declare so vehemently that Margaret had lost all love 
for her, and no longer looked upon her as a friend, that Margaret came to 
think that she had expressed too harsh an opinion for the relief of her own 
wounded pride, and ended by being Edith's slave for the rest of the day; 
while that little lady, overcome by wounded feeling, lay like a victim on the 
sofa, heaving occasionally a profound sigh, till at last she fell 
asleep. 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Bell did not make his appearance even on the day to which he 
had for a second time deferred his visit. The next morning there came a 
letter from Wallis, his servant, stating that his master had not been feeling 
well for some time, which had been the true reason of his putting off his 
journey; and that at the very time when he should have set out for London, he 
had been seized with an apoplectic fit; it was, indeed, Wallis added, the 
opinion of the medical men—that he could not survive the night; and more 
than probable, that by the time Miss Hale received this letter his poor 
master would be no more. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret received this letter at breakfast-time, 
and turned very pale as she read it; then silently putting it into Edith's 
hands, she left the room. 
</p>
               <p>Edith was terribly shocked as she read it, and 
cried in a sobbing, frightened, childish way, much to her husband's distress. 
Mrs. Shaw was breakfasting in her own room, and upon him devolved the task of 
reconciling his wife to the near contact into which she seemed to be brought 
with death, for the first time that she could remember in her life. Here was 
a man who was to have dined with them to-day lying dead or dying instead! It 
was some time before she could think of Margaret. Then she started up, and 
followed her upstairs into her room. Dixon was packing up a few toilette 
articles, and Margaret was hastily putting on her bonnet, shedding tears all 
the time, and her hands trembling so that she could hardly tie the 
strings. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, dear Margaret! how shocking! What are you doing? Are you 
going out? Sholto would telegraph or do anything you like.' 
</p>
               <p>'I am going to 
Oxford. There is a train in half-an-hour. Dixon has offered to go with me, 
but I could have gone by myself. I must see him again. Besides, he may be 
better, and want some care. He has been like a father to me. Don't stop me, 
Edith.' 
</p>
               <p>'But I must. Mamma won't like it at all. Come and ask her about it, 
Margaret. You don't know where you're going. I should not mind if he had a 
house of his own; but in his Fellow's rooms! Come to mamma, and do ask her 
before you go. It will not take a minute.' 
</p>
               <p>Margaret yielded, and lost her 
train. In the suddenness of the event, Mrs. Shaw became bewildered and 
hysterical, and so the precious time slipped by. But there was another train 
in a couple of hours; and after various discussions on propriety and 
impropriety, it was decided that Captain Lennox should accompany Margaret, as 
the one thing to which she was constant was her resolution to go, alone or 
otherwise, by the next train, whatever might be said of the propriety or 
impropriety of the step. Her father's friend, her own friend, was lying at 
the point of death; and the thought of this came upon her with such 
vividness, that she was surprised herself at the firmness with which she 
asserted something of her right to independence of action; and five minutes 
before the time for starting, she found herself sitting in a railway-carriage 
opposite to Captain Lennox. 
</p>
               <p>It was always a comfort to her to think that 
she had gone, though it was only to hear that he had died in the night. She 
saw the rooms that he had occupied, and associated them ever after most 
fondly in her memory with the idea of her father, and his one cherished and 
faithful friend. 
</p>
               <p>They had promised Edith before starting, that if all had 
ended as they feared, they would return to dinner; so that long, lingering 
look around the room in which her father had died, had to be interrupted, and 
a quiet farewell taken of the kind old face that had so often come out with 
pleasant words, and merry quips and cranks. 
</p>
               <p>Captain Lennox fell asleep on 
their journey home; and Margaret could cry at leisure, and bethink her of 
this fatal year, and all the woes it had brought to her. No sooner was she 
fully aware of one loss than another came—not to supersede her grief for the 
one before, but to re-open wounds and feelings scarcely healed. But at the 
sound of the tender voices of her aunt and Edith, of merry little Sholto's 
glee at her arrival, and at the sight of the well-lighted rooms, with their 
mistress pretty in her paleness and her eager sorrowful interest, Margaret 
roused herself from her heavy trance of almost superstitious hopelessness, 
and began to feel that even around her joy and gladness might gather. She had 
Edith's place on the sofa; Sholto was taught to carry aunt Margaret's cup of 
tea very carefully to her; and by the time she went up to dress, she could 
thank God for having spared her dear old friend a long or a painful 
illness. 
</p>
               <p>But when night came—solemn night, and all the house was quiet, 
Margaret still sate watching the beauty of a London sky at such an hour, on 
such a summer evening; the faint pink reflection of earthly lights on the 
soft clouds that float tranquilly into the white moonlight, out of the warm 
gloom which lies motionless around the horizon. Margaret's room had been the 
day nursery of her childhood, just when it merged into girlhood, and when the 
feelings and conscience had been first awakened into full activity. On some 
such night as this she remembered promising to herself to live as brave and 
noble a life as any heroine she ever read or heard of in romance, a life sans 
peur et sans reproche; it had seemed to her then that she had only to will, 
and such a life would be accomplished. And now she had learnt that not only 
to will, but also to pray, was a necessary condition in the truly heroic. 
Trusting to herself, she had fallen. It was a just consequence of her sin, 
that all excuses for it, all temptation to it, should remain for ever unknown 
to the person in whose opinion it had sunk her lowest. She stood face to face 
at last with her sin. She knew it for what it was; Mr. Bell's kindly 
sophistry that nearly all men were guilty of equivocal actions, and that the 
motive ennobled the evil, had never had much real weight with her. Her own 
first thought of how, if she had known all, she might have fearlessly told 
the truth, seemed low and poor. Nay, even now, her anxiety to have her 
character for truth partially excused in Mr. Thornton's eyes, as Mr. Bell had 
promised to do, was a very small and petty consideration, now that she was 
afresh taught by death what life should be. If all the world spoke, acted, or 
kept silence with intent to deceive,—if dearest interests were at stake, and 
dearest lives in peril,—if no one should ever know of her truth or her 
falsehood to measure out their honour or contempt for her by, straight alone 
where she stood, in the presence of God, she prayed that she might have 
strength to speak and act the truth for evermore. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.24" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XXIV</head>
               <head>BREATHING TRANQUILLITY</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'And down the sunny beach she paces slowly, </l>
                  <l>With many doubtful pauses by the way; </l>
                  <l>Grief hath an influence so hush'd and holy.' </l>
                  <l>HOOD. </l>
               </q>
               <p>'Is not Margaret the heiress?' whispered Edith to her husband, as they 
were in their room alone at night after the sad journey to Oxford. She had 
pulled his tall head down, and stood upon tiptoe, and implored him not to be 
shocked, before she had ventured to ask this question. Captain Lennox was, 
however, quite in the dark; if he had ever heard, he had forgotten; it could 
not be much that a Fellow of a small college had to leave; but he had never 
wanted her to pay for her board; and two hundred and fifty pounds a year was 
something ridiculous, considering that she did not take wine. Edith came down 
upon her feet a little bit sadder; with a romance blown to pieces. 
</p>
               <p>A week 
afterwards, she came prancing towards her husband, and made him a low 
curtsey: 
</p>
               <p>'I am right, and you are wrong, most noble Captain. Margaret has 
had a lawyer's letter, and she is residuary legatee—the legacies being about 
two thousand pounds, and the remainder about forty thousand, at the present 
value of property in Milton.' 
</p>
               <p>'Indeed! and how does she take her good 
fortune?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, it seems she knew she was to have it all along; only she had 
no idea it was so much. She looks very white and pale, and says she's afraid 
of it; but that's nonsense, you know, and will soon go off. I left mamma 
pouring congratulations down her throat, and stole away to tell you.' 
</p>
               <p>It 
seemed to be supposed, by general consent, that the most natural thing was to 
consider Mr. Lennox henceforward as Margaret's legal adviser. She was so 
entirely ignorant of all forms of business that in nearly everything she had 
to refer to him. He chose out her attorney; he came to her with papers to be 
signed. He was never so happy as when teaching her of what all these 
mysteries of the law were the signs and types. 
</p>
               <p>'Henry,' said Edith, one 
day, archly; 'do you know what I hope and expect all these long conversations 
with Margaret will end in?' 
</p>
               <p>'No, I don't,' said he, reddening. 'And I 
desire you not to tell me.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, very well; then I need not tell Sholto not 
to ask Mr. Montagu so often to the house.' 
</p>
               <p>'Just as you choose,' said he 
with forced coolness. 'What you are thinking of, may or may not happen; but 
this time, before I commit myself, I will see my ground clear. Ask whom you 
choose. It may not be very civil, Edith, but if you meddle in it you will mar 
it. She has been very farouche with me for a long time; and is only just 
beginning to thaw a little from her Zenobia ways. She has the making of a 
Cleopatra in her, if only she were a little more pagan.' 
</p>
               <p>'For my part,' 
said Edith, a little maliciously, 'I am very glad she is a Christian. I know 
so very few!' 
</p>
               <p>There was no Spain for Margaret that autumn; although to the 
last she hoped that some fortunate occasion would call Frederick to Paris, 
whither she could easily have met with a convoy. Instead of Cadiz, she had to 
content herself with Cromer. To that place her aunt Shaw and the Lennoxes 
were bound. They had all along wished her to accompany them, and, 
consequently, with their characters, they made but lazy efforts to forward 
her own separate wish. Perhaps Cromer was, in one sense of the expression, 
the best for her. She needed bodily strengthening and bracing as well as 
rest. 
</p>
               <p>Among other hopes that had vanished, was the hope, the trust she had 
had, that Mr. Bell would have given Mr. Thornton the simple facts of the 
family circumstances which had preceded the unfortunate accident that led to 
Leonards' death. Whatever opinion—however changed it might be from what Mr. 
Thornton had once entertained, she had wished it to be based upon a true 
understanding of what she had done; and why she had done it. It would have 
been a pleasure to her; would have given her rest on a point on which she 
should now all her life be restless, unless she could resolve not to think 
upon it. It was now so long after the time of these occurrences, that there 
was no possible way of explaining them save the one which she had lost by Mr. 
Bell's death. She must just submit, like many another, to be misunderstood; 
but, though reasoning herself into the belief that in this hers was no 
uncommon lot, her heart did not ache the less with longing that some 
time—years and years hence—before he died at any rate, he might know how 
much she had been tempted. She thought that she did not want to hear that all 
was explained to him, if only she could be sure that he would know. But this 
wish was vain, like so many others; and when she had schooled herself into 
this conviction, she turned with all her heart and strength to the life that 
lay immediately before her, and resolved to strive and make the best of 
that. 
</p>
               <p>She used to sit long hours upon the beach, gazing intently on the 
waves as they chafed with perpetual motion against the pebbly shore,—or she 
looked out upon the more distant heave, and sparkle against the sky, and 
heard, without being conscious of hearing, the eternal psalm, which went up 
continually. She was soothed without knowing how or why. Listlessly she sat 
there, on the ground, her hands clasped round her knees, while her aunt Shaw 
did small shoppings, and Edith and Captain Lennox rode far and wide on shore 
and inland. The nurses, sauntering on with their charges, would pass and 
repass her, and wonder in whispers what she could find to look at so long, 
day after day. And when the family gathered at dinner-time, Margaret was so 
silent and absorbed that Edith voted her moped, and hailed a proposal of her 
husband's with great satisfaction, that Mr. Henry Lennox should be asked to 
take Cromer for a week, on his return from Scotland in October. 
</p>
               <p>But all 
this time for thought enabled Margaret to put events in their right places, 
as to origin and significance, both as regarded her past life and her future. 
Those hours by the sea-side were not lost, as any one might have seen who had 
had the perception to read, or the care to understand, the look that 
Margaret's face was gradually acquiring. Mr. Henry Lennox was excessively 
struck by the change. 
</p>
               <p>'The sea has done Miss Hale an immense deal of good, 
I should fancy,' said he, when she first left the room after his arrival in 
their family circle. 'She looks ten years younger than she did in Harley 
Street.' 
</p>
               <p>'That's the bonnet I got her!' said Edith, triumphantly. 'I knew 
it would suit her the moment I saw it.' 
</p>
               <p>'I beg your pardon,' said Mr. 
Lennox, in the half-contemptuous, half-indulgent tone he generally used to 
Edith. 'But I believe I know the difference between the charms of a dress and 
the charms of a woman. No mere bonnet would have made Miss Hale's eyes so 
lustrous and yet so soft, or her lips so ripe and red—and her face 
altogether so full of peace and light.—She is like, and yet more,'—he 
dropped his voice,—'like the Margaret Hale of Helstone.' 
</p>
               <p>From this time 
the clever and ambitious man bent all his powers to gaining Margaret. He 
loved her sweet beauty. He saw the latent sweep of her mind, which could 
easily (he thought) be led to embrace all the objects on which he had set his 
heart. He looked upon her fortune only as a part of the complete and superb 
character of herself and her position: yet he was fully aware of the rise 
which it would immediately enable him, the poor barrister, to take. 
Eventually he would earn such success, and such honours, as would enable him 
to pay her back, with interest, that first advance in wealth which he should 
owe to her. He had been to Milton on business connected with her property, on 
his return from Scotland; and with the quick eye of a skilled lawyer, ready 
ever to take in and weigh contingencies, he had seen that much additional 
value was yearly accruing to the lands and tenements which she owned in that 
prosperous and increasing town. He was glad to find that the present 
relationship between Margaret and himself, of client and legal adviser, was 
gradually superseding the recollection of that unlucky, mismanaged day at 
Helstone. He had thus unusual opportunities of intimate intercourse with her, 
besides those that arose from the connection between the families. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret 
was only too willing to listen as long as he talked of Milton, though he had 
seen none of the people whom she more especially knew. It had been the tone 
with her aunt and cousin to speak of Milton with dislike and contempt; just 
such feelings as Margaret was ashamed to remember she had expressed and felt 
on first going to live there. But Mr. Lennox almost exceeded Margaret in his 
appreciation of the character of Milton and its inhabitants. Their energy, 
their power, their indomitable courage in struggling and fighting; their 
lurid vividness of existence, captivated and arrested his attention. He was 
never tired of talking about them; and had never perceived how selfish and 
material were too many of the ends they proposed to themselves as the result 
of all their mighty, untiring endeavour, till Margaret, even in the midst of 
her gratification, had the candour to point this out, as the tainting sin in 
so much that was noble, and to be admired. Still, when other subjects palled 
upon her, and she gave but short answers to many questions, Henry Lennox 
found out that an enquiry as to some Darkshire peculiarity of character, 
called back the light into her eye, the glow into her cheek. 
</p>
               <p>When they 
returned to town, Margaret fulfilled one of her sea-side resolves, and took 
her life into her own hands. Before they went to Cromer, she had been as 
docile to her aunt's laws as if she were still the scared little stranger who 
cried herself to sleep that first night in the Harley Street nursery. But she 
had learnt, in those solemn hours of thought, that she herself must one day 
answer for her own life, and what she had done with it; and she tried to 
settle that most difficult problem for women, how much was to be utterly 
merged in obedience to authority, and how much might be set apart for freedom 
in working. Mrs. Shaw was as good-tempered as could be; and Edith had 
inherited this charming domestic quality; Margaret herself had probably the 
worst temper of the three, for her quick perceptions, and over-lively 
imagination made her hasty, and her early isolation from sympathy had made 
her proud; but she had an indescribable childlike sweetness of heart, which 
made her manners, even in her rarely wilful moods, irresistible of old; and 
now, chastened even by what the world called her good fortune, she charmed 
her reluctant aunt into acquiescence with her will. So Margaret gained the 
acknowledgment of her right to follow her own ideas of duty. 
</p>
               <p>'Only don't be 
strong-minded,' pleaded Edith. 'Mamma wants you to have a footman of your 
own; and I'm sure you're very welcome, for they're great plagues. Only to 
please me, darling, don't go and have a strong mind; it's the only thing I 
ask. Footman or no footman, don't be strong-minded.' 
</p>
               <p>'Don't be afraid, 
Edith. I'll faint on your hands at the servants' dinner-time, the very first 
opportunity; and then, what with Sholto playing with the fire, and the baby 
crying, you'll begin to wish for a strong-minded woman, equal to any 
emergency.' 
</p>
               <p>'And you'll not grow too good to joke and be merry?' 
</p>
               <p>'Not I. 
I shall be merrier than I have ever been, now I have got my own way.' 
</p>
               <p>'And 
you'll not go a figure, but let me buy your dresses for you?' 
</p>
               <p>'Indeed I 
mean to buy them for myself. You shall come with me if you like; but no one 
can please me but myself.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! I was afraid you'd dress in brown and 
dust-colour, not to show the dirt you'll pick up in all those places. I'm 
glad you're going to keep one or two vanities, just by way of specimens of 
the old Adam.' 
</p>
               <p>'I'm going to be just the same, Edith, if you and my aunt 
could but fancy so. Only as I have neither husband nor child to give me 
natural duties, I must make myself some, in addition to ordering my 
gowns.' 
</p>
               <p>In the family conclave, which was made up of Edith, her mother, and 
her husband, it was decided that perhaps all these plans of hers would only 
secure her the more for Henry Lennox. They kept her out of the way of other 
friends who might have eligible sons or brothers; and it was also agreed that 
she never seemed to take much pleasure in the society of any one but Henry, 
out of their own family. The other admirers, attracted by her appearance or 
the reputation of her fortune, were swept away, by her unconscious smiling 
disdain, into the paths frequented by other beauties less fastidious, or 
other heiresses with a larger amount of gold. Henry and she grew slowly into 
closer intimacy; but neither he nor she were people to brook the slightest 
notice of their proceedings. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.25" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XXV</head>
               <head>CHANGES AT MILTON</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Here we go up, up, up; </l>
                  <l>And here we go down, down, downee!' </l>
                  <l>NURSERY SONG. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Meanwhile, at Milton the chimneys smoked, the ceaseless roar and mighty 
beat, and dizzying whirl of machinery, struggled and strove perpetually. 
Senseless and purposeless were wood and iron and steam in their endless 
labours; but the persistence of their monotonous work was rivalled in 
tireless endurance by the strong crowds, who, with sense and with purpose, 
were busy and restless in seeking after—What? In the streets there were few 
loiterers,—none walking for mere pleasure; every man's face was set in lines 
of eagerness or anxiety; news was sought for with fierce avidity; and men 
jostled each other aside in the Mart and in the Exchange, as they did in 
life, in the deep selfishness of competition. There was gloom over the town. 
Few came to buy, and those who did were looked at suspiciously by the 
sellers; for credit was insecure, and the most stable might have their 
fortunes affected by the sweep in the great neighbouring port among the 
shipping houses. Hitherto there had been no failures in Milton; but, from the 
immense speculations that had come to light in making a bad end in America, 
and yet nearer home, it was known that some Milton houses of business must 
suffer so severely that every day men's faces asked, if their tongues did 
not, 'What news? Who is gone? How will it affect me?' And if two or three 
spoke together, they dwelt rather on the names of those who were safe than 
dared to hint at those likely, in their opinion, to go; for idle breath may, 
at such times, cause the downfall of some who might otherwise weather the 
storm; and one going down drags many after. 'Thornton is safe,' say they. 
'His business is large—extending every year; but such a head as he has, and 
so prudent with all his daring!' Then one man draws another aside, and walks 
a little apart, and, with head inclined into his neighbour's ear, he says, 
'Thornton's business is large; but he has spent his profits in extending it; 
he has no capital laid by; his machinery is new within these two years, and 
has cost him—we won't say what!—a word to the wise!' But that Mr. Harrison 
was a croaker,—a man who had succeeded to his father's trade-made fortune, 
which he had feared to lose by altering his mode of business to any having a 
larger scope; yet he grudged every penny made by others more daring and 
far-sighted. 
</p>
               <p>But the truth was, Mr. Thornton was hard pressed. He felt it 
acutely in his vulnerable point—his pride in the commercial character which 
he had established for himself. Architect of his own fortunes, he attributed 
this to no special merit or qualities of his own, but to the power, which he 
believed that commerce gave to every brave, honest, and persevering man, to 
raise himself to a level from which he might see and read the great game of 
worldly success, and honestly, by such far-sightedness, command more power 
and influence than in. any other mode of life. Far away, in the East and in 
the West, where his person would never be known, his name was to be regarded, 
and his wishes to be fulfilled, and his word pass like gold. That was the 
idea of merchant-life with which Mr. Thornton had started. 'Her merchants be 
like princes,' said his mother, reading the text aloud, as if it were a 
trumpet-call to invite her boy to the struggle. He was but like many 
others—men, women, and children—alive to distant, and dead to near things. 
He sought to possess the influence of a name in foreign countries and 
far-away seas,—to become the head of a firm that should be known for 
generations; and it had taken him long silent years to come even to a 
glimmering of what he might be now, to-day, here in his own town, his own 
factory, among his own people. He and they had led parallel lives—very 
close, but never touching—till the accident (or so it seemed) of his 
acquaintance with Higgins. Once brought face to face, man to man, with an 
individual of the masses around him, and (take notice) out of the character 
of master and workman, in the first instance, they had each begun to 
recognise that 'we have all of us one human heart.' It was the fine point of 
the wedge; and until now, when the apprehension of losing his connection with 
two or three of the workmen whom he had so lately begun to know as men,—of 
having a plan or two, which were experiments lying very close to his heart, 
roughly nipped off without trial,—gave a new poignancy to the subtle fear 
that came over him from time to time; until now, he had never recognised how 
much and how deep was the interest he had grown of late to feel in his 
position as manufacturer, simply because it led him into such close contact, 
and gave him the opportunity of so much power, among a race of people 
strange, shrewd, ignorant; but, above all, full of character and strong human 
feeling. 
</p>
               <p>He reviewed his position as a Milton manufacturer. The strike a 
year and a half ago,—or more, for it was now untimely wintry weather, in a 
late spring,—that strike, when he was young, and he now was old—had 
prevented his completing some of the large orders he had then on hand. He had 
locked up a good deal of his capital in new and expensive machinery, and he 
had also bought cotton largely, for the fulfilment of these orders, taken 
under contract. That he had not been able to complete them, was owing in some 
degree to the utter want of skill on the part of the Irish hands whom he had 
imported; much of their work was damaged and unfit to be sent forth by a 
house which prided itself on turning out nothing but first-rate articles. For 
many months, the embarrassment caused by the strike had been an obstacle in 
Mr. Thornton's way; and often, when his eye fell on Higgins, he could have 
spoken angrily to him without any present cause, just from feeling how 
serious was the injury that had arisen from this affair in which he was 
implicated. But when he became conscious of this sudden, quick resentment, he 
resolved to curb it. It would not satisfy him to avoid Higgins; he must 
convince himself that he was master over his own anger, by being particularly 
careful to allow Higgins access to him, whenever the strict rules of 
business, or Mr. Thornton's leisure permitted. And by-and-bye, he lost all 
sense of resentment in wonder how it was, or could be, that two men like 
himself and Higgins, living by the same trade, working in their different 
ways at the same object, could look upon each other's position and duties in 
so strangely different a way. And thence arose that intercourse, which though 
it might not have the effect of preventing all future clash of opinion and 
action, when the occasion arose, would, at any rate, enable both master and 
man to look upon each other with far more charity and sympathy, and bear with 
each other more patiently and kindly. Besides this improvement of feeling, 
both Mr. Thornton and his workmen found out their ignorance as to positive 
matters of fact, known heretofore to one side, but not to the other. 
</p>
               <p>But 
now had come one of those periods of bad trade, when the market falling 
brought down the value of all large stocks; Mr. Thornton's fell to nearly 
half. No orders were coming in; so he lost the interest of the capital he had 
locked up in machinery; indeed, it was difficult to get payment for the 
orders completed; yet there was the constant drain of expenses for working 
the business. Then the bills became due for the cotton he had purchased; and 
money being scarce, he could only borrow at exorbitant interest, and yet he 
could not realise any of his property. But he did not despair; he exerted 
himself day and night to foresee and to provide for all emergencies; he was 
as calm and gentle to the women in his home as ever; to the workmen in his 
mill he spoke not many words, but they knew him by this time; and many a 
curt, decided answer was received by them rather with sympathy for the care 
they saw pressing upon him, than with the suppressed antagonism which had 
formerly been smouldering, and ready for hard words and hard judgments on all 
occasions. 'Th' measter's a deal to potter him,' said Higgins, one day, as he 
heard Mr. Thornton's short, sharp inquiry, why such a command had not been 
obeyed; and caught the sound of the suppressed sigh which he heaved in going 
past the room where some of the men were working. Higgins and another man 
stopped over-hours that night, unknown to any one, to get the neglected piece 
of work done; and Mr. Thornton never knew but that the overlooker, to whom he 
had given the command in the first instance, had done it himself 
</p>
               <p>'Eh! I 
reckon I know who'd ha' been sorry for to see our measter sitting so like a 
piece o' grey calico! Th' ou'd parson would ha' fretted his woman's heart 
out, if he'd seen the woeful looks I have seen on our measter's face,' 
thought Higgins, one day, as he was approaching Mr. Thornton in Marlborough 
Street. 
</p>
               <p>'Measter,' said he, stopping his employer in his quick resolved 
walk, and causing that gentleman to look up with a sudden annoyed start, as 
if his thoughts had been far away. 
</p>
               <p>'Have yo' heerd aught of Miss Marget 
lately?' 
</p>
               <p>'Miss—who?' replied Mr. Thornton. 
</p>
               <p>'Miss Marget—Miss Hale—th' 
oud parson's daughter—yo known who I mean well enough, if yo'll only think a 
bit—' (there was nothing disrespectful in the tone in which this was 
said). 
</p>
               <p>'Oh yes!' and suddenly, the wintry frost-bound look of care had left 
Mr. Thornton's face, as if some soft summer gale had blown all anxiety away 
from his mind; and though his mouth was as much compressed as before, his 
eyes smiled out benignly on his questioner. 
</p>
               <p>'She's my landlord now, you 
know, Higgins. I hear of her through her agent here, every now and then. 
She's well and among friends—thank you, Higgins.' That 'thank you' that 
lingered after the other words, and yet came with so much warmth of feeling, 
let in a new light to the acute Higgins. It might be but a will-o'-th'-wisp, 
but he thought he would follow it and ascertain whither it would lead 
him. 
</p>
               <p>'And she's not getten married, measter?' 
</p>
               <p>'Not yet.' The face was 
cloudy once more. 'There is some talk of it, as I understand, with a 
connection of the family.' 
</p>
               <p>'Then she'll not be for coming to Milton again, 
I reckon.' 
</p>
               <p>'No!' 
</p>
               <p>'Stop a minute, measter.' Then going up confidentially 
close, he said, 'Is th' young gentleman cleared?' He enforced the depth of 
his intelligence by a wink of the eye, which only made things more mysterious 
to Mr. Thornton. 
</p>
               <p>'Th' young gentleman, I mean—Master Frederick, they ca'ad 
him—her brother as was over here, yo' known.' 
</p>
               <p>'Over here.' 
</p>
               <p>'Ay, to be 
sure, at th' missus's death. Yo' need na be feared of my telling; for Mary 
and me, we knowed it all along, only we held our peace, for we got it through 
Mary working. in th' house.' 
</p>
               <p>'And he was over. It was her brother!' 
</p>
               <p>'Sure 
enough, and I reckoned yo' knowed it or I'd never ha' let on. Yo' knowed she 
had a brother?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes, I know all about him. And he was over at Mrs. Hale's 
death?' 
</p>
               <p>'Nay! I'm not going for to tell more. I've maybe getten them into 
mischief already, for they kept it very close. I nobbut wanted to know if 
they'd getten him cleared?' 
</p>
               <p>'Not that I know of. I know nothing. I only 
hear of Miss Hale, now, as my landlord, and through her lawyer.' 
</p>
               <p>He broke 
off from Higgins, to follow the business on which he had been bent when the 
latter first accosted him; leaving Higgins baffled in his endeavour. 
</p>
               <p>'It 
was her brother,' said Mr. Thornton to himself. 'I am glad. I may never see 
her again; but it is a comfort—a relief—to know that much. I knew she could 
not be unmaidenly; and yet I yearned for conviction. Now I am glad!' 
</p>
               <p>It was 
a little golden thread running through the dark web of his present fortunes; 
which were growing ever gloomier and more gloomy. His agent had largely 
trusted a house in the American trade, which went down, along with several 
others, just at this time, like a pack of cards, the fall of one compelling 
other failures. What were Mr. Thornton's engagements? Could he stand? 
</p>
               <p>Night 
after night he took books and papers into his own private room, and sate up 
there long after the family were gone to bed. He thought that no one knew of 
this occupation of the hours he should have spent in sleep. One morning, when 
daylight was stealing in through the crevices of his shutters, and he had 
never been in bed, and, in hopeless indifference of mind, was thinking that 
he could do without the hour or two of rest, which was all that he should be 
able to take before the stir of daily labour began again, the door of his 
room opened, and his mother stood there, dressed as she had been the day 
before. She had never laid herself down to slumber any more than he. Their 
eyes met. Their faces were cold and rigid, and wan, from long 
watching. 
</p>
               <p>'Mother! why are not you in bed?' 
</p>
               <p>'Son John,' said she, 'do you 
think I can sleep with an easy mind, while you keep awake full of care? You 
have not told me what your trouble is; but sore trouble you have had these 
many days past.' 
</p>
               <p>'Trade is bad.' 
</p>
               <p>'And you dread——' 
</p>
               <p>'I dread nothing,' 
replied he, drawing up his head, and holding it erect. 'I know now that no 
man will suffer by me. That was my anxiety.' 
</p>
               <p>'But how do you stand? Shall 
you—will it be a failure?' her steady voice trembling in an unwonted 
manner. 
</p>
               <p>'Not a failure. I must give up business, but I pay all men. I might 
redeem myself—I am sorely tempted—' 
</p>
               <p>'How? Oh, John! keep up your 
name—try all risks for that. How redeem it?' 
</p>
               <p>'By a speculation offered to 
me, full of risk; but, if successful, placing me high above water-mark, so 
that no one need ever know the strait I am in. Still, if it fails—' 
</p>
               <p>'And 
if it fails,' said she, advancing, and laying her hand on his arm, her eyes 
full of eager light. She held her breath to hear the end of his 
speech. 
</p>
               <p>'Honest men are ruined by a rogue,' said he gloomily. 'As I stand 
now, my creditors, money is safe—every farthing of it; but I don't know 
where to find my own—it may be all gone, and I penniless at this moment. 
Therefore, it is my creditors' money that I should risk.' 
</p>
               <p>'But if it 
succeeded, they need never know. Is it so desperate a speculation? I am sure 
it is not, or you would never have thought of it. If it succeeded—' 
</p>
               <p>'I 
should be a rich man, and my peace of conscience would be gone!' 
</p>
               <p>'Why! You 
would have injured no one.' 
</p>
               <p>'No; but I should have run the risk of ruining 
many for my own paltry aggrandisement. Mother, I have decided! You won't much 
grieve over our leaving this house, shall you, dear mother?' 
</p>
               <p>'No! but to 
have you other than what you are will break my heart. What can you do?' 
</p>
               <p>'Be 
always the same John Thornton in whatever circumstances; endeavouring to do 
right, and making great blunders; and then trying to be brave in setting to 
afresh. But it is hard, mother. I have so worked and planned. I have 
discovered new powers in my situation too late—and now all is over. I am too 
old to begin again with the same heart. It is hard, mother.' 
</p>
               <p>He turned away 
from her, and covered his face with his hands. 
</p>
               <p>'I can't think,' said she, 
with gloomy defiance in her tone, 'how it comes about. Here is my boy—good 
son, just man, tender heart—and he fails in all he sets his mind upon: he 
finds a woman to love, and she cares no more for his affection than if he had 
been any common man; he labours, and his labour comes to nought. Other people 
prosper and grow rich, and hold their paltry names high and dry above 
shame.' 
</p>
               <p>'Shame never touched me,' said he, in a low tone: but she went 
on. 
</p>
               <p>'I sometimes have wondered where justice was gone to, and now I don't 
believe there is such a thing in the world,—now you are come to this; you, 
my own John Thornton, though you and I may be beggars together—my own dear 
son!' 
</p>
               <p>She fell upon his neck, and kissed him through her tears. 
</p>
               <p>'Mother!' 
said he, holding her gently in his arms, 'who has sent me my lot in life, 
both of good and of evil?' 
</p>
               <p>She shook her head. She would have nothing to do 
with religion just then. 
</p>
               <p>'Mother,' he went on, seeing that she would not 
speak, 'I, too, have been rebellious; but I am striving to be so no longer. 
Help me, as you helped me when I was a child. Then you said many good 
words—when my father died, and we were sometimes sorely short of 
comforts—which we shall never be now; you said brave, noble, trustful words 
then, mother, which I have never forgotten, though they may have lain 
dormant. Speak to me again in the old way, mother. Do not let us have to 
think that the world has too much hardened our hearts. If you would say the 
old good words, it would make me feel something of the pious simplicity of my 
childhood. I say them to myself, but they would come differently from you, 
remembering all the cares and trials you have had to bear.' 
</p>
               <p>'I have had a 
many,' said she, sobbing, 'but none so sore as this. To see you cast down 
from your rightful place! I could say it for myself, John, but not for you. 
Not for you! God has seen fit to be very hard on you, very.' 
</p>
               <p>She shook with 
the sobs that come so convulsively when an old person weeps. The silence 
around her struck her at last; and she quieted herself to listen. No sound. 
She looked. Her son sate by the table, his arms thrown half across it, his 
head bent face downwards. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, John!' she said, and she lifted his face up. 
Such a strange, pallid look of gloom was on it, that for a moment it struck 
her that this look was the forerunner of death; but, as the rigidity melted 
out of the countenance and the natural colour returned, and she saw that he 
was himself once again, all worldly mortification sank to nothing before the 
consciousness of the great blessing that he himself by his simple existence 
was to her. She thanked God for this, and this alone, with a fervour that 
swept away all rebellious feelings from her mind. 
</p>
               <p>He did not speak readily; 
but he went and opened the shutters, and let the ruddy light of dawn flood 
the room. But the wind was in the east; the weather was piercing cold, as it 
had been for weeks; there would be no demand for light summer goods this 
year. That hope for the revival of trade must utterly be given up. 
</p>
               <p>It was a 
great comfort to have had this conversation with his mother; and to feel sure 
that, however they might henceforward keep silence on all these anxieties, 
they yet understood each other's feelings, and were, if not in harmony, at 
least not in discord with each other, in their way of viewing them. Fanny's 
husband was vexed at Thornton's refusal to take any share in the speculation 
which he had offered to him, and withdrew from any possibility of being 
supposed able to assist him with the ready money, which indeed the speculator 
needed for his own venture. 
</p>
               <p>There was nothing for it at last, but that 
which Mr. Thornton had dreaded for many weeks; he had to give up the business 
in which he had been so long engaged with so much. honour and success; and 
look out for a subordinate situation. Marlborough Mills and the adjacent 
dwelling were held under a long lease; they must, if possible, be relet. 
There was an immediate choice of situations offered to Mr. Thornton. Mr. 
Hamper would have been only too glad to have secured him as a steady and 
experienced partner for his son, whom he was setting up with a large capital 
in a neighbouring town; but the young man was half-educated as regarded 
information, and wholly uneducated as regarded any other responsibility than 
that of getting money, and brutalised both as to his pleasures and his pains. 
Mr. Thornton declined having any share in a partnership, which would 
frustrate what few plans he had that survived the wreck of his fortunes. He 
would sooner consent to be only a manager, where he could have a certain 
degree of power beyond the mere money-getting part, than have to fall in with 
the tyrannical humours of a moneyed partner with whom he felt sure that he 
should quarrel in a few months. 
</p>
               <p>So he waited, and stood on one side with 
profound humility, as the news swept through the Exchange, of the enormous 
fortune which his brother-in-law had made by his daring speculation. It was a 
nine days' wonder. Success brought with it its worldly consequence of extreme 
admiration. No one was considered so wise and far-seeing as Mr. Watson. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.26" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XXVI</head>
               <head>MEETING AGAIN</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'Bear up, brave heart! we will be calm and strong; </l>
                  <l>Sure, we can master eyes, or cheek, or tongue, </l>
                  <l>Nor let the smallest tell-tale sign appear </l>
                  <l>She ever was, and is, and will be dear.' </l>
                  <l>RHYMING PLAY. </l>
               </q>
               <p>It was a hot summer's evening. Edith came into Margaret's bedroom, the 
first time in her habit, the second ready dressed for dinner. No one was 
there at first; the next time Edith found Dixon laying out Margaret's dress 
on the bed; but no Margaret. Edith remained to fidget about. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, Dixon! 
not those horrid blue flowers to that dead gold-coloured gown. What taste! 
Wait a minute, and I will bring you some pomegranate blossoms.' 
</p>
               <p>'It's not a 
dead gold-colour, ma'am. It's a straw-colour. And blue always goes with 
straw-colour.' But Edith had brought the brilliant scarlet flowers before 
Dixon had got half through her remonstrance. 
</p>
               <p>'Where is Miss Hale?' asked 
Edith, as soon as she had tried the effect of the garniture. 'I can't think,' 
she went on, pettishly, 'how my aunt allowed her to get into such rambling 
habits in Milton! I'm sure I'm always expecting to hear of her having met 
with something horrible among all those wretched places she pokes herself 
into. I should never dare to go down some of those streets without a servant. 
They're not fit for ladies.' 
</p>
               <p>Dixon was still huffed about her despised 
taste; so she replied, rather shortly: 
</p>
               <p>'It's no wonder to my mind, when I 
hear ladies talk such a deal about being ladies—and when they're such 
fearful, delicate, dainty ladies too—I say it's no wonder to me that there 
are no longer any saints on earth——' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, Margaret! here you are! I have 
been so wanting you. But how your cheeks are flushed with the heat, poor 
child! But only think what that tiresome Henry has done; really, he exceeds 
brother-in-law's limits. Just when my party was made up so 
beautifully—fitted in so precisely for Mr. Colthurst—there has Henry come, 
with an apology it is true, and making use of your name for an excuse, and 
asked me if he may bring that Mr. Thornton of Milton—your tenant, you 
know—who is in London about some law business. It will spoil my number, 
quite.' 
</p>
               <p>'I don't mind dinner. I don't want any,' said Margaret, in a low 
voice. 'Dixon can get me a cup of tea here, and I will be in the drawing-room 
by the time you come up. I shall really be glad to lie down.' 
</p>
               <p>'No, no! that 
will never do. You do look wretchedly white, to be sure; but that is just the 
heat, and we can't do without you possibly. (Those flowers a little lower, 
Dixon. They look glorious flames, Margaret, in your black hair.) You know we 
planned you to talk about Milton to Mr. Colthurst. Oh! to be sure! and this 
man comes from Milton. I believe it will be capital, after all. Mr. Colthurst 
can pump him well on all the subjects in which he is interested, and it will 
be great fun to trace out your experiences, and this Mr. Thornton's wisdom, 
in Mr. Colthurst's next speech in the House. Really, I think it is a happy 
hit of Henry's. I asked him if he was a man one would be ashamed of; and he 
replied, “Not if you've any sense in you, my little sister.” So I suppose he 
Is able to sound his h's, which is not a common Darkshire accomplishment—eh, 
Margaret?' 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Lennox did not say why Mr. Thornton was come up to town? 
Was it law business connected with the property?' asked Margaret, in a 
constrained voice. 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! he's failed, or something of the kind, that Henry 
told you of that day you had such a headache,—what was it? (There, that's 
capital, Dixon. Miss Hale does us credit, does she not?) I wish I was as tall 
as a queen, and as brown as a gipsy, Margaret.' 
</p>
               <p>'But about Mr. 
Thornton?' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh I really have such a terrible head for law business. Henry 
will like nothing better than to tell you all about it. I know the impression 
he made upon me was, that Mr. Thornton is very badly off, and a very 
respectable man, and that I'm to be very civil to him; and as I did not know 
how, I came to you to ask you to help me. And now come down with me, and rest 
on the sofa for a quarter of an hour.' 
</p>
               <p>The privileged brother-in-law came 
early  and Margaret reddening as she spoke, began to ask him the questions 
she wanted to hear answered about Mr. Thornton. 
</p>
               <p>'He came up about this 
sub-letting the property—Marlborough Mills, and the house and premises 
adjoining, I mean. He is unable to keep it on; and there are deeds and leases 
to be looked over, and agreements to be drawn up. I hope Edith will receive 
him properly; but she was rather put out, as I could see, by the liberty I 
had taken in begging for an invitation for him. But I thought you would like 
to have some attention shown him: and one would be particularly scrupulous in 
paying every respect to a man who is going down in the world.' He had dropped 
his voice to speak to Margaret, by whom he was sitting; but as he ended he 
sprang up, and introduced Mr. Thornton, who had that moment entered, to Edith 
and Captain Lennox. 
</p>
               <p>Margaret looked with an anxious eye at Mr. Thornton 
while he was thus occupied. It was considerably more than a year since she 
had seen him; and events had occurred to change him much in that time. His 
fine figure yet bore him above the common height of men; and gave him a 
distinguished appearance, from the ease of motion which arose out of it, and 
was natural to him; but his face looked older and care-worn; yet a noble 
composure sate upon it, which impressed those who had just been hearing of 
his changed position, with a sense of inherent dignity and manly strength. He 
was aware, from the first glance he had given round the room, that Margaret 
was there; he had seen her intent look of occupation as she listened to Mr. 
Henry Lennox; and he came up to her with the perfectly regulated manner of an 
old friend. With his first calm words a vivid colour flashed into her cheeks, 
which never left them again during the evening. She did not seem to have much 
to say to him. She disappointed him by the quiet way in which she asked what 
seemed to him to be the merely necessary questions respecting her old 
acquaintances, in Milton; but others came in—more intimate in the house than 
he—and he fell into the background, where he and Mr. Lennox talked together 
from time to time. 
</p>
               <p>'You think Miss Hale looking well,' said Mr. Lennox, 
'don't you? Milton didn't agree with her, I imagine; for when she first came 
to London, I thought I had never seen any one so much changed. To-night she 
is looking radiant. But she is much stronger. Last autumn she was fatigued 
with a walk of a couple of miles. On Friday evening we walked up to Hampstead 
and back. Yet on Saturday she looked as well as she does now. 
</p>
               <p>'We!' Who? 
They two alone? 
</p>
               <p>Mr. Colthurst was a very clever man, and a rising member of 
parliament. He had a quick eye at discerning character, and was struck by a 
remark which Mr. Thornton made at dinner-time. He enquired from Edith who 
that gentleman was; and, rather to her surprise, she found, from the tone of 
his 'Indeed!' that Mr. Thornton of Milton was not such an unknown name to him 
as she had imagined it would be. Her dinner was going off well. Henry was in 
good humour, and brought out his dry caustic wit admirably. Mr. Thornton and 
Mr. Colthurst found one or two mutual subjects of interest, which they could 
only touch upon then, reserving them for more private after-dinner talk. 
Margaret looked beautiful in the pomegranate flowers; and if she did lean 
back in her chair and speak but little, Edith was not annoyed, for the 
conversation flowed on smoothly without her. Margaret was watching Mr. 
Thornton's face. He never looked at her; so she might study him unobserved, 
and note the changes which even this short time had wrought in him. Only at 
some unexpected mot of Mr. Lennox's, his face flashed out into the old look 
of intense enjoyment; the merry brightness returned to his eyes, the lips 
just parted to suggest the brilliant smile of former days; and for an 
instant, his glance instinctively sought hers, as if he wanted her sympathy. 
But when their eyes met, his whole countenance changed; he was grave and 
anxious once more; and he resolutely avoided even looking near her again 
during dinner. 
</p>
               <p>There were only two ladies besides their own party, and as 
these were occupied in conversation by her aunt and Edith, when they went up 
into the drawing-room, Margaret languidly employed herself about some work. 
Presently the gentlemen came up, Mr. Colthurst and Mr. Thornton in close 
conversation. Mr. Lennox drew near to Margaret, and said in a low voice: 
</p>
               <p>'I 
really think Edith owes me thanks for my contribution to her party. You've no 
idea what an agreeable, sensible fellow this tenant of yours is. He has been 
the very man to give Colthurst all the facts he wanted coaching in. I can't 
conceive how he contrived to mismanage his affairs.' 
</p>
               <p>'With his powers and 
opportunities you would have succeeded,' said Margaret. He did not quite 
relish the tone in which she spoke, although the words but expressed a 
thought which had passed through his own mind. As he was silent, they caught 
a swell in the sound of conversation going on near the fire-place between Mr. 
Colthurst and Mr. Thornton. 
</p>
               <p>'I assure you, I heard it spoken of with 
great interest—curiosity as to its result, perhaps I should rather say. I 
heard your name frequently mentioned during my short stay in the 
neighbourhood.' Then they lost some words; and when next they could hear Mr. 
Thornton was speaking. 
</p>
               <p>'I have not the elements for popularity—if they 
spoke of me in that way, they were mistaken. I fall slowly into new projects; 
and I find it difficult to let myself be known, even by those whom I desire 
to know, and with whom I would fain have no reserve. Yet, even with all these 
drawbacks, I felt that I was on the right path, and that, starting from a 
kind of friendship with one, I was becoming acquainted with many. The 
advantages were mutual: we were both unconsciously and consciously teaching 
each other.' 
</p>
               <p>'You say “were.” I trust you are intending to pursue the same 
course?' 
</p>
               <p>'I must stop Colthurst,' said Henry Lennox, hastily. And by an 
abrupt, yet apropos question, he turned the current of the conversation, so 
as not to give Mr. Thornton the mortification of acknowledging his want of 
success and consequent change of position. But as soon as the newly-started 
subject had come to a close, Mr. Thornton resumed the conversation just where 
it had been interrupted, and gave Mr. Colthurst the reply to his 
inquiry. 
</p>
               <p>'I have been unsuccessful in business, and have had to give up my 
position as a master. I am on the look out for a situation in Milton, where I 
may meet with employment under some one who will be willing to let me go 
along my own way in such matters as these. I can depend upon myself for 
having no go-ahead theories that I would rashly bring into practice. My only 
wish is to have the opportunity of cultivating some intercourse with the 
hands beyond the mere “cash nexus.” But it might be the point Archimedes 
sought from which to move the earth, to judge from the importance attached to 
it by some of our manufacturers, who shake their heads and look grave as soon 
as I name the one or two experiments that I should like to try.' 
</p>
               <p>'You call 
them “experiments” I notice,' said Mr. Colthurst, with a delicate increase of 
respect in his manner. 
</p>
               <p>'Because I believe them to be such. I am not sure of 
the consequences that may result from them. But I am sure they ought to be 
tried. I have arrived at the conviction that no mere institutions, however 
wise, and however much thought may have been required to organise and arrange 
them, can attach class to class as they should be attached, unless the 
working out of such institutions bring the individuals of the different 
classes into actual personal contact. Such intercourse is the very breath of 
life. A working man can hardly be made to feel and know how much his employer 
may have laboured in his study at plans for the benefit of his workpeople. A 
complete plan emerges like a piece of machinery, apparently fitted for every 
emergency. But the hands accept it as they do machinery, without 
understanding the intense mental labour and forethought required to bring it 
to such perfection. But I would take an idea, the working out of which would 
necessitate personal intercourse; it might not go well at first, but at every 
hitch interest would be felt by an increasing number of men, and at last its 
success in working come to be desired by all, as all had borne a part in the 
formation of the plan; and even then I am sure that it would lose its 
vitality, cease to be living, as soon as it was no longer carried on by that 
sort of common interest which invariably makes people find means and ways of 
seeing each other, and becoming acquainted with each others' characters and 
persons, and even tricks of temper and modes of speech. We should understand 
each other better, and I'll venture to say we should like each other 
more.' 
</p>
               <p>'And you think they may prevent the recurrence of strikes?' 
</p>
               <p>'Not 
at all. My utmost expectation only goes so far as this—that they may render 
strikes not the bitter, venomous sources of hatred they have hitherto been. A 
more hopeful man might imagine that a closer and more genial intercourse 
between classes might do away with strikes. But I am not a hopeful 
man.' 
</p>
               <p>Suddenly, as if a new idea had struck him, he crossed over to where 
Margaret was sitting, and began, without preface, as if he knew she had been 
listening to all that had passed: 
</p>
               <p>'Miss Hale, I had a round-robin from some 
of my men—I suspect in Higgins' handwriting—stating their wish to work for 
me, if ever I was in a position to employ men again on my own behalf. That 
was good, wasn't it?' 
</p>
               <p>'Yes. Just right. I am glad of it,' said Margaret, 
looking up straight into his face with her speaking eyes, and then dropping 
them under his eloquent glance. He gazed back at her for a minute, as if he 
did not know exactly what he was about. Then sighed; and saying, 'I knew you 
would like it,' he turned away, and never spoke to her again until he bid her 
a formal 'good night.' 
</p>
               <p>As Mr. Lennox took his departure, Margaret said, 
with a blush that she could not repress, and with some hesitation, 
</p>
               <p>'Can I 
speak to you to-morrow? I want your help about—something.' 
</p>
               <p>'Certainly. I 
will come at whatever time you name. You cannot give me a greater pleasure 
than by making me of any use. At eleven? Very well.' 
</p>
               <p>His eye brightened 
with exultation. How she was learning to depend upon him! It seemed as if any 
day now might give him the certainty, without having which he had determined 
never to offer to her again. 
</p>
            </div>
            <div xml:id="c2.27" type="chapter">
               <head>CHAPTER XXVII</head>
               <head>'PACK CLOUDS AWAY'</head>
               <q>
                  <l>'For joy or grief, for hope or fear, </l>
                  <l>For all hereafter, as for here, </l>
                  <l>In peace or strife, in storm or shine.' </l>
                  <l>ANON. </l>
               </q>
               <p>Edith went about on tip-toe, and checked Sholto in all loud speaking that 
next morning, as if any sudden noise would interrupt the conference that was 
taking place in the drawing-room. Two o'clock came; and they still sate there 
with closed doors. Then there was a man's footstep running down stairs; and 
Edith peeped out of the drawing-room. 
</p>
               <p>'Well, Henry?' said she, with a look 
of interrogation. 
</p>
               <p>'Well!' said he, rather shortly. 
</p>
               <p>'Come in to 
lunch!' 
</p>
               <p>'No, thank you, I can't. I've lost too much time here 
already.' 
</p>
               <p>'Then it's not all settled,' said Edith despondingly. 
</p>
               <p>'No! not 
at all. It never will be settled, if the “it” is what I conjecture you mean. 
That will never be, Edith, so give up thinking about it.' 
</p>
               <p>'But it would be 
so nice for us all,' pleaded Edith. 'I should always feel comfortable about 
the children, if I had Margaret settled down near me. As it is, I am always 
afraid of her going off to Cadiz.' 
</p>
               <p>'I will try, when I marry, to look out 
for a young lady who has a knowledge of the management of children. That is 
all I can do. Miss Hale would not have me. And I shall not ask her.' 
</p>
               <p>'Then, 
what have you been talking about?' 
</p>
               <p>'A thousand things you would not 
understand: investments, and leases, and value of land.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, go away if 
that's all. You and she will be unbearably stupid, if you've been talking all 
this time about such weary things.' 
</p>
               <p>'Very well. I'm coming again to-morrow, 
and bringing Mr. Thornton with me, to have some more talk with Miss 
Hale.' 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Thornton! What has he to do with it?' 
</p>
               <p>'He is Miss Hale's 
tenant,' said Mr. Lennox, turning away. 'And he wishes to give up his 
lease.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh! very well. I can't understand details, so don't give them 
me.' 
</p>
               <p>'The only detail I want you to understand is, to let us have the back 
drawing-room undisturbed, as it was to-day. In general, the children and 
servants are so in and out, that I can never get any business satisfactorily 
explained; and the arrangements we have to make to-morrow are of 
importance.' 
</p>
               <p>No one ever knew why Mr. Lennox did not keep to his 
appointment on the following day. Mr. Thornton came true to his time; and, 
after keeping him waiting for nearly an hour, Margaret came in looking very 
white and anxious. 
</p>
               <p>She began hurriedly: 
</p>
               <p>'I am so sorry Mr. Lennox is not 
here,—he could have done it so much better than I can. He is my adviser in 
this'—— 
</p>
               <p>'I am sorry that I came, if it troubles you. Shall I go to Mr. 
Lennox's chambers and try and find him?' 
</p>
               <p>'No, thank you. I wanted to tell 
you, how grieved I was to find that I am to lose you as a tenant. But, Mr. 
Lennox says, things are sure to brighten'—— 
</p>
               <p>'Mr. Lennox knows little 
about it,' said Mr. Thornton quietly. 'Happy and fortunate in all a man cares 
for, he does not understand what it is to find oneself no longer young—yet 
thrown back to the starting-point which requires the hopeful energy of 
youth—to feel one half of life gone, and nothing done—nothing remaining of 
wasted opportunity, but the bitter recollection that it has been. Miss Hale, 
I would rather not hear Mr. Lennox's opinion of my affairs. Those who are 
happy and successful themselves are too apt to make light of the misfortunes 
of others.' 
</p>
               <p>'You are unjust,' said Margaret, gently. 'Mr. Lennox has only 
spoken of the great probability which he believes there to be of your 
redeeming—your more than redeeming what you have lost—don't speak till I 
have ended—pray don't!' And collecting herself once more, she went on 
rapidly turning over some law papers, and statements of accounts in a 
trembling hurried manner. 'Oh! here it is! and—he drew me out a proposal—I 
wish he was here to explain it—showing that if you would take some money of 
mine, eighteen thousand and fifty-seven pounds, lying just at this moment 
unused in the bank, and bringing me in only two and a half per cent.—you 
could pay me much better interest, and might go on working Marlborough 
Mills.' Her voice had cleared itself and become more steady. Mr. Thornton did 
not speak, and she went on looking for some paper on which were written down 
the proposals for security; for she was most anxious to have it all looked 
upon in the light of a mere business arrangement, in which the principal 
advantage would be on her side. While she sought for this paper, her very 
heart-pulse was arrested by the tone in which Mr. Thornton spoke. His voice 
was hoarse, and trembling with tender passion, as he 
said:— 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret!' 
</p>
               <p>For an instant she looked up; and then sought to veil 
her luminous eyes by dropping her forehead on her hands. Again, stepping 
nearer, he besought her with another tremulous eager call upon her 
name. 
</p>
               <p>'Margaret!' 
</p>
               <p>Still lower went the head; more closely hidden was the 
face, almost resting on the table before her. He came close to her. He knelt 
by her side, to bring his face to a level with her ear; and whispered-panted 
out the words:— 
</p>
               <p>'Take care.—If you do not speak—I shall claim you as my 
own in some strange presumptuous way.—Send me away at once, if I must 
go;—Margaret!—' 
</p>
               <p>At that third call she turned her face, still covered 
with her small white hands, towards him, and laid it on his shoulder, hiding 
it even there; and it was too delicious to feel her soft cheek against his, 
for him to wish to see either deep blushes or loving eyes. He clasped her 
close. But they both kept silence. At length she murmured in a broken 
voice: 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, Mr. Thornton, I am not good enough!' 
</p>
               <p>'Not good enough! Don't 
mock my own deep feeling of unworthiness.' 
</p>
               <p>After a minute or two, he gently 
disengaged her hands from her face, and laid her arms as they had once before 
been placed to protect him from the rioters. 
</p>
               <p>'Do you remember, love?' he 
murmured. 'And how I requited you with my insolence the next day?' 
</p>
               <p>'I 
remember how wrongly I spoke to you,—that is all.' 
</p>
               <p>'Look here! Lift up 
your head. I have something to show you!' She slowly faced him, glowing with 
beautiful shame. 
</p>
               <p>'Do you know these roses?' he said, drawing out his 
pocket-book, in which were treasured up some dead flowers. 
</p>
               <p>'No!' she 
replied, with innocent curiosity. 'Did I give them to you?' 
</p>
               <p>'No! Vanity; 
you did not. You may have worn sister roses very probably.' 
</p>
               <p>She looked at 
them, wondering for a minute, then she smiled a little as she said— 
</p>
               <p>'They are from Helstone, are they not? I know the deep indentations round the 
leaves. Oh! have you been there? When were you there?' 
</p>
               <p>'I wanted to see the 
place where Margaret grew to what she is, even at the worst time of all, when 
I had no hope of ever calling her mine. I went there on my return from Havre.' 
</p>
               <p>'You must give them to me,' she said, trying to take them out of 
his hand with gentle violence. 
</p>
               <p>'Very well. Only you must pay me for them!' 
</p>
               <p>'How shall I ever tell Aunt Shaw?' she whispered, after some time of 
delicious silence. 
</p>
               <p>'Let me speak to her.' 
</p>
               <p>'Oh, no! I owe to her,—but what will she say?' 
</p>
               <p>'I can guess. Her first exclamation will be, “That man!”' 
</p>
               <p>'Hush!' said Margaret, 'or I shall try and show you your mother's 
indignant tones as she says, “That woman!”' 
</p>
            </div>
         </div>
      </body>
  </text>
</TEI>
